diff options
| author | nfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org> | 2025-01-23 14:05:34 -0800 |
|---|---|---|
| committer | nfenwick <nfenwick@pglaf.org> | 2025-01-23 14:05:34 -0800 |
| commit | b33c82711ad81013308d209b24b79996d3a2834e (patch) | |
| tree | 3ccc1731fa2cf820a53babf5a3c6cf041ae0d40c | |
| parent | 840d03bdec4064132fa87e0bc8e1a0b0a973e0ca (diff) | |
| -rw-r--r-- | .gitattributes | 4 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | LICENSE.txt | 11 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | README.md | 2 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/64437-0.txt | 10428 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/64437-0.zip | bin | 209453 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/64437-h.zip | bin | 2378067 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/64437-h/64437-h.htm | 14019 | ||||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/64437-h/images/cover.jpg | bin | 258983 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/64437-h/images/i_f001.jpg | bin | 258524 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/64437-h/images/i_p002.jpg | bin | 256409 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/64437-h/images/i_p032.jpg | bin | 257705 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/64437-h/images/i_p140.jpg | bin | 260362 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/64437-h/images/i_p192.jpg | bin | 260012 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/64437-h/images/i_p244.jpg | bin | 258317 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/64437-h/images/i_p256.jpg | bin | 257541 -> 0 bytes | |||
| -rw-r--r-- | old/64437-h/images/i_p306.jpg | bin | 255472 -> 0 bytes |
16 files changed, 17 insertions, 24447 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes new file mode 100644 index 0000000..d7b82bc --- /dev/null +++ b/.gitattributes @@ -0,0 +1,4 @@ +*.txt text eol=lf +*.htm text eol=lf +*.html text eol=lf +*.md text eol=lf diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt new file mode 100644 index 0000000..6312041 --- /dev/null +++ b/LICENSE.txt @@ -0,0 +1,11 @@ +This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements, +metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be +in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES. + +Procedures for determining public domain status are described in +the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org. + +No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in +jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize +this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright +status under the laws that apply to them. diff --git a/README.md b/README.md new file mode 100644 index 0000000..700a8c2 --- /dev/null +++ b/README.md @@ -0,0 +1,2 @@ +Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for +eBook #64437 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/64437) diff --git a/old/64437-0.txt b/old/64437-0.txt deleted file mode 100644 index 9a0873f..0000000 --- a/old/64437-0.txt +++ /dev/null @@ -1,10428 +0,0 @@ -The Project Gutenberg eBook, Leaders of the People, by Joseph Clayton - - -This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most -other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions -whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of -the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at -www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll have -to check the laws of the country where you are located before using this ebook. - - - - -Title: Leaders of the People - Studies in Democratic History - - -Author: Joseph Clayton - - - -Release Date: February 1, 2021 [eBook #64437] - -Language: English - -Character set encoding: UTF-8 - - -***START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK LEADERS OF THE PEOPLE*** - - -E-text prepared by deaurider, Charlie Howard, and the Online Distributed -Proofreading Team (http://www.pgdp.net) from page images generously made -available by Internet Archive (https://archive.org) - - - -Note: Project Gutenberg also has an HTML version of this - file which includes the original illustrations. - See 64437-h.htm or 64437-h.zip: - (http://www.gutenberg.org/files/64437/64437-h/64437-h.htm) - or - (http://www.gutenberg.org/files/64437/64437-h.zip) - - - Images of the original pages are available through - Internet Archive. See - https://archive.org/details/leadersofpeoples00clayiala - - - - - -[Illustration: _John Hampden._ - -_From a print by J. Houbraken 1740._] - - -LEADERS OF THE PEOPLE - -Studies in Democratic History - -by - -JOSEPH CLAYTON ❦ ❦ - -With a Frontispiece in Photogravure -and Numerous Other Illustrations - - - - - - -New York: Mitchell Kennerley -Two East Twenty-Ninth Street · MCMXI - - - - - To the Memory of - - FREDERICK YORK POWELL - - Regius Professor of Modern History - at the University of Oxford - 1894–1904 - - “I loved him in life and I love him - none the less in death: for what - I loved in him is not dead.” - - - - -CONTENTS - - - _Page_ - PREFACE xi - - I. ARCHBISHOP ANSELM AND NORMAN AUTOCRACY, 1093–1130 3 - - II. THOMAS OF CANTERBURY, THE DEFENDER OF THE POOR, 1162–1170 33 - - III. WILLIAM FITZOSBERT, THE FIRST ENGLISH AGITATOR, 1188–1189 69 - - IV. STEPHEN LANGTON AND THE GREAT CHARTER, 1207–1215 81 - - V. BISHOP GROSSETESTE, THE REFORMER, 1235–1253 99 - - VI. SIMON OF MONTFORT AND THE ENGLISH PARLIAMENT, 1258–1265 117 - - VII. WAT TYLER AND THE PEASANT REVOLT, 1381 141 - - VIII. JACK CADE, THE CAPTAIN OF KENT, 1450 173 - - IX. SIR THOMAS MORE AND FREEDOM OF CONSCIENCE, 1529–1535 193 - - X. ROBERT KET AND THE NORFOLK RISING, 1549 217 - - XI. ELIOT, HAMPDEN, AND PYM AND THE SUPREMACY OF THE COMMONS, - 1626–1643 245 - - XII. JOHN LILBURNE AND THE LEVELLERS, 1647–1653 277 - - XIII. WINSTANLEY THE DIGGER, 1649–1650 293 - - XIV. MAJOR CARTWRIGHT, THE FATHER OF REFORM, 1776–1820 307 - - XV. ERNEST JONES AND CHARTISM, 1838–1868 319 - - CONCLUSION 335 - - INDEX 339 - - - - -LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS - - - JOHN HAMPDEN - _From the Engraving by Jacob Houbraken_ _Frontispiece_ - - facing p. - ARCHBISHOP ANSELM - _From an Old French Engraving in the British Museum_ 3 - - THOMAS À BECKET - _From an Engraving after Van Eyck_ 33 - - KING RICHARD II. - _From the Panel Painting in the Sanctuary in Westminster Abbey_ 141 - - SIR THOMAS MORE - _From the Drawing by Hans Holbein_ 193 - - SIR JOHN ELIOT - _From a Steel Engraving by William Holl_ 245 - - JOHN PYM - _From the Engraving by Jacob Houbraken_ 257 - - MAJOR CARTWRIGHT - _From a Contemporary Drawing_ 307 - - - - -PREFACE - - “_Let us now praise famous men, and our fathers who begat us._” - - -The names of the seventeen men, here named “Leaders of the People,” are -for the most part familiar in our mouths as household words. Those who -triumphed, like Anselm and Stephen Langton; or whose cause triumphed, -like Simon of Montfort, Eliot, Pym and Hampden, are beyond any loss of -fame. Those who in high place quitted themselves like men and died game -(if the phrase may be permitted), as did Thomas Becket and Sir Thomas -More, have, for all time, deservedly their reward. The unsuccessful -rebels, FitzOsbert (called Longbeard), Wat Tyler, Jack Cade and Robert -Ket, are hard put to get rid of the obloquy heaped upon them by -contemporary authority; while the later rebels, equally unsuccessful, -Lilburne, Winstanley, Major Cartwright and Ernest Jones, relying on -the pen rather than the sword, escaped the hangman, and in so doing -narrowly escaped oblivion. Good Bishop Grosseteste, living out his long -life, thwarted often, but unmartyred, enjoys the reputation commonly -awarded to conscientious public servants who die in harness. - -On the whole, re-perusing the records of these seventeen men, who would -altogether reverse the verdicts of time? The obloquy may be removed -when the work of the rebels is fairly seen, and it may be judged that -they deserved better of the State than appeared when they troubled its -peace. The rebels of the pen, too, should be worthy of recollection -in this age, for they wrought manfully with the weapon now at once so -powerful and so popular. The greater men of our series stand out higher -as the distance increases. So far readjusted, the awards of history may -be accepted. - -But with all the differences of character, one common quality binds -these men whose stories are here retold--a resolute hatred of -oppression. And one common work, successful or unsuccessful, was -theirs--to labour for the liberties of England and the health of its -people. The value of each man’s work can only be stated approximately: -it is difficult to make full allowance for the vastly different parts -our heroes, statesmen and rebels alike, were called to play. The great -thing is, that whatever the part, they played it faithfully, as they -read it, to the end. We may admit the degrees of service given: it is -impossible to do otherwise. Some of these Leaders shone as great orbs -of light in their day and generation, lighting not only England, but -all western Europe--and still their light burns true and clear across -the centuries. Others were but flickering rush-lights--long extinct -now. But none were will-o’-the-wisps, for all helped to show the road -to be travelled by English men and women seeking freedom, and moving -ever towards democracy. At the least, we--enjoying an inheritance won -at a great price, and only to be retained on terms no easier--can -keep the memory green of some few valiant servants of our liberties. -What is wanted is a real history of the growth of the idea of freedom -and of popular liberty in this country; and these rough biographical -sketches may be accepted as a contribution to the materials for such a -book. “Biography is a department of history, and stands to it as the -life-history of a plant or an animal does to general biology.” - -I have gone back to all the original sources to get once more at the -lives of these “Leaders of the People,” and to see them as they were -seen by their contemporaries; but I have also done my best to read -what the historians of our own day have written concerning them, and -in mentioning my authorities I have, in each case, given a list of the -modern books that seem to me valuable. - - J. C. - -_September, 1910._ - - - - -Archbishop Anselm and Norman Autocracy - -1093–1109 - - -AUTHORITIES: Eadmer--_Historia Novorum_ and _Life of Anselm_; Orderic -of St. Evroul; _The English Chronicle_; Florence of Worcester; William -of Malmesbury; (Rolls Series); Sir Francis Palgrave--_England and -Normandy_; Freeman--_Norman Conquest_, Vol. V., _Reign of William -Rufus_; Dean Church--_St. Anselm_. - -[Illustration: ARCHBISHOP ANSELM - -(_From an old French Engraving in the British Museum._)] - - - - -ARCHBISHOP ANSELM AND NORMAN AUTOCRACY - -1093–1109. - - -The first real check to the absolutism of Norman rule in England was -given by Anselm, Archbishop of Canterbury. - -The turbulent ambition of Norman barons threatened the sovereignity of -William the Conqueror and of his son, the Red King, often enough, but -these outbreaks promised no liberty for England. The fires of English -revolt were stamped out utterly five years after Senlac, and the great -Conqueror at his death left England crushed; but he left it under the -discipline of religion, and he left it loyal to the authority of the -crown, grateful for the one protection against the lawless rule of the -barons. - -The English Chronicler, writing as “one who knew him and once lived at -his court,” summed up the character of the Conqueror’s life and work in -words that have been freely quoted through the centuries:-- - -“King William was wiser and mightier than any of his forerunners. He -built many minsters, and was gentle to God’s servants, though stern -beyond all measure to those who withstood his will.... So stark and -fierce was he that none dared resist his will. Earls that did aught -against his bidding he put in bonds, and bishops he set off their -bishoprics, and abbots off their abbacies, and thanes he cast into -prison. He spared not his own brother, called Odo, who was the chief -man next to the king, but set him in prison. So just was he that the -good peace he made in this land cannot be forgotten. For he made it so -that a man might fare alone over his realm with his bosom full of gold, -unhurt; and no man durst slay another man whatsoever the evil he hath -done him; and if any man harmed a woman he was punished accordingly. He -ruled over England, and surveyed the land with such skill that there -was not one hide but that he knew who held it, and what it was worth, -and these things he set in a written book. So mighty was he that he -held Normandy and Brittany, won England and Maine, brought Scotland and -Wales to bow to him, and would, had he lived two years longer, have -won Ireland by his renown, without need of weapons. Yet surely in his -time men had much travail and very many sorrows; and poor men he made -to toil hard for the castles he had built. He fell on covetousness, and -the love of gold; and took by right and by unright many marks of gold -and more hundred pounds of silver of his people, and for little need. -He made great deer-parks, and ordered that whoso slew hart or hind, him -men should blind; and forbade men to slay deer or boar, and made the -hare go free; he loved the big game as if he were their father. And the -poor men that were oppressed he recked nought of. All must follow the -king’s will if they would live, or have land, or even a quiet life.” - -But now, in September, 1087, the great King William was dead, with -his life-work done; and from the tyranny of a strong and just ruler, -England passed to the despotism of his fearless son, William the Red, -who was “terrible and mighty over his land and his men and towards all -his neighbours;” in whose reign “all that was loathsome in the eyes of -God and righteous men was of common use; wherefore he was loathed by -well-nigh all his people, and hateful to God as his end showed.” - -There was much of the later Puritan in William I. in the steadfastness -of purpose, the suppression of “malignants,” and determination to have -justice done, no less than in the sincerity for Church reform, and -the deep respect for the ordinances of religion. No king of England -worked more harmoniously with a strong archbishop than William I. with -Lanfranc--save, perhaps, Charles I. with Laud. - -Then on the death of William I., followed less than two years later -by Lanfranc’s, came the reaction in Church and State from the efforts -after law, religion, and social decency under the Conqueror’s rule. - -The Red King had all his father’s sternness and strength, but was -without any of that belief in justice, that faith in the Sovereign -Power of a Living God, that desire for law and order, and that grave -austerity in morals, which saved the Conqueror from baseness in his -tyranny. - -William II., unmarried, made the wildest and most brutish profligacy -fashionable at court. To pay for his debaucheries and extravagances -he plundered all who could pay, in especial the Church, enjoying the -revenues of all vacant sees and abbeys, and declining to fill up the -vacancies so that this enjoyment might remain. After Lanfranc, as the -king’s chief adviser, came Ranulf (nicknamed the Torch, or Firebrand), -a coarse, unscrupulous bully, with the wit of a criminal lawyer. This -man was made Bishop of Durham, and Justiciar. For him government -meant nothing but the art of getting money for his royal master, and -silencing all opposition. - -For over three years there was no Archbishop of Canterbury, and the -Red King refused to fill up the vacancy caused by Lanfranc’s death, -preferring to enjoy the revenues and possessions of the see; a thing -that was shocking to all lovers of religion, and scandalous to those -who cared for public decency and the good estate of the country. - -Eadmer, a contemporary, describes the condition of England in those -early years of William II.:-- - -“The king seized the church at Canterbury, the mother of all England, -Scotland, and Ireland, and the neighbouring isles; he bade his officers -to make an inventory of all that belonged to it, within and without; -and after he had fixed an allowance for the support of the monks who -served God in that place, he ordered the remainder to be disposed of -at a rent and brought under his domain. So he put up the Church of -Christ to sale; giving the power of lordship over it to anyone who, -however hurtful he might be, would bid the highest price. Every year, -in wretched succession, a new rent was set; for the king would allow no -bargain to remain settled, and whoever promised more ousted him who was -paying less, unless the former tenant, giving up his original bargain, -came up of his own accord to the offer of the later bidder: and every -day might be seen, besides, the most abandoned of men on their business -of collecting money for the king, marching about the cloisters of the -monastery, heedless of the religious rule of God’s servants, and with -fierce and savage looks giving their orders on all sides; uttering -threats, lording it over every one, and showing their power to the -utmost. What scandals and quarrels and irregularities arose from this -I hate to remember. Some of the monks of the church were dispersed at -the coming of this misfortune, and sent to other houses, and those who -remained suffered many tribulations and indignities. What shall I say -of the church tenants, ground down by such wasting and misery, that one -might doubt, but that worse followed, whether escaping with bare life -they could have been more cruelly oppressed. Nor did all this happen -only at Canterbury. The same savage cruelty raged in all her daughter -churches in England, which, when bishop or abbot died, at that time -fell into widowhood. And this king, too, was the first who ordered this -woeful oppression against the churches of God; he had inherited nothing -of this sort from his father, but was alone in keeping the vacant -churches in his own hands. And thus, wherever you looked, there was -wretchedness before your eyes; and this distress lasted for nearly five -years over the Church of Canterbury, always increasing, always, as time -went on, growing more cruel and evil.” - -There is no word of exaggeration in this pitiful lament of Eadmer’s. -England under William II. was at the mercy of a Norman whose notion -of absolute monarchy was to bleed the land as a subject province. -Courageous in battle he was, and skilful in arms, but utterly heedless -of the welfare of the people he ruled. It was enough for the Red King -if his demands for money were met. There was no one strong enough to -gainsay his will, or stand before him as the prophets of old stood -before the kings of Israel, until Anselm came to Canterbury. It is only -in the utterances of men like Eadmer we learn something of the misery -of the nation.[1] - -The king was with his court at Gloucester at Christmas, 1092, and -Anselm, then abbot of the famous monastery of Bec in Normandy, was -in England at that time; partly to comfort his friend, Earl Hugh of -Chester, who was sick, and partly to attend to the English affairs of -his monastery. - -Anselm was known as the friend of Lanfranc. He had been a welcome guest -at the court of the Conqueror and in the cloisters at Canterbury. His -character stood high above all contemporaries in England or Normandy. -Anselm was surely the right man to be made archbishop, and so put -an end to a state of things which even to the turbulent barons was -discreditable to the country. - -The Red King bade Anselm come to his court, and received him with great -display of honour. Then came a private interview, and Anselm at once -told the king how men spoke ill of his misrule: “Openly or secretly -things were daily said of him by nearly all the men of his realm which -were not seemly for the king’s dignity.” They parted, and Anselm was -busy for some time in England. When the abbot wished to return to Bec -William refused him leave to quit the country. - -At the beginning of Lent, March, 1093, the king was lying sick at -Gloucester. It was believed the sickness was mortal. Certainly the king -thought himself dying. Anselm was summoned to minister to him, and on -his arrival bade the king “make a clean confession of all that he knows -that he has done against God, and promise that, should he recover, he -will without pretence amend in all things. The king at once agreed to -this, and with sorrow of heart engaged to do all that Anselm required, -and to keep justice and mercy all his life long. To this he pledged his -faith, and made his bishops witnesses between himself and God, sending -persons in his stead to promise his word to God on the altar. An Edict -was written and sealed with the king’s seal that all prisoners should -be set free in all his dominions, all debts forgiven, all offences -heretofore committed pardoned and forgotten for ever. Further, good and -holy laws were promised to the whole people, and the sacred upholding -of right and such solemn inquest into wrongdoing as may deter others.” - -Thus Eadmer. - -Florence of Worcester puts the matter more briefly. “When the king -thought himself about to die he vowed to God, as his barons advised -him, to amend his life, to sell no more churches nor farm them out, -but to defend them by his kingly might, and to end all bad laws and to -establish just laws.” - -There was still the vacant archbishopric to be filled, and the king -named Anselm for Canterbury. - -In vain Anselm pleaded that he was an old man--he was then sixty--and -unfit for so great a responsibility, that he was a monk and had shunned -the business of the world. - -The bishops assembled round the sick king’s bed would not hear the -refusal. Here was religion well nigh destroyed in England, and evil -rampant, and the Church of God stricken almost to death, and at such a -time was Anselm to prefer his own ease and quiet to the call to deliver -Canterbury from its bondage? By main force they placed a pastoral staff -within his hands, and while the crowd shouted “Long live the bishop!” -he was “carried rather than led to a neighbouring church.” The king -at once ordered that Anselm should be invested with all the temporal -rights of the see, as Lanfranc had held them, and in September, 1093, -Anselm was enthroned at Canterbury, and in December he was consecrated. - -Anselm warned the bishops and nobles when they forced the archbishopric -upon him that they were making a mistake. “You have yoked to the plough -a poor weak sheep with a wild bull,” he said. “This plough is the -Church of God, and in England it has been drawn by two strong oxen, the -king and the Archbishop of Canterbury, one to do justice and to hold -power in the things of this world, the other to teach and govern in the -things eternal. Now Lanfranc is dead, and with his untamed companion -you have joined an old and feeble sheep.” - -That the king and the archbishop were unevenly yoked was manifest on -William’s recovery, but it was no poor sheep with whom Rufus had to -deal, but a man as brave and steadfast as he was gentle and wise. - -Trouble began at once when William rose from his sick-bed. Anselm was -now enthroned and no attempt was made to revoke the appointment. But -the king’s promises of public amendment were broken without hesitation. -The pardoned prisoners were seized, the cancelled debts redemanded and -the proceedings against offenders revived. - -“Then was there so great misery and suffering through the whole realm -that no one can remember to have seen its like in England. All the evil -which the king had wrought before he was sick seemed good by the side -of the wrong which he did when he was returned to health.” - -The king wanting money for his expedition against his brother, Robert -of Normandy, tried to persuade Anselm to allow the Church lands, -bestowed since Lanfranc’s death on vassals of the crown on tenure of -military service, to remain with their holders. He was answered by -steady refusal. Had Anselm yielded, he would have been a party to the -alienation of lands, that, as part of the property of the see, he was -bound to administer for the common good; he would have been a party not -only to the spoiling of the Church, but to the robbery of the poor and -needy, whose claims, in those days, to temporal assistance from Church -estates were not disputed. Any subsequent restitution of such lands -was impossible, he foresaw, if it was shown that the archbishop had -confirmed what the king had done. - -Then came the question of a present of money to the king. Anselm -brought five hundred marks, and, but for his counsellors and men of -arms, who told him the archbishop ought to have given twice as much, -William would have taken the gift gladly enough. As it was, to show -his dissatisfaction, the money was returned. Anselm went boldly to the -king and warned him that money freely given was better than a forced -tribute. To this frank rebuke of the extortion practised by the king’s -servants, William answered that he wanted neither his money, nor his -preaching, nor his company. Anselm retired not altogether displeased at -the refusal, for too many of the clergy bought church offices by these -free gifts after they were instituted. In vain his friends urged him to -seek the king’s favour by increasing his present, Anselm gave the five -hundred marks to the poor, and shook his head at the idea of buying the -king’s favour. - -But if Anselm declined to walk in the path of corruption to oblige the -king, William was equally resolute to make the path of righteousness a -hard road for the archbishop. - -In February, 1094, when the Red King was at Hastings waiting to cross -to Normandy, Anselm appealed to him to sanction a council of bishops, -whose decisions approved by the crown should have the authority of law. -There were two things for such a council to do: (1) stop the open vice -and profligacy which ravaged the land; (2) find abbots for the many -monasteries then without heads. In Anselm’s words, the council was “to -restore the Christian religion which was well-nigh dead in so many.” - -William treated the request with angry contempt, and when Anselm sent -bishops to him asking why the king refused him friendship, an evasive -answer was returned. - -“Give him money,” said the bishops again to Anselm, “if you want peace -with him. Give him the five hundred marks, and promise him as much -more, and you will have the royal friendship. This, it seems to us, is -the only way out of the difficulty.” - -But it was not Anselm’s way. He would not even offer what had been -rejected. “Besides, the greater part of it was spent on the poor.” - -William burst out into wrathful speech when he was told of this reply. -“Never will I hold him as my father and archbishop, and ever shall I -hate him with bitter hatred. I hated him much yesterday, and to-day I -hate him still more.” - -A year later (March, 1095) at a great council of bishops and nobles, -held at the castle of Rockingham, the king’s hatred had full vent. -From the first the Archbishop of Canterbury received from the Pope a -_pallium_, the white woollen stole with four crosses, which was “the -badge of his office and dignity,”[2] and Anselm was anxious to journey -to Rome to obtain his pallium from Pope Urban. William objected to this -on the ground that there was another claimant to the papacy, and that -until he had decided who was the rightful pope no one in England had a -right to do so. In vain Anselm pointed out that he, with all Normandy, -had acknowledged Urban before he had become archbishop. William -retorted angrily that Anselm could only keep his faith to the Apostolic -See by breaking his faith to the king. - -The council of Rockingham met to settle the question--not the question -of the supremacy of Rome in Western Christendom[3]--but the question -whether, in England, there was any higher authority than the crown. -William did not pretend to dispute the papal supremacy in the Church. -His claim was that the king alone must first acknowledge the pope -before any of his subjects could do so. In reality the king’s one -desire was “to take from Anselm all authority for maintaining the -Christian religion. For as long as any one in all the land was said -to hold any power except through him, even in the things of God, it -seemed to him that the royal dignity was diminished.” (Eadmer.) William -acknowledged Pope Urban readily enough, but he would have Archbishop -Anselm understand that the papacy must be acknowledged by permission -of the king of England. That was the real ground of contention between -these two men: was there any power on earth higher in England than the -English crown? According to William, to appeal to Rome was to dispute -the absolutism of the crown. Anselm maintained that in all things of -God he must render obedience to the Chief Shepherd and Prince of the -Church, to the Vicar of St. Peter; and in matters of earthly dignity -he must render counsel and service to his lord the king. - -The bishops at Rockingham were the king’s men. Many of them had bought -their bishoprics, all were afraid of the royal displeasure. The stand -made by Anselm, unsupported though he was, did something to inspire -a better courage in the ranks of the clergy[4]; but in that Lent of -1095 there was no sign of support for the archbishop. William only -wanted to break the will of this resolute old man, the one man in all -the kingdom who dared to have a mind and utterance of his own, and the -mitred creatures of the king supported their lord even to the point -of recommending the forcible deposition of Anselm from his see, or -at least of depriving him of the staff and ring of office. With one -consent the bishops accepted the king’s suggestion of renouncing all -obedience to Anselm. - -But the barons were not so craven. To the king’s threat, “No man shall -be mine, who will be his” (Anselm’s), the nobles said bluntly that not -having taken any oath of fealty to the archbishop they could not abjure -it. And Anselm was their archbishop. “It is his work to govern the -Christian religion in this land, and we who are Christians cannot deny -his guidance while we live here.” - -The three days’ conference at Rockingham ended in disappointment to the -hopes of William of absolute autocracy, and in general contempt for the -prelates whose abject servility had availed nothing. - -Anselm alone stood higher in the eyes of the men of England, and -greater was the ill-will of William. For another two years Anselm held -his ground against the king. The pallium was brought from Rome by -Walter, Bishop of Albano, and placed on the altar at Canterbury, and -Anselm was content to take it from the altar. William had written in -vain to Pope Urban praying for the deposition of Anselm, and promising -a large annual tribute to Rome if his prayer was granted. The pope, of -course, declined to do anything of the sort, and William had to make -the best of the situation. He wanted money for his own purposes, and -his barons were now against him in his quarrel with the archbishop. -For a time William adopted a semblance of peace with Anselm, but his -anger soon blazed out again. The ground of complaint this time was that -the soldiers whom the archbishop had sent to the king for his military -expedition against Wales were inadequate--without proper equipment, and -unfit for service. The archbishop was summoned to appear before the -King’s Court to “do the king right.” - -From the time of his acceptance of the archbishopric, Anselm had been -hoping against hope that the king would support him, as the Conqueror -had supported Lanfranc, in the building up of the Christian religion -in England--this summons to the King’s Court was the death-blow to all -these hopes. The defendant in the King’s Court was at the mercy of -the king, who could pronounce whatever judgment he pleased.[5] Anselm -returned no answer to the summons, but his mind was made up. - -“Having knowledge that the king’s word ruled all judgment in the King’s -Court, where nothing was listened to except what the king willed, it -seemed to Anselm unbecoming that he should contend, as if disputing, as -litigants do, about a matter of words, and should submit the justice -of his cause to the judgment of a court where neither law, nor equity, -nor reason prevailed. So he held his peace, and gave no answer to the -messenger.” (Eadmer.) - -From the despotism of the Red King Anselm would turn for justice to the -centre of Christendom. In England he was impotent to stem the evil that -flowed from the savage absolutism of the throne. All that one man could -do to resist the royal tyranny Anselm had done, and now this summons to -the King’s Court was the final answer to all his efforts to restrain -a lawless king, and to promote the Christian religion in England. He -would not go through the farce of pleading in the King’s Court, where -judgment was settled by the unbridled caprice of the king, self-respect -forbade the archbishop from that; he would appeal to the only court on -earth higher than the courts of kings--the court whose head, in those -days, was the head of Christendom.[6] - -William dropped the summons to the King’s Court, and for a time refused -permission to Anselm to leave the country. Bishops and barons now urged -Anselm not to persist in his appeal to Rome. But the archbishop was -resolute, and in the autumn of 1097 the king yielded, and Anselm left -the country.[7] - -The first campaign against despotism in England was over--the battle -was to be renewed when Henry I. wore the crown. - -At Rome Pope Urban, with all the goodwill in the world, and with a -very real affection and regard for Anselm, could do nothing against -the Red King except rebuke his envoys, and do honour to the much-tried -archbishop. Anselm himself prevented the excommunication of William -when it was proposed at the Council of Bari, October, 1098. - -But Pope Urban would not allow Anselm to resign his archbishopric, and -this in spite of all Anselm’s entreaties. - -In the spring of 1099 came a General Council at Rome--at which Anselm -assisted--a council remarkable for its decision against allowing clergy -to receive investiture of churches from the hands of laymen, and by -so doing to become the vassals of temporal lords. Excommunication -was declared to be the penalty for all who gave or received Church -appointments on such conditions. - -It was at the close of this council that an outspoken Bishop of Lucca -called attention to Anselm’s case. “One sits amongst us in silence and -meekness who has come from the far ends of the earth. His very silence -cries aloud. His humility and patience, so gentle and so deep, as they -rise to God should set us on fire. This one man has come here, wronged -and afflicted, seeking judgment and justice of the Apostolic See. And -now this is the second year, and what help has he found?” - -Pope Urban answered that attention should be given, but nothing further -was done. - -Anselm left Rome and went to Lyons, remaining in France until the -death of William in August, 1100. Henry was at once chosen king in his -room, and crowned at Westminster three days after his brother’s death. -Six weeks later, at Henry’s earnest request--he prayed him “to come -back like a father to his son Henry and the English people”--Anselm -landed at Dover and returned to take up the task allotted to him on his -consecration as archbishop. - -Henry at the outset of his reign promised “God and all the people” that -the old scandals of selling and farming out the Church lands should -be stopped, and “to put down all unrighteousness that had been in his -brother’s time, and to hold the best laws that ever stood in any king’s -day before him.” That this charter was of value may be taken from the -verdict on the king by the Chronicler of the time. “Good man he was and -great awe there was of him. No man durst misdo against another in his -day. He made peace for man and beast. Whoso carried a burden of gold -and silver no man durst do him wrong.” - -Two evils that pressed very hardly on the mass of hard-working people, -the devastation that attended the king’s progress through the land[8], -and the coining of false money, were at Anselm’s instigation checked by -the king. - -But with all Henry’s desire for the restoration of religion and law -in the land, he was the Conqueror’s son, and for Anselm the struggle -against absolutism in government was not yet over. Only now the battle -was not with a fierce, untamed despot like the Red King, but with an -autocrat of an even more formidable type, a stern man of business, in -whose person alone must be found the source of all law and order, and -who would brook no questioning of the royal will. - -At the beginning of his reign Henry found the archbishop’s loyalty and -good sense invaluable. As Lanfranc had stood by the Conqueror in a -marriage which was objectionable from the point of view of Church law, -so Anselm stood by his son when he sought the hand of Edith, daughter -of the sainted Queen Margaret of Scotland. Here the objection to the -marriage was not on the grounds of affinity or consanguinity, but in -the fact that Edith was an inmate of the convent at Romsey, and, it -was alleged, a professed nun. Edith insisted that she had but taken -refuge in the convent to obtain the protection of her aunt Christina, -the abbess, and she had worn the habit of a nun as a safeguard against -the brutal passions of the Red King and his courtiers. The fear of -violence at the hands of the Normans had driven women to take the veil, -and Lanfranc had been known to grant release from vows taken under such -mortal pressure. Anselm was not the man to exalt the letter of the law -above the spirit of liberty. He was content that a council of the great -men in Church and State should hold an inquiry, and on their verdict -declaring Edith free of her vows, the archbishop gave his blessing on -the marriage. - -The same great qualities of loyalty and good sense made Anselm stand -by the king when the Norman lords, pricked on by Ranulf the Torch, the -rascally Bishop of Durham (who had escaped from imprisonment in the -Tower by making his gaolers drunk), and hating Henry for “his English -ways,” proposed to back up Robert of Normandy in his attempts to seize -the crown. According to Eadmer, but for Anselm’s faithfulness and -labours, which turned the scale when so many were wavering, King Henry -would have lost the sovereignty of the realm of England at that time. - -But Anselm’s services to the king are of small account by the side of -his services to English liberty, and Anselm’s resistance to Henry’s -demands for an absolute monarchy was of lasting influence in the -centuries that followed.[9] - -The struggle began when Henry called upon Anselm for a new declaration -of homage to the crown, and required him to receive the archbishopric -afresh by a new act of investiture. This was a claim that had never -been made before. “It imported that on the death of the sovereign the -archbishop’s commission expired, that his office was subordinate and -derivative, and the dignity therefore reverted to the crown.” (Sir F. -Palgrave.) - -Anselm met the demand with the answer that such a course was -impossible. Nay, the very ecclesiastical “customs” which for some time -past had given the appointment of bishops and abbots to the crown, and -had made the bishops “the king’s men” by obliging them to do homage and -to receive investiture of their office with ring and staff at the royal -hands, were now impossible for Anselm. The Council at the Lateran, at -which Anselm had been present, had forbidden the bishops of the Church -to become the vassals of the kings of the earth, and Anselm was not the -man to question this decision. He had seen only too much, under William -the Red, of the curse of royal supremacy in the Church. He had stood -up alone against the iniquities of misrule, just because the bishops, -who should have been pastors and overseers of a Christian people, were -the sworn creatures of the king. Henceforth it was forbidden by the -authority that rested in the seat of St. Peter at Rome for a bishop to -receive consecration as a king’s vassal. - -But if Anselm would be no party to what had become an intolerable evil, -Henry would not give up the rights his father had exercised without -a contest. He was willing to do his best for the Church, but it must -be in his own way. “Pledging himself in his own heart and mind not to -abate a jot of his supremacy over the clergy, he would exercise his -authority in Church affairs somewhat more decently than his father, -and a great deal more than his brother; but that was all.” (Sir F. -Palgrave.) - -Both Henry and Anselm recognized the gravity of the issue. Were the -bishops and abbots to continue to receive investiture from the king -they were “his men,” and his autocracy was established over all. Stop -the investiture and the bishops were first and chiefly the servants of -the Most High, acknowledging a sovereignty higher than that exercised -by the princes of this world, and preferring loyalty to the Church -Catholic and its Father at Rome, to blind obedience to the crown. - -In brief, the question in dispute really was--Was there, or was there -not, any power on earth greater than the English crown?--a question -which no English king before Henry VIII. answered successfully in the -negative. In contending for the freedom of the bishops of the Church -from vassalage to the crown, Anselm was contending for the existence -of an authority to which even kings should pay allegiance. It was -not the rights of the clergy that were at stake, for the terrors of -excommunication did not prevent bishops from receiving consecration -on Henry’s terms, and Anselm stood alone now, as in the days of the -Red King, in the resistance to despotism. It was the feeling and the -knowledge, which Anselm shared with the best churchmen of his day, that -great as the power of the king must be, it was a bad thing for such -power to exist unchecked, and that it were well for the world that its -mightiest monarchs should know there was a spiritual dominion given to -the successor of St. Peter, and to his children, a dominion of divine -foundation that claimed obedience even from kings. - -Anselm put it to the king that the canons of the Church, and the -decrees of a great council had forbidden the “customs” of investiture -which the king claimed; and he pleaded that he was an old man, and that -unless he could work with the king on the acceptance of the Church -canons, it was no use his remaining in England, “for he could not -hold communion with those who broke these laws”: Henry, for his part, -was much disturbed. It was a grave matter to lose the investiture of -churches, and the homage of prelates; it was a grave matter, too, to -let Anselm leave the country while he himself was hardly established -in the kingdom. “On the one side it seemed to him that he should be -losing, as it were, half of his kingdom; on the other, he feared lest -Anselm should make his brother Robert King of England,”--for Robert -might easily be brought to submit to the Apostolic See if he could be -made king on such terms. - -Henry suggested an appeal to the pope on the question of the right -of the crown to “invest” the bishops, and Anselm, who all along was -anxious for peace--if peace could be obtained without acknowledgment -of royal absolutism--at once agreed. - -The pope, of course, could not grant Henry’s request. To allow the high -offices of the Church to be disposed of at the caprice of kings and -princes, without any recognition of the sacredness of these offices, -to admit that the chief ministers of religion were first and foremost -“the king’s men,” seemed to Pope Paschal, as it seemed to Anselm, -a concession to evil, and the establishment of a principle which -experience had proved thoroughly vicious and mischievous. - -Then for nearly three years a correspondence dragged on between -Henry and the pope, neither wishing for an open rupture, and in the -meantime, Henry, backed by most of the bishops and nobles in setting at -nought the canons which had forbidden investiture, proposed to go on -appointing and investing new bishops as before. - -Finally, the king appealed to Anselm to go to Rome “and try what he -could do with the pope, lest the king by losing the rights of his -predecessors should be disgraced.” - -Anselm was now (1103) an old man of seventy, but he agreed to go; only -“he could do nothing to the prejudice of the liberty of the Church or -his own honour.” What Henry hoped for was that the pope would grant -some personal dispensation in the matter of the royal “customs,” and -he had tried to persuade Anselm that such dispensation was sure to be -granted. Anselm did not believe the dispensation possible or desirable, -but left the decision with the acknowledged head of Christendom at -Rome; and though for another three years Henry urged his suit, no -dispensation could be wrung from the pope. All that the pope would -grant was that the bishops might do “homage” to the crown for their -temporal rights. - -At last, in April, 1106, Anselm returned to England. The bishops -themselves, who had sided with the king against him, implored him to -return, so wretched had become the state of religion in England in his -absence. They promised to do his commands and to fight with him the -battle of the Lord. - -Henry, fresh from the conquest of Normandy, sent word of his good-will, -and of his desire for the archbishop’s presence. The long drawn-out -battle was over, and the king had to be content with “homage,” and to -resign the claim to investiture. - -“On August 1st (1107) an assembly of bishops, abbots, and chief men of -the realm, was held in London, in the king’s palace, and for three days -the matter of the investiture of churches was fully discussed between -the king and the bishops in Anselm’s absence. Then, in the presence of -Anselm and before the whole multitude, the king granted and decreed -that henceforth and for ever no one should be invested in England with -bishopric or abbey by staff and ring, either by the king or the hand -of any layman; while Anselm allowed that no one chosen for a bishopric -should be refused consecration for having done homage to the king. This -having been settled, the king, by the counsel of Anselm and the chief -men of the realm, appointed priests in nearly all those churches in -England which had long been widowed of their pastors.” (Eadmer.) - -Victory rested with Anselm. The old archbishop had done his best for -the liberty of religion, and by contending for this liberty he had -wrought for common freedom.[10] Later ages and struggles were to bring -out more clearly that some measure of political and social liberty -must follow the demand for freedom in religion. “Religious forces, -and religious forces alone, have had sufficient influence to ensure -practical realisation for political ideas.” (Figgis, _Studies of -Political Thought_.) - -Anselm’s life was nearly over, his work was accomplished, a -philosophical treatise “Concerning the agreement of Foreknowledge, -Predestination and the Grace of God with Free Will” was written with -difficulty in the last years. Then his appetite failed him, and all -food became loathsome. At last he was persuaded to take to his bed, and -on April 21st, 1109--the Wednesday of Holy Week--at daybreak Anselm -passed away. - -Anselm’s name has long been enrolled in the calendar of the saints -of the Church Catholic, no less is it to be cherished by all who -love liberty. Well may it be said of him, “he was ever a close -follower of Truth, and walked in noble companionship with Pity and -Courage.” Anselm’s plain good sense and charity were conspicuous in -his benediction of the marriage of Henry and Edith, but these great -qualities were earlier displayed when Lanfranc consulted him as to the -claims of the English Archbishop Ælphege to be canonised as a martyr. -Ælphege had been slain by the Danes for refusing to ransom his life at -the expense of his tenants; and Anselm replied to Lanfranc that he who -would die rather than oppress his tenants dies for justice’ sake, and -he who dies for justice dies a martyr for Christ. - -His sympathy and humaneness shone out a thousand times. There is the -story Eadmer tells of an abbot, who came to Anselm at Bec, and deplored -that he could do no good with the boys at his monastery. “In spite -of all we do they are perverse and incorrigible,” said the abbot, -despondently. “We are always beating them, but they only get worse: -and though we constrain them in every way we can, it’s all of no use.” -“_Constrain_ them!” answered Anselm. “Tell me, my lord abbot, when -you plant a tree in your garden, do you so tie it up that it cannot -stretch forth its branches? And if you did so, what sort of tree would -it become a few years hence when you released it? But this is just -what you do with your boys. You cramp them in with terrors and threats -and blows, so that it is quite impossible for them to grow or enjoy -any freedom. And kept down in this way their temper is spoilt by evil -thoughts of hatred and suspicion against you, and they put down all you -do to ill-nature and dislike. Why are you so harsh with them? Are they -not human beings of the same nature as yourself? How would you like to -be treated as you treat them?” The abbot was finally persuaded that -he had been all wrong. “We have wandered,” he said, “from the way of -truth, and the light of discretion hath not shone on us.” - -There is another story which gives Anselm’s pity and feeling of -kinship with the whole animal creation. It was when he was archbishop, -and was riding one day from Windsor to Hayes that a hare chased by the -dogs of some of his company took refuge under the feet of his horse. -Anselm at once pulled up and forebade the hare to be molested, and -when his escort laughed gleefully at the capture, the archbishop said: -“You may laugh, but it is no laughing matter for this poor unhappy -creature, which is like the soul of a departing man pursued by evil -spirits. Mortal enemies attack it, and it flies to us for its life: and -while it turns to us for safety we laugh.” He rode on, and in a loud -voice forbade the dogs to touch the hare; which, glad to be at liberty, -darted off to the fields and woods. - -That Anselm never wavered in his tenderness for the weak and oppressed -may be learnt from the great Church Synod held at Westminster in -1102--a council summoned on the strong request of the archbishop. The -slave trade was specially denounced at this council as a “wicked trade -used hitherto in England, by which men are sold like brute animals,” -and a canon was drawn up to that effect. - -Anselm’s enduring courage and desire for truth are conspicuous all -his life. He fought single-handed against both William and Henry, -and no weight of numbers, no world-wise talk from other prelates -could make him budge. If he withstood the Red King and his court at -Rockingham, equally firm was he in withstanding the Norman barons who -were inclined to break away from their sworn allegiance to Henry. No -Englishman by birth or blood was Anselm, for he was born at Aosta, and -spent the greater part of his life on the Continent, but he brought -to England the finest gifts of life, and gave them freely in service -to England’s liberty. He withstood an absolutism that threatened the -total enslavement of the nation, and the witness he bore to liberty -was taken up and renewed in the centuries that followed. “Anselm -was truly a great man. So good that he was held a saint in his very -lifetime, so meek that even his enemies honoured him, so wise that he -was the foremost thinker of his day, and the forerunner of the greatest -philosophers of ours.” (F. York Powell.) - - - - -Thomas of Canterbury - -The Defender of the Poor - -1162–1170 - - -AUTHORITIES: Benedict of Peterborough; Garnier; William FitzStephen; -John of Salisbury; Herbert of Bosham; Alan of Tewkesbury; Edward -Grim; Roger of Pontigny; William of Canterbury; Robert of -Cricklade--_Materials for the History of Thomas Becket_, 7 vols.; -_Thomas Saga_ (Icelandic), translated by Magnusson; Giraldus -Cambrensis; Gervase of Canterbury; William of Newburgh; Roger of -Hoveden, III.; Ralph Diceto (Rolls Series); Froude, R. H.--_Remains_, -Vol. 3; _Life of Becket_, by Canon J. C. Robertson; _Life of St. Thomas -Becket_, by John Morris, S.J.; Stubbs--_Constitutional History_, Vol. -I; Freeman--_Historical Essays_, 1st Series; W. H. Hutton--_English -History by Contemporary Writers_--_St. Thomas of Canterbury_. - -[Illustration: THOMAS A BECKET - -(_From an old Engraving after Van Eyck._)] - - - - -THOMAS OF CANTERBURY THE DEFENDER OF THE POOR - -1162–1170 - - -Fifty years after the death of Anselm the struggle with absolute -monarchy had to be renewed in England, and again the Archbishop of -Canterbury was the antagonist of the crown, standing alone for the most -part, as Anselm stood, in his resistance to autocracy. - -The contrast is great between the upbringing and character of Anselm -and of Thomas; but both men gave valiant service in the cause of -liberty in England, and both are placed in the calendar of the saints. -For Thomas and Anselm alike the choice was between the favour of -the King of England, the safe broad road of passive obedience, and -the following of the call of conscience on the craggy way of royal -displeasure; and to the everlasting honour of these two men, and of the -religion they professed, they chose the steep and narrow path with no -faltering step, and followed the gleam, heedless of this world’s glory, -heedless of life itself. - -Thomas was no monk as Anselm was, when the king nominated him for -the archbishopric of Canterbury. His early life was not spent in the -cloister but in the employment of a wealthy London sheriff, in the -office of Archbishop Theobald, at Lambeth, and as Chancellor of England. - -The son of gentle parents--his father Gilbert sometime -sheriff--“London citizens of the middle class, not usurers nor engaged -in business, but living well on their own income,” according to -FitzStephen, Thomas was the first Englishman to be made archbishop. -His gifts marked him out for high office. Theobald had sent him abroad -to study law at the great school at Bologna, and at the age of 36 made -him archdeacon of Canterbury, at that time “the dignity in the Church -of England next after the bishops and abbots, and which brought him an -hundred pounds of silver.” A year later, 1155, the young newly crowned -king, Henry II., on the advice of old Archbishop Theobald, made Thomas -the Chancellor. Theobald, anxious about the present, and apprehensive -for the future--for the king was very young, and those about him were -known to be hostile to the freedom of the Church and willing to treat -England as a conquered land--sought to prevent the evils which seemed -to be at hand by making Thomas a partner of the King’s counsels. He -could say, after ten years’ experience, that Thomas was high-principled -and prudent, wisely zealous for justice, and whole-hearted for the -freedom of the Church, and he held forth to the king on the wisdom, -the courage and the faithfulness of his archdeacon, “and the admirable -sweetness of his manners.” - -The appointment was made, nor could anyone say that it was ill done, or -that Theobald in his recommendation, or Henry II. in his acceptance, of -Thomas for the chancellorship could have done better for England. - -The chancellor was magnificent, and his dignity was accounted second -from the king. Nobles sent their children to Thomas to be trained in -his service. The king commended to him his son, the heir to the throne. -Barons and knights did homage to him. On his embassy to the French king -never had been seen such a retinue of followers, and such a lavish -display of the wealth and grandeur of England. The proud and mighty he -treated with harshness and violence. Yet it was said, by those who knew -him intimately, that he was lowly in his own eyes, and gentle and meek -to those who were humble in heart. And in the courts of kings, where -chastity is never commonly extolled, or purity of life the fashion, -Thomas, the chancellor, was known for his cleanness of living and his -unblemished honour. Many enemies he had, many who hated him for his -power; but never was breath of scandal uttered against the chancellor’s -private life, or suggestion made that the carnal lusts and appetites -which, unbridled, play havoc with men great and small, could claim -Thomas for their subject. - -He might be reproached by a monk for that he, being an archdeacon, -lived so secular a life, wearing the dress of a courtier, and charging -on the field with knights in France, but it could not be alleged that -church or realm suffered neglect from the chancellor. “By divine -inspiration and the counsel of Thomas, the lord king did not long -retain vacant bishoprics and abbacies, so that the patrimony of the -Crucified might be brought into the treasury, as was afterwards -done, but bestowed them with little delay on honourable persons, and -according to God’s law.” (W. FitzStephen.) - -The close friendship and warm affection of the king for his chancellor -were known to all. When the day’s business was done “they would play -together like boys of the same age.” They sat together in church and -hall and rode out together. “Never in Christian times were there two -men more of one mind or better friends.” It was natural on the death of -Archbishop Theobald, in 1161, that people should point to Thomas as his -successor, though the chancellor shrank, as Anselm had done, from the -post. - -“I know three poor priests in England any one of whom I would rather -see advanced to the archbishopric than myself,” he declared earnestly, -when his friend the prior of Leicester (who also remonstrated with him -for his unclerical dress) told him the rumours of the court. “For as -for me, if I was appointed, I know the king so through and through that -I should be forced either to lose his favour or, which God forbid, to -lay aside the service of God.” - -Thomas uttered the same warning to Henry when the king proposed the -primacy to him. “I know certainly,” he said, “that if God should so -dispose that this happen, you would soon turn away your love, and the -favour which is now between us would be changed into bitterest hate. I -know that you would demand many things in Church matters, for already -you have demanded them, which I could never bear quietly, and the -envious would take occasion to provoke an endless strife between us.” - -But Henry’s mind was made up. Residing largely in France, he would -have Thomas, Archbishop of Canterbury and Chancellor, to rule England -as his vice-regent. Six years had Thomas been the king’s friend and -chancellor, but the king did not know at all the real character of -his man, or rather it was inconceivable to the royal mind that -Thomas, whom the king had raised from a mere nobody, from Archdeacon -of Canterbury, an important ecclesiastic at best, to the chief man in -the realm, should ever dare set himself at variance with the king’s -will. Henry, with his untiring energy, was earnest enough for good -government in Church and State under an absolute monarchy, and he -counted on greater co-operation with Thomas in carrying out his plans, -were the latter archbishop. Hitherto, more than once the chancellor -had succeeded in moderating the king’s outbursts of wrath against some -hapless offender, but he had never shown himself a partisan of the -clergy at the expense of the commonwealth,[11] and his lack of pride in -his order had even incurred rebuke, so little of the ecclesiastic did -this statesman appear. - -Thomas understood the king better than the king understood his -chancellor. But his protests were in vain. He was as surely marked for -the archbishopric as Anselm had been. Bishops of the province approved -and the monks of Canterbury duly voted for the king’s chancellor in -common consent, Gilbert Foliot, the Bishop of Hereford, and afterwards -of London, and the archbishop’s enemy to the end, alone opposing the -election. - -“Then the archbishop-elect was by the king’s authority declared free of -all debts to the crown and given free to the Church of England, and in -that freedom he was received by the Church with the customary hymns and -words of praise.” (Herbert of Bosham.) - -On June 2nd, 1162, the Saturday after Whit Sunday, Thomas was -ordained priest and on the following day consecrated bishop. (The new -archbishop instituted the festival of Trinity Sunday to commemorate -his consecration, and some 200 years later the festival was made of -general observance in the Catholic Church.) The king realised the -mistake he had made within a year of the consecration. The brilliant -chancellor was no sooner archbishop than he turned from all the -gaieties of the world, and while no less a statesman, adopted the life -of his monks--though never himself a monk--at Canterbury. Henceforth -Archbishop Thomas was the unflinching champion of the poor and them -that had no helper, the resolute defender of the liberties of the -Church against all who would make religion subject to the autocracy of -the king of England. - -Thomas was forty-four years old, in the full strength of his manhood, -when he was made archbishop, and for eight years he did battle with the -crown, only laying down his charge at the call of martyrdom. - -The first disappointment to Henry was the resignation of the -chancellor’s seal.[12] It was clear to Thomas that he could no longer -serve the crown and do the work of a Christian bishop at the same -time, and he had accepted with full sense of responsibility the see of -Canterbury. There was no room for the egotism that loves power, the -vaulting ambition that o’erleaps itself, or even the self-deception -that persuades a man holding to high position at sacrifice of principle -that his motive is disinterested, in St. Thomas of Canterbury. More -than once England was to see in later years men who strove vainly to -serve with equal respect the Christian religion and the royal will--the -service always ended in the triumph of the latter. Thomas was far too -clearly-sighted to imagine such joint service possible, and for him, -elected and consecrated to the primacy of the English Church, there was -no longer any choice. As chancellor, keeping his conscience clear, he -had done the best he could for law and order as the king’s right hand -man. As Archbishop of Canterbury his duty, first and foremost, was to -maintain the Christian religion and defend the cause of the poor and -needy. - -But to Henry the resignation of the chancellorship was an act of -desertion, a declared challenge to the royal supremacy. Henry II. -was no more the man than his grandfather Henry I. had been to brook -anything that threatened resistance to the king’s rule. - -Courtiers who hated Thomas were always at hand to poison the ears -of the king by defaming the archbishop, and this, says William -FitzStephen, was the first cause of the trouble. Another cause was the -hatred of the king for the clergy of England, hatred provoked by the -notoriously disreputable lives of more than one clerk in holy orders. -The battle between Henry and Thomas began on this matter of criminous -clerks. - -William the Conqueror and Lanfranc recognizing that the Church, -strong and well ordered, made for national well-being, had set up -ecclesiastical courts wherein all matters affecting church law and -discipline were to be dealt with by the clergy, to the end that the -clergy should not be mixed up in lawsuits and should be excluded from -the lay courts. Henry II. was not satisfied that criminous clerks -were adequately dealt with in these ecclesiastical courts, where no -penalty involving bloodshed might be inflicted, and where the savage -punishments of mutilation had no place. Thomas was as anxious as the -king for the Church to be purged of abuses, but he was resolved not -to hand over offenders to the secular arm. The archbishop was an -ardent reformer. “He plucked up, pulled down, scattered and rooted -out whatever he found amiss in the vineyard of the Lord,” wrote a -contemporary; but he would shelter his flock as far as he could by the -canon law from the hideous cruelties of the King’s Courts.[13] It was -not for the protection of the clergy alone the archbishop was fighting -in the councils summoned by the king at Westminster in 1163, and at -Clarendon in 1164. - -“Ecclesiastical privileges were not so exclusively priestly privileges -as we sometimes fancy. They sheltered not only ordained ministers, -but all ecclesiastical officers of every kind; the Church Courts also -claimed jurisdiction in the causes of widows and orphans. In short, -the privileges for which Thomas contended transferred a large part of -the people, and that the most helpless part, from the bloody grasp of -the King’s Courts to the milder jurisdiction of the bishop.” (Freeman, -_Historical Essay_, First Series.) - -Before the climax of the dispute between Henry and Thomas was reached -at Clarendon, the archbishop had resisted the king in a matter of -arbitrary taxation--“the earliest recorded instance of resistance to -the royal will in a matter of taxation”[14]--and had fallen still -further in the king’s disfavour. - -Henry was at Woodstock, on July 1st, 1163, with the archbishop and the -great men of the land, and among other matters a question was raised -concerning the payment of a two shillings land tax on every hide of -land. This was an old tax dating from Saxon times, which William the -Conqueror had increased. It was paid to the sheriffs, who in return -undertook the defence of the county, and may be compared with the -county rates of our own day. The king declared this tax should in -future be collected for the crown, and added to the royal revenue; and -no one dared to question this decision until Archbishop Thomas arose -and told the king to his face that the tax was not to be exacted as -revenue, but was a voluntary offering to be paid to the sheriffs only -“so long as they shall serve us fitly and maintain and defend our -dependants.” It was not a tax that could be enforced by law. - -Henry, bursting with anger, swore, “By God’s Eyes” it should be given -as revenue, and enscrolled as a king’s tax. - -The archbishop replied with quiet determination, “aware lest by his -sufferance a custom should come in to the hurt of his successors,” -that, “by the reverence of those Eyes,” by which the king had sworn, -not one penny should be paid from his lands, or from the rights of -the Church. The king was silenced, no answer was forthcoming to the -objector, and the tax was paid as before to the sheriffs. But “the -indignation of the king was not set at rest,” and in October came the -Council of Westminster. - -The king at once demanded that criminous clerks should not only -be punished in the Church Courts by the sentence of deprivation, -but should further be handed over to the King’s Courts for greater -penalties, alleging that those who were not restrained from crime by -the remembrance of their holy orders would care little for the loss of -such orders. - -The archbishop replied quietly that this proposed new discipline was -contrary to the religious liberty of the land, and that he would never -agree to it. The Church was the one sanctuary against the barbarities -of the law, and Thomas to the end would maintain the security it -offered. More important it seemed to him that clerical offenders should -escape the king’s justice, than that all petty felons who could claim -the protection of the Church should be given over to mutilation by the -king’s officers. The bishops silently supported the primate in this -matter, though they told him plainly, “Better the liberties of the -Church perish than that we perish ourselves. Much must be yielded to -the malice of the times.” - -Thomas answered this pitiful plea by admitting the times were bad. -“But,” he added, “are we to heap sin upon sin? It is when the Church is -in trouble, and not merely when the times are peaceful, that a bishop -must cleave to the right. No greater merit was there to the bishops of -old who gave their blood for the Church than there is now to those who -die in defence of her liberties.” - -But the bishops were wavering, fearful of defying the king’s will. And -when Henry, defeated for the moment by the archbishop’s stand, angrily -called upon them to take an oath to observe in future “the royal -customs” of the realm as settled by his grandfather, Henry I., they all -agreed to do so, adding the clause “saving the rights of their order.” -The king objected, calling for the promise to be made “absolutely and -without qualifications,” until Thomas reminded him that the fealty the -bishops swore to give the crown “in life and limb and earthly honour” -was sworn “_salvo ordine suo_,” and that the “earthly honour” promise, -which included all the royal “customs” of Henry I., was not to be given -by bishops in any other way. - -It was now late at night, and the king broke up the council in anger, -leaving the bishops to retire as they would. - -Henry was resolved to abolish the Church Courts and destroy the -protection they afforded. He would have all brought under the severity -of his law, in spite of the archbishop. He knew the bishops were -wavering and were fearful of the royal displeasure. Thomas Becket, and -Thomas Becket alone, was the obstruction to the king’s schemes, and -firm as Becket might stand, the king would break down his opposition. - -The very day after Westminster the king demanded the resignation of all -the fortresses and honours Thomas had held under the crown since he had -been made chancellor, and these were surrendered at once. - -Then Henry tried a personal appeal, and once more the two met together -in a field near Northampton. Henry began by reminding Thomas of all he -had done for him. - -“Have I not raised you from a mean and lowly state to height of honour -and dignity? How is it after so many benefits and so many proofs of my -affection, which all have seen, you have forgotten these things, and -are now not only ungrateful, but my opponent in everything?” - -The archbishop answered: “Far be it from me, my lord. I am not -forgetful of the favours which God has conferred upon me at your -hands. Far be it from me to be so ungrateful as to resist your will -in anything so long as it is in accord with God’s will.” St. Thomas, -enlarging on the necessity of obedience to God rather than to men, -should the will of man clash with the will of God, the king at last -interrupted him impatiently with the intimation that he did not want a -sermon just then. - -“Are you not my man, the son of one of my servants?” - -“In truth,” the archbishop answered, “I am not sprung from a race of -kings. Neither was blessed Peter, the prince of the apostles, to whom -was committed the leadership of the Church.” - -“And in truth Peter died for his Lord,” said the king. - -“I too will die for my Lord when the time comes,” replied the -archbishop. - -“You trust too much to the ladder you have mounted by,” said the king. - -But the archbishop answered: “I trust in God, for cursed is the man -that putteth his trust in man.” Then the archbishop went on to remind -Henry of the proofs he had given of his fidelity in the years when he -was chancellor, and warned him that he would have done well to have -taken counsel with his archbishop concerning spiritual things than with -those who had kindled the flame of envy and vengeance against one who -had done them no wrong. - -The only reply the king gave was to urge that the Archbishop should -drop the words “saving their order” in promising to obey the royal -customs. - -The archbishop refused to yield, and so they parted.[15] - -At the close of the year the archbishop’s difficulties had been -increased by appeals on all sides to yield to the king. The bishops -were for peace at any price, and the Pope, Alexander III., threatened -by an anti-pope, and anxious for the good will of the king of England, -sent an abbot to Thomas urging him to give way, on the ground that -Henry only wanted a formal assent to the “customs” for the sake of his -dignity, and had no intention of doing anything harmful to the Church. - -Under these circumstances Thomas decided to yield. He went to the king -at Woodstock and declared that the obnoxious phrase, “saving our -order,” should be omitted from the promise to observe the “customs.” - -Without delay the king ordered his justiciar, Richard of Lucy, and his -clerk, Jocelin of Balliol, to draw up a list of the old “customs” and -liberties of his grandfather Henry I., and on the 29th of January, -1164, a great council was held at Clarendon to ratify the agreement -between the bishops and the king. - -Sixteen constitutions or articles were drawn up, and Thomas, -over-persuaded by the prayers of the bishops and the desire for peace, -gave his promise unconditionally to observe them. But no sooner had he -done so, and the articles were placed before him in black and white, -than he repented. - -The very first article declared that all disputes about Church -patronage were to be tried in the King’s Court, and was intolerable, -because while the State held it was a question of the rights of -property, the Church view was that the main point was the care of -souls, a spiritual matter for churchmen, not lawyers, to decide. - -The other articles which Thomas objected to, and which the pope -subsequently refused to ratify, decreed: (1) That clerks were to be -tried in the King’s Courts for offences of common law. (2) That neither -archbishops, bishops, nor beneficed clerks were to leave the kingdom -without the king’s license. (This, said St. Thomas, would stop all -pilgrimages and attendance at councils at Rome, and turn England into a -vast prison. “It was right enough to apply for the king’s leave before -the departure, but to bind one’s-self by an oath not to go without it -was against religion and was evil.”) (3) That no member of the king’s -household was to be excommunicated without the king’s permission. -(4) That no appeals should be taken beyond the archbishop’s court, -except to be brought before the king. (This was a definite attempt to -prohibit appeals to Rome, and Thomas pointed out that the archbishop on -receiving the pallium swore expressly not to hinder such appeals. The -acceptance of this article left the king absolute master.) - -The last article, declaring that serfs or sons of villeins were not to -be ordained without the consent of the lord on whose land they were -born, was not opposed by the pope, and the only contemporary objection -seems to have been raised by Garnier, a French monk and a biographer of -Thomas Becket.[16] - -Thomas had promised obedience to these constitutions, but he would not -put his seal to them. It seemed to him that it was not only the old -“customs” that had been drawn up, but rather a new interpretation of -these customs. The great Council of Clarendon was over. Thomas received -a copy of the constitutions and rode off, and the king had to be -content for the time with the promises delivered. - -In abject remorse Thomas wrote to the pope confessing his assent to -the Constitutions of Clarendon, and for forty days he abstained from -celebrating the mass. The pope, still anxious to prevent any open -rupture between the king and the archbishop, wrote in reply that -“Almighty God watches not the deed, but considers rather the intention -and judges the will,” and that Thomas was absolved by apostolic -authority. All the same, Pope Alexander III., without in any way -censuring Thomas, throughout the long struggle with Henry never stands -up roundly for the archbishop. - -Neither Henry nor Thomas could rest satisfied with Clarendon. The -archbishop had compromised for the sake of peace, but his quick -revulsion had provoked a keener hostility in the king. To Henry -it seemed the time had come to drive Thomas out of public life by -compelling him to resign the see of Canterbury. With Thomas out of the -way Henry could carry out his plans for a strong central government, -for bringing all under the pitiless arm of the law. Thomas was the -one man in the kingdom who dared offer resistance, and if Thomas was -no longer archbishop and some supple creature of the king was in his -place, the royal power would be absolute, for there seemed no fear of -any interference from Pope Alexander III. - -There were plenty of the archbishop’s enemies among the nobles at the -court ready to fan the king’s anger against Thomas, and by October, -1164, Henry was ready to crush the primate. - -Another council was summoned to meet at Northampton, and now Archbishop -Thomas was to learn the full significance of the Constitutions of -Clarendon. - -The first charge against Thomas was that he had refused justice to -John, the Treasurer-Marshal, who had taken up some land under the see -of Canterbury. John had taken his suit to the King’s Court, and Thomas -was further charged with contempt of the majesty of the crown for not -putting in a personal appearance at this court. The king now pressed -for judgment against the archbishop for this contempt, and the council -ordered that he should be condemned to the loss of all his moveable -property, and 500 pounds of silver was accepted as an equivalent fine. - -“It seemed to all that, considering the reverence due to the king -and by the obligation of the oath of homage, which the archbishop -had taken, and by the fealty to the king’s earthly honour which he -had sworn, he was in no way to be excused, because when summoned by -the king he had neither come himself, nor pleaded infirmity, or the -necessary work of his ecclesiastical office.” (W. FitzStephen). - -It was not easy to get the sentence pronounced against Thomas. Barons -and bishops were willing enough to stand well with the king, and they -agreed without contradiction to the fine. But the barons declined to -act as judge on a spiritual peer, and insisted that one of the bishops -must do this business. Henry, Bishop of Winchester, at last, on the -king’s order, pronounced the sentence. - -Thomas protested. “If I were silent at such a sentence posterity would -not be. This is a new form of sentence, no doubt in accordance with -the new laws of Clarendon. Never has it been heard before in England -that an Archbishop of Canterbury has been tried in the King’s Court -for such a cause. The dignity of the Church, the authority of his -person, the fact that he is the spiritual father of the king and of -all his subjects, require that he should be reverenced by all.” For -an archbishop to be judged by his suffragans was, he declared, for a -father to be judged by his sons. - -The bishops implored him to bow to the decree of the council, and -Thomas yielded, “not being willing that a mere matter of money should -cause strife between the king and himself.” - -The next day, Friday, October 9th, the king pressed Thomas more -fiercely, calling upon him to give account for large sums spent during -his chancellorship, and for various revenues of vacant churches during -that period. The total amount was 30,000 marks. - -In vain the archbishop urged that this demand was totally unexpected; -that he had not been summoned to Northampton to render such an account; -and that the justiciar, Richard, had declared that he was free of -all claims when he laid down the chancellorship. The king demanded -sureties, “and from that day barons and knights kept away from the -archbishop’s house--for they understood the mind of the king.” - -All Saturday Thomas was in consultation with the bishops, most of whom -expressed themselves strongly on the king’s side. Henry of Winchester -suggested the present of 2,000 marks to the king as a peace-offering, -and this was done. But the king would not have it. Hilary, of -Chichester, said, addressing the archbishop, “You ought to know the -king better than we do, for you lived with him in close companionship -and friendship when you were chancellor. Who is there who could be -your surety for all this money? The king has declared, so it is said, -that he and you cannot both remain in England as king and archbishop. -It would be much safer to resign everything and submit to his mercy. -God forbid lest he arrest you over these moneys of the chancellorship, -or lay hands on you.” One or two less craven urged the archbishop to -stand firm, as his predecessors had done, in the face of persecution. - -“Oh, that you were no longer archbishop and were only Thomas,” said -Hilary, putting the matter briefly. - -All Sunday was spent in consultations. On Monday the archbishop was -too ill to attend the council, but on Tuesday his mind was made up, -and when he entered the council it was with the full dignity of an -archbishop, carrying the cross of the archbishop in his hand. - -The bishops were in despair. There were all sorts of rumours in the -air. It was known the king was full of anger, and it was said that the -archbishop’s life was in danger. The bishops implored him to resign, -or else to promise complete submission to the councils of Clarendon. -They said he would certainly be tried and condemned for high treason -for disobedience to the king, and asked him what was the use of being -archbishop when he had the king’s hatred. - -Gilbert Foliot, Bishop of London, declared contemptuously of Thomas, -when someone asked him why he did not carry the archbishop’s cross for -him, “He always was a fool, and always will be.” - -Thomas had now only one answer to the bishops. He forbad them to take -any part in the proceedings against him, announced that he had appealed -to “our Mother, the Church of Rome, refuge of all the oppressed,” to -prevent any of them taking part, and ordered them to excommunicate any -who should dare lay secular hands upon the primate. - -Then, holding his cross, the archbishop took his usual place in the -council-chamber, while the king sat in an inner room. - -In the face of personal danger all the strength and courage of Thomas -Becket were aroused. He had yielded at Clarendon for the sake of peace, -and no good had come of it. He had submitted to be fined rather than be -involved in a miserable dispute about money, and now he was threatened -with demands for money which were beyond his resources. There was -nothing to prevent the king piling up greater and greater sums against -him, till hopeless ruin had been reached. He was powerless to withstand -such an onslaught. To Rome, “the refuge of all the oppressed,” would -Thomas appeal, and then, if it seemed well to the pope, he would retire -from Canterbury. But he would not surrender his post, however great -the wrath of the king, unless it were for the welfare of the Christian -Church. - -In the council-chamber Thomas sat alone, with one or two clergy -attending him, including Herbert of Bosham and William FitzStephen, -while the bishops went in to the king’s chamber. Among the nobles the -cry was going up that the archbishop was a perjurer and a traitor, -because, after signing at Clarendon, he now, in violation of those -constitutions, forbad bishops to give judgment in a case that did not -involve bloodshed, and had further made appeal to Rome. - -Then the king sent to know whether the archbishop refused to be bound -by the Constitutions of Clarendon, and whether he would find sureties -to abide by the sentence of the court regarding the accounts of his -chancellorship. - -Thomas again pointed out that he had not been called there to give -an account of his chancellorship, that on his appointment to the -archbishopric he had been declared by the king free of all secular -claims, and that he had forbidden the bishops to take part in any -judgment against him, and had appealed to Rome, “placing his person and -the church of Canterbury under the protection of God and the pope.” - -At the end of this speech the barons returned in silence to the king, -pondering the archbishop’s words. - -But hostile murmuring soon broke the silence, and Thomas could overhear -the barons grumbling that, “King William, who conquered England, knew -how to tame his clerks. He had put his own brother Odo in prison, and -thrown Stigand, Archbishop of Canterbury, into a dungeon.” - -The bishops renewed their pitiful chorus. Thomas had placed them -between the hammer and the anvil by his prohibition: of disobedience to -Canterbury on the one hand, and of the king’s anger on the other. They -had given their word at Clarendon, and now they were being forced to -go against the promises they had made. They, too, would appeal to Rome -against his prohibition, “lest you injure us still more.” - -All that Thomas could say was that the Constitutions of Clarendon had -been sent to the pope for confirmation, and had been returned, rather -condemned than approved. “This example has been given for our learning, -that we should do likewise, and be ready to receive what he receives -at Rome, and reject what he rejects. If we fell at Clarendon, through -weakness of the flesh, the more ought we to take courage now, and in -the might of the Holy Ghost contend against the old enemy of man.”[17] - -So bishops and nobles came and went between the king and the -archbishop, and the day drew on. Henry allowed the bishops to stand -apart from the judgment, and demanded sentence from the barons, and -Earl Robert of Leicester advanced as the spokesman of the council -to where the archbishop was sitting. The earl began to speak of the -judgment of the court, when Thomas rose and refused to hear him. - -“What is this you would do?” he cried. “Would you pass sentence on -me? Neither law nor reason permit children to pass sentence on their -father. You are nobles of the palace, and I am your spiritual father. -I will not hear this sentence of the king, or any judgment of yours. -For, under God, I will be judged by the pope alone, to whom before you -all here I appeal, placing the church of Canterbury with all thereto -belonging under God’s protection and the protection of the pope.” Then -he turned to the bishops. “And you, my brethren, who have served man -rather than God, I summon to the presence of the pope; and now, guarded -by the authority of the Catholic Church and the Holy See, I go hence.” - -So he passed out of the hall, no one gainsaying his passage, though -some plucked rushes from the floor and threw at him. There were shouts -of anger, and again the cries of “traitor” and “perjurer” were raised. -The archbishop turned on Earl Hamelin, the king’s brother, and Randulf -of Brok, who were calling “traitor,” and said sternly: “If I were not -a priest, my own arms should quickly prove your lie. And you, Randulf, -look at home (his cousin had lately been hanged for felony) before you -accuse the guiltless!” - -His horses were at the gate, and a great crowd that were afraid lest -the archbishop had been killed. St. Thomas mounted, and accompanied by -Herbert of Bosham, rode back to the monastery of St. Andrew, where he -had been lodging. The crowd thronged him and prayed for his blessing -all the way until the monastery was reached, and then he would have -the multitude come in to the refectory and dine with him. Of his own -retinue of forty who had come with him to Northampton, scarce six -remained; and so the places of those who had thought it safer to desert -their lord were filled by the hungry multitude. It was the archbishop’s -farewell banquet, and he, the constant champion of the poor, had those -whom he loved for his guests that day. - -At nightfall, after compline had been sung and the monks dispersed to -their cells, the archbishop, with three other men in the dress of lay -brothers, rode out from Northampton by the north gate, and at dawn were -at Grantham. Three weeks later Thomas had reached Flanders, and the -exile had begun which was only to end six years later when death was at -hand. - -It was useless to remain in England, hopeless as Thomas was of any -support from the bishops. He could but appeal, as Anselm had appealed, -to the one court that alone was recognised as owning a higher authority -than that of the kings of this world, the court of Rome. - -But Pope Alexander, still harassed by an anti-pope set up by the -Emperor Frederick, could do as little for Thomas as his predecessor -had done for Anselm, though he refused to allow him to resign the -archbishopric. Unlike Anselm, Thomas vigorously carried on his contest -with the king from the friendly shelter of King Louis of France, and -Henry retaliated without hesitation, driving out of England all the -friends and kinsmen of Thomas, to the number of four hundred, and -threatening a like banishment to the Cistercian monks, because Thomas -had taken refuge in their monastery at Pontigny. - -The fear that the pope would allow the archbishop to pronounce an -interdict against England, and a sentence of personal excommunication -against its king, drove Henry in 1166 to appeal himself to the pope. -“Thus by a strange fate it happened that the king, while striving for -those ‘ancient customs,’ by which he endeavoured to prevent any right -of appeal (to the pope), was doomed to confirm the right of appeal for -his own safety.” (John of Salisbury.) - -Months and years passed in correspondence. More than once Henry and -Thomas met at the court of Louis, but neither would yield. The pope, -without blaming the archbishop, and without sanctioning any extreme -step against Henry, did what he could to make peace between them. - -At last, in the summer of 1170, the king really was disturbed by the -fear of an interdict, for his last act against Archbishop Thomas had -been to have his son crowned by the Archbishop of York, in defiance of -all the rights and privileges of the see of Canterbury. Besides this, -Louis was threatening war because his daughter, who was married to the -young King Henry, had not been crowned with her husband. Henry hastened -over to France and made friends with Thomas, and the reconciliation -took place at Freteral. The king solemnly promised that the archbishop -should enjoy all the possessions and rights of which he had been -deprived in his exile, and that his friends and kinsmen should all be -allowed to return home. He even apologised for the coronation of his -son. It seemed as if the old friendship had been revived. “We conversed -together until the evening as familiarly as in the days of our ancient -friendship. And it was agreed I should arrange my affairs and then make -some stay with the king before embarking for England; that the world -might know how thoroughly we are restored to his favour and intimacy. -We are not afraid that the king will not fulfil his promises, unless -he is misled by evil counsellors.” So Thomas wrote to the pope in -July, 1170. Yet there were many--including King Louis--who doubted the -sincerity of the reconciliation, for Henry was not willing to give the -kiss of peace to his archbishop. - -On December 1st Thomas landed at Sandwich, and went at once to -Canterbury. The townspeople and the poor of the land welcomed him with -enthusiastic devotion. “Small and great, old and young, ran together, -some throwing themselves in his way, others crying and exclaiming, -‘Blessed is he that cometh in the name of the Lord.’ In the same manner -the clergy and their parishioners met him in procession, saluting -their father and begging his blessing.... And when all things in the -cathedral was solemnly ended, the archbishop went to his palace, and so -ended that joyful and solemn day.” (Herbert of Bosham.) - -But against the affection and goodwill of his own people at Canterbury, -and a similar demonstration of rejoicing by multitudes of clergy -and people in London, Thomas had to face the fact that the bishops -generally hated his return, that the young Prince Henry, recently -crowned, who had been his pupil, refused to see him and ordered his -return to Canterbury, and that the nobles openly spoke of him as a -traitor to the king. “This is a peace for us which is no peace, but -rather war,” said the archbishop bitterly. - -The end was not far off. Thomas, as zealous for good discipline in the -Church as Henry was for strong authority in the State, was no sooner -returned than he was asked to withdraw the sentence of excommunication -against the Archbishop of York and the Bishops of London and Salisbury. -He promised to do this if the bishops on their part would promise to -submit to the decision of the pope on the matter. London and Salisbury -were moved to receive absolution on these terms, but Roger, of York, -who had always been against Becket, dissuaded them, urging them to -throw themselves on the protection of the king, and threatening Thomas -“with marvellous and terrible things at the hands of the king” unless -he relented. Naturally, these threats left the archbishop undisturbed, -and Roger of York, with Gilbert Foliot of London and Jocelin of -Salisbury, at once hastened over to France to lay their case before the -king. - -These bishops were not the only men who troubled Thomas in these last -days. Randulf de Broc, with others of his family, and certain knights, -all known as strong “king’s men,” “sought every means to entangle him -in a quarrel,” and did not stop from robbing a ship belonging to the -archbishop and from seizing a number of horses, and mutilating one of -them. Thomas replied by excommunicating Randulf and Robert de Broc, the -boldest of these offenders. - -At Christmas more than one of the archbishop’s followers warned him -that his life was in danger, and Thomas seems to have realised that his -position was hazardous. But he would not fly. - -Already his murderers were at hand. - -The excommunicated bishops had reached the king at Bur, near Bayeux, -had told their story, and had coloured it with a fanciful description -of Thomas making a circuit of England at the head of a large body of -men.[18] Someone had said, “My lord, as long as Thomas lives, you will -have neither peace nor quiet in your kingdom, nor will you ever see -good days;” and at this Henry had burst out into a terrible rage of -bitterness and passion, for such fits at times took possession of him, -“Here is a man,” he cried out, “who came to my court a sorry clerk, -who owes all he has to me, and insults my kingdom and lifts his heel -against me. And not one of the cowardly sluggish knaves, whom I feed -and pay so well, but suffers this, nor has the heart to avenge me!” - -The words were spoken, and four of the king’s knights--Reginald -FitzUrse, William of Tracy, Hugh of Morville, and Richard the -Breton--hearing what was said, and that Roger of York had declared “as -soon as Thomas is dead all this trouble will be ended, and not before,” -at once departed. They sailed from different ports and met together at -Saltwood, the castle of the Brocs, on December 28th. The following day -they rode on to Canterbury, taking with them twelve of Randulf’s men -and Hugh of Horsea, who was called the Evil Deacon. - -The king, on finding the four knights had left the court, gave -orders to have them stopped, but it was too late. They were then at -Canterbury, and entering the hospitable doors of the palace had made -direct for the archbishop’s private chamber. - -It was four o’clock. Dinner had been at three, and Thomas was sitting -on his bed talking to John of Salisbury, Edward Grim, and a few other -friends. When the knights entered, Thomas recognized Reginald, William, -and Hugh, for they had served under him years before, and waited for -them to speak. - -Reginald FitzUrse was the spokesman. He declared they had come from -the king, that Thomas must take an oath of fealty to the newly-crowned -prince, and must absolve the excommunicated bishops. Thomas answered -that the bishops might have been absolved on their willingness to obey -the judgments of the Church, and that the king had sanctioned what had -been done at their reconciliation. - -Reginald denied there had been any reconciliation, and swore that -Thomas was imputing treachery to the king in saying such a thing. - -The archbishop pointed out that the reconciliation had taken place in -public, and that Reginald himself had been present. - -Reginald swore he had never been there, and had not heard of it. And -at this the other knights broke in, swearing again and again, by God’s -wounds, that they had borne with him far too long already. - -Then Thomas reminded them of the insults and losses he had endured, -especially at the hands of the De Brocs, since his return. - -Hugh of Morville answered him that he had his remedy in the King’s -Courts, and ought not to excommunicate men on his own authority. - -“I shall wait for no man’s leave to do justice on any that wrong the -Church and will not give satisfaction,” Thomas replied. - -“What do you threaten us! Threats are too much!” cried Reginald -FitzUrse. - -Then the knights bit their gloves and angrily defied the archbishop. - -Thomas told them that they could not intimidate him. “Once I went away -like a timid priest; now I have returned, and I will never leave again. -If I may do my office in peace, it is well: if I may not, God’s will be -done.” Then he turned to remind them they had once sworn fealty to him -when he was chancellor. - -“We are the king’s men,” they shouted out, “and owe fealty to no one -against the king!” - -Bidding his servants keep the archbishop within the precincts on peril -of their lives, the knights withdrew. - -“It is easy to keep me,” said Thomas, “for I shall not go away. I will -not fly for the king or for any living man.” - -“Why did you not take counsel with us and give milder answer to your -enemies?” said John of Salisbury. “You are ready to die, but we are -not. Think of our peril!” - -“We must all die,” the archbishop answered, “and the fear of death must -not turn us from doing justice.” - -Word was quickly brought in that the knights were putting on their -armour in the courtyard, and the monks, frightened at the sight of -these men with drawn swords entering the orchard to the west of the -cathedral, rushed to the archbishop and implored him to fly to the -cathedral. Thomas smiled at their terror, saying, “All you monks are -too cowardly, it seems to me.” And not till vespers had begun would he -leave for the minster. The knights broke into the cloisters after him, -and reaching St. Benet’s chapel began to hammer at the door, which for -safety the monks had barred behind them. - -Thomas at once ordered the door to be unbolted, saying, “God’s house -shall not be made a fortress on my account.” He slipped back the iron -bar himself, and the angry knights rushed in with cries of “Where is -the traitor? Where is the archbishop?” - -It was five o’clock and a dark winter’s night. Had Thomas chosen, he -could easily have escaped death by concealing himself in the crypt or -in one of the many hiding places in the cathedral. But he felt his -hour had come and met it without faltering. John of Salisbury and the -rest of the monks and clerks vanished away and hid themselves, leaving -only Edward Grim, Robert of Merton and William FitzStephen with the -archbishop. Soon only Grim was left, when the archbishop came out -boldly, and standing by a great pillar near the altar of St. Benedict, -answered his accusers. “Here I am: no traitor, Reginald, but your -archbishop.” - -They tried to drag him from the church, but he clung to the great -pillar, with Edward Grim by his side. For the last time Reginald called -on him to come out of the church. “I am ready to die, but let my people -go, and do not hurt them,” was the archbishop’s answer. William Tracy -seized hold of him, but Thomas hurled him back. Upon that FitzUrse -shouted, “Strike! strike!” And Tracy cut savagely at the head of the -archbishop. Grim sprang forward and the blow fell on his arm, and he -fell back badly wounded. - -Then Thomas commended his cause and that of the Church to St. Denis and -the patron saints of the cathedral, and his soul to God, and without -flinching bowed his head to his murderers. FitzUrse, Tracy and Richard -the Breton struck the archbishop down, and Hugh the Evil Deacon mangled -in brutal fashion the head of St. Thomas before calling out to the -others: “Let us go now; he will never rise again!” - -Then they all rushed from the church, and shouting, “King’s knights! -King’s knights!” proceeded to plunder the palace. They fled north that -night to the castle of Hugh of Morville at Knaresborough, where for -a time they lived in close retirement. Tracy subsequently went on a -pilgrimage to Rome and Palestine, but all four “within two years of the -murder were living at court on familiar terms with the king.”[19] - -Henry and all his court were horrified when the news was brought -of the archbishop’s martyrdom, for all the people proclaimed the -murdered prelate a saint and a martyr, and “a martyr he clearly -was, not merely to the privileges of the Church or to the rights of -the see of Canterbury, but to the general cause of law and order as -opposed to violence.”[20] Had St. Thomas yielded in the matter of the -excommunicated bishops, and sought favour with the king at the expense -of the liberties and discipline of the Church, and had he given way -to the savage, lawless turbulence of the king’s knights, he would not -only have escaped a violent death, but might have lived long in the -sunshine of the royal pleasure. He chose the rougher, steeper road, -daring all to save the Church and the mass of the English people from -being brought under the iron heel of a king’s absolute rule, and he -paid the penalty, pouring out his blood on the stones of the minster at -Canterbury to seal the vows he had taken when he first entered the city -as archbishop. - -In his dying St. Thomas was even stronger than in his life. Henry -hastened to beg the forgiveness of Rome for his rash words that had -provoked the murder, and in the presence of the pope’s legates in -Normandy promised to give up the Constitutions of Clarendon and to -stand by the papacy against the emperor. Nor did he make any further -attempt in his reign to bring the Church under the subjection of the -crown, but built up a great system of legal administration, which in -substance exists to-day. - -St. Thomas was canonised four years after his death. “There was no -shadow of doubt in men’s minds that here was one who was a martyr as -fully as any martyr of the catacombs and the Roman persecutions.” (R. -H. Benson, _St. Thomas of Canterbury_.) Countless miracles were alleged -to prove the sanctity of the dead hero, and pilgrims from all parts -made their way to the shrine of the “blessful martyr” at Canterbury. -Not only in England, but in France and Flanders, and particularly in -Ireland was there an outburst of devotion to St. Thomas. - -The shrine at Canterbury was destroyed by Henry VIII., who after a mock -trial of the archbishop slain more than 300 years earlier, declared -that “Thomas, sometime Archbishop of Canterbury, had been guilty of -contumacy, treason and rebellion,” and “was no saint, but rather a -rebel and traitor to his prince.” - -But though Thomas, canonised by the pope on the prayers of the people -of England, could be struck out of the calendar of the Church of -England by the arbitrary will of King Henry VIII., as an enemy of -princes, and his shrine destroyed, it is beyond the power of a king -to reverse the sentence of history or to blast for ever the fame of -a great and courageous champion of the poor of this land. Time makes -little of the insults of Henry VIII. Thomas of Canterbury died for the -religion that in his day protected the people against the despotism of -the crown. “He was always a hater of liars and slanderers and a kind -friend to dumb beasts (hence his rage with De Broc for mutilating a -horse) and all poor and helpless folk.” (F. York Powell.) - -That Henry II. strove to make law predominant in the spirit of a great -statesman is as true as that Thomas strove to mitigate the harshness of -the law. As a writer of the twelfth century put it: “Nothing is more -certain than that both strove earnestly to do the will of God, one for -the sake of his realm, the other on behalf of his Church. But whether -of the two was zealous in wisdom is not plain to man, who is so easily -mistaken, but to the Lord, who will judge between them at the last -day.” - - - - -William FitzOsbert, called Longbeard - -The First English Agitator - -1196 - - -AUTHORITIES: Roger of Hoveden; William of Newburgh; Gervase of -Canterbury; Matthew Paris; Ralph Diceto; (Rolls Series); _Rotuli Curiæ -Regis_ (Sir F. Palgrave. Vol. I.). - - - - -WILLIAM FITZOSBERT CALLED LONGBEARD, THE FIRST ENGLISH AGITATOR - -1196 - - -When Richard I., on his accession, picked out Hubert Walter, Bishop -of Salisbury, to be Archbishop of Canterbury, he chose a prelate whom -he could rely upon as his representative. Hubert had been a crusader; -he was the nephew of Ralph Glanville--who sold the justiciarship to -William Longchamp, Bishop of Ely, for £3,000, and followed Richard to -Palestine, dying of the plague at Acre in 1191--and though a man of -little learning he was a capital lawyer, a strong administrator and -expert at raising money for the king.[21] Hubert was no champion of -the poor as St. Thomas had been, no preacher of righteousness like St. -Anselm, no stickler for the rights of the Church or the liberties of -the people; he was “the king’s man,” and “forasmuch as he was neither -gifted with a knowledge of letters nor endued with the grace of lively -religion, so in his days the Church of England was stifled under the -yoke of bondage.” (Geraldus Cambrensis.) - -Richard Cœur de Lion, occupied with the crusades, had no mind for the -personal government of England. He depended on his ministers for money -to pay for his military expeditions to Palestine. England was to him -nothing more than a subject province to be bled by taxation. Both -William Longchamp and Hubert Walter--to whom Richard committed the -realm when he left England for good in 1194--did all that could be done -to meet the king’s demands. Government offices, earldoms and bishoprics -were sold to the highest bidder.[22] Judges bought their seats on the -bench and cities bought their charters. Crown lands already granted to -tenants were again taken up by the king’s authority, and the occupier -compelled to pay for readmission to his holding. Tournaments were -revived, because everyone taking part was obliged to take a royal -license. Even the great seal was broken by the justiciar’s authority, -and all documents signed by it had to be reissued, with the payment -of the usual fees (or stamp duties) for new contracts. “By these and -similar inquisitions England was reduced to poverty from one sea to the -other,” for more than £1,000,000 was sent to Richard by Hubert in the -first two years of his justiciarship. - -The only protest against the general distress came from London, and not -from the aldermen or burghers, but from the voteless labouring people -upon whom the whole burden of raising the city’s taxes had been thrown. -Against this monstrous injustice William Longbeard FitzOsbert stood -out as the spokesman of the poor of London, and died a martyr for -their cause. - -London’s political importance had been seen in the struggles against -King Cnut and William the Conqueror. Its remarkable influence in -national politics (an influence that endured to the middle of the -nineteenth century) was manifest when London acclaimed Stephen as King -of England in 1135. At the close of the twelfth century, London, with -the civic charter it had just obtained from Richard, with its thirteen -convent churches and more than a hundred parish churches within its -boundaries, with its great cattle market at Smithfield and its growing -riverside trade, was already prosperous and overcrowded. “The city was -blessed with the healthiness of the air and the nature of its site, in -the Christian religion, in the strength of its towers, the honour of -its citizens and the purity of its women; it was happy in its sports -and fruitful of high spirited men.” It had its darker side, but at that -time “the only plagues were the intemperate drinking of foolish people -and the frequent fires.” - -Richard’s charter left to the citizens the business of assessing their -own taxes, and in 1196 there was trouble over this matter; for in -that year the city fathers decided that the large sums required by -Archbishop Hubert for the king’s needs should be paid in full by the -poorer craftsmen and labourers, who had no say in the matter.[23] - -“And when the aldermen assembled according to usage in full hustings -for the purpose of assessing the taxes, the rulers endeavoured to spare -their own purses and to levy the whole from the poor.” (Roger of -Hoveden.) - -Whereupon up rose William Longbeard, the son of Osbert, and made his -memorable protest against these rascally proceedings, to go down to -history as the first popular agitator in England. - -An exceptional man was this Longbeard, a man of commanding stature and -great strength, ready witted, something of an orator and a lawyer, who -“burning with zeal for righteousness and fair play made himself the -champion of the poor,” holding that every man, rich or poor, should pay -his share of the city’s burdens according to his means. - -Longbeard was not of the labouring people himself. He was a member of -the city council, though by no means a rich man. He had distinguished -himself as a crusader in 1190, making the journey to Portugal against -the Moors; and a vision of St. Thomas Becket had appeared to him and -his fellow Londoners when their ship was beset by storms off the coast -of Spain. - -Longbeard was known to the king, and he was already hateful to the -ruling class because he had declared that Richard was being defrauded -by financial corruption of the money raised for the crown. He had also -accused his brother of treason in 1194, but the case was not proved. - -Richard was in Normandy in 1196, and Longbeard having banded together -15,000 men in London, under an oath that they would stick by him and -each other, went to the king and laid their grievances before him. -Richard heard the appeal sympathetically enough, for after all, as -long as the money was forthcoming, he had no particular desire that -the pockets of rich burghers should be spared at the expense of the -poor, but left matters in the hands of Archbishop Hubert the justiciar. -Longbeard returned to London, and with his 15,000[24] workmen in -revolt, bid an open defiance to the justiciar. - -Only a fragment of one of Longbeard’s speeches has been preserved, a -solitary specimen of popular oratory in the twelfth century.[25] - -Taking a passage from the prophet Isaiah for his text: “Therefore with -joy shall ye draw water from the wells of the Saviour” (Isaiah xii, 3), -the agitator delivers his message. - -“I am,” he saith, “the saviour of the poor. You the poor, who have -endured the hard hands of the rich, draw ye from my wells the waters of -sound doctrine, and this with joy, for the time of your visitation is -at hand. For I will divide the waters from the waters, and the People -are the waters. I will divide the humble and faithful from such as are -proud and froward. I will divide the just from the unjust, even as -light from darkness.” - -For a time Longbeard was too strong for the justiciar. Archbishop -Hubert had no force at his disposal for the invasion of London, for a -battle with Longbeard and his league. - -At a great gathering of citizens, held in St. Paul’s Churchyard, the -justiciar’s men sent to arrest Longbeard had been driven out of the -city with violence. All that Hubert could do was to give orders for -the arrest of any lesser citizens found outside London, and two small -traders from the city actually were taken into custody at the town of -Stamford on Mid-Lent Sunday, 1196, under this authority. - -But the aldermen grew more and more frightened at Longbeard’s bold -speeches and his big public meetings, and weakness and cowardice began -to demoralise the league. The people, who had risen for “liberty and -freedom,” fell away from their leader, and FitzOsbert was left with a -comparatively small band to face the anger of the justiciar. - -Backed up by the city fathers, Hubert’s officers again attempted to -seize the agitator. Longbeard, hardly pressed, snatched an axe from -one of his assailants--a citizen named Godfrey--and slew him; and then -retreated, overwhelmed by numbers, to take refuge in the church of -St. Mary-le-Bow in Cheapside. There was a right of sanctuary in this -church, a right not to be denied to the commonest felon. - -But what were rights of sanctuary to the justiciar--bent on hunting his -prey to the death? He commanded Longbeard “to come out and abide by the -law,” and gave orders to his men that, failing instant obedience, he -was to be dragged out. - -Longbeard’s answer was to climb up into the church tower, and thereupon -Hubert ordered the tower to be set on fire, and this was done. And now -the only chance of life for William Longbeard and his followers was to -cut their way through the host of their enemies and make a bold rush -for safety. It was a remote chance at the best, but sooner that than to -perish in the burning tower. - -At the very church door Longbeard was struck down--some say by -Godfrey’s son--and his little company were quickly slain or taken -prisoners. Loaded with chains, the once bold advocate of the poor of -London, now badly hurt, was at once haled off to the Tower. Sentence -was pronounced without delay of the law, William, the son of Osbert, -was to be dragged to the elms at Tyburn and there hanged in chains. - -A few days later--it was just before Easter--the wounded man was -stripped naked, tried to the tail of a horse and dragged over the rough -stones of the streets of London. He was dead before Tyburn was reached, -but the poor broken body, on whom the full vengeance of the rich and -mighty had been wreaked, was strung up in chains beneath the gallows -elm all the same. Bravely had Longbeard withstood the rulers of the -land in the day of his strength; now, when life had passed from him, -his body was swinging in common contempt. And with him were nine of his -followers hanged. - -So died William, called Longbeard, son of Osbert, “for asserting the -truth and maintaining the cause of the poor.” And since it is held that -to be faithful to such a cause makes a man a martyr, people thought he -deserved to be ranked with the martyrs. For a time multitudes--the very -folk who had fallen away from their champion in the hour of battle and -need--flocked to pay reverence to the ghastly, bloodstained corpse that -hung at Tyburn, and pieces of the gibbet and of the bloodstained earth -beneath were carried off and counted as sacred relics. All the great, -heroic qualities of the man were recalled. He was accounted a saint. -Miracles were alleged to take place when his relics were touched. - -Then the dead man’s enemies were aroused, an alleged death-bed -confession was published, wherein Longbeard was made out to be a sorry -criminal. Not the least of the offences laid to his charge was that a -woman, who was not his wife, had stood faithfully by the rebel, even -when the church was on fire. - -The times were rough. It is probable that Longbeard, crusader and -fighting man, had sins enough to confess before death took him. But -his traducers were silent as to these sins in the man’s lifetime. They -waited until no answer could be given before uttering their miserable -libels against the one courageous champion of the poor. - -Longbeard had roused the common working people to make a stand against -obvious oppression and injustice--there was the head and front of his -offending, there was his crime; earning for him not only a felon’s -death, but the loss of character, and the branding for all time with -the contemptuous title “Demagogue.” - -Yet in the slow building up of English liberties William FitzOsbert -played his part, and laid down his life in the age-long struggle for -freedom, as many a better has done. - -In 1198, two years after the death of Longbeard, Hubert was compelled -to resign the justiciarship. His monks at Canterbury, to whom the -Church of St. Mary, in Cheapside, belonged, and who had no love for -their archbishop,[26] indignant at the violation of sanctuary and the -burning of their church, appealed to the king and to the pope, Innocent -III. to make Hubert give up his political activities and confine -himself to the work of an archbishop. In the same year a great council -of the nation, led by St. Hugh of Lincoln, flatly refused a royal -demand for money made by Hubert. - -Innocent III. was against him, the great barons were against him, and -Hubert resigned. But he held the archbishopric till 1205. - - - - -Stephen Langton and the Great Charter - -1207–1228 - - -AUTHORITIES: Roger of Wendover and Matthew Paris; Walter of Coventry; -Ralph of Coggeshall (Rolls Series); _Letters of Innocent III._; Rymer’s -_Fœdera_; K. Norgate--_John Lackland_; Stubbs--_Select Charters_; -Mark Pattison--_Stephen Langton_ (Lives of the English Saints); C. E. -Maurice--_Stephen Langton_. - - - - -STEPHEN LANGTON AND THE GREAT CHARTER - -1207–1228 - - -When Hubert Walter, Archbishop of Canterbury--the old Justiciar of -Richard I.--ended his long life of public service on July 12th, A.D. -1205, King John exclaimed, with frank satisfaction, “Now for the first -time I am King of England!” As long as Hubert was alive there was one -man strong enough to restrain the king, and the primate and William -the Marshall together had done something to guard England against the -foulest and most ruthless tyranny of all its kings. To the end William -the Marshall was a brave and patriotic statesman, but he served the -crown rather than the people. - -On Hubert’s death John meant to have for archbishop a creature of -his will, and he was defeated by Pope Innocent III., who, dismissing -the appeal of the monks of Canterbury for Reginald, their subprior, -and John’s appeal for his nominee, John de Gray, Bishop of Norwich, -proposed the English-born Cardinal, Stephen Langton, “than whom there -was no man greater in the Roman court, nor was there any equal to -him in character and in learning.” The monks consented to Stephen’s -appointment, but John’s reply was a flat refusal, and when on June -7th, 1207, Pope Innocent proceeded to consecrate Stephen Langton -Archbishop of Canterbury, the king’s rage broke out. Innocent’s wise -judgment gave England one of its noblest and greatest archbishops, and -the service wrought by Langton for the liberties of England’s people -was of deep and lasting value. But the immediate price to be paid for -later profit was heavy. - -John met Langton’s consecration by seizing the estates of Canterbury, -driving the chapter into exile, and proclaiming that anyone who -acknowledged Stephen as archbishop should be accounted a public enemy. -The remonstrances and warnings of the pope were disregarded, and in -March, 1208, all England was laid under an interdict, and there was -an end to the public ministrations of religion in the country for six -years--to the bitter distress of the common people. - -Immediately the interdict came into force, John declared all the -property of the clergy, secular or monastic, to be confiscated, and -there was no one to stay his hand from speedy spoliation. For the -barons were willing enough to see the clergy robbed and the king’s -treasury filled at the expense of the Church, and of the bishops only -two were left in England--Peter des Roches, of Winchester, and John -de Gray, of Norwich--and both these were willing tools of the king. -Never did John enjoy his royal will and pleasure with such unhindered -ferocity as in that year 1209. Had the barons stood by the Church they -might have saved England unspeakable miseries, and as it was the laity -were soon in as sorry a plight as the clergy, “and it seemed as though -the king was courting the hatred of every class of his subjects, so -burdensome was he to both rich and poor.”[27] - -In 1211 came Pandulf from Pope Innocent with suggestions for peace. Let -the king restore the property of the clergy, and receive Archbishop -Langton, with his kinsmen and friends, and the other exiled bishops -“fairly and in peace” and the interdict should be withdrawn. John -declined to receive Langton as archbishop, and Pandulf, in the presence -of the whole council, pronounced the papal sentence of excommunication -on the king, absolving all his subjects from allegiance, and commanding -their obedience to whomsoever should be sent as John’s successor. - -John treated the excommunication with cheerful contempt, and pursued -the evil tenour of his way. But his position was precarious, for the -barons--especially the northern barons--were plotting his overthrow, -and the pope had decided that Philip of France should depose John and -reign in his stead. John was driven to capitulate to the pope at the -end of 1212, and in May, 1213, Pandulf arrived, and the invasion by -Philip was stopped, to the exceeding annoyance of the French king. - -John met the papal legate at Ewell, near Dover, and in the presence -of “the great men of the realm,” swore to carry out all Innocent’s -demands, promising that Stephen should be received and recompense paid -to the clergy for their losses. Then the King of England formally -surrendered “to God and to the Holy Mother Church of Rome, and to Pope -Innocent and his Catholic successors,” the whole realm of England and -Ireland, “with all rights thereunto appertaining, to receive them back -and hold them thenceforth as a feudatory of God and the Roman Church.” -He swore fealty to the pope for both realms, and added that he would -send a yearly tribute of 1,000 marks. At the same time John declared -that the act of homage was voluntary, done, “not at the driving of -force nor the compulsion of fear, but of our own good free will and by -the common counsel of our barons.” - -There is no evidence that the pope asked for this abject submission, -but there are good reasons why John desired that political protection -of the papacy which he obtained by the act of homage.[28] (Matthew -Paris has a story that John was willing to pay homage and tribute to -the Mohammedan Emir of Morocco in order to effect an alliance with some -foreign power.) - -The barons themselves appealed to the pope two years later to take -their part against John, on the ground that it was only by their -compulsion the king had been brought to pay homage to Rome, and -though they were then to curse the papal overlordship they had helped -procure, and England was to come to regard John’s surrender to the -pope as “a thing to be detested for all time,” in that year 1213 the -protection of the pope was invaluable to John and, as some thought, to -the country. “For matters were in such a strait, and so great was the -fear on all sides, that there was no more ready way of avoiding the -imminent peril--perhaps no other way at all. For when once he had put -himself under apostolical protection and made his realms a part of the -patrimony of St. Peter, there was not in the Roman world a sovereign -who durst attack him or would invade his lands, in such awe was Pope -Innocent held above all his predecessors for many years past.” (Walter -of Coventry.) - -The long war being at an end Stephen Langton and four of the exiled -bishops landed in June, and Stephen was now to do the work of -archbishop, the work he had been solemnly consecrated to six years -before. - -John met the primate at Winchester, and swore on the gospels in -the cathedral “that he would cherish, defend and maintain the holy -Church and her ordained ministers; that he would restore the good -laws of his forefathers, especially St. Edward’s, rendering to all -men their rights; and that before the next Easter he would make full -restitution of all property which had been taken away in connection -with the interdict.” Then Stephen formally absolved the king from -excommunication and gave him the kiss of peace, to the general -rejoicing. - -And now England was to see what sort of archbishop it was Pope Innocent -had sent to Canterbury. With a king as cruel as he was vigorous, and -as astute as he was unscrupulous, with barons who knew neither loyalty -nor patriotism. Archbishop Stephen, out of such materials, was to win -for his native land the Great Charter, and to have it written in black -and white that all who would might read the several duties of king and -people. In August Langton, in St. Paul’s Cathedral, read to the barons -the old coronation charter of Henry I., and reminded them that the -liberties promised in that document were to be recovered. “With very -great joy the barons swore they would fight for these liberties, even -unto death if it were needful, and the archbishop promised that he -would help with all his might.” Thus within three months of his setting -foot in England Langton had started the movement for the Great Charter. - -But not with king and barons only had the archbishop to deal. There -were endless difficulties with the clergy concerning the restitution -of their property, and the payment of compensation to be settled. And -above all there was Nicholas, the papal legate, in England, usurping -the primate’s functions, filling up vacant bishoprics and churches, -regardless of the rights of the Church and of the archbishop. Nicholas -was recalled to Rome when the interdict was finally removed, and -in November, 1214, John made a public proclamation that free and -undisturbed election to all the churches in his realm should be allowed -henceforth. This was an attempt on the king’s part to have the Church -on his side against the barons, for the battle was beginning between -John and the barons which was to be fought to a bitter end. - -John’s last campaign to recover the lost Angevine provinces for the -English crown ended in disaster, and he returned to England in 1214 -to face the full discontent of the barons whom he had harassed and -insulted from the day he came to the throne, and of a country suffering -from “the evil customs which the king’s father and brother had raised -up for the oppression of the Church and realm, together with the abuses -which the king himself had added thereto.” - -The national grievances were enormous and intolerable. The whole -administration of justice was corrupt, and no one could be sure how -the arbitrary decisions of the king’s officers would be carried out. -Liberty of the person was a farce when free men could be arrested, -evicted from their lands, exiled and outlawed without legal warrant -or a fair trial. “In a word, the entire system of government and -administration set up under the Norman kings, and developed under Henry -and Richard, had been converted by the ingenuity of John into a most -subtle and effective engine of royal extortion, oppression and tyranny -over all classes of the nation, from earl to villein.”[29] - -Here and there the barons had struck against some act of personal -injury, and the northern barons had been conspicuous in their -resentment, refusing to follow John as their liege lord in his -expeditions to France. But there was neither cohesion nor any sense -of national injury amongst the barons until Stephen Langton, with a -full sense of the responsibility laid on the successor of Lanfranc -and Anselm, of Theobald and Thomas, took the lead, and by strong, -courageous effort sought to end for all time in England such tyranny as -the country had endured under John’s rule. To Langton this was no mere -struggle between a despotic king and a set of turbulent nobles. It was -a struggle to win recognition of law for _all_ men, and to restore some -measure of justice and the enjoyment of fair liberty throughout the -land. The people had neither spokesman nor champion, and no man heeded -their wrongs save Langton. More than 150 years were to pass before -John Ball and Wat Tyler would appear at the head of a peasant army in -revolt. In the reign of John, yeomen, peasant and artizan were dumb. It -was Langton who saw that the barons fighting for their own rights could -be made to fight for all England. - -In November the barons came together at St. Edmundsbury, and in the -abbey church “they swore on the high altar that if the king sought to -evade their demand for the laws and liberties of the charter of King -Henry I., they would make war upon him and withdraw from fealty to him -till he should by a charter furnished with his seal confirm to them all -that they demanded. They also agreed that after Christmas they would -go all together to the king and ask him for a confirmation of these -liberties, and that meanwhile they would so provide themselves with -horses and arms that if the king should seek to break his oath, they -might, by seizing his castles, compel him to make satisfaction. And -when these things were done every man returned to his own home.” (Roger -of Wendover.) - -John kept Christmas at Worcester, but his court was very small, and he -realised that he stood alone. All through the years of the interdict -the pope’s ban had not kept the nobles from attendance on the king; it -was now when he stood reconciled to the Church that John found himself -deserted. He moved to London at the new year, and there on the Epiphany -came the confederate barons, making display of arms, and praying that -the laws and liberties of Edward the Confessor written in the charter -of Henry I. might be confirmed. John urged that the question was -too big and too difficult to be settled off hand, and asked that it -should be put off till Easter. This was agreed to on condition that -the king pledged himself by three sureties to fulfil his promises. -Archbishop Stephen, William the Marshall and the Bishop of Ely were -accepted as sureties, and in accepting the post Langton proved his -great statesmanship. There was no question of going over to the king’s -side. The barons knew the archbishop as their chief ally, but John knew -that Langton was to be trusted as implicitly as he trusted William -the Marshall. Langton’s one desire was to see the written enactment -granting constitutional liberties, and ending the worst of the royal -abuses. - -John did not waste the time allotted to him, but worked his hardest to -gain friends and supporters against the barons, and to break up the -confederacy. It was all to no purpose. His commissioners to the County -Courts--in the southern and midland shires, sent to explain the king’s -cause--met with no success. Nobles and churchmen alike stood aloof, -and all John could do was to write to the knights at Poitou to send -him mercenaries, and to appeal to his liege lord, the pope, against -his rebellious subjects. Finally, he took the cross, hoping for the -favours awarded to a crusader. These efforts were all of no avail. The -mercenaries were inadequate. The pope’s letters of rebuke to the barons -for their conspiracies and conjurations were unheeded, and at Easter, -John (whom the pope had warned to harken to “just petitions”) was -driven to send the primate and the Marshall for a definite statement of -the laws and liberties demanded. - -The barons, who were assembled at Brackley, presented “a certain -schedule,” probably compiled with Langton’s assistance, and this was -read to the king by the primate. “They might as well ask for my kingdom -at once,” was John’s reply to the various items, and he swore he -would never grant liberties that would mean his own enslavement. Both -Langton and the Marshall strove to persuade the king to yield, but to -no purpose; and all that remained was to return to the barons and to -state that the king refused their demands. Then the barons, on hearing -this, flew to arms, formally renounced their homage and fealty to the -king, and chose a military leader for themselves--Robert Fitz-Walter. -London welcomed the insurgents on May 24th, and John, with a handful -of mercenaries, had the whole baronage against him. Capitulation was -inevitable. From Windsor John sent envoys to the barons in London, -promising, for the sake of peace and for the welfare and honour of his -realm, to concede the laws and liberties demanded, and advising the -appointment of time and place for a meeting for “the settlement of all -these things.” The barons at once fixed the meeting for June 15th, in -a meadow called Runnymead, between Staines and Windsor, and there, in -the presence of well-nigh all the baronage of England, of Archbishop -Stephen, and seven bishops, and “a multitude of most illustrious -knights,” the Great Charter was signed. It was the work of Langton.[30] -It was he who had inspired the movement, had framed the articles, and -had brought the struggle to a successful issue. - -“One copy of the Great Charter still remains in the British Museum, -injured by age and fire, but with the royal seal still hanging from the -brown, shrivelled parchment. It is impossible to gaze without reverence -on the earliest monument of English freedom which we can see with our -own eyes and touch with our own hands, the Great Charter to which from -age to age patriots have looked back as the basis of English liberty.” -(J. R. Green.) - -Yet the Charter itself was in the main but the old charter of Henry I. -writ large. It set up no new rights and conferred no new privileges. -It sanctioned no constitutional changes, and proclaimed no new -liberties. Its real importance is in the fact that it was a _written_ -document--“this great table of laws, won by the people of England from -a tyrannous king, was the first great act which laid down in black and -white the main points of the constitution and the several rights and -duties of king and people.” (F. York Powell.) - -“The bonds of unwritten custom, which the older grants did little -more than recognize, had proved too weak to hold Angevins; and the -baronage now threw them aside for the restraints of written law. It is -in this way that the Great Charter marks the transition from the age -of traditional rights, preserved in the nation’s memory and officially -declared by the primate, to the age of written legislation, of -parliaments and statutes, which was soon to come.” (J. R. Green.) - -The first article of the Charter guaranteed the freedom of the English -Church, and, in especial, the freedom of elections, “which was reputed -most requisite.” - -By the Great Charter the feudal rights of the king over his vassals -were defined and settled, and the tenants of the barons were protected -in similar way from the lawless exactions of their lords. - -No scutage or aid was to be levied by the crown, “save by the common -council of the realm”--except the three customary feudal aids for -the ransoming of the king, the knighting of his eldest son, and the -marriage of his eldest daughter. This common council, consisting of -bishops, abbots, earls, and greater barons, was to be summoned by -special writ. The free rights of London and the other chartered towns -were fully admitted. - -The Court of Common Pleas (cases between subjects) was to sit at -Westminster (and not to follow the king in his wanderings), and judges -of assize were to go on circuit four times a year. - -No free man was to be seized, imprisoned, ousted of his land, outlawed, -banished, or in any way brought to ruin, save by the legal judgment of -his peers or by the law of the land. - -To no man was justice to be sold, denied, or postponed by the king. - -The free right of Englishmen and foreigners to pass in and out of the -country in time of peace was granted. - -The king’s mercenaries, “all the gang that came with horses and arms to -the hurt of the realm,” were to be sent out of England. - -Finally, by a supplementary document, the barons present at Runnymead -were to choose out of the whole baronage twenty-five sworn guardians of -the Charter, who, in the event of any violation of its articles, were -not to hesitate from making war on the king till the matter had been -put right. - -Well might John exclaim, in a wild burst of rage, when the Charter was -signed, and he was alone with his foreign troops, “They have given me -five-and-twenty over-kings!” - -The twenty-five were to ensure the king’s obedience to the Charter, -but who was to ensure the obedience of the twenty-five?--all of whom -were of the party of revolt against the king. A safeguard was obviously -necessary, and a second court of barons, thirty-eight in number, was -chosen--(which included William the Marshall)--and these first swore -obedience to the twenty-five, and then a second oath to enforce on king -and barons mutual respect.[31] - -The Great Charter was signed, and within a week it was published -throughout all England. But the “sort of peace” patched up between John -and the barons was not to last. None of the barons believed that the -king would abide by the oaths he had sworn, and they, for their part, -prepared for war.[32] - -To the Continent John looked for aid, “seeking to be revenged upon -his enemies by two swords, the sword of the spirit and the sword of -the flesh, so that if one failed he could count upon the other for -success.” He had appealed to the pope in May, and Innocent’s reply had -been a general condemnation of all disturbers of the peace. Pandulf, -the papal legate, was at Runnymead, and in August, when the barons -were openly making ready for hostilities, he and Peter des Roches, of -Winchester, called on Stephen Langton to enforce the papal sentence -of excommunication against certain of the barons. Langton, who was -about to set out to Rome for a general council, declined to do this -until he had seen the pope and discussed the whole question with -him. He believed the sentence had been drawn up by the pope under a -misunderstanding. Thereupon Pandulf and Peter des Roches, by virtue of -their authority, declared Stephen disobedient to the papal mandate, and -pronounced his suspension from his office of archbishop. - -Langton made no protest against the sentence but went to Rome, and -was present at the general council in November. His chiefest work for -England was done when the Charter was signed at Runnymead. With the -king and the barons at civil war, the country ravaged by John’s foreign -bands of merciless savages, and the barons praying Louis, the son of -Philip of France, to take the English crown, what could Archbishop -Stephen accomplish? Pope Innocent had declared the Charter annulled on -the ground that both king and barons had made the pope the over-lord -of England, and that in consequence nothing in the government and -constitution of the country could be altered without his knowledge and -sanction. But as the legate, the primate, and the bishops had all left -for Rome, the pope’s disallowing of the Charter never got published in -England at all, though it was known that he had sent letters. - -The sentence of suspension was removed from Langton in February, 1216. -A few months later the great pope, Innocent III., passed away, and in -October John was dead. - -In 1217 Stephen Langton was back again at Canterbury, to remain for -eleven more years the primate of England. With William the Marshall and -Hubert de Burgh, Stephen worked for the preservation of public peace -during those early years of Henry III. We find him in 1223 demanding -a fresh confirmation of the Charter in the council at Oxford, and two -years later its solemn proclamation is required by the archbishop -and the barons as the price of a new subsidy. Equally resolute is -Archbishop Stephen for public order, threatening with all the pains -and penalties of excommunication the barons, who (in spite of Hubert -de Burgh’s letters from the pope declaring Henry to be of age) were -anxious to keep the royal castles in their own hands. “At a time when -constitutional freedom was hardly known, when insurrection seemed the -only possible means of checking despotism, he (Langton) organized and -established a movement for freedom which by every act and word of his -life he showed to be in opposition to mere anarchy.” (C. E. Maurice.) - -Stephen Langton was never canonized, though application was made to -Rome to that end shortly after his death in 1228. His learning had made -him famous in Paris before Pope Innocent summoned him to Rome to become -cardinal priest of St. Chrysogonus. His wise statesmanship was proved -by the victory he won for England’s liberties over so energetic and -ruthless a despot as John, and with such material as the barons. His -strength of character and disinterested patriotism were impaired by no -taint of baseness or self seeking. If Stephen Langton is not numbered -with the saints, he ranks high in the great list of England’s primates, -serving religion as faithfully as he served justice and social order, -and his name is resplendent for all time in the charters of English -liberty. - - - - -Bishop Grosseteste, the Reformer - -1235–1253 - - -AUTHORITIES: _Letters of Robert Grosseteste_, edited by Luard; -_Monumenta Franciscana_; _Letters of Adam of March and Eccleston on the -coming of the Friars_, edited by Brewer; _Annales Monastici_--Burton -and Dunstable; Matthew Paris (Rolls’ Series); Samuel Pegge--_Life -of Robert Grosseteste_, 1793; F. S. Stevenson, M.P.--_Robert -Grosseteste, Bishop of Lincoln_; M. M. C. Calthrop--_Victoria County -History--Lincolnshire_; Gasquet--_Henry III. and the Church_. - - - - -BISHOP GROSSETESTE THE REFORMER - -1235–1253 - - -The story of Robert Grosseteste’s bishophood is the record of eighteen -years’ unflinching battle with abuses in Church and State. From his -enthronement as Bishop of Lincoln in 1235 till his death in 1253 -Grosseteste is conspicuous as a reformer. Now it is the slackness of -the clergy he is combatting, enforcing discipline on men and women -who, vowed to religion, preferred an easier way of life. At another -time he is maintaining the laws and liberties of the nation against -Henry III., who with all his piety knew neither honesty nor truth in -his sovereignty. Right on till the last year of his life Grosseteste -is as vigorous in resisting papal encroachments on the English Church -as he is in dealing with his clergy or with the king. As a reformer -his work is threefold:--(1) The correction of current abuses in the -Church. (2) Maintenance of justice under the misrule of Henry III. (3) -Resistance to the aggressive claims of the papacy. With all this work, -fighting enemies of England at home and abroad, Grosseteste is busy -administering his enormous diocese of Lincoln--then the largest in -the country, including as it did the counties of Lincoln, Leicester, -Buckingham, Huntingdon, Northampton, Oxford and Bedford (Oxford and -Peterborough were afterwards carved out of Lincoln)--and is found -writing to and advising all manner of men, kings, nobles and peasants. - -Here is the character of Bishop Grosseteste as his contemporary, -Matthew Paris, saw it, and Matthew was a monk, and the champion of the -monks, and hated Grosseteste’s stern interference with monastic life:-- - -“He was an open confuter of both pope and king, the corrector of monks, -the director of priests, the instructor of clerks, the support of -scholars, a preacher to the people, a persecutor of the incontinent, -the tireless student of the Scriptures, the hammer and despiser of the -Romans. At the table of bodily refreshment he was hospitable, eloquent, -courteous, pleasant and affable. At the spiritual table devout, tearful -and contrite. In his episcopal office he was sedulous, venerable and -indefatigable.” - -Six hundred years later the whirligig of time leaves this verdict -of old Matthew Paris unreversed, and finds Grosseteste’s reputation -enhanced. - -“There is scarcely a character in English history whose fame has been -more constant, both during and after his life, than Robert Grosseteste, -Bishop of Lincoln from 1235 to 1253. As we find his advice sought -universally during his lifetime, and his example spoken of as that -which almost all the other prelates of his day followed, so was it -also after his death. If threats from Rome and excommunications from -Canterbury fell harmlessly upon him while alive, his example nerved -others in subsequent years--as in the case of Sewal, Archbishop of -York--to bear even worse attacks without giving way. And probably no -one has had a greater influence upon English thought and English -literature for the two centuries which followed his time; few books -will be found that do not contain some quotations from Lincolniensis, -‘the great clerk, Grostest.’”[33] - -A Suffolk man was Grosseteste, and born of humble parents. Sent to -Oxford by his friends he becomes master of the schools and chancellor -of the university--the foremost scholar of his day--receives various -ecclesiastical preferments, and at the age of sixty is freely elected -by the chapter of Lincoln as their bishop. If the canons of Lincoln -believed that Grosseteste’s age would ensure comparative quiet for -the diocese and a continuance of the loose order of his immediate -predecessors, they were speedily undeceived. - -Grosseteste brought into Lincoln an energy for religion that disturbed -the easy-going monks, with their comfortable common-room life, and -altogether upset the secular clergy with their illegal marriages -and their parochial revellings. In the first year of his authority -Grosseteste’s letter to his archdeacons, followed by his diocesan -constitutions, shows the hand of the reformer. He calls attention to -the neglect of the canonical hours of prayer--certain clergy “fearing -not God nor regarding man, either do not say the canonical hours or -say them in mutilated fashion, and that without any sign of devotion, -or at an hour more suitable to their own desires than convenient to -their parishioners”--to the private marriages of many priests, to the -strife and bloodshed and desecration caused by the miracle plays in -churchyards, and to the drunkenness and gluttony attendant on funeral -feasts. Grosseteste also complains that the parochial clergy oppose -the preaching friars, “maliciously hindering the people from hearing -the sermons of the friars, and permitting those to preach who make -a trade of it, and who only preach such things as may draw money.” -Incidentally, and with a curiously modern touch, Grosseteste urges -his archdeacons to warn mothers and nurses against overlaying their -children at night, for it seems many infants were suffocated in this -way. - -Grosseteste relied on the friars, Franciscan and Dominican, to revive -religion in his diocese. From their first coming to England he had -befriended the little brothers of St. Francis and St. Dominic’s order -of preachers, and at Oxford had been conspicuously their rector. He -writes to Pope Gregory IX. in the highest praise of the Franciscans: -“Inestimable benefits have been wrought in my diocese by the friars. -They enlighten our whole land with the bright light of their preaching -and learning.” - -The secular clergy and the monks generally by no means shared -Grosseteste’s appreciation of the preachers of poverty, and when the -Bishop of Lincoln began to rout up the monasteries in his diocese -with visitations and enquiries the dismay was considerable. The -Benedictine monks in England were good, easy men in the thirteenth -century--Grosseteste finds no grave faults against morality to rebuke -in them--fond of their pleasant social life, and enjoying the comfort -of an existence that had few temporal cares beyond finding money for -pope and king. At the worst their sloth was culpable. Grosseteste -charged upon them with his preaching friars, calling for amendment and -the fulfilment of duties, attacking old abuses sanctioned by custom, -and showing no tolerant sympathy for the infirmities and shortcomings -of middle-aged clerks.[34] Respect him they must, for the learning -and high character of the bishop were conspicuous in the land, but -the dislike of all this strenuous exhortation was not concealed. The -very chapter of Lincoln, which had elected him bishop, refused to -admit Grosseteste as their visitor, or to acknowledge his jurisdiction -over their proceedings, and only after six years of controversy and -litigation was the case finally decided at Rome (1245) wholly in the -bishop’s favour. A sentence of excommunication pronounced upon him by -the monks at Canterbury during the vacancy of the see was of course -entirely ignored by Grosseteste. If the clergy resented Grosseteste’s -call to arms, it is to be remembered that they had suffered -considerably from the tyranny of the times, and had been reduced under -the general oppression to a feeble and sluggish timidity. The old “Song -of the Church”[35] tells how low they had fallen: - - Free and held in high esteem the clergy used to be, - None were better cherished: or loved more heartily. - Slaves are they now: despised, brought low, - Betrayed (as all deplore) - By those from whom: their help should come; - I can no more. - - King and pope alike in this: to one purpose hold. - How to make the clergy yield their silver and their gold. - Truth to say: the pope gives way, - Far too much to the king - Our tithes he grants: for the crown’s wants - To his liking. - -To check the rapacity of the king, and to stop the seizure of Church -revenues for Italian clerics, and thereby to raise the English clergy -from their state of sluggish despondency was Grosseteste’s work for -England. We find him conspicuous at the council summoned by the king -to meet at Westminster in 1244. In vain Henry III. appealed for -money, bishops and nobles reminded him that the money so frequently -granted had done no good either to the king or the country, and that -a justiciar and chancellor must be appointed for the strengthening of -the state. Henry demurred, tried postponements and delays, and these -failing, summoned the bishops alone, and confronted them with a letter -from Pope Innocent IV. exhorting them to give liberally to the king. -Even this failed to move the prelates. After much discussion, however, -some were for “a mild answer,” for many of the prelates “fearing the -king’s instability and the pusillanimity of the royal counsellors,” -were unwilling to deny the pope’s request. Grosseteste clinched the -matter by declaring they must all stand together with the barons:[36] -“We may not be divided from the common counsel. For it is written if we -be divided we shall all perish forthwith,” The next day Henry tried to -get at each of the bishops separately--an old device. “But they with -wary heed would not be so entrapped, and by departing early in the -morning escaped the net in which they had once been caught; and so the -council broke up to the king’s discontent.” (Matthew Paris.) - -Again in 1252 Henry summoned the bishops, and tried to coerce them into -giving him money by producing a papal mandate, authorising the payment -of a full tithe of all Church revenues to the king for the space of -three years. To make matters worse, “payment was not to be made on the -old assessment, but on a new assessment conducted with strict inquiry, -at the will and judgment of the royal agents and extortioners, who -would seek their own profit before the king’s.” The excuse was that the -king was about to start on a pilgrimage. Grosseteste was then an old -man, but he blazed out at this monstrous demand, especially when the -king’s messengers went on to explain that the tithe for two years might -be paid at once, and that the third year’s tithe could also be raised -before the king actually started. “By our Lady,” said the sturdy bishop -of Lincoln, “what does all this mean? You assume that we shall agree to -this damnable levy, and go on arguing from premises that have not been -admitted. God forbid that we should thus bend our knee to Baal.” - -The king’s half-brother, Ethelmar, bishop-elect of Winchester, -deprecated resistance to the will of pope and king, and urged that the -French had consented to pay a similar demand. “Yes,” said the Bishop -of Ely, “and it brought their king no good.” “For the very reason the -French have yielded must we resist,” replied Grosseteste. “To do a -thing twice makes it a custom, and if we pay too, we shall have no -peace. For my own part, I say plainly that I will not pay this evil -demand, lest the king himself as well as us should incur the heavy -wrath of God.” The other bishops followed Grosseteste’s lead, and the -old man went on to advise them to pray the king to think of his eternal -salvation, and to restrain his rash impulses. Henry naturally declined -to send an independent remonstrance to the pope against the mandate, -and the bishops decided they could do nothing in the way of granting -this special tithe. But they were hard put to it, “between the pulling -of the king and the pushing of the pope.” - -All Grosseteste’s dealings with the king show the same firm resolution -to stop the royal extortion, and to insist on the fulfilment of the -charters of liberties obtained from the crown. He carries on the work -of Stephen Langton, always backing up the unsuccessful efforts of the -good St. Edmund Rich (Archbishop of Canterbury, 1234–1240) to keep -Henry faithful to his word, and prepares the way for the great campaign -of his friend Simon of Montfort.[37] The very worst period of Henry’s -long reign is covered by Grosseteste’s episcopal life. Hubert de -Burgh’s wise rule was over by 1232, and Peter des Roches and the horde -of aliens were fleecing the country for the next twenty years. It is -not till after Grosseteste’s death that the barons dealt with Henry’s -misrule to any purpose. - -At the great council held in London in 1248, at which Grosseteste was -present, a full list of the national grievances is given: the lavish -waste of the wealth of the country on foreigners, the ruin of trade by -the arbitrary seizure of goods by the king and his agents, the robbery -of poor fishermen by royal authority, “so that they think it safer to -trust themselves to the stormy waves and seek a further shore,” and the -keeping bishoprics and abbacies vacant so that the crown may enjoy the -revenues therefrom, are the chief causes of complaint. They were not -new grievances, for the most part, and they were not to die with Henry -III., all charters and royal promises notwithstanding. - -Added to the common wrongs of Henry’s wretched misrule were the papal -extortions, directly encouraged by the king. In return for papal -mandates directing churchmen to supply the king with money, what could -Henry--himself the most devoted servant of the papacy--do but help -the pope to get what he could out of England? The wealth of England -was held to be of fabulous amount at Rome, and popes beset by fierce -ungodly emperors naturally turned to it in their need as to a treasury. - -But the thing was intolerable to Grosseteste. He had studied in Paris, -he welcomed Dominican and Franciscan friars from the continent as no -other prelate did, and had no objection to foreigners _per se_. But -the pope claimed the revenues of church livings for boys and presented -illiterates to benefices--to the obvious degradation of the Church in -England. Grosseteste was always willing enough to raise what money he -could for the holy see, but appoint unworthy and incompetent clerks to -livings in his diocese, that he would not do--not for any pope. - -The country groaned under the biting avarice of the Roman see, as it -bled under the vampire politics of Peter des Roches and his needy, -greedy crew of Bretons and Poitevins. - -What it all meant to England Matthew Paris has told us in his -description of things in 1237: - -“Now was simony practised without shame and usurers on various pleas -openly extorted money from the common people and lesser folk; charity -expired, the liberty of the Church withered away, religion was trampled -to the dust. Daily did illiterate persons of the lowest class, armed -with bulls from Rome, burst forth into threats; and, in spite of the -privileges handed down to us from good men of old, they feared not -to plunder the revenues consecrated by our holy forefathers for the -service of religion, the support of the poor, and the nourishment of -strangers, but thundering out their excommunications they quickly and -violently carried off what they demanded. And if those who were wronged -and robbed sought refuge by appealing or pleading their privileges, -they were at once suspended and excommunicated by a papal writ. Thus -mourning and lamentation were heard on all sides, and many exclaimed -with heart-rending sobs, ‘It were better to die than to behold the -sufferings of our country and its saints. Woe to England, once the -chief of provinces, the mistress of nations, the mirror of the Church, -the exemplar of religion, and now brought under tribute,--trampled on -by worthless men, and the prey of men of low degree.’” - -The arrival of Otho, in 1237, a papal legate (on the request of Henry), -far from remedying, increased the contemporary distress. For though -Otho was a discreet man, he was more eager to get money for Rome than -to deal with the oppression that plagued England, and when he did give -advice it was spurned by those who saw his grasping hands. Archbishop -Edmund was particularly vexed at having a papal legate set over him, -and what with one disappointment and another finally gave up in despair -the task of guiding the English Church, and in 1240 went to die at -Pontigny, where his predecessors Anselm and Thomas had lived in exile. - -Grosseteste stuck to his post, and the Franciscans and Dominicans, -whom he aided, poured in oil and wine on the wounds of the Church folk, -and revived religion in the country. - -Grosseteste fought the extortionate papal demands for Church revenues -all the time. In 1239, with his fellow bishops, he tells Otho plainly -that the Church is drained dry by the grasping importunity of Rome. -Otho left in 1241, and that same year saw Boniface of Savoy, a -handsome, soldierly man appointed to Canterbury as St. Edmund’s -successor. The following year came a new extortioner from Rome, named -Martin, an altogether inferior person to Otho, but with all the -legate’s powers of suspension and excommunication. His confiscations -and rapacity provoked a remonstrance to the pope even from Henry. -Martin at last, in 1245, had to fly for his life from England, and -when Grosseteste subsequently had a calculation made of the English -Church revenues enjoyed by foreigners, it was found that the incomes -of foreign clerks appointed by Pope Innocent IV. amounted to more than -70,000 marks--more than treble the king’s income. And all this was done -in spite of refusals by Grosseteste to appoint illiterates or allow -boys to hold benefices. - -The barons sided with the Church against Martin, and drew up a long -protest which they sent to the pope at the council of Lyons in 1245. In -this they complained:--That the pope, not content with Peter’s Pence, -which had been paid cheerfully from old times, wrung money from the -Church against the law of the realm, without the king’s permission; and -that the pope wrongfully put ignorant, covetous, or absentee Italians -into English livings notwithstanding his own promises, the rights of -patrons, and the privileges of the English clergy. A year later the -protest was repeated with another item objecting to the pope’s claim to -recall former charters. - -Innocent IV.’s answer to this was to threaten to dethrone Henry as -he had dethroned his brother-in-law, the Emperor Frederick. The king -weakly said no more, the barons, without a leader, were equally silent, -and the Church continued “to sate the greed of Rome.” - -But in Grosseteste there was no spirit of surrender. In 1253, the -very last year of his life, he was called upon by the pope to -provide a nephew of his with a canonry at Lincoln, and the bishop’s -letter of refusal is, perhaps, the only well remembered thing of all -Grosseteste’s writings. This letter was not, as commonly stated, sent -to the pope but to his representative who was also named Innocent.[38] -“The pope has power to build up,” wrote Grosseteste, “but not to pull -down. These appointments tend to destruction, not edification, being of -man’s device and not according to the words of the Apostles or the will -of Christ. By my very love and obedience to the Holy See I must refuse -obedience in things altogether opposed to the sanctity of the Apostolic -See and contrary to Catholic unity. As a son and a servant I decline to -obey, and this refusal must not be taken as rebellion, for it is done -in reverence to divine commands.” - -(This letter is quoted by Matthew Paris and in the _Burton Annals_. It -can be read in full in the _Epistles_, No. 128.) - -When the pope heard of this answer he talked angrily of “the old -madman” who dared to sit in judgment on him, and blustered about the -king of England being his vassal. The cardinals, however, said frankly -that Grosseteste had spoken the truth, and that he was far too good a -man to be condemned. “He is Catholic,” they declared, “and of deepest -holiness. More religious, and more saintly than we are, and of better -life. They say that among all the bishops there is no one his equal, -still less his superior. All the clergy of France and England know -this. Besides, he is considered a great philosopher, thoroughly learned -in Latin and Greek; and he is zealous for justice, and a man who deals -in theology, a preacher to the people, a lover of chastity, and a -persecutor of those who practise simony.” So they extolled him. And it -is to the everlasting credit of the cardinals of the Roman See in that -year 1253 that they could discern the sincerity and the great qualities -of the brave old bishop who defied the pope’s unrighteous commands. -There was no question at Rome of any disloyalty on Grosseteste’s part -to the Holy See, no suggestion of any failing as a good Catholic.[39] -And Pope Innocent IV. wisely let the matter drop, when the cardinals -assured him it would never do to interfere with Grosseteste. - -Before he died Grosseteste made a last appeal “to the nobles of -England, the citizens of London and the community of the whole realm” -on behalf of the Rights of the English Church, making a careful list of -the ills to be redressed. He also solemnly charged his friend Simon of -Montfort, never, as he valued his immortal soul, to forsake the cause -of the English people, but to stand up even to the death, if needs be, -for a true and just government, and with prophetic foresight spoke of -the heavier troubles coming on the land. - -On October 9th, 1253, the long life and the magnificent battling with -odds were over, and the great bishop passed away. He was buried in -Lincoln Cathedral, and in 1307, King Edward I. and the dean and chapter -of St. Paul’s made application for his canonization, but without -success. Fifty years later and Edward III.’s Statutes of Provisors, -1351, and Praemunire, 1353, by their prohibition of papal bulls and of -the appointment of papal nominees to English benefices, may be accepted -as the real acknowledgment of Grosseteste’s political work. - -“I confidently assert (wrote Matthew Paris) that his virtues pleased -God more than his failings displeased Him.” - - - - -Simon of Montfort and the English Parliament - -1258–1265 - - -AUTHORITIES: Matthew Paris; William of Rishanger; Thomas of Wykes; -Adam of Marsh--_Monumenta Frascescana_, _Burton Annals_, _Annales -Monastici_; Robert of Gloucester--_Royal letters of Henry III._ -(Rolls Series); _Political Songs_ (Camden Society, 1839); _Chronicle -of Melrose_; Stubbs--_Constitutional History_, vol. ii; and _Select -Charters_; W. H. Blaauw--_The Barons’ War_; Dr. Pauli--_Simon of -Montfort_ (translated by Una M. Goodwin); G. W. Prothero--_Simon of -Montfort_; Dr. Shirley in _Quarterly Review_, cxix. 57. - - - - -SIMON OF MONTFORT AND THE ENGLISH PARLIAMENT - -1258–1265 - - -“In the year of our Lord 1238, which was the twenty-second of his -reign, King Henry held his court in London at Westminster, and there -on the day after Epiphany, which was a Thursday, Simon de Montfort -solemnly espoused Eleanor, daughter of King John, sister of Henry III., -and widow of William Marshall, Earl of Pembroke. The king himself gave -away the bride to the said Simon, Earl of Leicester, who received her -gratefully by reason of his disinterested love for her, her own beauty, -the rich honours that were attached to her, and the distinguished and -royal descent of the lady, for she was the legitimate daughter of a -king and queen, and furthermore was sister of a king, of an empress -(the wife of Frederic II.), and of a queen (Joan, wife of Alexander II. -of Scotland). Our lord the pope, too, gave him a dispensation to marry -this noble lady.” - -Thus Matthew Paris, when Earl Simon, then a man about thirty-seven, -and “tall and handsome,” enjoyed the royal favour and stood godfather -to the infant Prince Edward. Simon had only done homage as Earl of -Leicester in 1232; his boyhood was passed in France, and his father was -the great soldier who led the French crusade against the Albigenses. -Earl Richard of Cornwall, Henry’s brother--soon to become King of the -Romans--objected to the marriage, regarding it as one more victory for -the foreigners whom Henry nourished at the expense of England. But -Simon was no real alien. His grandmother had been sister and heiress of -the Earl of Leicester, and Simon’s French training no more made him a -stranger in England than did Stephen Langton’s years of study in Paris -and Rome unfit him for the primacy of the English Church. - -Henry’s favour was short-lived. Earl Simon made friends with Earl -Richard and left for the crusades, disgusted with the king’s want of -honesty. So much wisdom did he show in Palestine, and so great was his -prowess, that Simon might have stayed in the east as regent for the -young King of Jerusalem. But he had work to do in England, and came -home with Richard in 1242. - -Here against all the disorder of misrule and the royal and papal -extortions Simon laboured with his friend Bishop Grosseteste, and he is -conspicuous at the Parliament of Westminster in 1244, and in drawing up -the great protest to the pope a year later. - -Then for five years (1248–53) Simon was in Gascony contending with -a body of nobles whom neither Henry II. nor Richard I. had been -able to make good subjects, and whose only object in making formal -acknowledgment of Henry III. was to escape the rule of Louis of France. -Henry gave Simon neither men nor money, and lent a willing ear to all -the complaints of Simon’s enemies in Gascony and in England.[40] At -his own expense the Earl of Leicester saved Gascony for the English -crown, and brought peace and law and trade to that province. Henry’s -return was to make Simon answer trumped-up charges of robbery, cruelty -and treason brought by Gascons in 1252. The charges were not proved, -although Henry sent his own commissioner to Gascony to make enquiry. -Earl Richard and other nobles who knew the country were convinced -of Simon’s justice, and Simon, who was in England trying to raise -supplies, turned sharply on the king, reminding him of unfulfilled -promises. “Keep thy agreement with me,” he went on, “or pay me the -money I have spent in thy service; for it is well known I have -impoverished my earldom beyond recovery for the honour of the king.” -“There is no shame in breaking my word to a traitor,” the king answered -angrily. At this Simon in open wrath declared the king a liar, only -saved by the shelter of royalty from the penalty of his speech. “Call -thyself a Christian?” said the earl. “Dost thou ever confess thy sins?” -“Yes,” said the king, “I do.” “Thy confession is useless without -repentance and atonement.” said the earl. The king, more angry than -ever, retorted, “I repent of one thing, and that is that I made thee an -earl in England, to wax fat and kick against me. Get thee to Gascony, -thou who lovest strife, and take thy fill there and meet thy father’s -fate.” “I go willingly, my lord,” came the answer. “And, ungrateful as -thou art, I will not return till I have made these rebels thy subjects -and thy enemies thy footstool.” - -Simon returned to Gascony, and though Henry again undermined his -authority, he kept his word, only giving up his command when the work -was done. - -Adam of Marsh, a Franciscan friar, the friend and correspondent of -Grosseteste, often writes to Simon in those days, encouraging and -advising him. “Better is patience in a man than force,” says Adam, -“and better he who rules his own passions than he who storms a city.” -He prays this strong upright soldier-statesman to find comfort in -the frequent reading of the Holy Scriptures, “breaking through as -far as you can the cares and distractions of storm and trouble,” -and recommends the 29th, 30th and 31st chapters of the book of Job, -“together with the delightful commentaries of St. Gregory.” - -Once more back in England, the time soon came when Simon was the -recognised leader of the barons in their struggle with the king. And -this leadership gave England its first representative parliament. - -Henry was in greater financial difficulties than ever in 1257. The -mad scheme of accepting the crown of Sicily for his second son Edmund -from the pope, on condition that the cost of driving out Manfred, the -Emperor Frederick’s son, undertaken by the pope, was to be paid for -by England, had been adopted by Henry in spite of the opposition of -bishops and nobles. Henry pledged his kingdom with the pope as security -for the expenditure in Sicily,[41] and at last in the parliament of -1257 had to confess his indebtedness. Fourteen thousand marks were -owing to Pope Alexander, and this wretched debt, in addition to the -general contempt for law and justice by the king’s judges, sheriffs and -foreign favourites, drove matters to a climax. The wet summer of 1257, -followed by a failure at harvest, brought famine in the winter. - -The barons insisted that the time had come for constitutional -amendment. “The king’s mistakes call for special treatment,” said -Richard, Earl of Gloucester, at a parliament early in 1258, and Simon, -closely related to the royal house as he was, agreed. The swarm of -royal parasites from Poitou raised objections to any interference -with Henry’s prerogative, but were swept aside. “If the king can’t do -without us in war he must listen to us in peace. And what sort of peace -is this when the king is led astray by bad counsellors and the land is -filled with foreign tyrants who grind down native-born Englishmen?” So -the barons argued.[42] - -To Henry’s threat, “I will send reapers and reap your fields for you,” -Hugh Bigod of Norfolk had retorted briskly, “And I will send you back -the heads of your reapers.” - -Parliament met again in June that year at Oxford--the “Mad Parliament” -it was called--and the barons came fully armed, for civil war seemed -imminent. But the barons led by Richard of Gloucester and Earl Simon -carried all before them and the war was postponed for five years. - -The work of this parliament, well known as the Provisions of Oxford, -was one more attempt to get the Great Charter honestly observed. Under -this constitution:-- - -The king was to have a standing council of fifteen, by whose advice he -was to act, and to whom the justiciar, chancellor and treasurer were to -be accountable. - -Parliament was to meet three times a year--February, June and -October. Four knights were to be chosen by the king’s lesser freehold -tenant-knights in each county. - -To save expense twelve commissioners were to be chosen to represent -the baronage--“and the commonalty shall hold as established that which -these twelve shall do.”[43] The fifteen counsellors consisted of six -of the king’s party, and nine of the barons’--the most conspicuous of -the latter were Simon of Montfort, Richard of Gloucester, and Bishop -Cantilupe, of Worcester. - -Then the oath was taken, “that neither for life nor death, for hatred -or love, or for any cause whatever, would they be bent or weakened in -their purpose to regain praiseworthy laws, and to cleanse the kingdom -from foreigners.” - -Henry and Prince Edward, his eldest son, took the oath willingly -enough--though the latter soon began “to draw back from it so far as he -could.” The king’s half-brothers and the rest of the aliens not only -refused the oath, but swore that as long as they had breath they would -never surrender their castles, revenues, or wardships.[44] Simon, who -on the ground of his foreign birth had at once yielded his castles -of Kenilworth and Odiham, without recompense, turned to William de -Valence--who was blustering more than the rest--and said sharply, “To a -certainty you shall either surrender your castles or lose your head.” -The barons made it plain that they were in agreement with this, and -then were the Poitevins afraid, not knowing what to do; “for if they -hid themselves in their castles they would be starved out; for all -the people would besiege them and utterly destroy their castles.” The -aliens fled to the continent, and the new constitution was proclaimed -in every county--in Latin, French, and English.[45] - -Twenty years had passed since Henry had blessed Simon’s marriage with -his sister Eleanor, and Simon had stood godfather to Prince Edward, -and now after the Parliament at Oxford, meeting the Earl of Leicester -in the Bishop of Durham’s palace on the Thames bank, the king cannot -conceal his fear of the one man who held up the good cause--“like -a pillar that cannot be moved.” The king had taken refuge from a -thunderstorm, and to Simon’s assurance that the storm was passing, -and was no longer to be feared, answered grimly, “I fear thunder and -lightning a good deal, Lord Simon, but by the Head of God, I fear you -more than all the thunder and lightning in the world.” - -“Everyone suspected that these astounding words broke from the king -because the Earl of Leicester manfully and boldly persevered in -carrying out the provisions, compelling the king and all the enemies of -these provisions to assent to them, and utterly banishing his brothers, -who were corrupting the whole kingdom.” (Matthew Paris.) - -Manfully as the great earl might strive, he could not accomplish the -carrying out of the Provisions of Oxford. Henry was quickly at his -old work, obtaining from Rome a dispensation from his old promises on -the ground they had been obtained by compulsion, and bringing back -his foreign supporters. The barons neither held together nor made any -serious effort to promote good government. - -Richard of Gloucester, jealous of Simon, fell away from the national -cause before his death in 1262.[46] - -Prince Edward stood by his oath, but did nothing to prevent the -break-up of the provisional government, and soon openly supported his -father. - -In spite of all this the Provisions, modified at Westminster in 1259, -endured for five years, and then it seemed as if nothing could save -the country from civil war. As a last resource appeal was made by both -sides to King Louis of France to arbitrate concerning the fulfilment of -the Provisions, and at Amiens, in January, 1264, the award was given. -Louis solemnly gave sentence for the king against the barons, entirely -annulling the Statutes and Provisions of Oxford, and in particular -declaring the king free to appoint his own ministers, councils, and -sheriffs, and to employ aliens. But by the award--the mise--of Amiens -the earlier charters given by the crown were to remain, and all -disputes arising out of the Parliament of Oxford were to be suppressed. -Louis gave as a reason for annulling the provisions that the pope had -already annulled them. - -The appellants had turned to Louis hoping for peace. The award was the -signal for war. Many of the bishops and barons at once withdrew from -Simon, who answered the deserters by declaring, “Though all should -forsake us, I and my four sons will fight to the death in the righteous -cause I have sworn to uphold, to the honour of the Church and the good -of the realm. Many lands have I travelled, heathen and Christian, but -nowhere have I seen such bad faith and falsehood as in England.” - -London was enthusiastic in its support of the barons, and the Cinque -Ports, the scholars of Oxford, and the Dominican and Franciscan friars -were all on the side of reform. Chief among Simon’s supporters were -Bishop Cantilupe, of Worcester, Gilbert, the young Earl of Gloucester, -Hugh le Despenser, the justiciar, and Roger Bigod. - -War began in March, when Prince Edward captured Gloucester, joined -Henry at Oxford, and then seized Nottingham and Northampton, while -Simon and the citizens of London attacked Rochester. Henry turned -south, and encamped in full force near Lewes. - -Again Simon laboured for peace, and in his own name and the name of -Gilbert of Gloucester, the Bishops of Worcester and London went as -ambassadors to Henry. Simon offered £30,000 to the king if he would -make peace and keep to the Provisions of Oxford, and assured him that -he had taken up arms not against Henry but against those who were “not -only our enemies, but yours, and those of the whole kingdom.” - -The king treated the proposal with scorn, and Prince Edward added an -additional message of contempt. - -On the 14th of May the battle of Lewes was fought and won by Simon, -“through a singular conjunction of skill and craft on the one side, and -rashness and panic on the other.”[47] - -The Earl of Leicester went into the battle fighting for his country and -his oath, and with the exhortation to his men “to pray God, if this our -undertaking be pleasing in His sight, to give us might to fulfil the -same, serving Him as good knights.” - -The stout old Bishop of Worcester blessed the troops, “who had among -them all but one faith, one will in all things, one love towards God -and their neighbour, so that they feared neither to offend the king -nor even to die for the sake of justice, rather than violate their -oaths.” (Matthew of Westminster.) - -At the end of the day the defeat of the royalists was complete, and the -king, Prince Edward and his kinsmen were prisoners. - -Then peace was made, Henry once more swearing to keep the charters -and articles of Oxford, to employ no aliens, to submit the Provisions -to arbitration again, to live thriftily till his debts were paid, -and to give his son Edward and his nephew Henry as hostages for good -behaviour till a permanent reform in the constitution was made. Early -in June these terms of peace were proclaimed in London, to the general -satisfaction, and on all sides the people shouted their thankfulness to -Simon. - - God’s blessing on Earl Simon, his sons and followers light! - Who put their lives in jeopardy and fought a desperate fight, - Because their hearts were moved to hear their English brethren groan - Beneath the hard taskmasters’ rods, making a grievous moan, - Like Israel under Pharaoh’s yoke, in thraldom and in dread, - Their freedom gone, their lives scarce spared, so evilly they sped. - But at the last the Lord looked down and saw His people’s pain, - And sent a second Mattathias to break their bonds in twain; - Who with his sons so full of zeal for the law and for the right, - Will never flinch a single inch before the tyrant’s might. - To Simon’s faith and faithfulness alone our peace we owe, - He raised the weak and hopeless and made the proud to bow, - He set the realm at one again and brought the mighty low.[48] - -And now in the summer of 1264 Earl Simon was to show what he could do -for England, for the victory of Lewes had placed power in his hands, -and he stood indisputably the foremost man in the realm. For one short -year his counsel was to guide the destinies of England and to make that -year memorable for all time by the creation of the first representative -Parliament. - -A new scheme of government was at once drawn up. Three electors chosen -by the barons were to appoint a council of nine for the guidance of -the king, and Simon of Montfort, Gilbert of Gloucester, and Stephen -Berksted, Bishop of Chichester, were speedily chosen as the three -electors. Hugh le Despenser remained justiciar, and Thomas Cantilupe, -the bishop’s nephew, became chancellor. (This Thomas subsequently -became Bishop of Hereford, died in Italy, and was canonized.) - -Then in December came the issue of writs for Simon of Montfort’s -famous Full Parliament of 1265. Two knights are to be returned -from each shire, and for the first time from each city and borough -the burgesses are to send two representatives. Hitherto Parliament -had consisted of barons and clergy, and knights sent by the king’s -tenants, and the representation of the townspeople was unknown. -Simon’s earlier policy at Oxford had done nothing to extend the basis -of government or create a national responsibility for the laws. “The -provisions of 1258 restricted, the constitutions of 1264 extended the -limits of parliament.... Either Simon’s views of a constitution had -rapidly developed, or the influence which had checked them in 1258 -were removed. Anyhow, he had had genius to interpret the mind of the -nation and to anticipate the line which was taken by later progress.” -(Stubbs.) - -This development of Simon’s views may fairly be traced to his close -and intimate connection with the Dominican friars.[49] Simon’s father, -the warrior of the Albigensian wars, had been the warm friend of St. -Dominic. Simon himself was equally the friend of Bishop Grosseteste, -the champion of the friars. As far back as 1245 Simon had founded a -Dominican priory at Leicester. In 1263 he had been present at a General -Chapter of the Dominican Order in Holborn, London, and the Parliament -of Oxford had met in a Dominican priory in that city. All along the -friars had supported the popular movement.[50] - -Now the peculiarity of the Dominican Order of Friars is its -representative form of government. Each priory sends two -representatives to its provincial chapter, and each province sends two -representatives to the general chapter of the order. - -Simon of Montfort, when the opportunity came to him for striking out -a reform in the English Parliament, adopted the plan which he had -studied and seen at work amongst the Preaching Friars. “The idea of -representative government had ripened in his hand,” and his genius -interpreted the mind of the nation. In spite of all the scorn that -has been poured on popular elections and the Houses of Parliament, -in spite of all the imperfections that necessarily are attached to -any constitutional system devised by the wit of man, the idea of -representative government has become the inspiration of the nations -of the world. The failings of democracy are obvious, the weak spots -in popular electoral systems glaring; but mankind, once grasping the -idea of freedom in politics, clamours eagerly for responsibility in -law-making and the administration of justice, and refuses to rest -satisfied under any despotism or bureaucracy, benevolent or malevolent. -Suppressed by dictators, perverted by demagogues, abused by the -unscrupulous in power, there still seems nothing better in politics -for mankind than self-government. “Better is he who rules his own -temper than he who storms a city,” wrote Friar Adam of Marsh to Simon -of Montfort. “Better self-government for a people than world-wide -conquest,” the average man declares, and the opinion slowly moulds -the destinies of nations, till “patriotism” becomes the word for good -service in politics. - -The verse of the thirteenth century chronicler:-- - - The king that tries without advice to seek his people’s will, - Must often fail, he cannot know the woes and wants they feel, - -gets re-expression in the nineteenth century in Abraham Lincoln’s: -“Government of the people, by the people, for the people.” Always -threatened by the personal ambition of man, often overthrown when -ambition held the sword of power, contemptible to the wise and prudent -because of the simplicity and innocence of “the people,” denounced as -dangerous by the professional expert in bureaucracy because of the -ignorance of “the people,” its inadequacy the common theme of the -disappointed--representative government survives its enemies, defies -its critics, and with its blemishes unconcealed, finds the company of -its lovers ever increasing and recruiting in its behalf. For since -that first Full Parliament of Earl Simon’s in 1265 it has never been -possible to get rid of the notion that representative government was -a key to the portals of freedom; and though the wider the freedom the -greater the responsibility, to the credit of the race at all times men -and women have pressed forward, not rejecting responsibility. - -Simon’s parliament sat from January to March. Its chief business was -the confirmation of the treaty of peace at Lewes, and Henry swore as -usual to maintain the new constitution, the charters and provisions. -The government was short-lived. Danger from France, where the queen -and Archbishop Boniface of Canterbury and all Henry’s alien courtiers -planned invasion with an army collected in Holland, had passed away -at the close of the previous summer. There had been a great muster of -troops for national defence near Dover, bad weather had incapacitated -the queen’s fleet, and Louis of France agreed to negotiations in place -of war. The Cinque Ports mariners refused a landing to the pope’s -legate, who was ready to excommunicate the new government, and flung -his papal bull in the sea.[51] - -Not from abroad but from within came the foes who overthrew Simon’s -government and murdered the great statesman. Earl Gilbert, of -Gloucester, like his father, grew jealous of Simon’s leadership, and -disputed his authority as to the ransom of some of the prisoners of -Lewes, and Simon’s sons added fuel to the flame by their pride and -overbearing insolence. Roger Mortimer and some of the nobles of the -Welsh marches rose for King Henry in the spring of 1265, and Gilbert -deserted the barons for the king.[52] William of Valence landed in -South Wales with a body of crossbowmen in May, and when Simon reached -Hereford to put down the rebellion, Prince Edward, who, with the king, -had been in Simon’s custody, made his escape to Mortimer and the -marches. - -Edward quickly raised troops, and joined Gilbert at Ludlow, where he -took an oath to obey the laws and charters of the realm. Simon, in some -danger of being cut off by this movement on his rear, sent word to his -second son--Simon--to go to Kenilworth and join him at Evesham, and -then turned back from Wales. - -The younger Simon was surprised at Kenilworth by a sudden raid by -Edward. His camp was broken up, his banners taken, and he was driven -back into the castle. Edward, fully aware that Earl Simon had only a -small force with him, hurried off to Evesham to attack him, before -young Simon could rally his scattered troops and come to his father’s -help. - -On the morning of August 4th Earl Simon halted at Evesham, and at -the king’s request, for Henry was still his captive, heard mass and -dined. His son’s army, now on its way, halted for the same purpose at -Alcester. “He was now only ten miles distant and the junction of father -and son seemed secure.”[53] But Prince Edward was already between them. -“As the morning broke his army lay across the road that led northward -from Evesham to Alcester. Ere three hours had passed the corpse of the -great earl lay mangled amid a ring of faithful knights, and the ‘murder -of Evesham, for battle none it was,’ was over.” - -At first Simon thought the advancing army was his son’s, for Edward -displayed the captured banners of Kenilworth, but when he saw the -standards of the prince and of Gloucester, and the well-known banner of -Mortimer, the truth was clear. - -“By the arm of St. James,” cried the earl, “they come on skilfully, for -they have turned my lessons against me. God have mercy on our souls, -for our bodies are theirs! Though if Simon were to come up we might -hope yet.” He turned to his eldest son, and pointing to the banner of -Gloucester said, “See, Henry, what your pride has done.” - -In vain Henry urged his father to fly while escape was possible. “I -had as lief die here in a good cause as in the Holy Land,” said the -earl, and the barons and knights standing round were equally resolute -to fight to the end--though they had but two men to every seven of -the enemy. The good Bishop of Worcester blessed the little army as he -had done at Lewes, and then the battle began. The Welsh footsoldiers -quickly lost heart and fled from Simon and the field, and the barons -were soon hemmed in. One by one they fell--Henry of Montfort, Hugh le -Despenser, the wise and upright justiciar, and Simon himself, wounded -and unhorsed, “fought on to the last like a giant for the liberties of -England.” A soldier stabbed him in the back under the mail he wore, and -then he was borne down and slain, overwhelmed by numbers rather than -conquered. “So a death full of honour ended the chivalry and prowess, -ennobled by so many deeds in so many lands.” “Thus lamentably fell -the flower of knighthood, leaving to others an example of steadfast -courage. Who can prevent the treachery of friends? Those who had eaten -his bread had raised their heels against him. Those who had spoken -words of love to him with their lips lied in their throats, for their -hearts were not right with him, and they betrayed him in his hour of -need.” (W. Rishanger.) - -For nearly three hours the unequal battle was fought, in the midst of -storm and darkness. So dark was it that King Henry, who had been forced -to remain with Simon’s knights, had difficulty in saving his life, and -was actually wounded by a javelin before he was recognized by Edward’s -soldiers. - -The monks of Evesham carried the bodies of some of the barons into the -abbey for burial, and after horrible mutilations by the victors the -remains of the great earl were reverently interred by the side of Hugh -le Despenser, before the high altar. - -“Those who knew Simon praise his piety, admire his learning, and extol -his prowess as a knight and skill as a general. They tell of his simple -fare and plain russet dress, bearing witness to his kindly speech and -firm friendship to all good men, describe his angry scorn for liars and -unjust men, and marvel at his zeal for truth and right, which was such -that neither pleasure nor threats nor promises could turn him aside -from keeping the oath he swore at Oxford; for he held up the good cause -‘like a pillar that cannot be moved, and like a second Josiah esteemed -righteousness the very healing of his soul.’ As a statesman he wished -to bind the king to rule according to law, and to make the king’s -ministers responsible to a full Parliament; and though he did not live -to see the success of his policy, he had pointed out the way by which -future statesmen might bring it about.” (F. York Powell.) - -The news of Simon’s death was received with general mourning as it -spread over the land. He was acclaimed by the people as a saint and -martyr, and miracles were said to be worked by his relics.[54] The -Franciscan friars drew up a service in his honour--“consisting of -lessons, responses, verses, hymns, and other matter appertaining to -the honour and respect due to a martyr.”[55] But the pope who had -excommunicated Simon was not likely to hear of canonization, and “as -long as Edward lives the service compiled in Simon’s honour cannot gain -acceptance to be chanted within the church of God, which was hoped -for.”[56] - -The “Lament of Earl Simon,”[57] compared the mighty statesman with -Thomas of Canterbury: - - For by his death Earl Simon hath - In sooth the victory won, - Like Canterbury’s martyr he - There to the death was done. - Thomas the good, that never would - Let holy church be tried; - Like him he fought, and flinching not, - The good earl like him died. - - _Refrain:_ - - Now low there lies the flower of price - That knew so much of war; - The Earl Montfort, whose luckless sort, - The land shall long deplore. - - Death did they face to keep in place - Both righteousness and peace; - Wherefore the saint from sin and taint - Shall give their souls release. - They faced the grave that they might save - The people of this land; - For so his will they did fulfill - As we do understand. - - _Refrain._ - - Sir Simon now, that knight so true, - With all his company, - Are gone above to joy and love - In life that cannot die; - But may our Lord that died on rood - And God send succour yet - To them that lie in misery, - Fast in hard prison set. - - _Refrain._ - -The good cause for which Simon had fought might well have seemed lost, -when Edward’s knights were hacking the dead body of the great earl to -pieces at Evesham. But it was not exactly a “Royalist victory,” for the -very men who stood victors over the mangled corpse of Earl Simon were -men as resolute as he was to enforce the Great Charter and its results -against the king.[58] - -In the hour of triumph Henry struck hard, and a mad reaction of terror -ensued. But the movement Simon had led could not be turned back, and -the very savage extravagance of the royalist party defeated its own -ends. A general sentence of disinheritance against all who had fought -with Simon drove the disinherited barons to keep up the fight. The -siege of Kenilworth, where Sir Henry of Hastings defied the whole -royal army, lasted from June to December, 1266, and was only ended by -Parliament insisting on the king appointing a board of twelve, who made -a just award concerning the disinherited. By this award, called the Ban -of Kenilworth:-- - -The royal obligation to keep the charters was required. - -The acts of Simon were annulled, and the full prerogatives of the crown -declared. - -The freedom of the Church was demanded. - -Justice was to be done according to the laws and customs of the realm. - -The adherents of Simon were to be punished by fine and not by -disinheritance, so that the king could repay those who had served him -faithfully without giving occasion for fresh war. - -Simon was not to be proclaimed a saint (seeing he died under the -excommunication of the Church), and those who spread idle tales of -miracles done at his tomb were to be punished. - -A complete indemnity was promised to all who accepted the ban within -forty days. - -For a time the ban was rejected, and it was not till the summer of 1267 -that the struggle was finally over. Peace was assured by the Parliament -of Marlborough in November, 1267, which re-enacted the Provisions of -Westminster (1259) as a statute. - -The lasting value of Simon’s work was seen in 1295, when Edward I. -summoned his great representative parliament on the professed principle -that “that which touches all shall be approved by all.” This assembly, -by that very principle, served as “a pattern for all future assemblies -of the nation.” (Stubbs.) - -Had Simon of Montfort received canonization by the Church he would -surely have been the patron saint of all workers in the world of -politics, and of all who honestly and courageously engage in public -work. - - - - -Wat Tyler and the Peasant Revolt - -1381 - - -AUTHORITIES: Walsingham; Knyghton--(Rolls Series); Wright’s _Political -Songs_--(Rolls Series); Froissart; Professor Oman--_Great Revolt of -1381_, containing translation of a chronicle of the rising in the -Stow MSS., first published in _English Historical Review_, 1895; -André Réville--_Le Soulèvement des Travailleurs_ (1898); Dr. G. -Kriehn--_American Review_, 1902; Edgar Powell--_Rising of 1381 in East -Anglia_; Dr. James Gairdner--_Lollardy and the Reformation_; G. M. -Trevelyan--_England in the Age of Wycliff_; J. Clayton--_Wat Tyler and -the Great Uprising_. - -[Illustration: KING RICHARD II. - -(_From the Panel Painting in the Sanctuary at Westminster Abbey._)] - - - - -WAT TYLER AND THE PEASANT REVOLT - -1381 - - -The Peasant Revolt of 1381, led by Wat Tyler, was not only the first -great national movement towards democracy, it was the first uprising -of the English people in opposition to all their hitherto recognised -rulers in Church and State, and it was the first outburst in this land -against social injustice.[59] - -The Black Death in 1349 and the pestilence that ravaged the country -in 1361 and 1369 upset the old feudal order. The land was in many -places utterly bereft of labour, and neither king nor parliament could -restore the former state of things. Landowners, driven by the scarcity -of labour, went in for sheep farming in place of agriculture, and were -compelled to offer an increase of wages in spite of the Statutes of -Labourers (1351–1353) which expressly forbade the same:-- - -“Every man or woman of whatsoever condition, free or bond, able in -body, and within the age of three-score years, and not having of his -own whereof he may live, nor land of his own about the tillage of which -he may occupy himself, and not serving any other, shall be bound to -serve the employer who shall require him to do so, and take only the -wages which were accustomed to be taken in the neighbourhood two years -before the pestilence.” - -This act remained the law until the fifth year of Elizabeth. - -“Free” labourers, landless men but not serfs, wandered away to the -towns or turned outlaws in the forests. Serfs--only a small number of -the population, for the Church had always recommended their liberation, -even while abbots and priors retained them on Church estates, and -Edward III. had encouraged granting freedom in return for payment in -money--escaped to those incorporated towns that promised freedom after -eighteen months’ residence. Villeins and lesser tenants commuted the -service due from them to their landlords by money payments, and so -began the leasehold system of land tenure. - -For thirty years preceding the Peasant Revolt the social changes had -bred discontent, and discontent rather than misery is always the parent -of revolt. - -An early statute of Richard II., framed for the perpetual bondage of -the serfs, heightened the discontent. - -“No bondman or bondwoman shall place their children at school, as has -been done, so as to advance their children in the world by their going -into the Church.” - -This same act made equal prohibition against apprenticeship in the town. - -The free labourer had his grievance against the Statute of Labourers. -Villeins and cottar tenants had no sure protection against being -compelled to give labour service to their lords; and they, with the -freehold yeomen and the town workmen and shopkeepers, hated the heavy -taxation, the oppressive market tolls and the general misgovernment. - -To unite all these forces of social discontent into one great army, -which should destroy the oppression and establish freedom and -brotherhood, was the work John Ball--an itinerant priest who came at -first from St. Mary’s at York, and then made Colchester the centre of -his journeyings--devoted himself to for twenty years. - -Ball preached a social revolution, and his gospel was that all men -were brothers, and that serfdom and lordship were incompatible with -brotherhood. In our times such teaching is common enough, but in the -fourteenth century, with its sumptuary laws and its feudal ranks, -only in religion was this principle accepted.[60] John Ball became -the moving spirit in the agitation set on foot by his teaching. He -had his colleagues and lieutenants, John Wraw in Suffolk and Jack -Straw in Essex--both priests like himself--William Grindcobbe in -Hertford and Geoffrey Litster in Norfolk. The peasants were organised -into clubs, and letters were sent by Ball far and wide to stir up -revolt. In Kent and the eastern counties lay the main strength of the -revolutionaries--it was in Kent that Ball was particularly active just -before the rising--but Sussex, Hampshire, Lincolnshire, Warwickshire, -Yorkshire and Somerset were all affected, so grave and so general was -the dissatisfaction, and so hopeful to the labouring people was the -message delivered by John Ball. - -Of course Ball did not escape censure and the penalty of law during his -missionary years. He was excommunicated and cast into prison by three -Archbishops of Canterbury, Islip, Simon Langham, and Simon Sudbury, for -teaching “errors, schisms, and scandals against the popes, archbishops, -bishops, and clergy,” and he was only released from prison, from -Archbishop Sudbury’s gaol at Maidstone, by the rough hands of the men -of Kent when the rising had begun. The “errors” of John Ball were -civil and social rather than theological. The notion that Ball and his -fellow socialists of the fourteenth century were mixed up with Wycliff -and the Lollards has really no foundation in fact.[61] Wycliff’s -unorthodox views on the sacraments and his attacks on the habits of -the clergy were of no interest to the social revolutionists, and John -of Gaunt, the steady friend of Wycliff, was hated above all other men -in the realm by the leaders of the revolt. Wycliff expressed as little -sympathy with the Peasant Revolt of his day as Luther later in Germany -did with the Peasant War, or Cranmer with the Norfolk rising under Ket -in 1549. - -John Ball’s sermons were all on one text--“In the beginning of the -world there were no bondmen, all men were created equal. Servitude of -man to man is contrary to God’s will.” He declared that “things will -never go well in England so long as goods are not kept in common, and -so long as there are villeins and gentlefolks.” He harped on the -social inequalities of his age, quoting freely from Langland’s _Piers -the Plowman_, and enlarging on the famous couplet: - - When Adam delved and Eve span, - Who was then the gentleman? - -As years went by and the time grew ripe for revolt, there is a definite -call to rise in Ball’s letters and speeches. “Let us go to the king, -and remonstrate with him,” he declares, “telling him we must have it -otherwise, or we ourselves shall find the remedy.” - -Richard II. was but eleven when he came to the throne in 1377. “He is -young. If we wait on him in a body, all those who come under the name -of serf or are held in bondage will follow us, in the hope of being -free. When the king shall see us we shall obtain a favourable answer, -or we must then ourselves seek to amend our condition.” - -Some of the rhymed letters Ball sent out, bidding his hearers “stand -together manfully in the truth,” urge preparation for the coming -conflict: - - John Ball greeteth you all, - And doth to understand he hath rung your bell. - Now with right and might, will and skill, - God speed every dell. - - John the miller asketh help to turn his mill right: - He hath ground small, small, - The King’s Son of Heaven will pay for it all, - Look thy mill go right, with its four sails dight. - - With right and with might, with skill and with will, - And let the post stand in steadfastness, - Let right help might, and skill go before will, - Then shall our mill go aright. - But if might go before right, and will go before skill, - This is our mill mis-a-dight. - - Beware ere ye be woe, - Know your friend from your foe, - Take enough and cry ‘Ho!’ - And do well and better and flee from sin, - And seek out peace and dwell therein, - So biddeth John Trueman and all his fellows. - -In other letters he greets John Nameless, John the Miller, and John -Carter, and bids them stand together in God’s name; and bids Piers -Plowman “go to his work and chastise well Hob the Robber (Sir Robert -Hales, the king’s treasurer); and take with you John Trueman and all -his fellows, and look that you choose one head and no more.” - -These letters and the preaching did their work; the peasants were -organised; men of marked courage and ability were found in various -counties; and “the one head and no more” was ready in Kent to lead the -army of revolt to the king when the signal should be given. Litster, -Grindcobbe, and Wraw were at their posts. In every county from Somerset -to York the peasants flocked together, “some armed with clubs, rusty -swords, axes, with old bows reddened by the smoke of the chimney -corner, and odd arrows with only one feather.” - -John Ball had rung his bell, and at Whitsuntide, at the end of May, -1381, came the great uprising, the “Hurling-Time of the Peasants.” The -fire was all ready to be kindled, and a poll-tax, badly ordered, set -the country ablaze. - -The poll-tax was first levied, in 1377, on all over fourteen years of -age. Two years later it was graduated, from 4d. on every man and woman -of the working class to £6 13s. 4d. on a duke or archbishop. Even this -with a further tax on wool was found insufficient. - -So early in 1381 John of Gaunt called the parliament together at -Northampton, and declared that £160,000 must be raised. Parliament -refused to find more than £100,000, and the clergy, owning at that -time one-third of the land, promised £60,000. Again a poll-tax was -demanded. This time everybody over fifteen was required to pay 1s., but -in districts where wealthy folks lived it was held sufficient that the -amount collected in every parish averaged 1s. per head; only the rich -were not to pay less than £1 per household, nor the poor less than 8d. -In parishes where all were needy the full shilling was demanded without -exception. It soon appeared that the money was not to be raised. In -many parts the returns as to the population liable to the tax were -not even filled in with any attempt at accuracy, and numbers avoided -liability by leaving their homes--to escape a tribute, which to the -struggling peasant meant ruin. Of the £100,000 required only £22,000 -was forthcoming. - -Then one John Legge undertook to supply the deficit, if he had the -authority of the crown to act as special commissioner to collect the -tax. The appointment was made, with the result that the methods of -the tax-collectors provoked revolt, and Legge lost his life over the -business. - -The rising began in Essex, when the villagers of Fobbing, Corringham, -and Stanford-le-Hope were summoned to meet the tax-commissioner at -Brentwood. Unable to pay, they fell upon the collectors and killed -them. The government met this assault by sending down Chief Justice -Belknap to punish the offenders. But as the judge merely had for escort -a certain number of legal functionaries, and as the blood of the -people was up, Belknap was received with open contempt, and, forced to -swear on the Bible that he would hold no other session in the place, -was glad to escape from the town without injury. And with this defiance -and overpowering of the king’s officers the signal was given, the -beacon of revolt well lighted. - -It was June 2nd, Whit Sunday, when the Chief Justice was driven out of -Brentwood; two days later Kent had risen at Gravesend and Dartford. - -At Gravesend Sir Simon Burley, the friend of Richard II., seized a -workman in the town, claiming him as a bondsman of his estate, and -clapped him in Rochester Castle, refusing to hear of release unless -£300 was paid. - -At the same time word went about that the tax-collector at Dartford was -insulting the women, and that, in especial, the wife and daughter of -one John Tyler had been abused with gross indecency. - -Whereupon this John Tyler, “being at work in the same town tyling of an -house, when he heard thereof, caught his lathing staff in his hand, and -ran reaking home; where, reasoning with the collector, who made him so -bold, the collector answered with stout words, and strake at the tyler; -whereupon the tyler, avoiding the blow, smote the collector with his -lathing staff, so that the brains flew out of his head. Wherethrough -great noise arose in the streets, and the poor people being glad, -everyone prepared to support the said John Tyler.”[62] - -Robert Cave, a master baker of Dartford, led the people straight off -to Rochester; and the castle having been stormed, and all its prisoners -released, Sir John Newton, the governor of the castle, was retained in -safe custody. - -And now the time had come for good generalship and discipline in -the ranks, if the fire of revolt was to burn aright. Accordingly at -Maidstone, on June 7th, Wat Tyler is chosen captain of the host; and -proof is quickly given that the rising is not for mob rule or general -anarchy, but to redress positive and intolerable wrongs. (Five Tylers -are mentioned in the records of the Peasant Revolt: Wat Tyler, of -Maidstone; John Tyler, of Dartford, who slays the tax-collector, and is -not heard of again; Walter Tyler, of Essex; and two Tylers of the City -of London--William, of Stone Street, and Simon, of Cripplegate.) - -In every respect was this Wat Tyler a man of remarkable gifts. Chosen -as leader by the voice of his neighbours in Kent, his authority is at -once obeyed without dispute, and his influence is seen to extend beyond -the borders of his own county. Jack Straw acts as his lieutenant; John -Wraw, of Suffolk, and William Grindcobbe, of St. Albans, come to him -for advice; and it is not till Tyler moves on London with his army that -the rising becomes national. He is plainly marked out as a great leader -of masses of men. Skilful, courageous, humane, Wat Tyler is proved to -be; firm, clear-headed, downright in manner, and yet large-hearted, -jovial and brotherly--equally at home with king or beggar. There is -nothing of the fanatical doctrinaire about this first great leader of -the English people. He could order the execution of “traitors,” but -he is not the man for bloodshed in England if the revolution he and -John Ball aimed at can be accomplished by peaceful means. After more -than 500 years the reputation of Wat Tyler stands out untarnished and -unshaken.[63] - -Yet for eight days--and eight days only--does history allow us to -follow the career of this remarkable man. On June 7th Wat Tyler was -chosen by the men of Kent to lead the revolt; on June 15th he was -dead. Of his antecedents we know nothing. Parentage, birth-place, age, -height, and personal appearance, are all unrecorded. His trade alone we -can infer, and we know that his contemporaries trusted him to the full: -for no suggestion has been made of any kind of rivalry or jealousy -amongst the leaders, or of criticism or grumbling amongst the rank and -file. - -Wat Tyler emerges from the obscurity of history to become a strong -democratic leader. For eight days he commands a vast army of men; -he confronts the king as an equal; orders the execution of the -chief ministers of the crown; and wrests from the king promises of -fundamental social importance. Then, in the very hour of victory, an -unexpected blow from an enemy strikes him down, and death follows. -Surely to few men is it awarded to achieve an immortal reputation in so -brief a public life. - -No sooner is Tyler acclaimed as leader at Maidstone than the commons -of Kent are flocking to the standard of revolt. The cry is for “King -Richard and the Commons,” and it goes hard with any who refuse to take -the oath. John of Gaunt is the enemy. John of Gaunt is held to be -responsible for all the mischief wrought on the coast towns of Kent by -the privateer fleets of the Scots and the French, for the raiding of -Rye and Winchelsea. (Only in the previous year these fleets had invaded -the Thames as far as Gravesend.) John of Gaunt is the head and front -of the misrule that bled the land with poll-taxes. John of Gaunt is -the incarnation of the landlord rule that would keep the labourer in -bondage for ever. So bitter is the feeling against John of Gaunt, and -so acute the fear that he is aiming at the crown, that a vow is taken -by the men of Kent that no man named “John” shall be King of England. - -John of Gaunt was the common enemy. But John of Gaunt was far away on -the Scottish border, and there were enemies near at hand to be dealt -with. The manor-houses of Kent were attacked; in a few cases, where -their owners were notoriously bad landlords, were burnt. The main -thing, however, was to obtain the rent-rolls, the lists of tenants and -serfs, and all the documents of the lawyers. These papers were seized -and destroyed by the peasants, for no assurance of freedom was possible -while such evidence of service could be produced. These documents were -the legal instruments of landlord rule; and as the people had risen to -end this rule, a beginning had to be made by destroying the machinery. -There was no general reign of terror in the country; there was nothing -of the ferocity of the Jacquerie in France; no slaughter of landlords; -and no common destruction of property. - -The nobility seemed to expect judgment at the hands of the people, -and those who were at Plymouth making preparation for their invasion -of France put to sea as quickly as possible when news came of the -rising.[64] But the people had risen not for blind vengeance or for -civil war, and the class who suffered badly at the rising were the -lawyers rather than the landlords. It was the lawyer’s hand that the -peasants saw and felt, and not the mailed fist, for the lawyer was not -only the land agent of the lord of the manor, he was also the judge in -matters of dispute between landlord and tenant, and it was he who kept -the lists of villeins and serfs, and in the service of his lord did not -scruple to manipulate those lists. - -In those first days of the rising, when yeomen and more than one -landholder joined the army of revolt,[65] and all who were willing to -cry “King Richard and the Commons” were counted as supporters, the -worst that the landlord suffered (except in extreme cases) was the loss -of his papers, but the lawyer who clung to his office was often hanged -without mercy, as a scourge to the commonwealth. - -Tyler was at Canterbury on Monday, June 10th, and here Archbishop -Sudbury’s palace was ransacked for papers, and his tenant-rolls burnt. -Beyond this, and a rough exhortation to the monks to prepare to elect a -new archbishop, no injury was done. The following day Tyler was back at -Maidstone, and his men burst open the archbishop’s prison and released -John Ball, with all others who had incurred ecclesiastical displeasure. -This accomplished, with John Ball, the people’s poor priest, in the -midst of them, 30,000 men of Kent--yeomen, craftsmen, villeins and -peasants--set out for London under Wat Tyler’s command. - -Blackheath was reached at nightfall on Wednesday, June 12th, and a camp -fixed; but a few indefatigable rebels hastened on to Southwark that -same night to burst open the Marshalsea and King’s Bench prisons. John -Wraw was at Blackheath, and after a short conference with Wat Tyler, -hastened back to Suffolk to announce that the hour of rising had struck. - -Near Eltham Tyler had overtaken the young king’s mother, the widow of -the Black Prince, returning from a pilgrimage, and had promised that -no harm should befall her or her women from his host. Reassured, the -princess and her company went on their way in safety to the Tower of -London, where Richard and his council were assembled, and told of the -great uprising. - -Judges had already been despatched into Kent at the first news of the -disorders, but had turned back before reaching Canterbury, not liking -the look of things. - -Early on Thursday morning, June 13th, the camp at Blackheath was astir. -It was Corpus Christi day and a solemn festival. After mass had been -said before all the people, John Ball preached on his old theme of -equality and brotherhood. “For if God had intended some to be serfs -and others lords He would have made a distinction between them at the -beginning.” He went on to speak of the work to be taken in hand at once. - -“Now is the opportunity given to Englishmen, if they do but choose to -take it, of casting off the yoke they have borne so long, of winning -the freedom they have always desired. Wherefore let us take good -courage and behave like the wise husbandman of scripture, who gathered -the wheat into his barn, but uprooted and burned the tares that had -half-choked the good grain. Now the tares of England are her oppressive -rulers, and the time of harvest has come. Ours it is to pluck up these -tares and make away with them all--the evil lords, the unjust judges, -the lawyers, every man indeed who is dangerous to the common good. Then -should we all have peace for the present and security for the future. -For when the great ones have been rooted up and cast away, all will -enjoy equal freedom, all will have common nobility, rank and power.” - -The sermon was received with bursts of cheers, and the people shouted -that John Ball should be archbishop, “for that the present archbishop -and chancellor, Simon Sudbury, was but a traitor.” - -Later that morning Sir John Newton arrived at the Tower with a message -from Tyler, asking for an audience with the king. All along it was the -belief of the commons that the king had but to hear the tale of their -wrongs and redress would be speedily obtained. - -“Hold no speech with the shoeless ruffians,” was the advice of Sir -Robert Hales, the treasurer. But Richard agreed to an interview, -and presently rowed down the Thames in the royal barge as far as -Rotherhithe with the Earl of Suffolk (President of the Council), and -the Earls of Salisbury and Warwick. - -The river bank was crowded with the commons of Kent, and Wat Tyler and -John Ball urged the king to land and listen to the message his subjects -brought. They were promptly rebuked by the Earl of Salisbury[66] for -their boldness: - -“Gentlemen, you are not properly dressed, nor are you in a fit -condition for the king to talk to you.” - -Instead of landing, Richard listened to the counsels of fear and pride, -and the royal barge was turned and rowed back swiftly to the Tower. - -Wat Tyler and the men of Kent, with thousands more from Surrey, at -once marched on to London Bridge, where they destroyed the houses of -ill-fame that clustered round the south side of the bridge. The prisons -had been pulled down the night before, and now the brothels were burnt -to the ground and their inmates dismissed--that the new City of God -of John Ball’s vision might be cleansed of its old foulness. These -places of infamy, rented by Flemish women, were the property of William -Walworth, the Mayor of London; and their destruction filled him with -rage against the invaders. - -Walworth made some attempt to fortify London Bridge by placing iron -chains across the bridge; and he gave orders for the drawbridge to be -pulled up, in order that a passage might be prevented. But on Tyler’s -threat that he would burn the bridge if a way was not quickly made for -him, Alderman Sibley (who, with Aldermen Horne and Tonge, supported -the claims of the revolutionaries on the City Corporation) had the -chains removed and the draw-bridge lowered, and Alderman Horne met -Tyler at the city gate and bade him welcome. - -Fifty thousand men followed Tyler in London, and the city was now at -the mercy of the peasant army. Walworth, who had no want of spirit, -declared to the king and his council in the Tower that 6,000 soldiers -could be raised in the city, but “fear had so fallen upon the soldiery -that they seemed half dead with fright.” Sir Robert Knolles with 600 -men-at-arms guarded the Tower. - -It was now that Wat Tyler’s great qualities of leadership and the good -discipline of his army were seen. With London in his hands, he warned -his followers that death would be the instant punishment for theft; -and proclaimed to the citizens, “We are indeed zealots for truth and -justice, but we are not thieves and robbers.” Every respect was to be -shown to the persons and property of the people of London, and wrath -was only to fall on John of Gaunt and the ministers of the crown, and -the lawyers--the enemies, as it seemed to Tyler, of the good estate of -England. In return, the citizens offered bread and ale freely to the -invaders, and London artisans joined their ranks in large numbers. - -The archbishop’s palace at Lambeth was soon stormed, and all the -records it contained were destroyed; the building itself was left -uninjured. - -At four o’clock in the afternoon the Savoy Palace of John of Gaunt, -by the Strand, was in flames; and all its wealth of treasure, rich -tapestries and costly furniture, rare vessels of gold and silver, -precious stones, and art work of priceless value, heaped up on a -bonfire or ground to powder. The Duke of Lancaster’s jewelled coat, -covered with gems, was set up as a target and riddled with arrows, -before it was cut into a thousand pieces and pounded to dust. One -wretched man was caught attempting to sneak off with a silver cup; -and being taken in the act, was put to death as Tyler had decreed. -The Savoy was burnt to the ground, but no one interfered with its -inhabitants; and Henry, Earl of Derby, John of Gaunt’s son (who was -to reign in Richard’s stead as Henry IV.), passed out with all his -servants unmolested. The wine-cellar proved fatal to certain of the -host, who, drinking freely, perished, buried under the fallen building. - -From the Savoy the army of destruction passed to the Temple, the -head-quarters of the Knights Hospitallers, of whom Sir Robert Hales was -president, and a hive of lawyers. The Temple was burnt, but no lives -were lost; for the lawyers, “even the most aged and infirm of them, -scrambled off with the agility of rats or evil spirits.” - -At nightfall the priory of the Hospitallers at Clerkenwell, the prisons -at the Fleet and at Newgate, and the Manor House at Highbury, had all -been demolished; and the men of Essex, led by Thomas Faringdon, a -London baker, were at Mile End; while William Grindcobbe, with a body -of men from St. Albans, lay at Highbury. - -In vain Walworth urged the king and his royal council to act. Richard -had sent to Tyler asking for a written statement of the grievances of -the commons, and had been told in reply that the king must meet his -commons face to face, and hear with his own ears their demands. In the -evening Walworth proposed that the garrison at the Tower should be -despatched against Tyler, “to fall upon these wretches who were in the -streets, and amounted to 60,000, while they were asleep and drunk. They -might be killed like flies,” Walworth added, “for not one in twenty had -arms.” - -But the handful of soldiers at the Tower were in mortal terror of the -peasant host, and “all had so lost heart that you would have thought -them more like dead men than living.” - -The Earl of Salisbury checked Walworth’s rash proposals. “If we begin -what we cannot carry through,” he observed, “we shall never be able to -repair matters. It will be all over with us and our heirs, and England -will be a desert.” - -An open conflict with Tyler and his 60,000 was a very hazardous -proceeding. Who could be sure of escape if it came to battle? So far -Tyler had only struck at the chief ministers and the lawyers, and why -should others risk their lives in such a quarrel? Besides, it was -said that Wat Tyler and a mad priest of Kent were for doing away with -all nobles, and for making all men equal, and caution was necessary -in dealing with men who held such strange opinions. England without -its nobility would be a desert, and at all costs such an irreparable -calamity as the loss of England’s nobility must be prevented. - -So Walworth got no help in his plans for resistance; and when that -night a messenger from Tyler warned the king that if he refused to meet -the commons of England in open conference, the people would seize the -Tower, Richard sent word in reply promising to meet his subjects on -the morrow at noon at Mile End, and there hear their complaints. - -Tyler accepted the king’s word, and after sleeping with his men hard -by the Tower, at St. Catherine’s Wharf, was at Mile End betimes. -Here he met Grindcobbe, and hearing that the people of Hertfordshire -had trouble with the abbot at St. Albans, bade Grindcobbe return and -accomplish freedom for the abbot’s tenants and serfs. - -Richard went to Mile End with no large retinue, and two of his -companions, the Earl of Kent and Sir John Holland, left him at -Whitechapel and galloped off in craven fear of the multitude that -thronged the road. Richard, though he was only fifteen, displayed -both courage and cunning when confronted with Tyler. He knew that the -discontent in the country was directed against the government, and not -against the king, and that the misrule could not fairly be laid to his -charge. Besides, he was the son of the Black Prince, and the people -showed no signs of hostility. His policy was to yield and to wait an -opportunity for regaining power. - -The conference at Mile End began with a request from Richard to know -what was required of him. Tyler answered that first all traitors should -be executed, and to this demand the king agreed. Then four definite -proposals were put forward by Wat Tyler: - -1. A free and general pardon to all concerned in the rising. - -2. The total abolition of all villeinage and serfdom. - -3. An end to all tolls and market dues,--“freedom to buy and sell in -all cities, burghs, mercantile towns, and other places within our -kingdom of England.” - -4. All customary tenants to be turned into lease-holders whose rent -should be fixed at 4d. an acre for ever. - -Richard at once assented to these requests, and to prevent any -uncertainty and remove all doubt or suspicion of good faith, thirty -clerks were set to work on the spot to draw up charters of manumission, -and to present banners to each county represented. - -Then Richard bade the people return home in peace, bearing the king’s -banner in token that the king had granted the request of his subjects. -One or two from each village remained to carry the charters of freedom -signed and sealed by royal warrant. - -Richard was taken at his word. Thousands of the peasants dispersed -that day believing their cause had triumphed. Nothing could be plainer -than the charters of manumission:--“Know that of our special grace -we have manumitted all our liege and singular subjects and others of -the county of Hertford, freed each and all of their old bondage, and -made them quit by these presents; pardon them all felonies, treasons, -transgressions, and extortions committed by any and all of them, and -assure them of our _summa pax_.” - -So ran the document which the peasants of Hertford bore, and similar -charters were given to the counties of Bedford, Essex, Kent, and Surrey. - -Richard was also taken at his word concerning the execution of -traitors, and by the authority of Wat Tyler, Archbishop Sudbury, the -chancellor, Sir Robert Hales, the treasurer, and John Legge, the -poll-tax commissioner, were dragged out of the Tower and beheaded on -Tower Hill. When Richard returned from Mile End the heads of these -three men were on the gate of London Bridge. - -Simon Sudbury, Archbishop of Canterbury, deserved a better fate, for -he was an amiable and gentle priest, and “lenient to heretics.” As -chancellor he shared the punishment of a government deservedly hated, -but there were many who deplored his death. - -The soldiers at the Tower offered no resistance, but joked and -fraternised with the people. - -(John of Gaunt’s chaplain, William Appleton, some of Legge’s -subordinates, and Richard Lyons also perished that day on Tower Hill. -Of these, Richard Lyons was a thoroughly corrupt person, who five -years earlier had been convicted of gross usury and of fraudulently -“forestalling” in the wool trade, and had escaped the penalty of the -law on being sentenced to pay a heavy fine and suffer imprisonment. At -one time he had been a member of Edward III.’s council, and in that -capacity had enriched himself and his friends at the expense of the -nation.) - -A cry was raised in London that night against the Flemings, and many -of these industrious aliens, whose only offence was the employment of -cheap labour, were put to death, denied even the right of sanctuary -when they fled to the altar of the church of the Austin Friars. The -houses of certain unpopular citizens were also fired, and it went hard -with all who refused to shout for “King Richard and the Commons.” - -But Tyler gave no sanction to the attack on the Flemings, and though -the London mob took the law into its own hands and dealt roughly -with those whom it disliked, there is no evidence of general rioting -and disorder. To the end the peasant folk in London remembered the -brotherhood John Ball had proclaimed, and respected their fellows, and -their good order is a lasting tribute to their leaders. - -Tyler, with the bulk of the men of Kent and Surrey, remained in the -city, and the king hearing of what had happened at the Tower, decided -to pass the night at the Wardrobe, by St. Paul’s, whither his mother -had gone when the Tower was invaded. - -Tyler, in spite of all that had been obtained at Mile End, was not -satisfied. The peasants and serfs had been freed by royal warrant, but -the landlords remained in possession of power, and there was no promise -of better government, no word as to the restoration of the old common -rights in the land, or the repeal of the savage forest laws. Reforms -had been won, but the changes were not strong enough to ensure a social -revolution. - -Once more, on the Saturday, June 15th, Richard was invited to meet his -subjects, and again he declared his willingness, summoning his commons -by proclamation to meet him that afternoon at Smithfield, in the square -outside St. Bartholomew’s Priory. - -It seemed on the morning of June 15th as though the rising had -succeeded triumphantly. The peasants had their charters of manumission, -the nobles were thoroughly alarmed and cowed, the soldiery powerless, -and Wat Tyler and his men still held the City of London. - -Holding such an advantage, Tyler determined to make the king decree -further reforms, and when the two met at Smithfield, the confidence of -victory could be seen in the peasant leader’s bearing. - -Richard, with two hundred retainers, and with Henry, Earl of Derby, the -Earls of Suffolk and Salisbury, Sir Simon Burley, and Walworth, the -mayor, were on the east side of the square, the great priory at their -back. - -Tyler and his army drew up on the west side, and when Walworth opened -the proceedings by calling on Wat Tyler to speak with the king, Tyler, -seated on a little horse, rode out into the middle of the square with a -single attendant. There he dismounted, dropped on one knee before the -king, and shook him heartily by the hand. He bade Richard be of good -cheer, and declared that within a fortnight he should have even more -thanks from the commons than he had won already. “You and I shall be -good comrades yet,” Tyler added. - -Richard, in some embarrassment, enquired why the commons did not return -home, and Tyler answered with a great and solemn oath that no one -should leave the city until they had got a further redressing of all -their grievances. “And much the worse will it be for the lords of this -realm if this charter be refused,” he concluded. - -Then Richard bade Tyler say what charter it was the commons demanded. - -“First, then,” said Tyler, “let no law but the law of Winchester -prevail throughout the land, and let no man be made an outlaw by -the decree of judges and lawyers.[67] Grant also that no lord shall -henceforth exercise lordship over the commons; and since we are -oppressed by so vast a horde of bishops and clerks, let there be but -one bishop in England; and let the property and goods of the holy -Church be divided fairly according to the needs of the people in each -parish, after in justice making suitable provision for the present -clergy and monks. Finally, let there be no more villeins in England, -but grant us all to be free and of one condition.” - -“All that you have asked for I promise readily,” Richard answered, “if -only it be consistent with the regality of my crown. And now let the -commons return home since their requests have been granted.” - -In the presence of his nobles and the hearing of his people the king -had promised that the demands of his subjects should be granted. - -For Wat Tyler the victory seemed complete, and now that the battle was -won he called out that he was thirsty, and complained of a parched -throat. The days had been strenuous, and Tyler longed for a draught of -the good home-brewed beer of his native county. His attendant brought -him water, and Tyler rinsed out his mouth with it, to the disgust of -the king’s courtiers. Then beer was brought in a mighty tankard, and -Tyler drank a deep draught to the health of “King Richard and the -Commons.” He remounted his little horse, while the nobles stood by in -silent and sullen anger, “for no lord or counsellor dared to open his -mouth and give an answer to the commons in such a situation.” Had they -not heard it proclaimed that henceforth all were to be free and equal -in the land? - -A “valet of Kent,” some knight in the royal service, broke silence, -muttering loudly his opinion that Wat Tyler was the greatest thief and -robber in all Kent. - -Tyler caught the abusive words, and immediately ordered his attendant -to cut down the man who had spoken in this insulting fashion. - -The “valet” edged back within the ranks of the king’s party, and Tyler -drew his dagger. Walworth, sharing to the full the rage of the nobles -at the capitulation of the king, and yet anxious to avoid a conflict, -shouted that he would arrest all those who drew weapons in the royal -presence. Tyler struck impatiently at Walworth, but the blow was -harmless, for the mayor had armour on beneath his jerkin. - -Before Tyler could defend himself the mayor retaliated. Drawing a short -cutlass he slashed at Tyler, wounding him in the neck so that he fell -from his horse. And with the fall of their leader fell all the promised -liberties of the peasants, and the rising collapsed. - -Two knights, Ralph Standish and another, plunged their swords into him -while he was on the ground. Still, mortally wounded though he was, -Tyler managed to scramble on to his little horse. He rode a yard or -two, gave a last call on the commons to avenge his death, and then -dropped to the ground to rise no more. - -Had the commons at once attacked the king’s party, they would have -conquered. But confusion fell upon the people, and there was no one -ready to take command. “Let us stand together,” “We will die with our -captain or avenge him,” “Shoot, lads, shoot,”--the various cries went -up, and the bowmen looked to their weapons. - -But Richard, with the presence of mind that marked his dealings with -the people at Mile End, turned the doubt and uncertainty to his own -advantage. He rode out boldly into the middle of the square, reminded -the people that he, and not Tyler, was their king, and bade them follow -him into the fields and receive their charters. - -There was no reason to refuse obedience, no reason to mistrust -the king. Tyler had always spoken well of Richard, and the people -themselves had seen him only yesterday sign their charters, and had -heard him in Tyler’s presence, only a few minutes ago, promise to do -the will of the commons. It was not by the king’s hand that their -leader had been slain. - -A small band carried Tyler’s body into the Priory of St. Bartholomew, -while the rest of the peasants followed Richard into the fields that -stretched from Clerkenwell to Islington. Here he held them until Sir -Robert Knolles arrived with 700 soldiers, for Walworth had lost no -time in spreading the news that Tyler was dead, and in raising a troop -for the king. By Richard’s orders the commons were dispersed when the -soldiery arrived, the men of Kent, now broken and dispirited, being -marched through the city, and left to take their way home. - -That very night Walworth and Standish were knighted for what they had -done, and in the morning Wat Tyler’s head stared horribly from London -Bridge. - -“My son, what sorrow I have suffered for thee this day,” cried the -king’s mother, when Richard came to the Wardrobe. - -“I know it well, madam,” answered the king; “but rejoice with me now, -and thank God that I have this day won back my heritage of England, so -nearly lost.” - -The great uprising was over. Wat Tyler had fallen, as it seemed, in the -very hour of victory. - -By Walworth’s orders, Jack Straw and two prominent men of Kent were -hanged on the night of June 15th, without the formality of trial. Jack -Straw, an itinerant priest sharing John Ball’s views, it is said, -explained before he died what had been in the minds of the leaders of -the revolt. They had meant to get rid of the supremacy of the landlords -altogether, and to substitute for the established clergy a voluntary -ministry of mendicant friars; the boy-king was to be enlisted in the -cause of the revolution before the monarchy was finally abolished; -and in place of parliament and royal council each county was to enjoy -self-government.[68] - -No longer in the presence of danger, the king and his ministers struck -fiercely at the rebels. - -On June 18th a general proclamation was issued ordering the arrest of -all malefactors and the dispersal of all unruly gatherings. On June -22nd, Chief Justice Sir Robert Tressilian went on assize, and “showed -mercy to none and made great havock.” John Ball was taken at Coventry -and, with Grindcobbe, hanged at St. Albans on July 15th. - -The Earl of Suffolk went down to Suffolk with 500 lances on June 23rd, -and John Wraw, with twenty others, including four beneficed clergy, was -quickly taken and hanged. Henry Despenser, Bishop of Norwich, grandson -of Edward III.’s minister, suppressed the rising in Norfolk, and walked -beside Litster to the gallows. - -At least a thousand peasant lives were sacrificed to the law under -Tressilian’s sentence. - -At Waltham a deputation came to Richard to ask if it were true that the -royal promises and charters were annulled, and the king’s answer left -no room for doubt, for it breathed all the hatred and contempt of the -commons that Tyler had striven to end: - -“O vile and odious by land and sea, you who are not worthy to live when -compared with the lords whom ye have attacked; you should be forthwith -punished with the vilest deaths were it not for the office ye bear. -Go back to your comrades and bear the king’s answer. You were and are -rustics, and shall remain in bondage, not that of old, but in one -infinitely worse. For as long as we live, and by God’s help rule over -this realm, we will attempt by all our faculties, powers, and means to -make you such an example of offence to the heirs of your servitude as -that they may have you before their eyes, and you may supply them with -a perpetual ground for cursing and fearing you.” - -In despair at this rough ending to all their cherished hopes of -freedom, the Essex peasants made a last attempt to fight for liberty, -and on June 28th, at Great Baddow and Billericay, more than 500 fell -before the king’s soldiery. - -On July 2nd all the charters of manumission and royal pardons were -declared formally annulled, and sheriffs were strictly forbidden to -release any prisoners. It was not till August 30th an amnesty was -granted to those suspected of taking part in the rising. In the autumn -parliament refused to ratify the charters, and the lawyers declared -that without the consent of parliament the charters were illegal. - -So there was an end to all Wat Tyler and the peasants had risen to -obtain, and well might it seem that the rising had been in vain.[69] - -Yet it was not altogether in vain that John Ball had rung his bell and -died for his faith, that Wat Tyler had led the peasant folk of Kent -to do battle for freedom. The poll-tax was stopped for one thing. And -villeinage was doomed. “The landlords gave up the practice of demanding -base services; they let their lands to leasehold tenants, and accepted -money payments in lieu of labour; they ceased to recall the emancipated -labourer into serfdom or to oppose his assertion of right in the courts -of the manor and the county.” (W. Stubbs.) - -The great uprising brought out the desire for personal liberty in -the labouring people of England that has never since been utterly -quenched. It was the first insistence that peasants and serfs were men -of England. “It taught the king’s officers and gentle folks that they -must treat the peasants like men if they wished them to behave quietly, -and it led most landlords to set free their bondsmen, and to take fixed -money payments instead of uncertain services from their customary -tenants, so that in a hundred years’ time there were very few bondsmen -left in England.” (F. York Powell.) - -If Wat Tyler died as a man should for the cause he loves, few of those -who trampled on the cause of the peasants were to know the paths of -peace in later years. - -Richard died in prison at the hands of Henry Bolingbroke, John of -Gaunt’s son, whom Tyler had let depart in safety when the Savoy was in -flames. The Earls of Suffolk and Warwick died exiled fugitives. The -Earl of Salisbury, fleeing from Henry V., was hanged in the streets of -Cirencester. Chief Justice Tressilian was hanged for a traitor in 1387, -and Sir Simon Burley was beheaded. - - This worldly wealth is nought perseverant - Nor ever abides it in stabilitie. - - - - -Jack Cade, the Captain of Kent - -1450 - - -AUTHORITIES: William of Worcester, Gregory, Mayor of London, 1451–2; -_Collections of a London Citizen_; _an English Chronicle_; _Three -Fifteenth Century Chronicles_ (Camden Society); Fabyan--_Ellis -Letters_ (second series), _Issue Rolls, Devon, Rolls of Parliament, -Paston Letters_, vol. i, with introduction by Dr. Gairdner; -Orridge--_Illustrations of Jack Cade’s Rebellion_; Durrant -Cooper--_John Cade’s Followers in Kent and Sussex_; J. Clayton--_True -Story of Jack Cade_; Dr. G. Kriehn--_The English Rising in 1450_, -Strasburg, 1892. - - - - -JACK CADE, THE CAPTAIN OF KENT - -1450 - - -The rising of the commons of Kent in 1450 under their captain, Jack -Cade, was the protest of people--sick of the misrule at home and of -the mismanagement of affairs abroad--driven to take up arms against an -incapable government that would not heed gentler measures. - -It was not such a peasant revolt as Wat Tyler had led, this rising of -the fifteenth century. It was largely the work of men of some local -importance, and country squires were active in enrolling men, employing -the parish constable for that purpose in a good many parishes.[70] - -For years discontent had been rife. Henry VI., a weak, religious -man, more fit for the cloister than the throne, had lost the great -statesmen of the early years of his reign. The Duke of Bedford, good -Duke Humphrey of Gloucester, and Cardinal Beaufort were all dead, and -Richard, Duke of York, by far the ablest man left among the nobles, -had been banished to the government of Ireland. The Duke of Suffolk -became the chief minister of the crown in 1445, and all the disasters -of the war in France and of corrupt maladministration in England were -laid at his door. Suffolk was responsible for the king’s marriage -with the penniless princess, Margaret of Anjou, who, ambitious and -self-willed, proved the worst possible counsellor for Henry. And the -price of this marriage was the territories of Anjou and Maine, which -were ceded to Margaret’s father, besides a heavy tax of one-fifteenth -of all incomes demanded by Suffolk in payment for his expenses in -arranging and carrying out the undesirable wedding. The years of -Suffolk’s ministry saw nothing but defeat and disgrace as the hundred -years’ war with France drew to its end. The victories of Edward III. -and Henry V., and all the wealth of life and treasure poured out so -lavishly by England, had come to nothing, and by 1451 all France save -Calais was lost. Popular discontent turned to action early in 1450 -against Suffolk and his fellow ministers. At the opening of parliament -Suffolk was impeached as a traitor, along with Lord Say-and-Sele, the -treasurer, and Ayscough, Bishop of Salisbury; and Suffolk, without even -demanding a trial by his peers, threw himself on the king’s mercy. -Henry was satisfied with the banishment of his fallen minister for five -years; but when Suffolk went on board, the sailors of the vessel that -was to take him across seas decreed a capital sentence, and after a -rough court-martial trial the Duke of Suffolk was beheaded on May 2nd -in a small boat off the coast of Dover, and his body left on the sands. -Four months earlier, Moleyns, Bishop of Chichester, who had only just -resigned the keepership of the Privy Seal, and was known as a supporter -of Suffolk’s, had been slain by the sailors of Portsmouth, when he -arrived at that town with arrears of pay long overdue to the troops. -Ayscough, Bishop of Salisbury, survived till the end of June, and then, -at the time when Cade was marching on London, he was dragged away from -the very altar of Erdington Church, in Wiltshire, when he had said -mass, and put to death on a hill there by the infuriated people of his -diocese.[71] - -Widespread as the discontent was in 1450, there was no general movement -throughout the land as in the days when John Ball and his companions -bound the peasants together by village clubs. Kent, “impatient in -wrongs, disdaining of too much oppression, and ever desirous of new -change and new fangleness,” was well organised for revolt, and the -men of Surrey and Sussex were ready to bear arms with Cade. Outside -these counties no one is found to have taken the lead against the -government. Kent and Sussex had their own reasons for revolt, for -piracy swept the English Channel unchecked, and the highways were -infested with robbers--soldiers broken in the war; and they had their -leader--Mortimer, whom some called “John Mendall” and others, later, -Jack Cade. So by the end of May a full list of grievances and necessary -reforms was drawn up, and the commons of Kent had, for the second time -in history, risen in arms and encamped on Blackheath, resolute to get -redress from the king for their injuries. - -The success of democratic revolt depends largely on the clear courage -of its leaders and the complete confidence of the people in those -they elect for their captains. In 1450 Jack Cade proved himself -both clear-headed and brave, and the men of Kent followed him -whole-heartedly. - -To this day we are still in the dark as to the real name and family of -the Captain of Kent. He was known popularly as “Mortimer,” and was so -described in the “pardon” he received. He was a man of some property, -or he would not have been attainted by special act of parliament, nor -have enjoyed the confidence of the men of substance who accepted his -generalship. He was known as an Irishman and as a soldier in the French -wars, and it is likely enough that he served under the Duke of York -both in France and Ireland. His strong advocacy of the claims of York -favours the notion of kinsmanship; but, on the other hand, York was by -far the ablest statesman of the day, and to demand his recall to the -king’s council was no guarantee of family motives. - -There was some talk at the time that Cade was called John Aylesmere, -and that he was married to the daughter of a Surrey squire at Taundede. -But there is no more evidence for these things than for the charges -made against him in the warrant for his arrest, that he had once killed -a woman in Sussex and had then fled to France and fought with the -French arms. - -The undisputed high character of Cade’s followers is all against the -portrait painted by the government after his death; when, anxious to -blacken the good name of so resolute a leader, it was made out that he -was merely a disreputable ruffian. The landowners of Kent and Sussex -would never have accepted for their captain a mere swashbuckling -blackguard. They rallied to him as a Mortimer, seeing in him a -likeness to Richard, Duke of York.[72] If his real name was Cade, then -he was probably a squire or yeoman, for Cade was no uncommon name round -Mayfield and Heathfield in Sussex, and Cades were landed proprietors -near Reigate as late as the seventeenth century. - -It was enough that, chosen Captain of Kent, Cade, or Mortimer, was -known and trusted as a brave, upright man of good character and -ability.[73] Whether descended from nobles or of good Sussex stock -was a small matter to men in earnest for the changes and reforms the -country needed. - -Ashford was the heart of the rising, and from Ashford the host marched -to Blackheath, where, at the beginning of June, the camp was fixed. The -army, estimated at 46,000, included 18 esquires, 74 county gentlemen, -and some five clerks in holy orders, who were presently joined by the -Abbot of Battle, the Prior of Lewes, and twenty-three county gentlemen -from Sussex. - -Cade at once explained that they must deal directly with the king if -they were to get relief from their present burdens, and then set to -work to draw up the bill of “the complaint and requests” of the commons -of Kent, while the rank and file laboured “to dyke and stake the camp -all about, as it had been in the land of war.” - -But war had not yet been declared, and for the present discipline was -loose in the camp at Blackheath.[74] “As good was Jack Robin as John at -the Noke, for all were as high as pig’s feet; until the time that they -should come and speak with such states and messengers as were sent unto -them. Then they put all their power into the man that was named captain -of all their host.” - -On June 7th the king was at Smithfield with 20,000 soldiers, and -messengers were promptly despatched to Blackheath to know the meaning -of the insurrection. Cade answered by showing the petition he had drawn -up, and mentioned that they had assembled “to redress and reform the -wrongs that were done in the realm, and to withstand the malice of them -that were destroyers of the common profit, and to correct and amend the -defaults of them that were the king’s chief counsellors.” He then sent -off the “bill of complaints” to the king and to the parliament then -sitting at Westminster, “and requested to have answer thereof again, -but answer he had none.” The “complaint” was received with contempt, -and the opinion of the king’s counsellors was that “such proud rebels -should rather be suppressed and tamed with violence and force than with -fair words or amicable answer.” - -Yet “the complaint,” which consisted of fifteen articles, was no -revolutionary document. It contained protests against the royal threat -to lay waste Kent in revenge for the death of the Duke of Suffolk; -the diversion of the royal revenue raised by heavy taxation to “other -men”; the banishment of the Duke of York “to make room for unworthy -ministers who would not do justice by law, but demanded bribes and -gifts”; the purveyance of goods for the royal household without -payment; the arrest and imprisonment on false charges of treason of -persons whose goods and lands were subsequently seized by the king’s -servants, who then “either compassed their deaths or kept them in -prison while they got possession of their property by royal grant”; -the interference with the old right of free election of knights of the -shire by “the great rulers of the country sending letters to enforce -their tenants and other people to choose other persons than the common -will is to elect”; the misconduct of the war in France, demanding -inquiry and the punishment by law of those found guilty. Complaint was -also made of various local grievances--the insecurity of property, -the arbitrary conduct of the lords of the seaports, the extortion in -taxation owing to sheriffs and under-sheriffs farming their offices, -the fines exacted by sheriffs for non-compliance with the orders of the -court of exchequer (whose writs were sealed with green wax) when no -summons or warning had been given, and the “sore expense” incurred by -there being only one Court of Sessions in the whole county. - -Five “requests” were added to the bill of complaints. These expressed -the desire of the commons that the king should reign “like a king -royal”; that “all the false progeny and affinity of the Duke of -Suffolk” should be banished from the king’s presence and brought to -trial, and the Duke of York and his friends included in the royal -council; that punishment should be meted out to those responsible for -the death of the Duke of Gloucester; that the extortions practised -daily by the king’s servants in the taking of goods from the people -should cease; that the old Statute of Labourers for keeping down -wages should be abolished; and that the “false traitors” and “great -extortioners,” Lord Say and Crowmer, the sheriff of Kent, should be -brought low. - -In brief, the charter of the commons of Kent demanded the total -expulsion of all Suffolk’s ministers and relatives from public service, -the return of the Duke of York and his party to power, the suppression -of the bribery, corruption, and extortion practised by the sheriffs and -government servants, and the repeal of the Statute of Labourers. - -It would have been well if Henry had heeded these complaints and -requests. As it was he pushed on to Blackheath, in spite of murmuring -in his army, and Cade, unwilling to risk a battle, and knowing that -disaffection was at work in London, quietly withdrew to Sevenoaks. -There was no spirit in the royal troops to suppress the rising, and -many favoured the Captain of Kent. But two knights, Sir Humfrey -Stafford and Sir William Stafford, kinsmen of the Duke of Buckingham -and the Archbishop of Canterbury, and men of some military repute, -decided to pursue the rebels and advanced to Sevenoaks with a small -picked body of soldiers. Their defeat was complete. Both knights were -slain, and those of their men who were not cut to pieces fled from the -battle, or joined Cade’s host. - -The result of this disaster to the royal plans was that Henry returned -to London with an army that soon melted away, or broke into open -disorder. Many of the nobles, who on receipt of the petition of the -commons of Kent had called for violent measures against the rebels, -now left the king, and, with their retainers, rode to their country -estates. Henry, to appease the clamour of some of his own followers, -ordered the arrest of Lord Say-and-Sele, the king’s treasurer, and of -Sheriff Crowmer, and bade officers take them to the Tower. Parliament -was dissolved, and Cade was busy in Kent gathering reinforcements, and -doing what he could to repair locally the mischief of Suffolk’s rule -before proceeding to London.[75] - -As a last resource, Henry decided to treat with Cade by ambassadors, -and on June 29th, when the commons were again encamped on Blackheath, -came the Duke of Buckingham, and Stafford, Archbishop of Canterbury, -for many years the king’s chancellor--a gentle old man, who, if he -had made no stand against the misgovernment himself, was hardly to be -blamed--to arrange, if possible, a peaceful settlement. - -The conference came to nothing, for neither Buckingham nor the -archbishop could promise Cade any positive redress of grievances, or -the interview he sought with the king. - -“These lords found him sober in talk, wise in reasoning, arrogant in -heart, and stiff in opinions; one who that by no means would dissolve -his army, except the king in person would come to him, and assent to -the things he would require” (Holinshed.) - -The failure of the mission was reported, and Henry, after appointing -Lord Scales as guardian of the prisoners in the Tower, hastily fled -to Kenilworth, although the lord mayor and citizens of London promised -to stand by him if he would remain in the city. There was little of -sovereignty in Henry VI., son of Henry V., the conqueror of Agincourt. -Quiet he loved, and in religious exercises he found the satisfaction -that others found in war and statecraft. - -On the first of July the way was open for the commons to enter London. -Suffolk, Bishop Moleyns, and Bishop Ayscough had all been summarily -executed. Lord Say, the treasurer, alone remained of the discredited -ministers. No opposition was offered to Cade by the citizens of London. -The Common Council had discussed the rising, and at the Guildhall only -one dissentient voice had been raised to the admission of the Captain -of Kent to the city. One Horne, a stockfishmonger and alderman, alone -objected to any recognition of the unlawful assembly of the commons, -and he was sent to Newgate prison for safety, and on Cade’s entry fined -500 marks for his daring speech. - -Negotiations had been opened between the City Council and the commons -while the latter were at Blackheath, and Thomas Cocke (or Cooke),[76] -a past warden of the Drapers’ Company, acted as the mutual friend of -both parties. From Cocke the corporation learnt of Cade’s purposes, and -that the city stood in no danger from the rising; and it was Cocke -who carried instructions from Cade to the wealthy foreign merchants, -requiring them to furnish horses, arms and money for his army. - -“Ye shall charge all Lombards and strangers, being merchants, Genoese, -Venetians, Florentines and others this day to draw them together: and -to ordain for us, the captain, twelve [sets of] harness complete, of -the best fashion, twenty-four brigandines, twelve battle-axes, twelve -glaves, six horses with saddle and bridle completely harnessed, and -1,000 marks of ready money.” - -So ran the summons, which was duly obeyed.[77] For Cade had added the -stern warning that “if this demand be not observed and done, we shall -have the heads of as many as we can get of them.” - -The corporation had really no choice but to welcome Cade. Kings and -nobles had fled, and here was the Captain of Kent with 50,000 men come -to do justice at their gates. London had suffered as badly as any place -from the misgovernment of the country, and it was plain the commons -of Kent were no army of maurauders, for no complaint had been heard -of their ill doing in Kent, and their captain had treated with full -civility the Duke of Buckingham and Archbishop Stafford. - -So the keys of the city were presented to Cade, and at five o’clock -on the 2nd of July the Captain of Kent, mounted on a good horse, rode -across London Bridge, followed by all his army. In Cannon Street, in -the presence of Sir John Chalton, the Lord Mayor, and a great multitude -of people, Cade laid down his sword on the old London Stone and -declared proudly, “Now is Mortimer lord of this city.” At nightfall -he returned to his headquarters, the White Hart, a famous inn in -Southwark, and next morning was betimes in the city. That day sentence -was passed on Lord Say-and-Sele and on his son-in-law, Sheriff Crowmer. -They were removed from the Tower by Cade’s orders, taken to the -Guildhall, tried and condemned for “divers treasons,” and for “certain -extortions,” and executed forthwith. Say was beheaded at the standard -in Cheapside, and Crowmer at Mile End, and so bitter was the public -feeling against these two men, and so fierce the popular hatred, that -their heads were carried on poles through the city, and made to kiss in -ghastly embrace before being placed on London Bridge. - -These, with a third man named John Bailey, who was hanged with Cade’s -permission for being a necromancer and a dabbler in magic and the black -arts, were the only persons put to death while Mortimer was lord of -the city. At Southwark, where the commons were now encamped, as at -Blackheath, theft in the popular army was treated as a capital offence, -and two or three “lawless men” were hanged. It was inevitable if -discipline and good order were to be obtained in so vast a company that -punishment should follow sharp and swift on all who brought discredit -on the rising. - -Lord Say and Sheriff Crowmer being dead, the city fathers saw no -further purpose in Cade’s lordship, and they dreaded being called upon -to contribute to the support of his army, for they knew that Cade -needed money for his men. To the everlasting credit of the commons no -charge was laid against them of riot or disorder. The city was in -their hands for three days, yet no harm befell the citizens. On their -captain alone has blame fallen for the events of those days in July. - -The difficulties of the man were immense. He had rendered no mean -service to the state by calling attention to the ills that plagued -the country, and proposing remedies. He had roused a large body of -Englishmen to demand a better government, and by the sharp method of -the times he had got rid of a bad minister and a corrupt sheriff, so -that public life was at least the healthier for the deliverance from -two of its oppressors. And now he had this army of 50,000 men, all -needing food and shelter--an orderly, well-disciplined body, no mob -of mercenaries--and the city of London, with all its wealth, gave him -nothing. - -Cade had to get supplies. The commons of Kent could not live on the -good will of the London people. Their captain was forced to levy toll -where he could. At present all he had received was the tribute from the -foreign merchants and 500 marks from the fishmonger Horne. - -On July 3rd, the night of Say’s execution, Cade supped with Philip -Malpas, Cocke’s father-in-law. Malpas was one of Suffolk’s party, a -King Henry’s man, unpopular in the city, and though an alderman and a -draper, an expelled member of the city council. Warned by Cocke, Malpas -got rid of his valuables before Cade arrived. But the Captain of Kent -found certain jewels belonging to the Duke of York in the house, and -these he carried off.[78] - -The following night Cade supped with a merchant named Curtis (Ghirstis -according to Fabyan, Girste according to Stow) in the parish of St. -Margaret Pattens and before he left insisted on a contribution to the -war chest. Curtis paid, but he resented bitterly the abuse of his -hospitality. It seemed to him, as it seemed to his fellow merchants to -whom he told the tale of his wrongs, sheer robbery, and the following -morning (Sunday, July 5th), while Cade rested quietly at the White Hart -in Southwark, the city fathers were busy shaking their heads over the -business, and grave anxiety filled their minds. This might be but the -beginning of pillage; there were always materials in London for a riot, -apart from Cade’s army. - -“And for this the hearts of the citizens fell from him, and every -thrifty man was afraid to be served in like wise, for there was many a -man in London that awaited and would fain have seen a common robbery” -(Stow.)[79] - -In the course of the day mayor and corporation were in consultation -with Lord Scales, the Governor of the Tower, with the result that -decision was made to prevent Cade and the commons from re-entering the -city. London Bridge was at once seized and fortified by the citizens, -and Matthew Gough, a distinguished soldier in the French wars, was -placed in command. - -Cade, knowing nothing of the hostility he had created, took his ease -that day--it was the last peaceful Sabbath he was to know. Towards -evening he gave orders for the King’s Bench and Marshalsea prisons to -be opened, and their inmates--for the most part victims of official -extortion and injustice--to be released. This was done, and certain -“lawless men” convicted of disobedience were haled off to be hanged; to -the end there was no relaxing of discipline. - -Then came word that the passage of London Bridge was stopped, and the -right of entry to the city barred against the commons as against a -foe. Cade took this as a declaration of war, of the civil war he had -done his best to prevent, and sallied out to force an entrance. At -nine o’clock the battle began on the bridge, and all through the short -summer night it raged, neither side effecting victory. “For some time -the Londoners were beat back to the stulpes at St. Magnus corner, and -suddenly again the rebels were repulsed and driven back to the stulpes -at Southwark.” It was not till nine o’clock on Monday morning that the -commons, wearied and disheartened, fell back from the fray, and Cade -understood that the attack had failed, and that for the first time -since the assembling of the people on Blackheath, at the end of May, -a check had been given to the democratic movement. A hasty truce was -settled between Cade and the mayor, that while the truce lasted the -commons should not cross into London nor the citizens into Southwark. -Cardinal Kemp, Archbishop of York, the king’s chancellor, who with old -Archbishop Stafford had been left undisturbed in the Tower since the -king’s ignominious flight, immediately decided that the time had come -to arrange a settlement with the Captain of Kent. - -Kemp sent messengers that day to the White Hart, asking Cade to meet -the representatives of the king, “to the end that the civil commotions -and disturbances might cease and tranquility be restored,” and Cade -consented. - -Kemp, who had himself presided at the trial and condemnation of -Suffolk, brought to the conference, which was held in the church of St. -Margaret, Southwark,[80] on July 7th, Archbishop Stafford and William -Waynfleet, Bishop of Winchester. The chancellor, bent on making peace, -also brought pardons to all concerned, duly signed and sealed. He -listened courteously to Cade’s “complaints” and “requests,” received -the petition, promised it should have the full consideration of -parliament, and then announced a full pardon to all who should return -home. - -The proposals of the bishops won the general approval of the commons. -There was nothing to be gained, it seemed, by remaining in arms, now -they had won a promise that their charter should come before parliament. - -Cade alone hesitated. What if parliament should disavow these -“pardons,” and the commons be treated as the peasants were treated when -they trusted a king’s word? He asked for the endorsement of his own -pardon, and the pardons of his followers, by parliament before his army -dispersed. Chancellor Kemp explained that this was impossible, because -parliament was dissolved. The people were satisfied with the cardinal’s -word. The rising was at an end. - -The following day the bulk of the commons departed from Southwark for -their farms and cottages in Kent and Surrey and Sussex. Cade watched -them go. His own mind was made up. Not till parliament should give him -a pardon of indisputable legality would he lay down his arms. With a -small band of followers he set off for Rochester, sending what goods -and provisions he had by water. - -The rising was at an end, and nothing more was heard in parliament, or -elsewhere, of the famous charter of “complaints” and “requests.” - -With the break-up of the insurgent army, the government woke to -activity. Alexander Iden was appointed sheriff of Kent, and marrying -Crowmer’s widow, subsequently gained considerable profit. Within a week -the king’s writ and proclamation, declaring John Cade a false traitor, -was posted throughout the countryside, and Cade, defeated in an attempt -to get possession of Queenborough Castle, was a fugitive with the -reward of 1,000 marks on his head, alive or dead, and with Sheriff Iden -in hot pursuit. - -Near Heathfield, in Sussex, Iden came up with his prey, early on -Monday, July 13th. - -Cade died fighting. A broken man, worn and famished, friendless and -alone, he still had his sword. The spirit of Mortimer, Captain of -Kent, flickered up in the presence of his enemies--it were better to -die sword in hand fighting for freedom than to perish basely by the -hangman. So Cade fought his last fight in the Sussex garden, and fell -mortally wounded, overpowered by the sheriff and his men. - -In all haste Iden sent off the dead body to London; it was identified -by the hostess of the White Hart, and three days later the head was -stuck on London Bridge. The body was quartered and portions sent to -Blackheath, Norwich, Salisbury, and Gloucester, for public exposure. -The sheriffs of London, upon whom the gruesome task fell of despatching -these remains, complained bitterly of the cost of this proceeding, -“because that hardly any persons durst nor would take upon them the -carriage for doubt of their lives.”[81] - -Iden got his 1,000 marks reward, besides getting the governorship of -Rochester Castle, at a salary of £36 per annum. - -Cade was “attainted of treason” by act of parliament, and all his -goods, lands, and tenements made forfeit to the crown. A year later -another act of parliament made void all that had been done by Cade’s -authority during the rising. - -In January, 1451, Henry VI. went into Kent with his justices, and this -royal visitation was known as the harvest of heads; for in spite of -Cardinal Kemp’s pardons, twenty-six men of Canterbury and Rochester -implicated in the rising were hanged. - -So the last echoes of the rising died away, and corruption and -misgovernment remained. But the commons of Kent and their captain had -done what they could, and in the only way that seemed possible, to get -justice done, and their failure was without dishonour. - - - - -Sir Thomas More and the Freedom of Conscience - -1529–1535 - - -AUTHORITIES: William Roper--_Life of Sir Thomas More_, 1626; -Harpsfield--_Life of More_ (Harleian MSS.); Stapleton--_Ires Thomæ_, -1588; Cresacre More--_Life of More_, 1627; Erasmus--_Epistolae_ -(Leyden, 1706); Sir James Mackintosh--_Life of More_, 1844; -Campbell--_Lives of the Chancellors_; Foss--_Lives of the Judges_; -_Calendar of State Papers--Henry VIII._, edited by Dr. Brewer and Dr. -Gairdner (Rolls Series); _More’s English Works_, edited by William -Rastell; Rev. T. E. Bridgett--_Life of Blessed John Fisher_, and _Life -and Writings of Sir Thomas More_, 1891. - -[Illustration: SIR THOMAS MORE - -(_From the Drawing by Hans Holbein._)] - - - - -SIR THOMAS MORE AND THE FREEDOM OF CONSCIENCE - -1529–1535. - - -“Did Nature ever frame a sweeter, happier character than that of -More?”--so Erasmus wrote in 1498, when Thomas More was twenty, and -Erasmus, recently come to England, some ten years older. It was at the -beginning of their friendship, a friendship that was to last unbroken -till death,[82] and More had then passed from the household of Cardinal -Morton to Oxford, and from Oxford to Lincoln’s Inn, to take up his -father’s calling and follow the law as a barrister. - -Twenty years later Erasmus, writing at length to Ulrich von Hutten, -gives us a portrait of More in full manhood. Temperance, simplicity, -human affection, good humour, independence of mind--these qualities are -conspicuous. - -“I never saw anyone so indifferent about food. Until he was a young -man he delighted in drinking water, but that was natural to him. Yet, -that he might not seem to be singular or unsociable, he would conceal -his temperance from his guests by drinking the lightest beer, or often -pure water, out of a pewter vessel.” - -“He prefers milk diet and fruits, and is especially fond of eggs. He -would rather eat corned beef and coarse bread than what are called -delicacies.” - -“He likes a simple dress, using neither silk nor purple nor chains of -gold--except on state occasions. It is wonderful how careless he is of -all that ceremony which most men identify with politeness. He neither -requires it from others nor is anxious to use it himself, though when -it is necessary, at interviews or banquets, he knows how to employ it. -But he thinks it unmanly to waste time over such trifles.” - -“He seems born and fashioned for friendship, and is a most faithful and -enduring friend. He is easy of access to all; but if he chances to get -familiar with one whose vices will not brook correction, rather than -a sudden breaking off, he gradually relaxes the intimacy and quietly -drops it. He abhors games of tennis, dice, cards, and the like, by -which most gentlemen kill time. Though he is rather too negligent of -his own interests, no one is more diligent in behalf of his friends. -So polite, and so sweet-mannered is he in company, that no one is -too melancholy to be cheered by him. Since boyhood he has always so -delighted in merriment that it seems to be part of his nature; yet his -merriment is never turned into buffoonery.” - -“No one is less led by the opinions of the crowd, yet no one is less -eccentric.” - -The friendship of More and Erasmus had ripened in those twenty -years. In More’s house, and at his instigation, Erasmus had written -the _Praise of Folly_,[83] and the great scholar watched with warm -interest the famous career and the brilliant character of the man he -loved so heartily. - -More was already high in Henry VIII.’s favour when Erasmus could write -that no one was less led by the opinions of the crowd, and more than -once his independence and courage of mind had been proved in the twenty -years that had passed. - -Drawn at first to the monastic life, More had spent four years -(1500–1504) with the Carthusians in Smithfield, “frequenting daily -their spiritual exercises, but without any vow.” Then it is plain to -him that his vocation is not the priesthood, but marriage and public -life, and he leaves the Charterhouse, and in 1505 is married and in -Parliament.[84] But all his life the devotion to religion, and to -the services of the Church, remain in More, and he is ascetic in the -mortifications of the body till the spirit and the will ride supreme. - -In the House of Commons More stood out against the exactions of Henry -VII., and at once fell under the king’s displeasure. - -More’s son-in-law, Roper, tells the story: - -“In the time of King Henry the Seventh, More was made a burgess of the -Parliament wherein was demanded by the king (as I have heard reported) -about three-fifteenths, for the marriage of his eldest daughter, -that then should be Scottish Queen; at the last debating whereof he -made such arguments and reasons against, that the king’s demands were -thereby overthrown. So that one of the king’s privy chamber being -present thereat, brought word to the king out of the Parliament house -that a beardless boy had disappointed all his purpose. Whereupon the -king, conceiving great indignation towards him, could not be satisfied -until he had some way revenged it. And forasmuch as he, nothing have, -nothing could lose, his Grace devised a causeless quarrel against his -father, keeping him in the Tower till he had made him pay a hundred -pounds fine.... Had not the king soon after died, Sir Thomas More was -determined to have gone over sea, thinking that being in the king’s -indignation, he could not live in England without great danger.” - -The grant from parliament to the king was reduced from £113,000 to -£30,000 by More’s action; and if this action brought royal anger, it -won for More the confidence of his fellow-citizens in London, so that -we see him in the second year of Henry VIII. under-sheriff for the -city, and according to Erasmus and Roper, the most popular lawyer of -the day. With all his legal business, and good income, More is never -anxious after money. “While he was still dependent on his fees, he gave -to all true and friendly counsel, considering their interests rather -than his own; he persuaded many to settle with their opponents as the -cheaper course. If he could not induce them to act in that manner--for -some men delight in litigation--he would still indicate the method that -was least expensive.”[85] - -More’s rising reputation was bound to attract the notice of Henry -VIII., for the king was alert in the early years of his reign to -get good men at the court, and Wolsey, who had become chancellor on -Archbishop Warham’s retirement in 1515, was anxious to enlist More in -the royal service. The court had no attractions for More, his embassies -to Flanders and Calais, to settle trade disputes and difficulties -with France, wearied him, and in 1516 he was engaged in finishing -his _Utopia_. According to Roper, it was More’s independence of mind -that made the king force office at court upon him. A ship belonging -to the pope, which had put into Southampton, was claimed by Henry as -a forfeiture. More argued the case so clearly that the commissioners -decided in the pope’s favour, and the king at once declared he must -have More in his service. - -Then for the next twelve years Sir Thomas More enjoyed the royal -favour and friendship. His promotion was rapid. Secretary of state, -master of requests when the king was travelling, privy councilor, -under-treasurer, or chancellor of the exchequer--all these offices were -filled. In 1521 More was knighted, in 1523 he was speaker of the House -of Commons, and in 1525 chancellor of the Duchy of Lancaster. - -Erasmus writes to Ulrich von Hutten in 1519 in praise of More’s public -work: “In serious matters no man’s advice is more prized, and when the -king wishes for recreation no man’s conversation is more entertaining. -Often there are matters deep and involved that demand a grave and -prudent judge, and More unravels these questions in a way that gives -satisfaction to both sides. Yet no one has ever prevailed on him to -receive a gift for his decision. Happy that commonwealth where kings -appoint such officials! No pride has come to him with his high estate. -With all the weight of state affairs he remembers his old friends, -and returns from time to time to the books he loves so well. Whatever -influence has come to him with his high office, whatever favour he -enjoys with his wealthy king, he uses all for the good of the state and -for the assistance of his friends. Ever fond of conferring benefits and -wonderfully prone to pity, his disposition has grown with his power of -indulging it. Some he helps with money, to others he gives protection, -and others he recommends for promotion. When he can help in no other -way he does it by his advice: no one is sent away dejected. You -might well say that he had been appointed the public guardian of the -distressed and needy.” - -If the cares of state did not cut off Sir Thomas More from assisting -old acquaintances, they made great inroads into the home life he loved -so well. He had married again on the death of his first wife, and -his letters to his children, especially to his “most dear daughter, -Margaret”--Roper’s wife--are full of tenderness. He is anxious about -the education of his children, and rejoices that his daughter shares -his love for books. We find him writing to Margaret Roper just after -her marriage in 1522:-- - -“I am therefore delighted to read that you have made up your mind -to give yourself diligently to philosophy, and to make up by your -earnestness in future for what you have lost in the past by neglect. -My darling Margaret, I indeed have never found you idling, and your -unusual learning in almost every kind of literature shows that you -have been making active progress. So I take your words as an example -of the great modesty that makes you prefer to accuse yourself falsely -of sloth rather than to boast of your diligence, unless your meaning -is that you will give yourself so earnestly to study that your past -history will seem like indolence by comparison.... Though I earnestly -hope that you will devote the rest of your life to medical science and -sacred literature, so that you may be well furnished for the whole -scope of human life, which is to have a healthy soul in a healthy body, -and I know that you have already laid the foundations of these studies, -and there will be always opportunity to continue the building; yet I am -of opinion that you may with great advantage give some years of your -yet flourishing youth to humane letters and liberal studies.... It -would be a delight, my dear Margaret, to me to converse long with you -on these matters, but I have just been interrupted and called away by -the servants, who have brought in supper. I must have regard to others, -else to sup is not so sweet as to talk with you.”[86] - -The close friend of Erasmus and Dean Colet, an accepted champion of the -New Learning, More was naturally enthusiastic for education--for girls -as for boys. He had written to Gunnell, for a time the tutor of his -family:-- - -“Though I prefer learning, joined with virtue, to all the treasures -of kings, yet renown for learning, when it is not united with a good -life, is nothing else than splendid and notorious infamy: this would be -especially the case in a woman.... Since erudition in woman is a new -thing and a reproach to the sloth of men, many will gladly assail it -and impute to literature what is really the fault of nature, thinking -from the vices of the learned to get their own ignorance esteemed as -virtue. On the other hand if a woman (and this I desire and hope with -you as the teacher for all my daughters) to eminent virtue should add -an outwork of even moderate skill in literature, I think she will have -more real profit than if she had obtained the riches of Crœsus and the -beauty of Helen.” - -In this letter More goes on to speak of the profit of learning and the -happiness of those who give themselves to it--“possessing solid joy -they will neither be puffed up by the empty praises of men nor dejected -by evil tongues.” - -“These I consider the genuine fruits of learning, and though I admit -that all literary men do not possess them, I would maintain that those -who give themselves to study with such views (avoiding the precipices -of pride and haughtiness, walking in the pleasant meadows of modesty, -not dazzled at the sight of gold) will easily attain their end and -become perfect. Nor do I think that the harvest will be much affected -whether it is a man or a woman who sows the field. They both have the -same human nature, which reason differentiates from those of beasts; -both therefore are equally suited for those studies for which reason is -perfectioned, and becomes fruitful like a ploughed land on which the -seed of good lessons has been sown.” - -This strong love for wise learning, laying emphasis on a complete -education--the training in virtue no less than the knowledge of -letters--had its roots in More’s character. The “genuine fruits of -learning” ripen in his life and death. His wide toleration, which will -blame no man for not taking the path he trod to martyrdom, is coupled -inextricably with a refinement of conscience that cannot be sullied by -a denial of his faith. The freedom of conscience Thomas More claimed -for himself he most willingly allows to others. Just as the education -he valued for himself he extends to all his children. - -Standing largely aloof from the violent controversies Luther had -started, hating the bitter intolerance and savage abuse of theological -strife, refusing to be drawn into the deadly discussion of Henry -VIII.’s divorce, Sir Thomas More is content to live in loyal devotion -to his religion and to the service of the state, if haply he may. And -when this is denied him he is content to die, retaining his tolerant -good-humour and the love of his kind to the end, and without resentment -at his fate. - -The courage of the sage never failed Sir Thomas More in his public -work. As “a beardless boy” he had resisted in parliament the king’s -extortions, as speaker of the House of Commons he protected the -privileges of the commons. Wolsey had come down to the House with all -his train to command a subsidy, but no word was uttered in reply to his -address. In vain Wolsey appealed for an answer, Sir Thomas More could -only declare that the speaker, then the mouthpiece of the commons, had -nothing to say till he had heard the opinion of the House. “Whereupon, -the cardinal, displeased with Sir Thomas More that had not in this -parliament in all things satisfied his desire, suddenly arose and -departed.” - -High as More stood at that time in the affection of Henry, Sir -Thomas knew the king, and the nature of the favour of princes. Roper -relates that when he offered his congratulations, at the time of the -appointment to the chancellorship of the Duchy of Lancaster, More -answered, “I may tell thee I have no cause to be proud thereof, for -if my head would win him a castle in France (for then was there war -betwixt us) it should not fail to go.” - -Aware of Henry’s character, More yet had no choice but to accept the -lord chancellorship from the king on Wolsey’s fall in 1529. It was -no matter for personal satisfaction, and More’s reply to the Duke of -Norfolk was substantially the same as his previous answer to Roper: -“Considering how wise and honourable a prelate had lately before taken -so great a fall, he had no cause to rejoice in his new dignity.” -Erasmus wrote, “I do not at all congratulate More, nor literature; but -I do indeed congratulate England, for a better or holier judge could -not have been appointed.” - -On November 3rd, 1529, Sir Thomas More, as chancellor, opened -parliament, and in a long speech declared that “the cause of its -assembly was to reform such things as had been used or permitted by -inadvertence, or by changes of time had become inexpedient.” It was the -opening of the seven years’ parliament, and before six years should -run, this same parliament would, at the king’s order, condemn Sir -Thomas More by act of attainder. - -The position of the new chancellor was dangerous from the first. Wolsey -had fallen because he had failed to help Henry to a divorce from his -queen, Catherine of Aragon, and More had been made his successor -because the king had counted on him to accomplish the “great matter.” -All that Sir Thomas could hope for was that he might be allowed to do -his work as chancellor without being mixed up with divorce proceedings. -As long as he was not called upon to declare publicly that the divorce -was right, he had no wish to interfere in the matter. First to last -no word of approval came from More’s lips to encourage Henry in the -divorce, but he was not the man to express judgment on a case that he -did not wish brought before him.[87] In the end the chancellor’s very -silence turned Henry’s disappointment to active displeasure, and More’s -life was taken in savage revenge for non-compliance with the royal will. - -Henry’s divorce dates the beginning of the Protestant Reformation in -England--of that ecclesiastical revolution in which the supremacy of -Rome was rejected, the crown superseded the pope as supreme head of -the Church of England, and England was detached from the rest of Roman -Catholic Christendom. In the reigns of Edward VI. and Elizabeth the -revolution proceeded still further, and Catholic rites and doctrines, -service books and ceremonies were rigorously cast out of the Church -of England, and all who adhered to the old order in religion were -punished by law. But those days were far off as yet. - -More, at the outset of this revolution, declines to follow the king in -the rejection of the old allegiance to Rome. All he asks for is freedom -of conscience to remain in the faith of his fathers, to worship as -Christians in England had worshipped since the coming of Augustine. To -escape death by giving up this freedom is impossible for Sir Thomas -More. - -The divorce from Queen Catherine is the turning point in More’s worldly -fortunes as well as in ecclesiastical affairs in England. - -Eighteen years passed from the day of Henry’s marriage to Catherine, -on his accession to the throne, before the divorce was mooted. The -scruple was that Catherine had been formerly betrothed to his dead -brother Arthur; the moving force of Henry’s petition for divorce was -the desire to marry Anne Boleyn. Unable to get the marriage annulled at -Rome, or to get a favourable opinion from the universities, Henry fell -back on Archbishop Cranmer to decree the divorce, and finally this was -done in 1533, all appeals to Rome being henceforth forbidden. Henry -had already, in 1531, called upon the clergy to acknowledge him as the -supreme head of the Church of England, and the following year they were -required to surrender the ancient right to meet and enact canons.[88] - -In these four years the chancellor had kept out of political life as -far as he could, and had given his attention to his judicial work. But -in May, 1532, he resigned the great seal into the king’s hands, “seeing -that affairs were going badly, and likely to be worse, and that if he -retained his office he would be obliged to act against his conscience, -or incur the king’s displeasure as he had already begun to do, for -refusing to take his part against the clergy. His excuse was that his -salary was too small, and that he was not equal to the work. Everyone -is concerned, for there never was a better man in the office.”[89] - -Nothing is known of Sir Thomas More’s work in the chancery except his -integrity and his despatch. “When More took the office there were -causes that had remained undecided for twenty years. He presided so -dexterously and successfully that once after taking his seat and -deciding a case, when the next case was called, it was found that -there was no second case for trial. Such a thing is said never to have -happened before or since.” (Stapleton.) - -For nearly two years More lived unmolested after his resignation of -the chancellorship; but he had incurred the enmity of the king and the -hatred of Anne Boleyn, and Henry was swiftly driving at certain changes -in religion that were to bring Sir Thomas More to the Tower and the -block, and many another honest Christian to the prison and the gallows -of Tyburn. - -In June, 1533, after Cranmer had duly pronounced Henry’s marriage with -Catherine void, came the coronation of Anne Boleyn, and Sir Thomas More -declined an invitation from some of the bishops to be present at the -celebration. He knew that his absence would be marked unfavourably by -the king, and was ready to pay the penalty; but his care in avoiding -the expression of any disapproval of Henry’s proceedings required an -equal care that no approval should be expressed. To have been present -at the coronation of Anne would have been, for More, to condone the -divorce. - -In the autumn came an attempt to include More, with Bishop Fisher -and certain monks and friars, in the treason of the “Holy Maid of -Kent,”--Elizabeth Barton, a Canterbury nun. The “treason” amounted to -this, that the nun, who was given to prophesying, declared that God had -revealed to her to speak against Henry’s divorce, and it was sufficient -to bring her to Tyburn. But against Sir Thomas More no shred of -evidence could be procured, for none existed. He had seen the nun, and -talked with her, and “held her in great estimation,” but would neither -commit himself to a belief in her visions, nor permit any discussion on -the king’s doings; but wrote to the nun a letter which could not have -been more prudent, as he exhorted her “to attend to devotion, and not -meddle in the affairs of princes.” - -The name of Sir Thomas More was struck out of the bill of attainder, -but the days of his liberty were already numbered. - -The Act of Succession, passed in March, 1534, made Mary, the daughter -of Henry and Catherine, illegitimate, and Elizabeth, Anne’s child, -the heir to the throne. The act also declared that “all the nobles of -the realm, spiritual and temporal, and all other subjects arrived at -full age, should be obliged to take corporal oath, in the presence -of the king or his commissioners, to observe and maintain the whole -effect and contents of the act,” under the penalties for treason for -refusal. The words of the oath were not inserted in the act, and the -commissioners drew up a formula, requiring all persons to affirm in -addition that the marriage with Catherine was invalid, and the marriage -with Anne valid, and further to recall and repudiate allegiance to any -foreign authority, prince, or potentate. This was a much larger demand -than parliament had authorised, for it contained a denial of the papal -supremacy, while all that the act had required was an acknowledgment -of the succession to the crown. The pope had only just given his final -decision on Henry’s appeal for divorce (March, 1534), and the decision -had been against the king and in favour of the marriage. The oath now -administered was in direct opposition to the supremacy of Rome, and -as such was impossible to the consciences of men like Sir Thomas More -and Bishop Fisher, though the great bulk of the clergy took it without -giving any trouble. - -More was quite prepared to swear to the succession of Elizabeth. -Parliament had, in his eyes, a plain right to decide who should wear -the crown, and the doctrine of divine hereditary kingship does not -come in till the Stuarts. But this mere willingness to comply with -the letter of the law was not sufficient. More’s silent want of -sympathy with the divorce, and with the breach it involved with Rome, -was intolerable to Henry, who had counted More amongst his dearest -friends; for friend or foe, in Henry’s power, could only live by abject -agreement with the royal pleasure. No king had three more faithful -servants than Henry VIII. had in Thomas Wolsey, Thomas More, and -Thomas Cromwell, and no king destroyed his ministers with such fierce -caprice. - -Sir Thomas More, unable to take the oath, was sent to the Tower in -April, 1534, Bishop Fisher having already been lodged there. In -November parliament met again, and passed the Act of Supremacy, making -Henry VIII. “the supreme head of the Church of England,” and declaring -that on and after the first of February, 1535, it was high treason -“to deprive the king’s most royal person, the queen’s, or their heirs -apparent of their dignity, title or name of their royal estates, or -slanderously and maliciously publish or pronounce, by express writing -or words, that the king, our sovereign lord, should be heretic, -schismatic, tyrant, infidel, etc.” Under this act Sir Thomas More was -to be assailed and to die. That the martyrdom was a “judicial murder” -is plain--to Lord Campbell it was “the blackest crime that ever has -been perpetrated in England under the form of law.”[90] - -The indictment was for treason, and on July 1st, a week after Bishop -Fisher’s execution, Sir Thomas More was brought before the judges. -To the charge of having refused the king, “maliciously, falsely, and -traitorously, his title of supreme head of the Church of England,” -More answered that the statute had been passed while he was in prison, -and that he was dead to the world, and had not cared about such -things--“your statute cannot condemn me to death for such silence, for -neither your statute nor any laws in the world punish people except for -words and deeds--surely not for keeping silence.” - -“To this the king’s proctor replied that such silence was a certain -proof of malice intended against the statute, especially as every -faithful subject, on being questioned about the statute, was obliged -to answer categorically that the statute was good and wholesome.” -“Surely,” replied More, “if common law is true, and he who is silent -seems to consent, my silence should rather be taken as approval than -contempt of your statute.” - -To the first article charging him with having always maliciously -opposed the king’s second marriage, More had answered that anything -he had said had been according to his conscience, and that for “this -error,” he had already suffered fifteen months’ imprisonment, and the -confiscation of his property. - -The trial was soon over, for the king had decided on More’s death -when Fisher was executed, ordering the preachers to set forth to the -people the treasons of the late Bishop of Rochester and of Sir Thomas -More; “joining them together though the later was still untried.”[91] -The jury, after a quarter of an hour’s absence, declared him guilty -of death for maliciously contravening the statute, and sentence was -pronounced by the chancellor “according to the tenour of the new law.” - -Death being now in sight, and faith having been kept with his -conscience, More has no longer any reason to observe silence. To the -usual question whether he has anything to say against the sentence, he -replied, that for the seven years he had studied the matter he could -not find that supremacy in a church belonged to a layman, or to any but -the see of Rome, as granted personally by our Lord when on earth to -St. Peter and his successors; and that, as the city of London could not -make a law against the laws of the realm of England, so England could -not make a law contrary to the general law of Christ’s Catholic Church; -and that the Magna Charta of England said that “the English Church -should be free to enjoy all its rights,” as the king had sworn at his -consecration. Interrupted by the chancellor with the inquiry whether -he wished to be considered wiser and better than all the bishops -and nobles of the realm who had sworn to the king’s supremacy, More -retorted, “For one bishop of your opinion, my lord, I have a hundred -saints of mine; and for one parliament of yours, and God knows of what -kind, I have all the general councils for a thousand years.” The Duke -of Norfolk said that now his malice was clear. - -On the sixth of July, 1535, Sir Thomas More was beheaded on Tower Hill, -for the king remitted the ferocious mutilations that accompanied the -executions for treason at Tyburn. “The scaffold was very unsteady, and -putting his feet on the ladder, he said, merrily, to the lieutenant of -the Tower: “I pray thee see me safe up, and for my coming down let me -shift for myself.”[92] - -Then, with a simple request to the people standing round to pray for -him, and to bear witness that he died a Catholic for the faith of -the Catholic Church, a friendly word to the executioner, and a last -prayer--the 51st Psalm--the axe fell, and More was dead. - -Beyond More’s scholarship and wit, and his affection for his family -and friends, stands out his great, unflinching quality of loyalty to -conscience. When the power was in his hands as lord chancellor, no one -was put to death by Sir Thomas More for heresy in England, though he -did what he could by his pen to check the innovations of Luther, which -he hated,--not only because they broke up the unity of Christendom, -but because, it seemed to him, they struck at all social morality and -decency.[93] The violence of Luther’s outbreak, the determination -of the Lutherans--sure of their own possession of the truth--to -allow no liberty to Catholics, and the antinomian communism of the -anabaptists--all these things made Protestantism detestable to men like -Sir Thomas More and Erasmus, and made More declare that dogmatising -heretics ought to be repressed by the state as breeders of strife and -contention. But his own record is clear: “And of all that ever came in -my hand for heresy, as help me God, saving (as I said) the sure keeping -of them, had never any of them any stripe or stroke given them, so much -as a fillip on the forehead.”[94] - -“What other controversialist can be named, who, having the power -to crush antagonists whom he viewed as the disturbers of the quiet -of his own declining years, the destroyers of all the hopes which -he had cherished for mankind, contented himself with severity of -language?”[95] - -The author of the _Utopia_ was a critic, as Colet and Erasmus were, -of abuses in the Church; but like his friends he lived and died a -Catholic. He saw Lutheranism as the source of a thousand ills, and with -Erasmus opposed it; but though heretics were anti-social and factious, -he would not put one to death for error. - -It is all through Sir Thomas More’s character--this respect for -conscience. There is no going back on the wide toleration of his early -manhood, and high office and responsibilities of state no more cramp or -belittle his faith than they destroy his playfulness or the warmth of -his affections. - -He died a martyr for the religion of his life, for the simple right to -abide in the old Catholic paths of his fellow-countrymen. - -As Sir Thomas More was not the first of the Catholic martyrs at the -Reformation, for he had seen his old friends, the Carthusian monks, -carried to Tyburn, so he was not the last. For the next fifty years -of Henry and Elizabeth, English men and women were to suffer for -the old faith of England, and in Mary’s reign to die as bravely for -Protestantism. - -In spite of monasteries and priories destroyed, and parish churches -stripped and plundered, in spite of penal laws which banned its -priesthood and proscribed its worship, the Catholicism More died for -has endured in England. All that parliament could do to exterminate -the belief in papal supremacy has been done; all that panic and -prejudice could accomplish by “popish plots” to the same end has been -accomplished. These things have been no more successful than the -mad “no popery” riots of Lord George Gordon in crushing the faith -of the Roman Catholic minority. The penal laws have gone, Catholic -emancipation has been obtained, a Catholic hierarchy has been set up, -and to-day in England the freedom of conscience that was refused to Sir -Thomas More is the accepted liberty of all. - -In 1887 Sir Thomas More, with Bishop Fisher and the Carthusian martyrs, -were beatified by Pope Leo XIII. Serving their religion in life and -death, they served the cause of human liberty, withstanding Henry as -Anselm withstood the Red King, and as Langton withstood John. - - - - -Robert Ket and The Norfolk Rising - -1549 - - -AUTHORITIES: _The Commotion in Norfolk_, by Nicholas Sotherton, -1576 (Harleian MS.); _De Furoribus Norfolciensum_, by Nevylle, 1575 -(Translated into English by Wood, 1615); Holinshed--_Chronicle_; -Sir John Hayward--_Life of Edward VI._; Strype--_Memorials_; -Blomefield--_History of Norfolk_; F. W. Russell--_Kett’s Rebellion_; W. -Rye; _Victoria County History--Norfolk_. - - - - -ROBERT KET AND THE NORFOLK RISING. - -1549. - - -The Norfolk Rising of the sixteenth century was a land war, caused -directly by the enclosing of the common fields of the peasants, and the -break up of the accustomed rural life. - -The landowners finding greater profit in breeding sheep and cattle -than in the small holdings of peasants, began, about 1470, to seize -the fields which from time immemorial had been cultivated by the -country people in common, and to evict whole parishes by pulling down -all the dwelling places. For eighty years these clearances were going -on. Acts of Parliament were passed in 1489 and 1515 to prohibit the -“pulling down of towns” and to order the rebuilding of such towns, and -the restoration of pasture lands to tillage, but both acts were quite -inoperative. In 1517, Cardinal Wolsey’s Royal Commission on Enclosures -reported on the defiance of the law in seven Midland counties, where -more than 36,000 acres had been enclosed; but legal proceedings against -the landowners were stayed on the latter promising to make restitution. - -Thomas More, in the first part of his _Utopia_, in 1516, described for -all time what the enclosures he witnessed meant for England. - -“For look in what parts of the realm doth grow the finest and therefore -dearest wool, there noblemen and gentlemen, yea, and certain -abbots, holy men no doubt, not contenting themselves with the yearly -revenues and profits that were wont to grow to their forefathers and -predecessors of their lands, nor being content that they live in -rest and pleasure--nothing profiting, yea, much annoying the public -weal--leave no ground for tillage, they inclose all into pastures; -they throw down houses; they pluck down towns and leave nothing -standing but only the church to be made a sheep fold.... They turn all -dwelling-places and all glebe land into desolation and wilderness. -Therefore, that one covetous and insatiable comorant may compass about -and inclose many thousand acres of ground together within one pale or -hedge, the husbandmen be thrust out of their own, or else either by -cunning and fraud, or by violent oppression, or by wrongs and injuries -they be so wearied, that they be compelled to sell all. By one means -therefore or another, either by hook or by crook they must needs depart -away, men, women, husbands, wives, fatherless children, widows, mothers -with their young babies, and their whole household small in substance -and large in number, as husbandry requireth many hands. Away they -trudge, I say, out of their known and accustomed houses, finding no -place to rest in.... And when they have wandered abroad till the little -they have be spent, what can they then else do but steal, and then -justly be hanged, or else go about a begging. And yet then also they -be cast in prison as vagabonds, because they go about and work not: -whom no man will set a work, though they never so willingly proffer -themselves thereto. For one shepherd or herdsman is enough to eat up -that ground with cattle, to the occupying whereof about husbandry many -hands were requisite.” - -This was social England in the early years of Henry VIII., and every -year saw things grow worse for the rural folk, in spite of further -royal proclamations against enclosures in 1526. A series of bad -harvests drove a starving population to riot in Norfolk in 1527 and -1529. In 1536 came the suppression of 376 lesser monasteries, followed -two years later by the dissolution of all remaining monasteries and -priories, and in 1547 by the royal confiscation of the property of the -religious guilds and brotherhoods. - -The landowners having established a starving unemployed class by the -simple process of depriving people of access to the land, and the -crown having removed the only source of relief to the unemployed by -destroying the monasteries, it remained for parliament to deal with the -“social problem” thus created by declaring poverty a crime, and the -unemployed person a felon. The lash and the gallows were to solve the -problem. - -In 1531, an act of parliament granted licences to the impotent beggar, -and ordered a whipping for all other mendicants. Five years later -stronger measures were adopted, and whipping was only permitted to -first offenders: mutilation and hanging were the subsequent penalties -on conviction, and thousands of unemployed men and women suffered under -this act. But still the unemployed existed, for the enclosures had not -been stopped; and so the first year of Edward VI. saw an act passed -declaring the convicted unemployed “a slave.” (As it seemed to many -that parliament had got rid of papal authority only to bring back -slavery in England, this act was repealed in two years, and the act of -1531 revived.) - -The bitterness of the agrarian misery, the violent destruction of all -the old religious customs and habits of the people, the confiscation -of the funds of the guilds, the open despoiling of the parish churches -of the people[96]--all these things plunged the country into confusion -and despair. The general rising in Lincolnshire and the north in 1536 -(known as the “Pilgrimage of Grace”) against the suppressions of the -monasteries, and the rising in Cornwall and Devon in 1549 against -Edward’s VI.’s new Book of Common Prayer were strong manifestations of -the popular dislike of the changes made in religion by Henry VIII. and -the ministers of Edward VI. - -In Norfolk, in 1537, the people made an insurrection against the -suppression of the monasteries; but the later risings of 1540 (at -Griston, when one John Walker “exhorted the people to destroy the -gentry”), and in 1549, under Ket, were not concerned with the religious -troubles of the times, but were frankly agrarian. The Norfolk rising, -which Ket led, was no more connected with Protestantism than the -Peasant Revolt of 1381 was with Lollardy. Agrarian disturbances took -place in a number of counties in 1549. In May the peasants of Somerset -and Lincoln were in revolt, and in July there were tumults in Essex, -Kent, Wiltshire, Buckinghamshire, and Oxfordshire. A rude Cambridge -ballad of the time extols the pulling down of enclosures: - - Cast hedge and ditch in the lake, - Fixed with many a stake; - Though they be never so fast, - Yet asunder they are wrest. - Sir, I think that this work - Is as good as to build a kirk. - -In 1548 Protector Somerset had followed Wolsey’s footsteps in issuing -a proclamation for a royal commission to inquire and report concerning -enclosures, and to give the names of all who kept more than two -thousand sheep or who had “taken from any other their commons.”[97] -The commissioners were also “to reform” any cases of the enclosing of -commons and highways, “without due recompense,” which they might find; -“and to the intent your doings may proceed without all suspicion, and -the people conceive some good hope of reformation at your hands, we -would that as many of you as be in any of the cases to be reformed, do -first, for example’s sake, begin to the reformation of yourselves.” - -Somerset’s ingenuous suggestion was naturally disregarded by the -commissioners, and beyond making inquiries and publishing a report--to -the effect that in the counties of Suffolk, Essex, Hertford, Kent, and -Worcester nearly all the common lands[98] had been enclosed, while in -Norfolk and Northampton large enclosures had been made--the commission -of 1548 was as fruitless as its predecessors. Somerset, however, got -some reputation by it as an enemy to the enclosures, and certainly -incurred the dislike of the landowners. But where Wolsey, in the -hey-day of power, had failed, there was small chance of success for -Somerset, with the country in a state of anarchy, and the nation rent -and distracted by a violent revolution in the Church. - -The only strong movement to prevent the utter downfall of the -country-people was the Norfolk Rising, which Robert Ket directed in -the summer of 1549. It failed in the end, but for more than six weeks -the power of the landlords was broken round Norwich, their enclosures -were stopped, and the hope of better things filled the hearts of the -peasants. - -The rising began at Attleborough on 20th June when Squire Green, of -Wylby, set up fences and hedges round the common lands at Harpham and -Attleborough, and the people, excited by news that in Kent similar -fences had been destroyed, proceeded to pull them down. For the next -fortnight the revolt had neither leaders nor organization. “There were -secret meetings of men running hither and thither, and then withdrawing -themselves for secret conferences, but at length they all began to -deal tumultuously and to rage openly.” On July 7th the annual feast at -Wymondham, in honour of the translation of St. Thomas of Canterbury, -brought the country folk together from miles round; and at the close -of the fair they all set off to break down the fences set up round the -common lands at Hetherset by one Sergeant Flowerdew.[99] - -Flowerdew, unable to save his fences, proposed a diversion. The Kets at -Wymondham had made enclosures, why shouldn’t the rioters deal with them -in similar fashion? Flowerdew actually paid over 40d. to encourage an -attack on the Kets. - -Robert Ket and his brother were well-known men. Both were craftsmen, -Robert, a tanner, and William, a butcher. They were landowners besides, -and men of substance and of old family, for it was said the Kets had -been in the land since the Norman Conquest. Robert Ket held three -manors from the Earl of Warwick; his yearly income was put down at £50, -and his property valued at 1,000 marks. Like other landowners, the Kets -had made enclosures, but on the arrival of the people from Hetherset -they at once declared themselves willing to stand by the movement for -freeing the land. Robert Ket felt the misery of his neighbours. He -saw that if the revolt was to be anything more than a local riot it -must have necessary guidance, and his sympathies were entirely on the -democratic side. And so from that time forward he gave up the quiet of -a country gentleman’s life at Wymondham for the strenuous movement of -an insurgent camp. - -To the appeal of the people for help, Ket answered passionately, “I -am ready, and will be ready at all times, to do whatever, not only to -repress, but to subdue the power of great men. Whatsoever lands I have -enclosed shall again be made common unto ye and all men, and my own -hands shall first perform it.” - -Then Robert Ket went on to commit himself body and soul to the -movement, resolved that the peasants should not be left unaided in the -struggle they had begun, and willing to take upon himself the burden -and responsibility of leadership. - -“You shall have me, if you will, not only as a companion, but as a -captain; and in the doing of the so great a work before us, not only as -a fellow, but for a leader, author and principal.” - -If the ambition which clutches at sovereignty and rule is despicable, -even more despicable is the weakness which refuses to take command at -times of peril. - -To Robert Ket and his brother there was no promise of the world’s -honour and glory should the rising be successful. At the best would -be the satisfaction of a battle fought and won for the deliverance of -long-suffering peasants. At the worst the laying down of life in a good -cause, as Geoffrey Litster and many a Norfolk man had done in bygone -days. - -Robert Ket’s leadership was acclaimed with enthusiasm, nor was it ever -disputed throughout the rising. In this, the last of the great popular -risings in England, the Norfolk men were as loyal to their leader as -the men of Kent were to Wat Tyler and Jack Cade. And in each case that -loyalty had ample justification. - -There were but a thousand men involved when the rising began, but under -Ket’s command the movement passed rapidly from the fluid “running -hither and thither” condition of the first fortnight, and became the -march of an organized army. - -On July 10th, two days after Ket took command, this army was on the -road to Norwich, and after crossing the river at Cringleford, lay -encamped at Eaton Wood. - -It is plain from Ket’s speeches to his men, and from “The Rebels’ -Complaint,” which he published at this time, that to Robert Ket the -rising was not only to put down enclosures, its aim was rather to -strike at the root of the evil and to put an end to the ascendancy of -the landlord class, and make England a free commonwealth. Either the -people must put down landlords, or very soon the landlords would have -the whole land in their possession, and the people would be in hopeless -and helpless subjection. Had not an act of parliament been actually -passed making “slaves” of the landless men, dispossessed by enclosures? -When parliament was establishing slavery it was time for honest men to -be up and doing, rousing the people to action. - -Ket’s speech at Eaton Wood is a fierce attack on the landlords, and a -reminder that having ventured so far, the peasants must advance yet -further: - - Now are ye overtopped and trodden down by gentlemen, and put - out of possibility ever to recover foot. Rivers of riches ran - into the coffers of your landlords, while you are pair’d to the - quick, and fed upon pease and oats like beasts. You are fleeced - by these landlords for their private benefit, and as well kept - under by the public burdens of State wherein while the richer - sort favour themselves, ye are gnawn to the very bones. Your - tyrannous masters often implead, arrest, and cast you into - prison, so that they may the more terrify and torture you in - your minds, and wind your necks more surely under their arms. - And then they palliate these pilleries with the fair pretence - of law and authority! Fine workmen, I warrant you, are this law - and authority, who can do their dealings so closely that men - can only discover them for your undoing. Harmless counsels are - fit for tame fools; for you who have already stirred there is - no hope but in adventuring boldly. - -In “The Rebels’ Complaint,” the same note is struck. Only by taking -up arms, and mixing Heaven and earth together, can the intolerable -oppression of the landlords be ended. - - The pride of great men is now intolerable, but our condition - miserable. - - These abound in delights; and compassed with the fullness of - all things, and consumed with vain pleasures, thirst only after - gain, inflamed with the burning delights of their desires. - - But ourselves, almost killed with labour and watching, do - nothing all our life long but sweat, mourn, hunger, and thirst. - Which things, though they seem miserable and base (as they are - indeed most miserable), yet might be borne howsoever, if they - which are drowned in the boiling seas of evil delights did not - pursue the calamities and miseries of other men with too much - insolent hatred. But now both we and our miserable condition - is a laughing stock to these most proud and insolent men--who - are consumed with ease and idleness. Which thing (as it may) - grieveth us so sore and inflicteth such a stain of evil report, - so that nothing is more grievous for us to remember, nor more - unjust to suffer. - - The present condition of possessing land seemeth miserable - and slavish--holding it all at the pleasure of great men; not - freely, but by prescription, and, as it were, at the will and - pleasure of the lord. For as soon as any man offend any of - these gorgeous gentlemen, he is put out, deprived, and thrust - from all his goods. - - How long shall we suffer so great oppression to go unrevenged? - - For so far as they, the gentlemen, now gone in cruelty and - covetousness, that they are not content only to take all by - violence away from us, and to consume in riot and effeminate - delights what they get by force and villainy, but they must - also suck in a manner our blood and marrow out of our veins and - bones. - - The common pastures left by our predecessors for our relief and - our children are taken away. - - The lands which in the memory of our fathers were common, - those are ditched and hedged in and made several; the pastures - are enclosed, and we shut out. Whatsoever fowls of the air or - fishes of the water, and increase of the earth--all these do - they devour, consume, and swallow up; yea, nature doth not - suffice to satisfy their lusts, but they seek out new devices, - and, as it were, forms of pleasures to embalm and perfume - themselves, to abound in pleasant smells, to pour in sweet - things to sweet things. Finally, they seek from all places all - things for their desire and the provocation of lust. While - we in the meantime eat herbs and roots, and languish with - continual labour, and yet are envied that we live, breathe, and - enjoy common air! - - Shall they, as they have brought hedges about common pastures, - enclose with their intolerable lusts also all the commodities - and pleasures of this life, which Nature, the parent of us all, - would have common, and bringeth forth every day, for us, as - well as for them? - - We can no longer bear so much, so great, and so cruel injury; - neither can we with quiet minds behold so great covetousness, - excess, and pride of the nobility. We will rather take arms, - and mix Heaven and earth together, than endure so great cruelty. - - Nature hath provided for us, as well as for them; hath given us - a body and a soul, and hath not envied us other things. While - we have the same form, and the same condition of birth together - with them, why should they have a life so unlike unto ours, and - differ so far from us in calling? - - We see that things have now come to extremities, and we will - prove the extremity. We will rend down hedges, fill up ditches, - and make a way for every man into the common pasture. Finally, - we will lay all even with the ground, which they, no less - wickedly than cruelly and covetously, have enclosed. Neither - will we suffer ourselves any more to be pressed with such - burdens against our wills, nor endure so great shame, since - living out our days under such inconveniences we should leave - the commonwealth unto our posterity--mourning, and miserable, - and much worse than we received it of our fathers. - - Wherefore we will try all means; neither will we ever rest - until we have brought things to our own liking. - - We desire liberty and an indifferent (or equal) use of all - things. This will we have. Otherwise these tumults and our - lives shall only be ended together. - -Revolutionary as this manifesto is, Robert Ket is seen all through the -rising exerting his authority on behalf of law and good order, curbing -anarchy and checking ferocity in the rebel camp. - -Only one day was spent at Eaton Wood. Ket’s plan was to advance to -Mousehold, a wide stretch of high, well-wooded ground to the east of -Norwich. Here the camp was fixed on July 12th, the river having been -crossed at Hailsdon, and a night’s halt called at Drayton--for the -mayor of Norwich, Thomas Cod, positively refused to allow the rebels to -pass through the city. Ket, anxious to unite citizens and peasants in -a common cause, willingly avoided altercation, and Cod, alarmed at the -rising, and unable to dissuade the insurgents from their enterprise, -was careful to refrain from all hostile demonstrations. Cod’s one -purpose was to exclude Ket’s army from the city, and to accomplish -this he kept on friendly terms with Ket, even while appealing to the -government to send down troops to suppress the rising. Ket’s purpose -was to break down landlord rule in Norfolk, extend the area of revolt, -and to get the king to attend to the complaints of his subjects. - -Ket’s company at Mousehold numbered no more than 2,600 on July 12th; -but the ringing of bells and the firing of beacons brought in thousands -of homeless men. At the end of a week 20,000 men were enrolled under -the banner of revolt, and now Ket had all his work to do in maintaining -discipline and in arranging for provisions for the camp. - -It is clear Robert Ket was the right man for a leader.[100] The -people trusted him and obeyed his orders. Cod and two other -reputable citizens of Norwich--Aldrich, an alderman, and Watson, a -preacher--attended the camp daily, and along with Ket and his brother -William sat under a great tree, known as the Oak of Reformation, and -administered justice. The 20,000 hungry, disinherited men carried out -in as orderly way as they could the instructions they received. - -Ket’s first business was to send to the king a plain statement of -“Requests and Demands.” He knew what was wanted for rural England, and -refused to admit that his purpose was disloyal or that his conduct was -rebellion. - -The “Requests” were twenty-nine, and they contained a full statement -of the grievances of the country folk. The chief requests were for the -stoppage of enclosures, the enactment of fair rents, the restoration -of common fishing rights in sea and river, the appointment of resident -clergymen in every parish to preach and instruct the children, and -the free election or official appointment of local “commissioners” -for the enforcement of the laws. One significant prayer was “that all -bond men may be made free, for God made all free with His precious -bloodshedding.” - -This document, which was signed by Ket, Cod and Aldrich,[101] was -answered by the arrival of a herald from the king with a promise that -parliament should meet in October to consider their complaints, and -that something should be done to redress their grievances, if in the -meantime they would quietly disperse to their homes. - -All this was too vague and uncertain for Ket. Not till some definite -step was taken by king or parliament to end the present distress was -he willing to lay down his arms and bid his followers disperse. He had -put his hand to the plough, and no turning back was possible while the -evils he had risen against flourished unchecked. - -So Ket put his house in order on Mousehold Heath. The Oak of -Reformation was boarded over “with rafters,” and to this place -of summary justice landowners were brought and tried for making -enclosures. Two men were chosen by the commons from every hundred to -assist in the work of administration, and all the people were strictly -admonished “to beware of robbing, spoiling and other evil demeanours.” -As the army had to be victualled, Ket sent out men armed with his -official warrant requiring the country houses to provide cattle and -corn, “so that no violence or injury be done to any honest or poor -man,” and this requisition brought in guns, gunpowder and money, in -addition to “all kinds of victual.” The smaller farmers sent their -contributions “with much private good will,” while on the landowners a -great fear had fallen, and it seemed that the day of their might was -passed. - -A royal messenger bearing commissions of the peace to various country -gentlemen falling into the hands of Ket, he was at once deprived of -these documents and sent on his way. Ket filled in the names of men who -had joined the rising on these commissions, and these new magistrates -gave assistance in maintaining order. - -Cod and Aldrich were shocked at the arrest of landowners. -“Notwithstanding were divers gentlemen taken and brought to prison, -some in Norwich Prison, some in Norwich Castle and some in Surrey -Place.”--St. Leonard’s Hill. - -In every case the lives of the landowners were spared. Stern and -unmoved by respect of persons was Robert Ket, but there was no taint -of cruelty, meanness or bloodthirstiness in his rule. It was not his -purpose to raise civil war or leave a festering sore of hatred by -putting his neighbours to death. To destroy the power of the landlords -and ensure the right of an evicted people to live on the land was the -aim of the Norfolk Rising. - -At the end of the first week relations became strained between Cod and -the army on Mousehold. - -It was the custom to have prayers every day under the Oak, and Dr. -Conyers, vicar of St. Martin’s, Norwich, acted as chaplain. “Grave -persons and good divines” would come out from the city and preach under -the Oak, and on one occasion Dr. Matthew Parker, a Norwich man, who -had been chaplain to Anne Boleyn, and who was to become Archbishop of -Canterbury under Elizabeth, filled the pulpit. Parker’s sermon, full of -rebukes on the rising and praise of Edward VI., was so obnoxious, for -“he touched them for their living so near that they went near to touch -him for his life,” that Conyers only prevented a riot by striking up -the “Te Deum” in English, and during the singing Parker withdrew “to -sing his part at home.” - -Matthew Parker was a great man in Norwich (his brother Thomas -became mayor), and the incivility he had received at Mousehold gave -great offence. Cod and the aldermen sent off Leonard Sutherton, a -respectable burgess, to report to the king’s council the doings in -Norfolk, and Sutherton brought back from London a royal herald, who -went out to Mousehold and promised the king’s pardon to all that would -depart quietly to their homes. - -The people cheered and shouted “God save the king’s majesty,” but to -Ket this talk of pardon was altogether beside the mark. With some -dignity he informed the herald that “kings and princes are wont to -pardon wicked persons, not innocent and just men,” and added, “I trust -I have done nothing but what belongs to the duty of a true subject.” - -The herald then called on John Petibone, the sword-bearer of Norwich, -who with other civic notables was standing by, to arrest Robert Ket. -But the thing was impossible. Ket had 20,000 men at his back, and the -sword-bearer was supported by half-a-dozen elderly members of the town -council. All that could be done was to escort the herald into the city, -leaving Ket to his own devices. - -There was no more peace between the camp at Mousehold and the city of -Norwich after this. Hitherto Mayor Cod had retained the keys of the -city, and his authority had been respected by Ket. At the same time -Ket’s men had gone freely to and fro throughout the city without let -or hindrance. Now all was changed. First the landowners were being -arrested and despoiled, then the learned doctor, Matthew Parker (was he -not master of Corpus Christi College, Cambridge?) had been interrupted -and hooted, and now a king’s herald was contemned! Cod ordered the city -gates to be made fast, commanded Ket’s prisoners to be released, and -placed the city’s ordnance in the meadows by the river. This amounted -to a declaration of war, and Ket replied by bringing up his guns. - -The night of July 21st was spent “in fearful shot on both sides,” but -little injury was done. For Ket’s guns brought “more fear than hurt to -the city,” and “the city ordnance did not much annoy the enemy.” - -In the morning Ket sought to renew peace by asking permission for the -transport of victuals through the city, “as the custom was of late,” -and warning the mayor that refusal would provoke fire and sword. - -Cod refused permission, and Ket opened fire on the city gates. But “for -lack of powder and want of skill in the gunners the ordnance was spent -to small and little purpose.” A desperate encounter followed, with -bows and arrows for the chief weapons of offence. Boys from Mousehold, -“naked and unarmed, would pluck the arrows from their bodies and hand -them to the rebels to fire at the city.” At Bishopsgate a number of men -swam the river and forced their way into the city, and on the night of -July 22nd Norwich was in the hands of Robert Ket. - -No reprisals followed. The herald made a last attempt to induce -the insurgents to disperse by promising pardons, and was greeted -derisively. “Depart with a plague on thee!” they cried. “To the devil -with these idle promises. We shall only be oppressed afterwards.” -Forthwith the herald did depart, with eight pounds of gold in his -pocket from the mayor. - -Ket retired to Mousehold, the passage through the city having been -secured, and Cod accompanied him, leaving a deputy, Augustine Steward, -who lived in the big house in Tombland, opposite Erfingham Gate, to act -as mayor. - -Judgment went on as before under the Oak of Reformation, and people -clamoured for the landowners to be hanged. “So hated at this time -was the name of worship or gentleman, that the basest of the people, -burning with more than hostile hatred, desired to extinguish, and -utterly cut off, not only the gentry themselves, but if it were -possible, all the offspring and hope of them.” (Nevylle.) - -But Ket was as strong in his mercy as in his resistance to the land -enclosers. The gentry were imprisoned, and made to pay tribute: -their fences were pulled down, but their lives were spared, and no -hurt befell them. In the city Steward, no friend to Ket, was left -undisturbed in authority. - -At the end of July came William Parr, Marquis of Northampton, with -1,500 soldiers, mostly Italian mercenaries, and a number of country -squires with their retainers, to put down the rising. Steward at -once admitted him to the city; but Northampton--Henry VIII.’s -brother-in-law--was neither a soldier nor statesman, and after two -days’ hard fighting he fled from Norwich, utterly defeated. - -Ket’s men were badly armed, but they had numbers on their side, and -they fought for freedom and for very life. They swam the river, as -before, and forced an entrance. “Half dead, drowned in their own and -other men’s blood, they would not give over; but till the last gasp, -when their hands could scarce hold their weapons, would strike at their -adversaries.” - -Lord Sheffield fell in the fight on August 1st, killed by a stalwart -rebel--one Fulke, a butcher and carpenter by trade--and some hundred of -Ket’s men lay dead. The city suffered. Several houses and city gates -were fired, and only a heavy rain prevented the flames from spreading. -(This same rain drove many of the rebels to take refuge in the -cathedral, much to the annoyance of the dean and chapter.) - -And now for three weeks Ket had to take charge of Norwich as well as -of Mousehold camp, for it was impossible to trust Steward. Many of the -wealthier townsmen hastened away to Cambridge and London, leaving their -wives and families behind. Trade was at an end. - - The state of the city began to be in most miserable case, so - that all men looked for utter destruction, both of life and - goods. Then the remnant that feared God, seeing the plague - thus of sorrow increasing, fell to prayer and holy life, and - wished but to see the day that after they might talk thereover, - looking never to recover help again, nor to see their city - prosper. - - The women resorted twice a day to prayer, and the servants - (except what must needs stay at home) did the same. When Ket’s - ambassadors were sent to any private house they were fain - to bake or brew or do any work for the camp, else they were - carried as traitors to the Oak. As for trading, there was none - in the city, people being forced to hide up their choicest - goods, and happy were they that had the faithfullest servants. - - They that did keep open their shops were robbed and spoiled, - and their goods were measured by the arm’s length and dispersed - among the rebels; their children they set away for fear of - fire. I, the writer (who was then above twenty-two years of - age, and an eye-witness) was present after prayer during this - dolorous state, when people met and bewailed the miserable - state they were in. (Sutherton.) - -But for all their misery the tradesmen of Norwich were in no fear for -their lives. The city had done its best to thwart the rising, but Ket -treated it generously, allowing neither pillage nor bloodshed--though -he did not scruple to take what goods were necessary for his army.[102] -It was beyond the power of man to prevent all thieving during those -first few weeks of August, for the civic magistracy was gone, and Ket -had large responsibilities on his hands. - -The hope that the rising would become general turned to disappointment -in the weeks that passed after the flight of Northampton. In Suffolk -a number of men rose at Ket’s call, and made an unsuccessful attempt -to take Yarmouth. A small camp set up at Rising Chase was dispersed, -but for a fortnight the peasants gathered at Watton, and stopped the -passages of the river at Thetford and Brandon Ferry. For want of -leadership they then came on to Mousehold. At Hingham a rising was -put down by Sir Edmund Knyvett. And while Ket waited, hoping against -hope for better news, the fugitive citizens from Norwich had already -persuaded Somerset to send down an army to crush the revolt. - -On August 21st the Earl of Warwick, with 14,000 troops, reached -Cambridge, and three days later was at Norwich. - -Warwick, Henry VIII.’s high chamberlain, the son of Dudley, Henry -VII.’s minister, was a man of war and resolution. Sent down to suppress -the rising he did his work, but not till he had tried an appeal to the -peasants to disperse without further trouble. - -Halting outside the city, Warwick sent a herald to proclaim pardon to -all who should now return to their homes, and, as before, the people -shouted, “God save King Edward!” Ket himself talked with the herald on -the high ground near Bishop’s Gate. - -Negotiations ended abruptly. Some ill-mannered boy gave an indecent -and offensive salute to the herald, and was shot dead by an arrow from -the herald’s escort. At once the cry of “treachery” was raised by the -people, and all talk of peace was at an end. While the herald tried -to persuade Ket to come to the Earl of Warwick under a flag of truce, -the rebels gathered round their leader and besought him not to forsake -them. To Ket there could be sure reliance on royal promises of pardon, -and no surrender of the charge he had undertaken. His reply to the -herald was to retire on Mousehold and prepare for battle. - -Warwick at once entered the city, and began the business of -pacification by promptly hanging sixty men in the Market Place, -by Norwich Castle, “without hearing the cause”; and by issuing a -proclamation that all who were out of doors would receive similar -treatment. Then came a mishap, for the greater part of Warwick’s -artillery fell into Ket’s hands. The drivers of the gun-carriages, -entering the city after the soldiers, by St. Bennet’s Gate on the west, -and ignorant of the way, actually passed out at Bishop’s Gate on the -east on the very road towards Mousehold, and were quickly taken. Ket -had now the advantage in ordnance, and there was fighting in the city -all Sunday, August 25th. So uncertain was the issue that the burgesses -feared Warwick would suffer Northampton’s fate, and prayed him to -depart without further loss. But Warwick, waiting for reinforcements, -and knowing that 1,400 German mercenaries were close at hand, was not -the man to beat an ignominious retreat. - -The hireling “lanznechts” arrived next day, and on Tuesday, August -27th, came the fatal battle. - -Instead of remaining at Mousehold, where a strong resistance might have -been made, the rebels decided to march out boldly from their camp and -meet the king’s army in the open country that lay between Mousehold -Heath and the city. An old song was recalled, which, it seemed, -foretold victory in such a case: - - The country gnoffes (churls), Hob, Dick, and Rick, - With clubs and clouted shoon, - Shall fill the vale - Of Dussindale - With slaughtered bodies soon. - -But the country churls were to be the slaughtered, and not the -slaughterers. - -Warwick marched out by the north-east gate of St. Martin-at-the-Oak, -and for the last time a herald promised pardon to all who would -surrender. But the hangings in the market place had destroyed all -confidence in such proclamations, and the answer to the herald was that -they “perceived this pardon to be nothing else but a cask full of ropes -and halters.” - -Ket’s judgment failed him utterly on that last day of the rising. On -the strength of an irrelevant old song he allowed his army to go to its -doom unchecked, and at the very time when good generalship was wanted -above all other things, Robert Ket seems to have lost his nerve, and to -have been struck by some paralysis of the will, as though conscious of -impending ruin. - -The peasants poured down into the valley, and into the meadows beyond -Magdalen and Pockthorp Gates, and fought with desperate courage, -but they were simply cut to pieces by the professional soldiery. At -four o’clock in the afternoon it was all over, the defeat utter and -complete, and Robert Ket and his brother were in flight. - -The remains of the rebel army laid down their arms, when Warwick -himself offered pardon in the king’s name to those who would surrender. - -The rising was at an end. The foreign mercenaries of the crown had -triumphed over English peasants. Robert Ket was taken the same night -at Swannington, eight miles north of Norwich. He had ridden away from -the battle when the field was lost, but horse and rider were too tired -to proceed further. Taking refuge in a barn, he was recognized by some -men unloading a wagon of corn and seized. The farmer’s wife “rated him -for his conduct, but he only prayed her to be quiet, and to give him -meat.” That same night William Ket was taken, and the two brothers were -delivered to the lord lieutenant of the county, and by him carried to -London to be tried for their lives. - -At Mousehold Warwick proved the worth of the pardons he had given -by first having nine of the bravest of the peasants hanged, drawn, -and quartered under the Oak of Reformation, and distributing their -bodies in the city; and then by hanging 300 prisoners on trees, and -then forty-nine more at the Market Cross in Norwich. The country -gentlemen of Norfolk, backed by their wealthier citizens, called for -more executions, till Warwick turned with disgust from the vindictive -clamour of these bloodthirsty civilians, and pointed out in impatient -reproof that no one would be left “to plough and harrow over the lands” -if all the peasants were massacred. - -And now the king’s authority having been re-established, a public -service of thanksgiving was held in the church of St. Peter, Mancroft, -and August 27th was ordered to be observed henceforth as “Thanksgiving -Day” in Norwich. (This was done by prayers and sermon until 1667. -In the grammar school, during Elizabeth’s reign, an account of the -rising--_De Furoribus Norfolciensum_, written in Latin by Nevylle, and -violently anti-popular in expression--was ordered to be used as a text -book in place of the usual classics, and was so used for some years.) - -On September 7th Warwick returned to London.[103] In November Robert -and William Ket, after lying in the Tower for two months, were brought -to trial. They offered no defence for what they had done: for having -borne arms without the king’s permission, and for having striven to -stop the robbery and oppression of the peasant without the authority of -king and parliament. - -On November 26th they were found guilty of high treason, their property -confiscated, and they were condemned to death. On November 29th they -were delivered out of the custody of the Tower to the high sheriff of -Norfolk, and on December 1st the Kets were again in Norwich. - -It was winter, and hope was dead. The last great rising of the English -peasantry had failed, crushed without pity, and the leaders of the -army of revolt, who had judged it better to give up ease and worldly -honour rather than acquiesce dumbly in the enslavement of their -poorer neighbours, were to die as traitors.[104] On December 7th the -executions were carried out, and Robert Ket was hanged in chains -outside Norwich Castle, while William Ket was taken to Wymondham (where -he held the manor of Chossell--Church lands, bought years earlier from -the Earl of Warwick), and there hanged in chains from the parish church. - -The property of the Kets was duly taken by the servants of the crown, -and the bodies of the rebel leaders swung in the wind--to remind -unthinking men of the reward of rebellion, of the fate of all who -challenge, without success, the arms of government. - -The Norfolk Rising was the last great movement of the English people -in social revolt. Riots we have known even in our times, and mob -violence, but no such rising as those led by Wat Tyler, by Cade, and -by Ket has England seen since the year 1549. - -The country people sunk into hopeless poverty and permanent degradation -under Edward VI. and Elizabeth, and with the rejection by the -government of papal authority, the supremacy of the crown and of the -ministers of the crown was established. - -In the nineteenth century, when the working people in town and country -once more bestirred themselves at the call of freedom, their wiser -leaders advised political and not revolutionary methods of action, and -the advice has been followed. - -But if the year 1549 marks the end of organized democratic resistance -to intolerable misgovernment, the coming centuries were to see the rise -of the middle class with the insistent demand for the predominance of -that class in the parliament of the nation, and the incurable belief -that in a popularly elected House of Commons resided all the safeguards -of civil and religious liberty. - - - - -Eliot, Hampden, Pym, and the Supremacy of the Commons. - -1625–1643 - - -AUTHORITIES: S. R. Gardiner--_History of England_, _History of -Great Civil War_, _History of Commonwealth and Protectorate_; -Clarendon--_History of the Great Rebellion_;, John Forster--_Life -of Sir John Eliot_, _Life of Hampden_, _Life of Pym_, _The Grand -Remonstrance_, _Arrest of the Five Members_; Nugent--_Memorials for -Life of Hampden_; _Calendar of State Papers_; _House of Commons’ -Journals_. - -[Illustration: SIR JOHN ELIOT - -(_From a Steel Engraving by William Holl._)] - - - - -ELIOT, HAMPDEN, PYM, AND THE SUPREMACY OF THE COMMONS. - -1625–1643 - - -John Eliot, John Hampden, John Pym--by the work of these men comes the -supremacy of the House of Commons in the government of England. - -All three are country gentlemen of good estate, of high principle -and of some learning.[105] They are men of religious convictions, of -courage and resolution, and of blameless personal character. Two of -them--Eliot and Hampden--are content to die for the cause of good -government. - -The strong rule of Elizabeth left a difficult legacy of government to -James I. The despotism of the queen had been forgiven in the success -of her State policy; and if she had no high opinion of parliament, -Elizabeth had ministers who fairly represented the mind of the English -middle class. Elizabeth’s absolutism in Church and State was the direct -following of Henry VIII., and only at the very close of her reign was -it threatened by the discontent of parliament. With a shrewd instinct -for popularity Elizabeth at once yielded. Like her father, she saw the -importance of retaining parliament on the side of the crown and making -it the instrument of the royal will. There was no idea in the Tudor -mind of parliament sharing the government with the crown. The business -of the House of Commons of Elizabeth was to express its opinion and -then decree the proposals of the crown. “Liberty of speech was granted -in respect of the aye or no, but not that everybody should speak what -he listed.” (1592.) - -In religion Elizabeth had done her worst to exterminate the Roman -Catholic faith, and by the fierceness of her persecution had kindled -undying enthusiasm for the old beliefs and worship. But forty years -of repression did their work, and a generation arose which only -knew Catholicism as the faith of a proscribed and unpatriotic sect, -who denied the absolute sovereignty of the crown and had another -sovereign at Rome--the religion of Spain--popery, in short: a -faith worse than Mahomedanism or heathenism--the scarlet woman of -the Apocalypse--according to the fierce Puritan expounders of the -Bible, and not to be counted as Christianity. That this very Roman -Catholicism--so hateful because the penal laws kept it hidden and -unknown, and because it was the religion of Spain, then the national -enemy--had been the religion of all England for centuries, and that -under it the earliest charters of public liberty had been wrung -from the crown, and the principle of a representative parliament -established, were facts uncontemplated. - -But Elizabeth, while persecuting Roman Catholics, had left in the Book -of Common Prayer of the Church of England a sanction for ceremonial -and for episcopal ordination, and a body of doctrine which were to be -interpreted under the Stuarts by certain Anglican divines as witnesses -to Catholicism. Such interpretation was to be found in Elizabeth’s -reign as a pious opinion. With Laud it was an active principle, and -it brought him to the scaffold. The Elizabethan bishops in the main -were thoroughly Protestant, the queen was the head of the Church of -England, and the ritual of the Church prescribed by her was reduced to -a simplicity that average Protestants could accept. - -If Elizabeth burnt anabaptists and hanged other nonconformists, her -excuse was that the Church of England was sufficiently Protestant -to include all well-affected persons. The extreme Puritans whom she -persecuted had this in common with the Roman Catholics, that neither -accepted the absolute supremacy of the crown, and the best Puritan -teaching in England, even when it counselled conformity to the -Established Church, was creating a mind and temper that only found -expression in the Commonwealth. - -James I. came to the throne in 1603 prepared to carry on the Tudor -absolutism. He failed because he had neither Elizabeth’s ministers nor -her knowledge of the English country landowners. James never realised -that Spain was the popular enemy, that a discontent had suddenly grown -up in parliament in the last years of Elizabeth’s reign, and that the -English landowners--in many cases from their inherited possession of -the old Church lands--were generally bitterly hostile to the Roman -Catholic religion. James was tolerant in religion, and not inclined to -press Elizabeth’s penal laws against Roman Catholics, and this very -toleration brought him under the dislike of the country party. He -thought he could disregard the opinion of parliament and he found that -while a House of Commons submitted to a despotism when the country was -governed by a strong queen, it would not put up with the follies and -extravagance of the Duke of Buckingham. - -James died before the strength of the growing movement for -parliamentary government was seen. Charles who was no more tyrannical -than his father, but even more blind to the signs of the times, fell -before that parliamentary movement--a movement which outraged all -the traditions of Tudor government--and with his fall brought down -the throne, the House of Lords, and the Established Church. By his -inability to understand the House of Commons, by his support of the -Anglican movement towards Catholicism in the Church of England, and -by the mistakes of his ministers, Charles ripened the desire for -constitutional monarchy till the desire was irresistible. - -John Eliot gave forcible utterance to this desire, and died in prison -for his speech. John Pym carried on the work till the sword of civil -war was drawn. John Hampden, “the noblest type of parliamentary -opposition,” was content to back Pym as he had earlier backed Eliot, -and to die on Chalgrove Field. Brought up to regard as an alien creed -the old belief in papal supremacy in religion, unable to accept the new -doctrine of the Church of England that the king was supreme by divine -right (a doctrine begotten by the Tudors and dying with the Stuarts), -Eliot, Hampden, and Pym were all of the same Puritan type which found -its authority in the individual conscience. - -Eliot was less afflicted than his colleagues by the theological -Protestantism of the age.[106] First and last he was the -straightforward country gentleman, with exalted views on the sacred -responsibility of civil government, and a high standard of personal -honour. For Eliot there was no nobler sphere of work for an Englishman -than the House of Commons, and his example has not been without -followers. Seneca and Cicero are on his lips, as the later Puritans -had the Bible on theirs, and his eloquence marks the beginning of -parliamentary oratory. With a strong and clear view of constitutional -government, Eliot was no republican; he held to the notion that the -king must depend on the decisions of parliament. Time was to show that -this notion, in the event of a collision between king and parliament, -was to make parliament the predominant partner. - -On his first entry into the House of Commons as member for St. Germans, -in 1614, Eliot was the friend of Buckingham--whom he had met as a youth -abroad--and on Buckingham’s rise to the lord high admiralship Eliot was -knighted and became vice-admiral of Devon. - -The fidelity of his service to the State as vice-admiral brought an -unpleasant experience of the will of princes. Grappling with the -scourge of piracy which afflicted the seaports and shipping trade -of the West of England, Eliot accomplished the arrest of Nutt, a -notorious sea-robber. But Nutt had friends in high places, and Eliot -found himself lodged in the Marshalsea prison over the business. He was -released on Buckingham’s return from the continent, for the charges -were absurd, and in 1624 returned to the House of Commons as member for -Newport. Two years later Eliot was estranged from Buckingham--convinced -that the favourite of the king was an evil counsellor--and had become -the recognized leader of the House of Commons. Once assured in his -mind that Buckingham was responsible for the policy of the king, -Eliot became his implacable opponent. For the policy of the crown in -not making war upon Spain, in relaxing the penal laws against Roman -Catholics, and for the mismanagement of the war on the continent in -support of the Protestants, Eliot held Buckingham responsible. In -answer to the demand of Charles for money in 1626, Eliot insisted -that an inquiry into past disasters should precede supply, and that -Buckingham should be impeached. Not the king but his minister is to -blame, Eliot maintained, for all that was wrong in the State, and -this very speech strikes the note of the campaign that was beginning. -Buckingham was not responsible to Charles alone, in the eyes of Eliot -and his friends, but also to parliament.[107] - -Charles, quite unable to fathom the depth of the parliamentary -discontent, or to note the strength of the current against absolutism, -fell back upon the old Tudor doctrine of sovereignty, the doctrine of -the high Anglican party in the Church of England, that the king was -responsible for his acts to God alone. “Parliaments are altogether in -my calling,” he replies to the House of Commons. - -Only twenty-five years had passed since Bacon had declared, “the Queen -hath both enlarging and restraining power: she may set at liberty -things restrained by Statute, and may restrain things which be at -liberty.” Twenty-three years more were to see monarchy abolished and -the king beheaded. Eliot, standing midway between Bacon and Bradshaw, -cleaves to the theory of constitutional government and persists in the -impeachment of a minister in whom parliament had no confidence. - -The prologue of impeachment declared in the plainest language the -responsibility of the king’s ministers to parliament, and the -responsibility of parliament to the nation: “The laws of England -have taught us that kings cannot command ill or unlawful things, and -whatsoever ill event succeed, the executioners of such designs must -answer for them.” - -And now the issue was fairly set, and the battle begun between Charles -and the House of Commons. In that year, 1626, no man in England could -foretell the result. - -Charles, ill-advised to the end, believed he could overawe the Commons -by a display of might, and was beaten. Twice he had Eliot arrested -before the final imprisonment which ended Eliot’s life. - -The loyalty of the House of Commons to its leader compelled Charles -to release Eliot, after sending him to the Tower for his attack on -Buckingham. Then dissolving parliament in June, 1626, and falling back -on a forced loan, the king was met by wide refusals, and Eliot, with -Hampden and others, suffered imprisonment over this. Eliot was also -deprived of his vice-admiralship and struck off the roll of justices of -the peace. - -Driven to call a parliament for the third time in 1628, the king was -faced by a stronger opposition than ever. - -Eliot, now member for Cornwall, throughout the session continued the -attack on arbitrary taxation, and with the lawyers Seldon and Coke -carried the Petition of Right to stop the illegal imprisonments, the -enforced billeting of soldiers, and forced loans. Buckingham, slain -at Portsmouth, no longer troubled the commonwealth; but Wentworth, -ambitious to use his powers in the service of the government, had left -the popular side for the king; while Laud, and Weston, the chancellor -of the exchequer, were daily preaching to Charles the divine right of -kings and to his subjects the duty of passive obedience. - -The following year both Eliot and Pym attacked the ecclesiastical -policy of Laud. To them the established religion of England, settled -on the Protestant basis by Elizabeth, was being definitely changed -in a Catholic direction without the sanction of parliament, and in -the very teeth of the opposition of the House of Commons. High-church -clergymen, like Montague and Mainwaring, holding to the full a Catholic -interpretation of the Book of Common Prayer, were only censured by the -House of Commons to be promoted by the crown. Laud preaching a royal -supremacy undreamt of by the great archbishops before Henry VIII., -combined with it a doctrine of ecclesiastical independence, owning no -allegiance to Rome, equally novel. - -Eliot, stoical in his beliefs, and Pym, whose Calvinism was tempered -by common sense, regarded with horror the revival in the Church of -England of Catholic doctrines concerning the sacraments and the -priesthood. They had done what they could to check any indulgence to -Roman Catholics in England, and it was monstrous to them that the -Church of England, whose formularies and ritual had been defined by -parliament for the maintenance of Protestantism, should be expanded to -reintroduce doctrines and practices essentially Catholic. But for the -time the House of Commons was powerless in the matter, and only sixteen -years later was Laud to expiate on the scaffold his Anglo-Catholicism, -dying a veritable martyr for the high Anglican doctrine. “None have -gone about to break parliaments but in the end parliaments have broken -them,” declared Eliot on March 2nd, 1629, and Laud, no less than -Charles and Wentworth, was to prove the truth of the warning. - -If parliament could do nothing in that year, 1629, to stop Laud’s -policy, it could at least defend the privileges of its members. The -goods of John Rolle, M.P., had been seized by the king’s officers -because their owner had refused to pay tonnage and poundage on demand, -and at once Eliot was up in arms in defence of the privileges of his -fellow member, whose liberties had been interfered with. - -Pym was for a wider view of the matter--objecting to the question -being narrowed down to a breach of privilege. “The liberties of this -House,” he argued, “are inferior to the liberties of this kingdom. To -determine the privilege of this House is but a mean matter, and the -main end is to establish possession of the subjects, and to take off -the commission and records and orders that are against us.” With Pym it -was not Rolle, the member, who had been ill-used, but Rolle the British -subject, and it was for the liberties of the subject he strove, holding -the freedom of parliament as but a means to that end. - -Eliot, a House of Commons man, through and through, saw in the welfare -of parliament the welfare of the nation, and stuck to his point, -carrying the House with him, that the privileges of a member extended -to his goods. To this Charles sent word that what had been done had -been done by his authority. The only question now was, how long would -it be before the king dissolved parliament. - -On the second of March, when the House met, the speaker’s first -word was that the king had ordered an adjournment till the tenth, -and that no business could be transacted. Eliot insisted on moving -his resolutions, and the speaker was held down in his chair. Then -the serjeant-at-arms attempted to remove the mace, and was promptly -stopped, while the key of the House was turned from within. - -Eliot moved his declaration, beginning with the famous words: “By the -ancient laws and liberties of England, it is the known birthright and -inheritance of the subject, that no tax, tallage, or other charge shall -be levied or imposed but by common consent in England; and that the -subsidies of tonnage and poundage are no way due or payable but by a -free gift and special act of parliament.” - -The resolutions were carried with loud shouts of assent, two members -guarding the speaker, and the door was flung open; the sitting was over. - -A royal proclamation for dissolving parliament followed on the fourth -of March, and Eliot, with eight other members, was summoned to appear -before the Privy Council. - -From the hour of that summons John Eliot’s liberty was over, and not -for eleven years was England to have another parliament. - -For the fourth time Eliot was a prisoner. He declined altogether to -give an account of what he had said in parliament, or to acknowledge -any right of interference with the proceedings in parliament. To the -crown lawyers his reply was to stand on the privileges of a member of -the House of Commons. “I refuse to answer,” he said, “because I hold -that it is against the privilege of parliament to speak of anything -which is done in the House.” He insisted that he was accountable to -the House alone, and that no other power existed with a constitutional -right to inquire into his conduct there. - -At the end of October Eliot was removed from the Tower to the -Marshalsea, and then in January, 1630, he was charged in the King’s -Bench with two other members, Holles and Valentine, with conspiring to -resist the king’s lawful order, to calumniate ministers of the crown, -and to assault the speaker. Again Eliot refused to acknowledge the -jurisdiction. He was fined £2,000, and sent back to the Tower. - -To the last Eliot’s loyalty to the House of Commons remained unshaken. -He had but to acknowledge that he had done wrong, to admit that he had -offended, and the prison doors would have opened to him. But to make -this acknowledgment was to deny the sacred liberty of parliament, -to admit wrong was to betray the House of Commons. To John Eliot the -welfare of the House of Commons was a national cause--dearer than life. -To betray its honour was to betray the State. The loyalty of John Eliot -to the House of Commons was interwoven with his devotion to the State, -but it was something England had never seen before, and never saw -again. “He learned to believe, as no other man believed before or after -him, in the representatives of the nation.” (Gardiner.) - -The character and temperament of Eliot must be taken into account -in understanding this passionate belief in the House of Commons. It -was not as a great thinker but as a great orator he had risen to the -leadership of the House of Commons. He saw in his mind, as no other man -saw at the time, a perfectly balanced constitution of king, lords, and -commons. In parliament was the best wisdom of the country placed at the -service of the crown. In the crown was the appointed ruler who, with -his ministers, had but to come to parliament for advice and counsel. -So it seemed to John Eliot; and single-minded himself, he could not -realise that in the House of Commons were plenty of men of but passing -honesty, and that Charles and Laud and Wentworth were fundamentally -opposed to his views of constitutional government, and bitterly hostile -to the growing powers of the commons.[108] - -[Illustration: JOHN PYM - -(_From an Engraving by Jacob Houbraken._)] - -Months passed, and John Eliot’s health gave way in the confinement in -the Tower, but his steadfastness was unchanged. He corresponded with -his friend John Hampden, wrote his treatise on the _Monarchy of Man_, -and calmly awaited his end. An application on behalf of his friends -and his son for Eliot’s release was made in October, 1622, on the -ground that “the doctors were of opinion he could never recover of his -consumption until such time as he might breathe in purer air.” The -reply of Chief Justice Richardson was “that, although Sir John were -brought low in body, yet was he as high and lofty in mind as ever; for -he would neither submit to the king nor to the justice of that court.” - -On November 27th, 1632, the spirit of John Eliot, unbroken by -captivity, passed from the body his gaolers had deprived of life. A -last appeal from his son to the king for the removal of his father’s -body into Cornwall, there to lie with those of his ancestors at Port -Eliot, received the curt refusal, “Let Sir John Eliot’s body be buried -in the church of the parish where he died.” And so he was buried in the -Tower, and no stone marks the spot where he lies. - -John Eliot was but forty-two when he laid down his life for the -principle of parliamentary government. - -Any satisfaction that might have been felt by Charles and Laud at the -death of the foremost antagonist to their policy of absolutism was -fleeting. For if Eliot was dead, the cause he had championed with such -conspicuous sincerity and courage was alive, and John Hampden and John -Pym were at hand to carry on the fight till Cromwell and his Ironsides -were ready to end the battle. - -Charles was determined that, until the commons should be more -submissive, he would call no parliament, but would govern through his -ministers alone. The difficulty was to find money. - -In 1634 London and the seaports were persuaded to furnish supplies -for ships on the pretext that piracy must be prevented. A year later -and the demand was extended to the inland counties, and John Hampden, -taking his stand on the Petition of Right which Charles had granted -in 1628, declined to pay. Ten out of twelve of the king’s judges had -decided that ship-money might be enforced if the kingdom appeared to -be in danger, but against this declared legality there was the decree -of parliament forbidding forced loans or taxes without parliamentary -sanction. - -On this resistance of the ship-money Hampden’s fame has been chiefly -built up. The amount was small--only a matter of some twenty -shillings--the issue was of a first importance. It was clear to Hampden -that if the king could raise money by such methods, what need would -there be in the royal mind for the calling of parliament at all? The -question was forced upon him: Was parliament an essential part of the -constitution? The judges had declared ship-money was legal, other -taxation and forced loans could easily find justification on the -judicial bench, and thus the crown obtain its revenue, and England -ruled without any let or hindrance from its citizens. To admit the -position was to see the work of centuries undone, and the old contest -in the land for liberties in return for taxes abandoned. - -Hampden’s refusal to pay ship-money was a declaration for parliamentary -government. No more a republican than Eliot or Pym, Hampden could see -that either crown or parliament must be supreme in the affairs of -the nation.[109] The constitution was not to be balanced so evenly -as Eliot had believed. Eliot himself had been deprived of life for -maintaining, not the supremacy but the liberty of parliament. For John -Hampden the evils of royal supremacy were obvious and present: misrule, -the restoration of a religion banished by authority of crown and -parliament, and disliked and feared by the majority of serious-minded -people in the country, and the imprisonment of all who claimed the old -freedom of parliament. - -The case was decided against him in the law courts, but five of the -twelve judges supported Hampden’s contention that the resistance to -payment was valid, and the arguments for his defence were published -far and wide. “The judgment proved of more advantage and credit to the -gentleman condemned than to the king’s service.”[110] - -Three years later, and Charles was forced to summon parliament to get -money for his war in Scotland--the “Bishop’s War,” perhaps the most -hopeless of all his ventures. - -Parliament met in April, and its temper was so unfavourable to the -desires of the king, for the forcible conversion of the Scots to -episcopacy, that it was dissolved in three weeks. John Pym was notable -in that “Short Parliament” as the spokesman of the aggrieved country -party, and the commons decided that the grievances of the nation -must be considered before supplies were voted. The Scotch war was -intolerable to Pym and Hampden. They had no objection to episcopacy as -long as bishops were men of Protestant convictions. It was Laud the -“Anglo-Catholic,” Laud the preacher of the divine right of kings, not -Laud the Archbishop of Canterbury, whom they detested, and they had no -relish for the expenditure of English life and treasure in the forcing -of Laudian doctrine on Protestant Scotland. - -In the long eleven years of silence from the utterance of parliament -things had been going steadily from bad to worse in England, Pym -made out. Naturally conservative in mind, seeing in the constitution -of king and parliament an admirable instrument of government, and -in the Established Church of England an excellent expression of the -Protestant religion, Pym had found that with parliament suspended the -Protestantism of the Established Church had been steadily undermined by -Laud’s policy, and the revival of some estranged Catholic doctrines and -practices had proceeded apace. Without parliament there was no security -for national well-being. “Powers of parliament are to the body politic -as rational faculties of the soul to man,” he declares in April, 1640. - -Pym had entered the House of Commons with Eliot in 1614, and had -been imprisoned in that year for his boldness. In 1620 he had been -one of the “twelve ambassadors” to James I., for whom that king had -ordered chairs to be set in Whitehall. With Eliot and Hampden he -had pressed for Buckingham’s impeachment and for the Petition of -Right. Now in 1640, John Pym, in his fifty-sixth year, was about to -become the accredited leader of the parliamentary party, to be called -“King Pym” by his enemies at the court, and to pass away when the -long constitutional struggle was being settled on the field of civil -war. Unimaginative, and averse from new ideas, Pym had a quite clear -perception of the business of the House of Commons, and of the fitting -relations of king and parliament. The crown, the lords, the commons -were all recognized and necessary elements in the constitution, but -their importance was not equal. The collective assembly of parliament -had prevailed over the crown more than once; to Pym, the Laudian -“divine right” was a novelty, and nonsense at that. Parliament could do -much of its work with or without royal approval, and of the two Houses, -if the Lords were unwilling to work with the lower House, the Commons -could “save the kingdom alone.” - -In the autumn Charles was driven again to appeal to parliament, and -in November, 1640, the “Long Parliament” met, only to be dissolved -thirteen years later by the arms of Cromwell. To the eleven years -of “personal government” by Charles succeed thirteen years of -parliamentary government, and then the House of Commons, now too -enfeebled to endure, itself goes down before a military dictatorship. - -Pym anticipated the coming struggle by riding over England on the eve -of the elections to the Long Parliament and urging the electors to -return men to the House of Commons resolute and alive to the crisis. -The response was unmistakable. Parliament assembled to find some remedy -for the distresses of the country before voting any money for the -purposes of the crown. Enormous numbers of petitions were presented, -and the House of Commons appointed its committees to attend to and -report on the complaints.[111] - -Before the year closed the House of Commons had struck at the power of -Laud and Wentworth (now the Earl of Strafford), and the two ministers -lay in prison impeached for high treason. Windebank, Charles’s -secretary of state, and Finch, the chancellor, were already fled over -seas. - -It was Pym who went to the bar of the House of Lords to summon -Strafford to surrender, and it was Pym who opened the charge of -impeachment the following March. As in Eliot’s time, Hampden is content -to be overshadowed by his friend, though his was the greater influence -in the House. - -Clarendon has given us his view of Hampden at the opening of the Long -Parliament: - - When this parliament began the eyes of all men were fixed upon - him, as their _patriae pater_, and the pilot that must steer - the vessel through the tempests and rocks which threatened it. - I am persuaded his power and interest at that time were greater - to do good or hurt than any man’s in the kingdom, or than any - man of his rank hath had in any time; for his reputation of - honesty was universal, and his affections seemed so publicly - guided, that no corrupt or private ends could bias them. - -Baxter, it may be recalled, had written in the _Saints’ Rest_ that -one of the pleasures which he hoped to enjoy in heaven was the society -of John Hampden. The name of Hampden was blotted out in the copies -published after the Restoration. “But,” wrote Baxter, “I must tell -the reader that I did blot it out, not as changing my opinion of the -person.” - -The work of Pym and Hampden is conspicuous at the beginning of the Long -Parliament. The Star Chamber and High Commission Courts are abolished. -Ship-money and all enforced taxation unauthorised by parliament are -declared illegal. Oliver Cromwell’s motion for annual parliaments is -amended into an act for triennial parliaments to be called with or -without royal summons. Strafford--the only strong minister Charles -had--perished on Tower Hill in May, both Pym and Hampden supporting -impeachment instead of attainder, and voting for the fallen minister -to be allowed the use of counsel at his trial. That Strafford was a -criminal and a traitor ready to use his Irish army for the suppression -of the English parliament Pym had no doubt. - -Still Charles would not admit the position lost, and still struggled -to govern, not through parliament, but by personal rule. The death of -Strafford, though approved by all supporters of the House of Commons, -rallied the king’s friends. The House of Lords was no longer quite at -one with the Commons in the contest. In the House of Commons a royalist -party emerges to oppose Pym, and the beginning of party government -is seen. Overtures are made by Pym to the queen--to be disregarded, -of course; though the tide is setting towards revolution, yet Pym -and Hampden are far from revolutionaries. They are willing to end -the political power of the bishops by turning them out of the House -of Lords, but have only moderate sympathy with the root-and-branch -Puritans who would abolish episcopacy. - -In the Grand Remonstrance which Pym laid before the House of Commons in -November, 1641, the case for the Parliament was stated with frankness, -but the demands were not revolutionary. The main points were securities -for the administration of justice, and insistence on the responsibility -of the king’s ministers to parliament. The royalists fought the -Remonstrance vigorously, and in the end it was only carried by a -majority of eleven, 159 to 148. At the end of the debate the excitement -was intense: “some waved their hats over their heads, and others took -their swords in their scabbards out of their belts, and held them by -the pummels in their hands, setting the lower part on the ground.” -Violence seemed inevitable, “had not the sagacity and great calmness of -Mr. Hampden, by a short speech, prevented it.” - -On the 1st of December the Remonstrance, with a petition for the -removal of grievances, especially in matters of religion, was presented -to the king at Hampton Court. “Charles had now a last chance of -regaining the affection of his people. If he could have resolved to -give his confidence to the leaders of the moderate party in the House -of Commons, and to regulate his proceedings by their advice, he might -have been, not, indeed, as he had been, a despot, but the powerful and -respected king of a free people. The nation might have enjoyed liberty -and repose under a government with Falkland at its head, checked by -a constitutional opposition under the conduct of Hampden. It was -not necessary that, in order to accomplish this happy end, the king -should sacrifice any part of his lawful prerogative, or submit to any -conditions inconsistent with his dignity.” So Macaulay wrote. But the -days of “governments” and “constitutional oppositions” were far off in -1641, and only the germ of party government is seen in the division of -the House of Commons. To “submit to any conditions” from parliament was -inconsistent with the king’s notions of royal dignity, fostered by Laud -to reject all criticisms as denials of the absolutism of the crown. - -Charles promised an answer to the deputation which waited on him, -and the answer was seen on January 3, 1642, when the king’s attorney -appeared at the bar of the Lords, impeached Pym, Hampden, Holles, -Strode, and Hazlerig of high treason, in having corresponded with the -Scots for the invasion of England, and demanded the surrender of the -five members. “All constitutional law was set aside by a charge which -proceeded personally from the king, which deprived the accused of their -legal right to a trial by their peers, and summoned them before a -tribunal which had no pretence to a jurisdiction over them.” - -The House of Commons simply declined to surrender their members, but -promised to take the matter into consideration. - -Then Charles, with some three hundred cavaliers, went to Westminster, -and entered the House of Commons to demand the accused. But the five -members, warned of his coming, were out of the way and safe within the -city of London. “It was believed that if the king had found them there, -and called in his guards to have seized them, the members of the House -would have endeavoured the defence of them, which might have proved a -very unhappy and sad business.” As it was, the king could only retire -discomfited, with some words about respecting the laws of the realm and -the privileges of parliament, and “in a more discontented and angry -passion than he came in.” - -The invasion of the Commons was the worst move Charles could have made, -for parliament was in no temper favourable to royal encroachments, and -it had a large population at hand ready to give substantial support. -The city of London at once declared for the House of Commons, ignored -the king’s writs for the arrest of the five members, and answered the -royal proclamation declaring them “traitors” by calling out the trained -bands for the escort of the members back to Westminster, and for the -protection of the House of Commons. - -Falkland and the royalist members turned for the moment from Charles at -his unexpected attack on the House, the cavaliers of Whitehall, menaced -by the trained bands from Southwark and the city, fled, and Charles, -standing alone, left London. - -War was now imminent. Pym and Hampden at once prepared for the struggle. - -Pym secured the arsenals of Portsmouth and Hull for the parliament, -but his efforts to obtain the control of the militia in the counties -were frustrated for a time by the king’s natural refusal to consent to -the Militia Bill, which would have placed troops under the orders of -country gentlemen of the parliamentary party. - -Both king and parliament had to break through all constitutional -precedent. The king levied troops by a royal commission, and Pym -got an ordinance of both Houses of Parliament passed appointing the -lords-lieutenant to command the militia, and thereby published the -supremacy of parliament over the crown. In April the king appeared at -Hull to obtain arms, and was refused admission to the town by Sir John -Hotham, the governor. Parliament expressed its approval of Hotham’s -act, the royalists gathered round Charles at York, and the final -proposals of parliament for ending absolute monarchy were rejected by -the king in June with the words, “If I granted your demands I should be -no more than the mere phantom of a king.”[112] - -With this refusal all negotiations were broken off. Essex was appointed -commander of the parliamentary army, and in August Charles raised the -royal standard at Nottingham, and war was begun. - -Hampden threw himself vigorously into the campaign. From his native -county of Buckingham, the county which made him its representative in -parliament in 1640, he raised a regiment of infantry. “His neighbours -eagerly enlisted under his command. His men were known by their green -uniform, and by their standard, which bore on one side the watchword -of the parliament, ‘God with us,’ and on the other the device of -Hampden, ‘_Vestigia nulla retrorsum_.’” In the first stages of the war, -before any decisive blow had been struck, Hampden was busy passing and -repassing between the army and the parliament. Clarendon praises his -courage and ability on the field. - -A skirmish at Chalgrove, on June 18th, 1643, between bodies of horse -commanded by Rupert and by Hampden, ended in victory for the royalists. -Hampden was seen riding off the field, “before the action was done, -which he never used to do, and with his head hanging down, and resting -his hands upon the neck of his horse.” He was mortally wounded, for two -carbine balls were lodged in his shoulder, and reached Thame only to -die six days later. - -The death of Hampden--at the age of 49--came at a dark hour in the -early fortunes of the parliamentary army, and deepened the gloom. -“The loss of Colonel Hampden goeth near the heart of every man that -loves the good of his king and country, and makes some conceive little -content to be at the army now that he is gone.” But Pym remained, and -Cromwell and Vane, and many another resolute House of Commons man. - -Pym’s health was already broken when Hampden fell, but he lived to -accomplish the alliance of the English Puritans and the Scotch army, -and, as the price of this alliance, the abolition of episcopacy and -the adoption of Presbyterianism in the Church of England. The Solemn -League and Covenant was accepted by parliament, and imposed on the -nation in September. Henceforth the parliamentary army was pledged to -extirpate “Popery, prelacy, superstition, schism and profaneness”; -to bring “the Churches of God in the three kingdoms to the nearest -conjunction and uniformity in religion”; to “preserve the rights and -privileges of the parliament and the liberties of the kingdom; and to -unite the two kingdoms in a firm peace and union to all posterity.” - -The taking of the covenant--a political necessity--was John Pym’s -last work. He was ten years older than Hampden, and his character -was ruggeder and sterner and without the charm of the younger man. -But Pym’s was the greater genius in politics, and his scheme of -constitutional government was to be fulfilled in England at a later -season. - -John Pym died on December 8th, 1643, and his body was buried in -Westminster Abbey--only to be turned out at the Restoration and removed -to St. Margaret’s churchyard. - -With Pym and Hampden gone, henceforth the conduct of parliament was in -other hands, and the day of moderate statesmanship had passed. - -The war undertaken to preserve the liberties and establish the -supremacy of the House of Commons was to bring in its train not only -the abolition of monarchy and the House of Lords, but the suppression -of the House of Commons itself. - -Important to the nation as the issues at stake were, most people in -England took hardly any more part or interest in the great civil war -than they had done in the Wars of the Roses. “A very large number of -persons regarded the struggle with indifference.... In one case, the -inhabitants of an entire county pledged themselves to remain neutral. -Many quietly changed with the times (as people changed with the varying -fortunes of York and Lancaster). That this sentiment of neutrality -was common to the greater mass of the working classes is obvious from -the simultaneous appearance of the club men in different parts of the -country, with their motto, ‘If you take our cattle, we will give you -battle.’”[113] - -How could it be otherwise? Supremacy of King, or supremacy of -Commons,--seed time and harvest remain, and the labourer and the -artizan must needs do their day’s work. - -Not till the deposing of the Stuarts--forty-five years after John -Hampden’s death--is the supremacy of parliament over the crown arrived -at by general consent, to become a recognized and settled thing in -British politics. By the middle of the nineteenth century the House of -Commons is unmistakably the ruling power in the constitution, and the -labours of Eliot, Hampden and Pym are vindicated. - -In our own day changes in the balance of constitutional power may be -noted. The supremacy of the House of Commons is quietly disappearing -before the growing popularity of the crown, the reawakened activity of -the House of Lords, and the steady gathering of the reins of power into -the hands of the Cabinet and Executive. As the crown in the last twenty -years has increased in popular esteem, so the influence and importance -of the Commons has waned in the country; and this waning influence of -the Lower House has been further diminished by the frequent rejection -and revision of its measures by the House of Lords. - -The power of the Executive has also been obtained at the expense of the -power of the Commons. The Cabinet, rather than the House of Commons, -holds the supremacy to-day, and the direction of foreign policy, and -the making of international treaties are no more within the authority -of the House of Commons than are the administration of Egypt and India. -Pym and Hampden fought and gave their lives for the right of the House -of Commons to control the ministers of the crown and to order the -policy of these ministers. By its own consent, and not from pressure -from without, the House of Commons has silently surrendered this right, -and has agreed that the policy of its Foreign Minister for the time -being--whether he be Liberal or Conservative--must not be subject to -reproof, still less to correction. In home affairs administrative order -steadily supersedes statute law. - -In theory ministers are still subject to the House of Commons. In -actual practice they can rely on not being interfered with as long as -their party has a majority in the House. When the price of effective -interference with the conduct of affairs is a defeat of the Cabinet -and a consequent dissolution, the payment is more than members of -parliament are prepared to make. - -Given the sense of security of social order and of the administration -of justice, the nation, generally, no more heeds the passing of the -supremacy from the House of Commons, than it heeded the winning of -that supremacy. - -The Laudian doctrine in the Church of England, revived at the -Restoration, disappeared with the passing of the non-jurors at the -close of the seventeenth century. But its Anglo-Catholic teaching was -renewed by the Oxford Movement, early in Queen Victoria’s reign, and -has largely changed the whole appearance of the Church of England. The -modern high Anglican, claiming, as Laud claimed, the right to interpret -the Book of Common Prayer as a Catholic document, but no longer the -advocate of any theory of divine right of kings, or the champion of any -particular political creed, has travelled indeed far beyond Laud’s very -limited success in winning support for Catholic doctrine and ritual in -the Church of England. Laud was beaten by the opposition of parliament; -his present day successors in the Church of England have prospered in -spite of that opposition, and have triumphed over acts of parliaments, -adverse judicial sentences, privations and imprisonments. But with Laud -the movement was directed by bishops and approved by the king, the -modern Laudian movement was banned by bishops and disfavoured by all in -high authority. - -To-day nearly every Catholic doctrine, save papal supremacy, has its -expounders and defenders in the Church of England, and Catholic rites -and ceremonies are freely practised. - -Laud, dying on the scaffold in 1645 at the hands of parliament, -is amply avenged in the twentieth century by the victorious -high-churchman. The Laudian clergy of the Established Church can now -maintain their Anglo-Catholic faith and practice, without any fear -of parliamentary interference. For generally they enjoy a popularity -and respect that the House of Commons does not willingly venture to -assail. - - - - -John Lilburne and the Levellers - -1647–1653 - - -AUTHORITIES: Lilburne’s Pamphlets; _Calendar of State Papers_; _Charles -I. and the Commonwealth_; _State Trials_; _House of Commons’ Journals_; -Whitelocke--_Memorials of English Affairs_; Clarendon--_History -of the Rebellion_; W. Godwin--_History of the Commonwealth_; S. -R. Gardiner--_History of the Great Civil War_; _History of the -Commonwealth and Protectorate_; G. P. Gooch--_History of Democratic -Ideas in the Seventeenth Century_. - - - - -JOHN LILBURNE AND THE LEVELLERS - -1647–1653. - - -From his coming of age in 1637 till the near approach of death, when he -turned, a dying man, to the peaceful tenets of the Quakers, the life of -John Lilburne is a record of twenty years of strife and battle with the -rulers of the land. - -He came of pugnacious stock, for John Lilburne’s father, a well-to-do -Durham squire, was the last man to demand the settlement of a lawsuit -by the ordeal of battle, and came into court armed accordingly--only -to be disappointed by an order from the crown, forbidding the proposed -return to such ancient and obsolete methods of deciding the differences -of neighbours. - -Apprenticed to a wholesale cloth-merchant in London, John Lilburne -soon became acquainted with Bastwick and Prynne, then busy over -anti-episcopal pamphlets, and, keeping such company, naturally fell -into the clutches of the Star Chamber. The charge against him was that -he had helped to print and circulate unlicensed books, in particular, -Prynne’s _News from Ipswich_; and though Lilburne declared the charge -to be false, on his refusal to take the usual oath to answer truly all -questions put to him, the Star Chamber adjudged him guilty, and passed -sentence--Lilburne was to be whipped from the Fleet to Westminster, to -stand in the pillory, and to be kept in prison. - -The sentence was carried out on February 13th, 1638, but Lilburne was -not cowed, for he scattered some of Bastwick’s offending pamphlets -on the road, and was gagged in the pillory to reduce him to silence. -In prison things went hardly with Lilburne, for the authorities had -him placed in irons and kept in solitary confinement, and only the -compassion of fellow prisoners saved him from actual starvation in the -two years and nine months of his imprisonment. - -It was a rough beginning, and John Lilburne was henceforth an agitator -and a rebel. - -At the end of 1640 one of the first things done by the Long Parliament -was to order Lilburne’s release, and in the following May the sentence -was pronounced “illegal and against the liberties of the subject.” But -illegal or not, the punishment had been inflicted, and with unbroken -spirit, passionately resenting the tyranny that could so wrong men, -Lilburne flew quickly to the attack on the authors of the injustice. - -At Edgehill Lilburne held a captain’s commission, and at Brentford he -was taken prisoner by the royalists. Only the threat of swift reprisals -by the parliamentary army saved him from being shot as “a traitor,” and -the following year he was again at liberty on an exchange of prisoners. -Again, after fighting at Marston Moor, he fell into the hands of the -royalists, and, shot through the arm, was kept in prison at Oxford for -six months. - -Brave soldier as Lilburne was, he left the army in 1645 (with the rank -of Lieutenant-Colonel and with £880 arrears of pay owing to him) -rather than take the covenant and subscribe to the requirements of -Cromwell’s “new model.” - -And now monarchy having fallen from its high estate, Lilburne at once -saw elements of tyranny in the Parliamentary government, and did not -hesitate to say so. Courageous and intrepid, with considerable legal -knowledge, a passion for liberty, and clear views on democracy, John -Lilburne might have given invaluable service to the commonwealth. He -had shown skill and daring in the war, his character for fearless -endurance had been proved, his ability as a pamphleteer was -considerable, and his capacity for work enormous; the government had -either to treat Lilburne as a friend or foe--he was not to be ignored. -The government, unwisely, decided Lilburne was an enemy, and for the -next ten years he fought the rule of parliament and the army, his -popularity increasing with every new pamphlet he produced. The price -the commonwealth government paid for its opposition to Lilburne was to -be seen on the death of Cromwell.[114] - -From 1645 to 1649 Lilburne’s vigorous criticisms of the men in power -provoked retaliation, and brought him to Newgate. But in prison or out -of prison Lilburne went on hammering away to establish a democratic -constitution. The time was to come when Cromwell would find the Long -Parliament had outlived its usefulness and would end it by main force. -Lilburne was anxious in 1647 for a radical reform of parliament and a -general manhood suffrage. His proposals were popular in the army, and -had Cromwell supported him the whole future of English politics would -have been changed. - -When the Presbyterian majority in parliament proposed the disbandment -of the army in 1647, the regiments chose their agitators, and, refusing -to disband, drew up the “Agreement of the People” and the “Case for the -Army.” These documents give the political standpoint of the Levellers -and the particular grievances to be remedied. - -The distribution of parliamentary seats according to the number of -inhabitants was the chief proposal in the “Agreement of the People,” -and the principles maintained are that “no man is bound to a government -under which he has not put himself,” and that “all inhabitants who have -not lost their birthright should have an equal voice in elections.” - -The particular demands in the “Case for the Army” were the abolition -of monopolies, freedom of trade and religion, restoration of enclosed -common lands, and abolition of sinecures. - -While Cromwell and Ireton were both bitterly against manhood suffrage, -the council of officers to whom the Levellers appealed agreed to -support it, without approving the rest of the programme. - -Cromwell, relying on the army to prevent a royalist reaction--for -Charles was plotting from Carisbrooke for aid from Scotland, and -the royalists in the House of Commons were anxious to effect a -reconciliation--would give neither time nor patience to the demands of -Lilburne and the Levellers. - -In vain the Levellers exclaimed, in 1648, “We were ruled before -by King, Lords, and Commons, now by a General, Court Martial, and -Commons: and, we pray you, what is the difference?” Cromwell, at all -costs, was determined to preserve the discipline of the army, and to -suppress mutiny with an iron hand. For him the army which had beaten -the cavaliers was the one safeguard against the return of the old -order in Church and State. Lilburne and the Levellers, with the “Fifth -Monarchy” men, had been the strength, the very life of the army that -had conquered at Marston Moor and Naseby. The petition of the Fifth -Monarchy men for the reign of Christ and His saints (which, according -to prophecy, was to supersede the four monarchies of the ancient -world) had no terrors for Cromwell; in other words, they demanded -government exclusively by the godly, Independents and Presbyterians -combining to elect all representatives, “and to determine all things -by the Word.” “Such a proposal might attract fanatics; it could not -attract the multitude. The Levellers who stood up for an exaggeration -of the doctrine of parliamentary supremacy were likely to be far more -numerous.”[115] To Cromwell the immediate thing was the royalist -danger; it was no season for embarking on democratic experiments -with which he had no sympathy. The breach between Cromwell and the -Levellers widened, and as Cromwell became more and more impatient -of their agitation, distrust and suspicion of Cromwell and of the -newly-appointed Council of State ripened, in 1649, into revolt.[116] -It is the perennial misunderstanding between the statesman and the -agitator. The one weighted by responsibility can rarely travel at -the pace of the other, untrammelled by office, and as the distance -between the two lengthens, it seems they are not even pursuing the same -course--as, indeed, very often they are not. - -Lilburne had none of Cromwell’s anxieties as to a possible royalist -reaction; for him the danger could not come from the dethroned king -and his defeated cavaliers, but from a parliamentary oligarchy or -a military dictatorship. But he overestimated the strength of the -Leveller movement in the army. With the presentation of the “Agreement -of the People” the bulk of the discontent in the army diminished, and -while the Levellers who remained became in several regiments openly -mutinous, the movement generally died down, so that when the revolt -came, it was suppressed without difficulty.[117] - -Lilburne was out of prison at the beginning of 1649. He took no part in -the trial of Charles I., and let it be known that he doubted the wisdom -of abolishing monarchy before a new constitution had been drawn up. - -As neither the remnant of the Long Parliament nor Cromwell and Fairfax -were doing anything to set up this new constitution, Lilburne proceeded -to lay a remonstrance before parliament, and to follow this up by his -two pamphlets on “England’s New Chains.” He now urged that “committees -of short continuance” should supersede the Council of State, that the -Self-denying Ordinance should be put in force, “seeing how dangerous it -was for one and the same persons to be continued long in the highest -commands of a military power,”[118] that a new parliament should be -elected, and the “Agreement of the People” proceeded with heartily. -At the same time he called for army reform by a reconstruction of the -General Council and the election of agitators. - -The expulsion of five troopers from the army for directly petitioning -parliament provoked another pamphlet--“The Hunting of the Foxes from -Newmarket to Whitehall by five small beagles late of the army.” The -argument here was that Cromwell, Ireton, and Harrison ruled the council -of officers, and that the council of officers ruled parliament and the -nation. “The old king’s person and the old lords are but removed, and a -new king and new lords with the commons are in one House, and so we are -under a more absolute arbitrary monarchy than before.” - -There was only one answer to be made to Lilburne’s pen, and that was -to arrest the man who held it, for the commonwealth had no one on its -side who could reply to him. At the end of March Lilburne and three -of his supporters, Walwyn, Prince, and Richard Overton were arrested -as traitors, “England’s New Chains” having been voted by parliament -seditious and destructive of the government, and were committed to the -Tower to await trial. - -At once a petition was got up and signed by 80,000 persons for -Lilburne’s release, and a fortnight later--April 18th--another petition -was taken to the bar of the House of Commons to the same effect. -Parliament promised that the prisoners should have a legal trial, but -declared the course of justice must not be interfered with. A large -deputation of women also appeared at Westminster on April 23rd with a -similar petition; but these were forbidden to enter the House, and, -admonished by members to “go home and wash their dishes,” answered they -would soon have no dishes to wash.[119] - -Lilburne was not brought to trial till October, and in the six months’ -interval, though the output of democratic pamphlets continued from -the Tower, the Leveller movement in the army ended in open mutiny and -defeat. - -Carlyle tells the story accurately enough of the mutiny in Whalley’s -regiment in Bishopsgate, London, on April 25th: - - They want this and that; they seize their colours from the - cornet, who is lodged at the “Bull” there; the general - (Fairfax) and lieutenant-general (Cromwell) have to hasten - thither, quell them, pack them forth on their march, seizing - fifteen of them first to be tried by court-martial. Tried by - instant court-martial, five of them are found guilty, doomed - to die, but pardoned; and one of them, Trooper Lockyer, is - doomed and not pardoned.[120] Trooper Lockyer is shot in - Paul’s Churchyard on the morrow. A very brave young man, they - say; though but three-and-twenty. “He has served seven years - in these wars,” ever since the wars began. “Religious,” too, - “of excellent parts and much beloved”; but with hot notions - as to human freedom, and the rate at which the milleniums are - attainable. Poor Lockyer! He falls shot in Paul’s Churchyard - on Friday, amid the tears of men and women. Lockyer’s corpse - is watched and wept over, not without prayer, in the eastern - regions of the city, till a new week come; and on Monday, this - is what we see advancing westward by way of funeral to him: - - About one thousand went before the corpse, five or six in a - file; the corpse was then brought, with six trumpets sounding - a soldier’s knell, then the trooper’s horse came, clothed all - over in mourning, and led by a footman. The corpse was adorned - with bundles of rosemary, one half stained in blood, and the - sword of the deceased along with them. Some thousands followed - in ranks and files, all had sea-green and black ribbon tied on - their hats and to their breasts, and the women brought up the - rear. - - At the new churchyard at Westminster some thousands more of the - better sort met them, who thought not fit to march through the - city. Many looked upon this funeral as an affront to parliament - and the army; others called these people “Levellers”; but they - took no notice of any of them.[121] - -In May one Corporal William Thompson rallied a body of Levellers at -Banbury, published a manifesto called “England’s Standard Advanced,” -and inveighed against the tyranny of courts-martial. Overwhelmed by -force of numbers, Thompson escaped, and later died fighting alone near -Wellingborough. Some twenty of his followers joined the mutineers of -Scrope’s regiment at Salisbury. Numbering some 1,200, these Levellers -made their way by Marlborough and Wantage to Burford. Here Cromwell -came up with the mutineers, and surprised them at midnight. Resistance -was hopeless, and the majority at once surrendered. All were pardoned -except Cornet Thompson (brother to William), and two corporals--Church -and Perkins--who showed neither fear nor admitted any wrong on their -part. These three men were shot in Burford churchyard on May 15th,[122] -and with their deaths the Leveller movement was at an end. - -But Lilburne was unsubdued. His new “Agreement of the Free People,” -published on May 1st, called for annual parliaments elected by manhood -suffrage--pensioners, militant royalists, and lawyers excluded--and -for the free election of unendowed church ministers in each parish. -At the same time he disclaimed all connection with Winstanley’s -“Diggers”--political reform was Lilburne’s demand.[123] - -Released on bail in July, Lilburne issued in August an “Impeachment for -High Treason against Oliver Cromwell and his son-in-law, James Ireton.” -In this his hatred of government by the army compels the admission that -monarchy is preferable to a military despotism: “If we must have a -king, I for my part would rather have the prince than any man in the -world.... For the present army to set up the pretended Saint Oliver or -any other as their elected king, there will be nothing thereby from the -beginning of the chapter to the end thereof but wars and the cutting -of throats year after year; yea, and the absolute keeping up of a -perpetual army under which the people are absolute and perfect slaves.” - -Thereupon, instead of bringing him to trial, the government merely -issued a warrant for Lilburne’s arrest. The agitator met this by -a stronger manifesto, “An Outcry of the Young Men and Apprentices -of London,” calling on the army to rise in support of a democratic -parliament and to vindicate the men executed at Burford. Some response -came from the garrison at Oxford, who summoned their officers to join -in the demand for a free parliament, but no success attended this step. - -At last in October Lilburne was brought to trial at the Guildhall, -not on the charge for which he had been first committed to the Tower -in March, but for the “treason” of his later pamphlets. The trial is -memorable for Lilburne’s demand that counsel should be assigned to -him in the event of legal technicalities arising, and for his bidding -the jury remember they were judges of law as well as of fact. His -real defence lay in the question he had put so often: Was England to -be governed by the sword and a mock parliament, or by duly elected -representatives of the People? The jury understood that Lilburne was on -trial for putting that question, and, agreeing with him, they acquitted -him. The verdict was received with tremendous applause, and “a loud and -unanimous shout” of triumph went up from the citizens of London in the -Guildhall.[124] - -In December Lilburne was elected to the common council of the city, -but parliament promptly declared the election void. “Fiercely as -Lilburne attacked Cromwell, there was at times considerable liking -between the two men, and they met on friendly terms before Cromwell -went to Scotland in 1650. Cromwell assured Lilburne of his desire -to make England enjoy the real fruit of all the army’s promises and -declarations,” and friendly relations lasted till Cromwell’s return. -But, in Cromwell’s absence, Lilburne charged Hazlerigg with corruption -in the administration of justice concerning a disputed colliery lease -in Durham, and parliament took up the matter. In January, 1652, it -declared Lilburne’s petition for redress a libel, and imposed a fine of -£7,000 with a sentence of banishment for life. - -This proceeding by parliament revived the methods of the Star Chamber -in imposing a conviction and a sentence without trial, but the House of -Commons was determined to stop Lilburne’s activities at all cost. - -Cromwell made no effort to hinder the conviction, and Lilburne insisted -that Cromwell’s professions of friendship were hypocritical, and that -the general himself was responsible for the sentence. - -For the time Lilburne retired to Holland, where he discussed favourably -the chances of a royalist restoration. But on the expulsion of the -Rump of the Long Parliament the agitator at once wrote off to Cromwell -for permission to return to England, and getting no answer crossed -to London in June, 1653, and settled in lodgings in Moorfields. He -petitioned Cromwell and the Council of State for leave to remain -unmolested, promising to live peacefully, but Cromwell, with the whole -government on his shoulders, had no willingness to incur the risk -Lilburne and his doctrine of popular rights involved to the safety of -the State. - -Lilburne was promptly arrested by Cromwell’s order and brought to trial -at the Old Bailey on July 13th. The government case was that he had -returned to England knowing that a sentence of death was decreed by -parliament if he broke his exile. - -Lilburne’s defence, in the main, was that the parliament which had -passed sentence was dead, and that if Cromwell had acted justly in -dissolving it, then its unjust actions ought not to be maintained; if -Cromwell had acted unjustly, why was he not punished? - -Again the jury acquitted him, and again the people of London expressed -their satisfaction at the verdict, “the very soldiers sent to guard the -court joining in the shouts, and beating their drums and sounding their -trumpets as they passed along the streets to their quarters.” - -But “for the peace of the nation” Cromwell would not let Lilburne be at -large. Back in the Tower, then at Guernsey, and then in Dover Castle -for more than two years Lilburne was a prisoner. - -His health was broken in 1656, and consumption had set in. Death was -near, and for John Lilburne the days of “carnal sword-fighting and -fleshly hustlings and contests” were over. He wrote to Cromwell from -Dover Castle telling the Lord Protector of his conversion to Quakerism, -and Cromwell, assured that there was to be no more agitation from -“Free-Born John,” granted his release, and a pension of 40s. a week. - -The battle was over for John Lilburne, liberty could not stay the -hand of death. The many imprisonments and close confinements had done -their work, and rapid consumption marked down the man who had stood up -against the whole might of Cromwell’s government. - -John Lilburne died at Eltham in August, 1657, at the age of forty. A -year later, and his old antagonist, and older comrade-in-arms, Oliver -Cromwell, Lord Protector, was dead, and the Commonwealth government -which had contemned the agitation for democracy was doomed. - - - - -Winstanley the Digger - -1649–1650 - - -AUTHORITIES: Winstanley’s Pamphlets; Whitelocke--_Memorial of English -Affairs_; Clarke Papers; L. H. Berens--_Digger Movement in the days of -the Commonwealth_. - - - - -WINSTANLEY THE DIGGER - -1649–1650. - - -In the spring of 1649, the “Digger” movement revealed a strange -and unexpected manifestation of the democratic spirit in England. -Free communism had been the creed of more than one Protestant sect -on the continent in the sixteenth century, and the Anabaptists had -been conspicuously identified with the proposal. But in England John -Lilburne and the Levellers were attacking the parliamentary government -in the name of political democracy, and social agitation had been -unknown since the Norfolk Rising of 1549, save for a riot against land -enclosures at the beginning of James I.’s reign. - -Gerrard Winstanley was the leader at the sudden outbreak of social -discontent, and his “Digger” movement was to end this discontent and -all other miseries of the time by getting rid of enclosures of common -lands, and allowing people to plough these common lands and waste -spaces, “that all may feed upon the crops of the earth, and the burden -of poverty be removed.” - -Little is known of Winstanley, and the movement is shortlived. The -“Diggers” never threatened the safety of the Commonwealth government -as Lilburne and the Levellers did, for Winstanley’s social doctrine -included the non-resistance principles that later found exponents -in the Society of Friends, and the agrarian revolution he preached -could hardly be accomplished without force of arms. What is notable -about Winstanley is his witness to the fact that a social question -existed--that he saw beyond the Civil War, and the strife for political -liberties, a great mass of poverty unheeded; and seeing the miseries of -his fellows resolutely thought out some cure for their distress, and -did his best, as it seemed to him, to get this cure adopted. - -Neither the Council of State nor the republican army had time or -patience for Winstanley’s schemes, and the “Diggers” were dispersed -with little trouble; but Winstanley’s religious teaching was to -exercise considerable influence in the world when George Fox became its -preacher, and his social teaching on the land question has thousands of -disciples in Great Britain to-day. - -Gerrard Winstanley was born in Lancashire in 1609.[125] He seems to -have settled in London as a small trader and to have lost what money he -had in business--cheated he says, “in the thieving art of buying and -selling, and by the burdens of and for the soldiery in the beginning -of the war”--so that he was obliged “to accept of the good-will of -friends to live a country life.” In the country Winstanley ponders the -source of the ills around him, and, having some considerable gift of -expression, gives utterance, in a number of pamphlets, to a cry for -reform, and gathers followers. - -In December, 1648, Winstanley (or one of his friends) issued the -earliest of the Digger publications under the title of “Light Shining -in Buckinghamshire--A Discovery of the Main Ground, Original Cause -of all the Slavery of the World, but chiefly in England. Presented -by way of a Declaration of many of the Well-affected in that County, -to all their poor oppressed Countrymen in England. And also to the -consideration of the present army under the conduct of the Lord -Fairfax.” - -A month later and Winstanley publishes his “New Law of Righteousness: -Budding forth to restore the whole Creation from the Bondage of the -Curse. Or a glimpse of the new Heaven and the new Earth, wherein dwells -Righteousness.” Here, with a good deal of mystical religious phrasing -(the author explains that when he was in a trance the message came -to him), Winstanley proclaims his calling and unfolds his agrarian -proposals: - - And when the Lord doth show unto me the place and manner, how - He will have us that are called common people manure and work - upon the common lands, I will then go forth and declare it by - my action, to eat my bread by the sweat of my brow, without - either giving or taking hire, looking upon the land as freely - mine as another’s. - -There is to be no forcible expropriation of landlords: - - If the rich still hold fast to this propriety of Mine and - Thine, let them labour their own lands with their own hands. - And let the common people, that say the earth is _ours_, not - _mine_, let them labor together, and eat bread together upon - the commons, mountains, and hills. - - For as the enclosures are called such a man’s land, and - such a man’s land, so the Commons and Heath are called the - common people’s. And let the world see who labor the earth in - righteousness, and those to whom the Lord gives the blessing, - let them be the people that shall inherit the earth. - - None can say that their right is taken from them. For let the - rich work alone by themselves; and let the poor work together - by themselves. The rich in their enclosures, saying, _This is - mine_; and the poor upon the commons, saying, _This is ours, - the earth and its fruits are common_. And who can be offended - at the poor for doing this? None but covetous, proud, idle, - pampered flesh, that would have the poor work still for this - devil (particular interest) to maintain his greatness that he - may live at ease. - - Was the earth made for to preserve a few covetous, proud men - to live at ease, and for them to bag and barn up the treasures - of the earth from others, that these may beg or starve in a - fruitful land: or was it made to preserve all her children? Let - Reason and the Prophets’ and Apostles’ writings be judge.... - For the earth is the Lord’s; that is the spreading Power of - Righteousness, not the inheritance of covetous proud flesh that - dies. If any man can say that he makes corn or cattle, he may - say, _That is mine_. But if the Lord made these for the use of - His creation, surely then the earth was made by the Lord to be - a Common Treasury for all, not a particular treasury for some. - - Leave off dominion and lordship one over another; for the - whole bulk of mankind are but one living earth. Leave off - imprisoning, whipping, and killing, which are but the actings - of the curse. Let those that have hitherto had no land, and - have been forced to rob and steal through poverty; henceforth - let them quietly enjoy land to work upon, that everyone may - enjoy the benefit of his creation, and eat his own bread - with the sweat of his own brows. For surely this particular - propriety of mine and thine hath brought in all misery upon - people. First it hath occasioned people to steal from one - another. Secondly it hath made laws to hang those that did - steal. It tempts people to do an evil action, and then kills - them for doing of it. Let all judge whether this be not a great - evil. - -In April, 1649, the time was ripe--so Winstanley and his friends -judged--for making a start to get rid of this evil. - -The Council of State, but a few months old, and much occupied with -dangers in Scotland and Ireland, and with mutinous Levellers in -the army, was suddenly informed of the strange activities of “a -disorderly and tumultuous sort of people” by one Henry Sanders, of -Walton-upon-Thames. - -Sanders’ testimony affirmed that “there was one Everard, once of the -army but was cashiered, who termeth himself a prophet, one Stewer and -Colten, and two more, all living at Cobham, came to St. George’s Hill -in Surrey, and began to dig on that side the hill next to Camp Close, -and sowed the ground with parsnips, carrots, and beans. On Monday -following they were there again, being increased in their number, and -on the next day they fired the heath, and burned at least forty rood of -heath, which is a very great prejudice to the town. On Friday last they -came again, between twenty and thirty, and wrought all day at digging. -They did then intend to have two or three ploughs at work, but they had -not furnished themselves with seed-corn, which they did on Saturday -at Kingston. They invite all to come in and help them, and promise -them meat, drink, and clothes. They do threaten to pull down and level -all park pales, and lay open, and intend to plant there very shortly. -They give out they will be four or five thousand within ten days, and -threaten the neighbouring people there, that they will make them all -come up to the hills and work: and forewarn them suffering their cattle -to come near the plantation; if they do, they will cut their legs off. -It is feared they have some design in hand.”[126] - -The date of this information was April 16th, and Bradshaw, the -President of the Council, at once asked General Fairfax “to disperse -the people so met, and to prevent the like for the future, that a -malignant and disaffected party may not under colour of such ridiculous -people have any opportunity to rendezvous themselves in order to do a -greater mischief.” - -Fairfax sent Captain John Gladman to attend to the matter, and Gladman -reports three days later that Mr. Winstanley and Mr. Everard are the -chief men responsible, that he “cannot hear that there have been above -twenty of them together since they first undertook the business,” and -that Mr. Winstanley and Mr. Everard will wait upon Lord Fairfax. He -adds; “I believe you will be glad to be rid of them again, especially -Everard, who is no other than a mad man. I intend to go with two or -three men to St. George’s Hill this day and persuade these people to -leave this employment if I can, and if then I see no more danger than -now I do I shall march back again to London to-morrow.” Gladman’s -opinion is that “the business is not worth the writing nor yet taking -notice of.” - -The interview between Fairfax and Winstanley and Everard took place -on April 20, and Everard explained that the Diggers “did not intend -to meddle with any man’s property nor to break down any pales or -enclosures, but only to meddle with what was common and untilled, and -to make it fruitful for the use of man: that they will not defend -themselves by arms, but will submit unto authority; that as their -forefathers lived in tents, so it would be suitable to their condition -now to live in the same.” - -Fairfax evidently decided that the movement was not so alarming as -the Council of State had represented, for Winstanley and his Diggers -resumed their work, and at the end of May, Fairfax, with the officers -of the army, paid a visit to St. George’s Hill. Winstanley returned -“sober answers” to the inquiries of Fairfax, “though they gave little -satisfaction (if any at all) in regard of the strangeness of their -action.” Winstanley’s argument, often enlarged in his pamphlets, was -that the people were dispossessed of their lands by the crown at the -Norman Conquest, and that “the king who possessed them by the Norman -Conquest being dead, they were returned again, being Crown Lands, to -the Common People of England.” - -This was not conclusive to their visitors, and “some officers wished -they had no further plot in what they did, and that no more was -intended than what they did pretend.” To the objection that the ground -was too poor to repay cultivation, “the Diggers answered they would use -their endeavours and leave the success to God, who had promised to make -the barren ground fruitful.” Public opinion gave out that the Diggers -were “sober, honest men,” and that “the ground will probably in a short -time yield them some fruit of their labour, how contemptible soever -they do yet appear to be.” - -Encouraged by Fairfax’s “kindness and moderation,” Winstanley appeals -to him in June against the interference of the local landowners, and -getting no response (for Fairfax had said that the Diggers were to -be left to “the Gentlemen of the County and the Law of the Land”), -publishes an appeal to the House of Commons against his arrest for -trespass by the Lords of Manors in Surrey. The House of Commons, -occupied with State matters, turned an indifferent ear to Winstanley’s -complaint, and the leader of the Diggers sent a “Watchword to the City -of London and the Army,” telling the wrongs the Diggers suffered at the -hands of the law for “digging upon the barren common”--how they were -mulcted in damages at £10 a man, with costs at twenty-nine shillings -and a penny, and taken in execution, and how their cows were seized by -the bailiffs. At the end of November the very huts they had built were -pulled down, and it was a hard winter for the little colony still left -on St. George’s Hill. - -Winstanley does not merely relate his injuries in these publications, -he is all the time urging that his plan for setting people upon the -common lands is the needful thing in England, that a common ownership -of land is God’s will, and that the crown lands taken by the Normans -must revert to the people on the execution of the king. - -In the spring of 1650 an attempt was made to extend the digging -propaganda--for the planting of St. George’s Hill was doomed--and -some of Winstanley’s disciples made a tour through the counties of -Middlesex, Bedford, Hertford, Huntingdon, and Northampton, settling -down at last on some waste ground near Wellingborough. Here they were -very soon arrested by a local justice of the peace, the Council of -State ordered their prosecution, and the movement was suppressed. - -To the Council of State these Diggers were “Levellers,”[127] “intruders -upon other men’s properties,” “seditious and tumultuous,” against whom -the public peace must be preserved. - -Of Winstanley’s future, when the days of the digging were over, nothing -seems to be known. Only one pamphlet is issued by him after 1650--“The -Law of Freedom in a Platform; or, True Magistracy Restored”--an open -letter to Oliver Cromwell, February, 1652. With this final manifesto -on the land question, and on the whole social question, as he saw -it, Gerrard Winstanley disappears from history. In the multitude of -prophets and preachers, visionaries and practical reformers of the -Commonwealth, Winstanley is little heeded by his contemporaries. The -importance of his mission is seen more clearly to-day, when statesmen, -politicians, and philanthropists all urge agrarian changes and the -excellence of land culture. - -As to Winstanley’s claim on behalf of the people to the common lands, -the advantage of possession of these lands was realized by the -landowners in the eighteenth century, and from 1760 to 1830 more than a -thousand acts of parliament were passed for enclosing these lands.[128] - -In “The Diggers Song,” (of unknown authorship[129]), the outlook of -Winstanley and his followers is expressed in popular form: - - You noble Diggers all, stand up now, stand up now, - You noble Diggers all, stand up now, - The waste land to maintain, seeing Cavaliers by name, - Your digging do disdain; and persons all defame. - Stand up now, stand up now. - - Your houses they pull down, stand up now, stand up now, - Your houses they pull down, stand up now; - Your houses they pull down to fright poor men in town, - But the Gentry must come down, and the poor shall wear the crown. - Stand up now, Diggers all! - - With spades, and hoes, and plowes, stand up now, stand up now, - With spades, and hoes, and plowes, stand up now; - Your freedom to uphold, seeing Cavaliers are bold - To kill you if they could, and rights from you withhold. - Stand up now, Diggers all! - - Their self-will is their law, stand up now, stand up now, - Their self-will is their law, stand up now; - Since tyranny came in, they count it now no sin - To make a gaol a gin, to starve poor men therein. - Stand up now, stand up now. - - The Gentry are all round, stand up now, stand up now, - The Gentry are all round, stand up now; - The Gentry are all round, on each side they are found, - Their wisdoms so profound to cheat us of our ground. - Stand up now, stand up now. - - The Lawyers they conjoin, stand up now, stand up now, - The Lawyers they conjoin, stand up now; - To arrest you they advise, such fury they devise, - The devil in them lies, and hath blinded both their eyes. - Stand up now, stand up now. - - The Clergy they come in, stand up now, stand up now, - The Clergy they come in, stand up now; - The Clergy they come in, and say it is a sin - That we should now begin our freedom for to win. - Stand up now, Diggers all! - - The tithes they yet will have, stand up now, stand up now, - The tithes they yet will have, stand up now; - The tithes they yet will have, and Lawyers their fees crave, - And this they say is brave, to make the poor their slave. - Stand up now, Diggers all! - - ’Gainst Lawyers and ’gainst Priests, stand up now, stand up now, - ’Gainst Lawyers and ’gainst Priests, stand up now; - For tyrants they are both, even flat against their oath, - To grant us they are loath, free meat, and drink and cloth. - Stand up now, Diggers all! - - The club is all their law, stand up now, stand up now, - The club is all their law, stand up now; - The club is all their law, to keep poor men in awe, - But they no vision saw, to maintain such a law. - Stand up now, Diggers all! - - The Cavaliers are foes, stand up now, stand up now, - The Cavaliers are foes, stand up now; - The Cavaliers are foes, themselves they do disclose - By verses, not in prose, to please the singing boys. - Stand up now, Diggers all! - - To conquer them by love, come in now, come in now, - To conquer them by love, come in now; - To conquer them by love, as it does you behove, - For He is King above, no Power is like to Love. - Glory here, Diggers all. - - - - -Major Cartwright - -“The Father of Reform” - -1775–1824 - - -AUTHORITIES: _Life and Correspondence of Major Cartwright_, edited by -his Niece, 1826; _A Memoir of John Cartwright the Reformer_, 1831; _The -Times_, September 25th, 1824; Graham Wallas--_Francis Place_. - -[Illustration: MAJOR CARTWRIGHT - -(_From a Contemporary Drawing._)] - - - - -MAJOR CARTWRIGHT “THE FATHER OF REFORM” - -1775–1824. - - -The substance of Major Cartwright’s life is told on the pedestal -beneath his statue in the dingy garden of Burton Crescent, to the south -of Euston Road, in London. - - JOHN CARTWRIGHT, - - Born 28th September, 1740. Died 23rd September, 1824. - - The Firm, Consistent and Persevering Advocate of _Universal - Suffrage_, Equal Representation, Vote by Ballot and Annual - Parliaments. - - He was the first English Writer who openly maintained the - Independence of the United States of America, and although his - distinguished merits as a Naval Officer in 1776 presented the - most flattering Prospects of Professional Advancement, yet he - nobly refused to draw his Sword against the Rising Liberties of - an oppressed and struggling People. - - In Grateful Commemoration of his inflexible integrity, exalted - Patriotism, “profound Constitutional Knowledge,” and in sincere - admiration of the unblemished Virtues of his Private Life, - - THIS STATUE - - was erected by Public Subscription near the spot where he - closed his useful and meritorious career. - -There is nothing false or exaggerated in this epitaph. Fox, in the -House of Commons, testified to Cartwright’s “profound constitutional -knowledge.” Hazlitt, who never met Cartwright, classed him with the -men of one idea (and lingered over the subject), but the charge is -ill-founded. It is true that for nearly fifty years, in season and out -of season, Cartwright, a pupil of Locke in politics, contended publicly -for annual parliaments and manhood suffrage, claiming personality and -not property as the ground for enfranchisement, and insisting that -while the right of the rich and the poor to the vote was equal, the -need of the latter was far greater. But this agitation was by no means -the limit either of his ideas or his activities. - -Entering the navy at eighteen, John Cartwright, who came of an old -Nottingham family, devised improvements in the gun service, and, made a -lieutenant, was marked for high promotion. The revolt of the American -colonies cut short his professional career. An innate love of liberty -compelled the young naval officer to side with the colonists, and -he writes in 1776 that it is a mistaken notion that the planting of -colonies and the extending of empire are necessarily the same things. -Self-governing colonies, he declares, bound to England only by “the -ties of blood and mutual interests, by sincere love and friendship, -which abhors dependence, and by every other cementing principle which -hath power to take hold of the human heart,” are to be desired. - -Lord Howe put Cartwright’s principles to the test by inviting him to -join the expedition against the Americans, and Cartwright, who was -“passionately attached to the navy,” and had an immense admiration for -Howe, could only answer that he was unable to take part in a war he -thought unjust. With this refusal his naval services were ended, in -spite of Howe’s quiet and dignified reply that “opinions in politics -are to be treated like opinions in religion.” (No word of reproach came -from Howe, no taunt of want of courage or lack of patriotism.) - -Cartwright never condemned all war. He urged in a letter to a nephew in -the army that the answer to the question of the justice or injustice -of a war decided whether justifiable homicide or wilful murder was -committed by those engaged in battle. He hated standing armies and -barracks and barrack life, and all the pomp and glory of militarism, as -heartily as he hated the attempt to coerce the colonists. But no sooner -was he out of the navy than, with a major’s commission, he at once -set to work to train the Nottinghamshire militia, only retiring from -this post in 1791 when the government cancelled his appointment for -attending a meeting called to celebrate the fall of the Bastille. - -The militia in Cartwright’s view was strictly a citizen army for home -defence. “The militia,” he wrote, “by its institution is not intended -to spread the dominion or to vindicate in war the honour of the crown, -but it is to preserve our laws and liberties, and therein to secure the -existence of the State.” Thirteen years before the fall of the Bastille -Major Cartwright had the cap of liberty displayed on the banners and -engraved on the buttons of the Nottinghamshire Militia. A greater -service than providing symbols of liberty was rendered to the army by -Cartwright in the matter of better clothing for the men. The misery -endured by ill-clad sentries aroused his compassion and indignation, -and Cartwright worried the government until it provided great-coats for -all private soldiers. - -The humaner courage is as conspicuous in John Cartwright’s long life as -his political enthusiasm. - -Four times he risked his life to save others from drowning, rescuing -two men from the Trent, a naval officer at sea, and, in late -middle-life, a small boy who had fallen into the New River, near -London. In the year 1800, hearing of a riot planned at Sheffield, -Cartwright made his way alone to the barn where the conspirators were -assembled, and stayed all night, reasoning with them against their -project. In the morning the confederates, dissuaded from violence, -quietly dispersed, and the riot was prevented. - -An untiring advocacy of democratic politics earned for Cartwright, -justly, the title of “The Father of Reform.” He was the real founder -of that movement for political reform, which in the nineteenth -century swept away rotten boroughs, gave representation to all towns -of importance, and extended the franchise to the great bulk of male -householders in town and country; which to-day presses towards a -general suffrage for men and women. - -Major Cartwright began his speeches and pamphlets on behalf of -political reform in 1776, just after his retirement from the navy, and -his acceptance of the commission in the militia. - -The ideas of the French Encyclopædists, the writings of Rousseau, and -the revolt of the American colonists, had aroused a belief in social -equality, and the “natural” rights of man, and this belief Cartwright -championed till his death. His early pamphlets, beginning with -“Legislative Rights of the Commonalty Vindicated,” (1777) are heavy -reading to-day, but in them Cartwright argued for all the famous “six -points” of the People’s Charter of fifty years later--Universal Manhood -Suffrage, Annual Parliaments, Vote by Ballot, Abolition of Property -Qualification for Parliamentary Candidates, Payment of Members, and -Equal Electoral Districts. He even uses the modern phrase in urging -“one man one vote.” - -Unlike Thomas Paine, and many of the “Radical Reformers,” Cartwright -pleads for political democracy as the natural outcome of the Christian -faith, maintaining that “No man can have a right sense and belief -of Christianity who denies the equality of all conditions of men.” -Incidentally, challenged on the point of why not Votes for Women? -Cartwright could only fall back on certain passages in the Bible to -justify his objection to Women’s Enfranchisement. Nothing was more -abhorrent to his mind than the notion that government was a matter -for “experts,” an exclusive affair for persons with specially trained -intelligences. “Of all the errors to which mankind have ever submitted -their understandings,” he wrote, “there is no one to be more lamented -than that of conceiving the business of civil government to be above -the comprehension of ordinary capacities.” - -The poor, because of their very poverty, had a need for the vote and -for parliamentary representation which the man of property could not -experience. This Cartwright emphasised in a petition he presented to -the House of Commons as late as 1820: - - And when your Honourable House shall further consider that the - humblest mortal on earth is equally a co-heir of an immortality - with the most exalted who now wears stars, or coronets, or - crowns, your petitioner hopes that your Honourable House - will rise superior to the mean thoughts and vulgar prejudices - of the uncharitable among the wealthy, the ignorant, the - interested, the vain, and the proud; and will acknowledge - that, in reference to the respective claims of legislative - representation by the poor and the rich, the poor have equal - right but far more need. - -Enthusiasm and an entirely disinterested zeal for democracy kept -the spirit of youth in Cartwright, and carried him at the age of -80 over a trial for sedition undisturbed. His zeal was not to be -quenched. “Moderation in practice may be commendable,” he declared, -“but moderation in principle is detestable. Can we trust a man who is -moderately honest, or esteem a woman who is moderately virtuous?” - -This very allegiance to principle had its drawbacks in the world of -practical politics, of corruption and compromise. Three times Major -Cartwright stood for parliament: for the county of Nottingham in 1780, -for Boston in 1806 and 1807; and on each occasion he was at the bottom -of the poll. His nominations for Westminster in 1818 and 1819 received -no serious support at all. The old major was no more distressed by any -feeling of personal disappointment at these defeats than he was cast -down at seeing no signs of the triumph of political democracy in his -lifetime. At eighty-four we find him writing cheerfully, “To despair in -a good cause is to approach towards atheism.” - -Cartwright did not live to see the passage of the great Reform Bill of -1832. Wilkes’ motion for reform in 1776 had been negatived in the House -of Commons without a division. In 1780 the Duke of Richmond’s motion -in the House of Lords for manhood suffrage and annual parliaments was -mocked by the outbreak of the Gordon (“No Popery”) Riots in London on -the very day the motion was made. Pitt’s third and last effort for -parliamentary reform was rejected in 1785. The French Revolution turned -men’s minds in Great Britain towards democracy, but reaction followed -hard on the Terror in Paris, and for a time a government terror crushed -every expression in favour of political liberty in England. Sir Francis -Burdett became the parliamentary leader of the “radical reformers” -early in the nineteenth century, and in 1809 found fifteen supporters -in the House of Commons. Ten years later the government, in the face -of a strong working-class movement for political reform, brought -out the military against the people at a peaceful meeting held at -Peterloo, near Manchester, and followed this up by six repressive acts -of parliament, and a general prosecution of the leaders of the reform -agitation. - -Cartwright was eighty when, with several friends, he was charged “with -being a malicious, seditious, evil-minded person, and with unlawfully -and maliciously intending and designing to raise disaffection and -discontent in the minds of his majesty’s subjects.” - -All England knew that Major Cartwright was a single-minded and -high-principled man, in whose heart was neither guile nor malice, a -man who had proved his loyalty and patriotism over and over again, -and was no more seditious than he was evil-minded or disaffected. -Apart from his advocacy of political reform and his services to the -militia, Cartwright had done much for farming and agriculture, he had -helped Clarkson and Wilberforce in their anti-slavery work, and he had -called the attention of the government, as loudly as he could, to the -defenceless state of the east coast against foreign invasion. Yet in -1820 a British jury, obedient to the orders of a political judge, found -John Cartwright guilty of “maliciously intending and designing to raise -disaffection and discontent,” and a fine of £100 was inflicted. - -Francis Place, the radical tailor of Charing Cross, in whose shop the -later Chartists and Reformers were to be found, gives his impression of -Major Cartwright as he knew him in old age: - -“When he was in town he used frequently to sup with me, eating some -raisins he brought in his pocket, and drinking weak gin and water. -He was cheerful, agreeable, and full of curious anecdote. He was, -however, in political matters exceedingly troublesome and sometimes as -exceedingly absurd. He had read but little, or to little purpose, and -knew nothing of general principles. He entertained a vague and absurd -notion of the political arrangements of the Anglo-Saxons, and sincerely -believed that these semi-barbarians were not only a political people, -but that their ‘twofold polity,’ arms-bearing and representation, were -universal and perfect.”[130] - -To Place, chief political wire-puller of his age, industrious and -persistent in getting things done, with a typical cockney politician’s -scorn of disinterested enthusiasm, Major Cartwright appeared -“troublesome” and “absurd”--Francis Place had quite an honest liking -for the “old gentleman,” as he called him, all the same. By the -government Cartwright stood convicted as a “seditious, evil-minded -person.” Posterity is content to know John Cartwright by the title his -contemporaries conferred upon him--the Father of Reform--and to rank -him as the foremost man in England in the eighteenth century to raise -the standard of Political Democracy. - - - - -Ernest Jones and Chartism - -1838–1854 - - -AUTHORITIES: R. G. Gamage--_History of the Chartist Movement_; Thos. -Frost--_Forty Years’ Recollections_; Ernest Charles Jones--_Songs -of Democracy_; Graham Wallas--_Life of Francis Place_; J. A. -Hobson--_Ernest Jones_, in _Dictionary of National Biography_; _The -Times_, Jan. 27, 29; Mar. 31, 1869. - - - - -ERNEST JONES AND CHARTISM - -1838–1854. - - -The Chartist agitation was at once the largest, the most revolutionary, -and the least successful of all the serious political movements of -the first half of the nineteenth century. For ten years, with varying -fortune, it threatened the authority of parliament, and then slowly -expired--destroyed by its own internal weakness and the quarrels of its -leaders rather than by the repression of the government. - -The failure of the great Reform Act of 1832 to accomplish any -particular improvement in the lot of the mass of working people brought -the Chartist movement to life,[131] and roused the politically minded -leaders of the workmen to agitate for changes in the constitution that -would place political power in the hands of the whole people. - -The six points of the Charter, embodied in the “People’s Charter” drawn -up by Francis Place and Lovett in 1838, revived the old programme -of Major Cartwright and, in substance, the earlier demands of John -Lilburne and the Levellers. Universal manhood suffrage, the ballot, -payment of members of parliament, equal electoral districts, abolition -of property qualification for members, and annual parliaments, these -were the “six points” of the Charter, the platform of its advocates, -and for ten years the hope of multitudes of earnest and devoted men and -women. - -Francis Place and the Working-Men’s Association which gave Chartism -its name and programme never had any considerable voice in its -direction.[132] - -Feargus O’Connor, who had sat in parliament from 1832 to 1835 for an -Irish constituency, was from the first the real leader of the movement. -His personality and his rhetorical powers roused the manufacturing -districts in the North and the Midlands to form political unions for -the Charter in 1838, and his presence dominated the first Convention, -held in London, with Lovett for its secretary. Later, O’Connor’s -obvious weaknesses, his vanity and egotism, his want of self-control -and that “one fatal disqualification for a leader of revolt--the fear -of the police”[133]--left leadership in his hands, but left him a -leader without followers. - -Next to O’Connor stood another Irish orator, James Bronterre O’Brien, a -man of finer character, and clearer head, but smaller gifts of command. - -South Wales, the manufacturing districts of Lancashire and Yorkshire, -and towns like Birmingham, Leicester, and Northampton, were the -strongholds of Chartism, and “in the dark days of the late thirties and -early forties it was a real and dangerous power.”[134] Feargus O’Connor -never advocated an armed rising, and advised the abandonment of the -huge torchlight processions; but pikes were being fashioned and men -were being drilled in preparation for a revolution that was to end the -Whig rule, and give the working classes the reins of government. The -circulation of the _Northern Star_, O’Connor’s weekly paper, stood at -50,000 in those days. - -Riots at Newport (Monmouth) and Birmingham in 1839, followed by several -arrests and imprisonments of the Chartist leaders the following year, -ended for the time all notions of a successful revolution. Lord John -Russell declared strongly against manhood suffrage when the question -was raised in the House of Commons, and on a division in the House the -petition for the Charter was rejected by 237 to 48 votes. - -The outbreak at Birmingham, provoked, in the first place, by the -interference of a body of London police with an orderly meeting in -the Bull Ring, was put down in two days by the soldiers; but not till -many houses had been attacked and a considerable amount of property -destroyed. No robberies or petty thefts accompanied the riot. - -At Newport the harsh prison treatment of Vincent, a Chartist advocate, -convicted for what was held to be a political offence, brought a crowd -of 10,000 men, led by Frost, William, and Jones, to demand his release. -The insurgents had a few rifles and pikes, but were generally unarmed, -and the fire of the military soon overpowered them. But lives were lost -on both sides, and Frost and his two lieutenants were sentenced to -death, though the sentence was at once reduced to transportation for -life, and some years later to simple banishment from British dominions. - -Feargus O’Connor, Bronterre O’Brien, and all the chief speakers of the -movement were brought to trial for seditious utterance in 1840, and in -most cases sent to prison either for twelve months or two years. - -With these imprisonments and the general election of 1841 came the -first serious disintegration of the Chartist movement.[135] O’Brien and -O’Connor differed vigorously on the question of election policy, and -before they were released from prison were expressing their opinions -in the _Northern Star_. O’Connor, full of wrath at the repressive -treatment meted out to Chartists by the Whig Government, was for -attacking the Whigs at the election, and O’Brien objected to this as a -pro-Tory policy.[136] - -The decision to run independent Chartist candidates for parliament in -certain constituencies, and the failure of these candidates to get -returned on the limited franchise of 1832, increased disunion in the -Chartist ranks and brought demoralisation. - -To make matters worse for the movement, several prominent Chartists -left prison with fresh notions and ideas of reform, which had come to -them in their long hours of solitude and reflection. Lovett, imprisoned -in connection with the Birmingham riot, though he was entirely innocent -of giving any encouragement to violence, on his release was full of -vast plans for national education, convinced that education must -precede political democracy. Vincent had become a strong temperance -advocate, and henceforth must give himself to the work of a teetotal -lecturer. Other men were for bringing in religion by “Chartist -Churches.”[137] Antagonism to the anti-corn law league of Cobden and -Bright, and later his own “National Land Company” experiments, withdrew -Feargus O’Connor from actual Chartist propaganda. - -The movement languished. But in spite of government repression, the -indifference of parliament, the hostility of the wealthier classes, and -its own jarring elements of discord, Chartism was not dead.[138] - -The misery of the English people kept it from death. With one in -every eleven of the industrial population a pauper in 1842, general -satisfaction with the state of government was impossible for men of -strong social sympathies. Some exerted themselves, like Sadler and -Oastler, in following Lord Shaftesbury’s entirely disinterested and -successful crusade against the horrors of factory oppression. Others -supported the Free Trade agitation. - -To one man, Ernest Jones, it seemed, in 1845, that before all else -must come political enfranchisement, that the social miseries and -discontents of England were not to be cured save by the people of -England. The evils might be mitigated by ameliorative legislation, but -it was not enough that the decencies of life--then very far beyond the -reach of the mass of town and country labourers--should be secured for -people; the main thing was that people should have freedom to work out -their own industrial salvation. - -So in 1846, Ernest Jones plunged boldly into Chartism. He quickly -became a leader, and his reputation has endured: for Ernest Jones was -the most respected, single-minded, and steadfast of the many who sat in -Chartist conventions. Chartism for him was the cry of the uncared-for, -because voteless, multitudes, and Ernest Jones was ready to give his -life that the cry should move the rulers of the nation. - -It was a bad time for England in 1846, that was plain,[139] and -Ernest Jones, believing with the average Englishman that in politics -lay the key to necessary change, was henceforth a Chartist advocate -and till his death the faithful preacher of democracy. Without -becoming a socialist, Ernest Jones, in his “Songs of Democracy” and -in his speeches and newspaper writings, is clear that political -enfranchisement was but the high road to social and economic reform, -that the Charter was to bring a better distribution of wealth as the -consequence of a better distribution of political power.[140] - -Ernest Jones was twenty-seven when he joined the Chartist movement. -The son of an army officer--who had been equerry to the Duke of -Cumberland--and educated on the continent, Ernest Jones came to England -when he was nineteen, and was duly presented to Queen Victoria (as -Robert Owen had been) by Lord Melbourne in 1841. He married a Miss -Atherley, of Cumberland, and settled down in London, writing novels, -verses, and newspaper articles. In 1844 he was called to the Bar, and -two years later took the step which separated him from the friends -and acquaintances of his social order, and placed him on the hard and -strenuous road of the political agitator. - -Averse from faction, realising the fatal folly of internal jealousies -and strife, and alive to the importance of discipline in the army -of revolt, Ernest Jones did his best to work with O’Connor--and was -naturally charged with cowardice by the Chartists who hated O’Connor’s -supremacy. In 1847 he began writing in the _Northern Star_, and was -joint editor with O’Connor of _The Labourer_. His “Songs of Democracy” -were to the Chartists what Ebenezer Elliott’s “Corn-Law Rhymes” were to -the Free Traders, and his “Song of the Lower Classes” has retained a -place in the song-books of social democrats to our own day. - -At the general election of 1847, when, to everybody’s astonishment, -Feargus O’Connor was elected member for Nottingham, Ernest Jones stood -for Halifax, but though immensely popular at the hustings, he only -polled 280 votes. - -1848, the memorable year of revolutions abroad, saw Chartism once -more a formidable movement in England. An enormous petition was again -prepared for parliament, and the Chartists decided to carry the -petition to the House of Commons after a mass meeting on Kennington -Common on April 10th. Lord John Russell and his Whig government became -thoroughly alarmed. The Duke of Wellington, as commander-in-chief, -undertook to guard the safety of London, and garrisoned the city with -troops, and protected the bridges, while 70,000 special constables -(of whom Prince Louis Napoleon was one) were quickly enrolled. But on -the government prohibition of any procession to Westminster, Feargus -O’Connor at once decided against any collision between the people and -the authorities. The mass meeting was held, some 50,000 persons were -present, and O’Connor and Ernest Jones made speeches. Then the petition -was sent off in a cab to parliament, and all was over. - -O’Connor had boasted that the monster petition contained 5,000,000 -signatures, but on investigation it was found that the signatures only -amounted to 1,975,496, and many of these were duplicates and forgeries. -Anti-Chartists had signed in several places, using ridiculous names, -like “Pugnose,” “Punch,” and “Fubbs,” or boldly signing as “Queen -Victoria” and “Duke of Wellington.”[141] Parliament gladly took -advantage of O’Connor’s characteristic exaggeration to discredit the -whole movement. At the same time the government hastily prepared a -bill to suppress the renewed agitation, and the “Treason Felony” bill -was passed, making “open and advised speaking with seditious intent” -a crime. This clause in the act only remained on the statute book for -two years, but it was sufficient for securing the conviction of all -prominent Chartist speakers. - -Ernest Jones, unlike Feargus O’Connor, believed that the people -should arm, and that a display of force was necessary for carrying -the Charter. The failure of April 10th strengthened this belief, and -for the next two months he was busy speaking in England and Scotland, -urging the necessity for enrolling a national guard and forming a -provisional government. - -But in spite of great public meetings the movement was already breaking -up. The Chartist Convention, which met in London on May 1st, dissolved -on May 13th in hopeless disagreement, and Ernest Jones, who had -attended as a member of the executive committee, exclaimed that “amid -the desertion of friends, and the invasion of enemies, the fusee had -been trampled out, and the elements of their energy were scattered to -the winds of heaven.” Still he tried to rally the broken ranks, and the -government decided that the time had come to put the movement down by -means of the new “Treason Felony” Act. Feargus O’Connor, now a member, -was no longer dangerous to the authorities. His attendance in the House -kept him from the agitation in the country, and Ernest Jones was the -man to be struck at. - -On May 29th and 30th Ernest Jones addressed great, but quite orderly, -meetings in London, on Clerkenwell Green and Bishop Bonner’s Fields, -and then proceeded to Manchester. Here he was arrested and put on trial -with five other Chartists--Fussell, Sharpe, Williams, Vernon, and -Looney. The judge had little patience for the prisoners, and Ernest -Jones was frequently interrupted in his defence. In the end, he and his -fellows were all found guilty of seditious speech, and Ernest Jones was -sentenced to two years’ imprisonment, to find sureties, himself in £200 -and two persons in £150, and to keep the peace for five years. - -A number of police spies procured many more arrests and convictions by -gaining admission to Chartist meetings, joining Chartist unions and -inciting the members to violent speech and an armed conspiracy. By -these means at the end of the year 1848 the government had succeeded in -getting the prominent Chartists into prison, as it had done in 1840. -That Ernest Jones exhorted his followers to learn to bear arms is -indisputable; that the success of the revolutionary movements on the -continent encouraged the belief amongst a certain number of Chartists -that an armed rising was desirable and could be successful in England -is equally true. But as no serious attempt was made in 1848 by the -“physical force” Chartists to organize such a rising, no rising took -place, and “the conspiracy,” as it was called, was chiefly the work of -the government’s police spies. - -The riots at Newport and Birmingham gave some excuse to the government -for repression in 1839–40; in 1848 no outbreaks were even threatened -to justify the sentences on Ernest Jones and other Chartist speakers. -The government’s chief concern was to end the agitation, even if this -could only be accomplished by means of a special act of parliament, and -the unsavoury methods of _agents provocateurs_. Lord John Russell and -his Whig colleagues were not the men to be kept from their purpose by -any nice discrimination in the choice of weapons. It was not the time, -when crowns were falling on the continent, to hesitate about crushing -a movement which seemed to menace public safety in England. That the -strength of Chartism was in the sober, law-abiding character of most -of its adherents the government knew no more than they knew that the -movement was already doomed for want of cohesion. - -The bitter hostility of the government pursued Ernest Jones in prison, -and left him to be treated as a common felon. Ordered to pick oakum he -refused, and was put on a diet of bread and water. The struggle between -the prisoner and his gaolers was at last brought before the House of -Commons,[142] and in the end Ernest Jones was allowed to purchase -exemption from the allotted prison tasks by a small payment of money. - -On his release from prison the Chartist movement was flickering out. It -was impossible to work with O’Connor, who, now looking favourably on -household suffrage, was already failing in health and showing signs -of the insanity which possessed him two years later. The trade-union -movement and the co-operative store were attracting the attention of -intelligent workmen, to whom for the time political enfranchisement -seemed a lost cause. Contesting Halifax in 1852, Ernest Jones only -polled 52 votes, and the _People’s Paper_, which he started in that -year and edited, never had the success of the _Northern Star_. - -Feargus O’Connor was led away from the House of Commons hopelessly -insane, to die in 1855, and Chartism utterly disintegrated could not -be revived by Ernest Jones. In 1854 the movement was extinct, and from -that time till his death Ernest Jones gave his political support to -the advanced Radicals. He contested Nottingham in 1853 and 1857, but -without success, returned to his old practice at the Bar, and wrote -novels and poems. In 1868, the year of household suffrage in the -towns, he was adopted by the Radicals as parliamentary candidate for -Manchester, and then on January 26, 1869, came a sudden failure of the -heart, and death ended all earthly hopes and plans for Ernest Jones. -He was just fifty when he died, and though Chartism had passed away, -Ernest Jones had not outlived his usefulness or his popularity with all -those who believed in the ultimate triumph of democracy, and he had -gained the respect of many earlier foes. - -The People’s Charter remains unfulfilled, but two of its points -have long been granted--the ballot, and the abolition of a property -qualification for members of parliament. Annual parliaments are no -longer desired by any section of political reformers, the extension of -the franchise to the agricultural labourer in 1884 brought manhood -suffrage appreciably nearer, equal electoral districts were never more -than a plan of quite reasonable political theorists, and the demand for -payment of members, never altogether dropped by Radicals, is once more -heard in the land. - -The great contention of Ernest Jones and the Chartists that political -liberty should precede the granting of reforms by parliament, that the -people should have the power to control and direct the deliberations of -parliaments still has its advocates; but government is passing--almost -unnoticed--once more into the hands of an executive, for that “eternal -vigilance” which is the price of political liberty is oftentimes -relaxed. - - - - -Conclusion - - - - -CONCLUSION - - -Two political movements may be noted to-day in Great Britain by all -who are interested in such things: the Labour movement and the Women’s -movement for political enfranchisement. - -The efforts of the past twenty-five years to establish a separate -socialist party in parliament have not been directly successful, but -the Labour Party has managed to return a group of some thirty workmen -to the House of Commons, and these men are the responsible and trusted -leaders of the trade-unions and the Independent Labour Party. Without -requiring any formal acknowledgment of socialist belief, the Labour -Party is largely inspired by socialist teaching, and its goal is -the conquest of government by the labouring people, and a more even -distribution of wealth by the gradual expropriation of the landlord and -the capitalist. While adhering strictly to constitutional methods of -agitation, giving full respect to the procedure of parliament and the -legal conduct of elections, the leaders of the Labour Party, in their -speeches at public meetings, use much of the old revolutionary talk -of John Ball and Robert Ket, and the arguments of Winstanley for the -popular ownership of the land. To the Labour Party as to the Chartists -democratic politics are but a stepping-stone to social reform, and as -in the days of the Chartists the strength of the Labour Party is in -the industrial districts of the North of England, and in South Wales. - -The Women’s movement, on the other hand, while demanding nothing but -the right to the franchise, and claiming this right to a voice in -the affairs of the State on the old constitutional ground of Pym and -Hampden--that those who pay direct taxation to the government must have -some political control of the expenditure--boldly avows in the face of -government refusal the necessity for revolutionary methods to acquire -the franchise. More than 600 women have gone to prison in the last four -years in the cause of Women’s Suffrage, and the methods adopted have -startled the public, created an enthusiasm, and generally aroused the -attention of a formerly indifferent parliament to the claim of women to -political enfranchisement. - -Mary Wollstonecraft, in her _Vindication of the Rights of Women_, -published in 1792, struck the first note of this movement. In the -latter half of the nineteenth century it received the support of John -Stuart Mill and a certain number of parliamentary radicals, and Women’s -Suffrage societies were formed. Then, five years ago, the Women’s -Social and Political Union was started at Manchester by Mrs. Pankhurst -and her daughter Miss Christabel Pankhurst, and the extraordinary -energy and activity of this union and the daring and resource of its -members have made the women’s demand for the vote a vital question in -politics. - -Both these movements--the agitation of the Labour Party for a fuller -and more abundant life for wage-earners, and the agitation of the -women for political enfranchisement are proceeding in our midst--a -guarantee that the centuries of struggle for freedom are not fruitless. - -“The battle of freedom is never done and the field never quiet,” and -while ever sun and moon endure and man seeks to dominate his neighbour, -so long in England shall men and women be found to resist such -dominance. For “to meet such troubles and overcome them, or to die in -strife with them--this is a great part of a man’s life.” - - -THE END. - - - - -FOOTNOTES - - -[1] “By the mouth of the clergy spoke the voice of the helpless, -defenceless multitudes who shared with them in the misery of living in -a time when law was the feeblest and most untrustworthy stay of right, -and men held everything at the mercy of masters, who had many desires -and less scruples, were quickly and fiercely quarrelsome, impatient -of control, superiority and quiet, and simply indifferent to the -suffering, the fear, the waste that make bitter the days when society -is enslaved to the terrible fascination of the sword.”--Church, _Saint -Anselm_. - -“Unrestrained by religion, by principle or by policy, with no family -interests to limit his greed, extravagance and hatred of his kind, a -foul incarnation of selfishness in its most abhorrent form, the enemy -of God and man, William Rufus gave to England and Christendom a pattern -of absolutism.”--Stubbs, _Constitutional History_. Vol. I. - -[2] No Archbishop of Canterbury has received the pallium since Cranmer, -but the sign of it remains in the archiepiscopal arms of Canterbury. - -[3] “No one in those days imagined Christianity without Christendom, -and Christendom without a Pope: and all these bishops understood -exactly as Anselm did the favourite papal text, ‘Thou art Peter, and -on this rock I will build my Church.’ Nobody in those days doubted the -divine authority of the Pope.”--Church, _Saint Anselm_. - -[4] “The boldness of Anselm’s attitude not only broke the tradition of -ecclesiastical servitude, but infused through the nation at large a new -spirit of independence.”--J. R. Green. - -[5] “When in Anglo-Norman times you speak of the ‘King’s Court,’ it is -only a phrase for the king’s despotism.”--Sir F. Palgrave, _History of -Normandy and England_. - -[6] “The see of St. Peter was the acknowledged constitutional centre -of spiritual law in the West.... It was looked upon as the guide and -regulator of teaching, the tribunal and court from which issued the -oracles of right and discipline, the judgment seat to which an appeal -was open to all, and which gave sentence on wrong and vice without -fear or favour, without respect of persons, even the highest and -the mightiest.... If ever there was a time when the popes honestly -endeavoured to carry out the idea of their office, it was just at this -period of the Middle Ages. They attempted to erect an independent -throne of truth and justice above the passions and the force which -reigned in the world around.”--Church, _Saint Anselm_. - -“Under the rule of William the Red, law had become unlaw, and in -appealing from him to the apostolic throne Anselm might deem he was -appealing from mere force and fraud to the only shadow of right that -was still left on earth.”--Freeman, _Norman Conquest_, Vol. V. - -[7] “In England Anselm had stood only for right and liberty; he, the -chief witness for religion and righteousness, saw all round him vice -rampant, men spoiled of what was their own--justice, decency, honour -trampled under foot. Law was unknown, except to ensnare and oppress. -The King’s Court was the instrument of one man’s selfish and cruel -will, and of the devices of a cunning and greedy minister. The natural -remedies of wrong were destroyed and corrupted; the king’s peace, the -king’s law, the king’s justice, to which men in those days looked for -help, could only be thought of in mocking contrast to the reality. -Against this energetic reign of misrule and injustice, a resistance -as energetic was wanted; and to resist it was felt to be the call and -bounden duty of a man in Anselm’s place. He resisted, as was the way -in those days, man to man, person to person, in outright fashion and -plain-spoken words. He resisted lawlessness, wickedness, oppression, -corruption. When others acquiesced in the evil state, he refused; and -further, he taught a lesson which England has since largely learned, -though in a very different way. He taught his generation to appeal from -force and arbitrary will to law. It was idle to talk of appealing to -law in England; its time had not yet come.”--Church, _Saint Anselm_. - -[8] “No discipline restrained them (the king’s attendants); they -plundered, they devastated, they destroyed. What they found in the -houses which they invaded and could not consume, they took to market to -sell for themselves or they burnt it. If it was liquor they would bathe -the feet of their horses in it or pour it on the ground. It shames -me to recall the cruelties they inflicted on the fathers of families -and the insults on their wives and daughters. And so, whenever the -king’s coming was known beforehand, people fled from their houses and -hid themselves and their goods, as far as they could, in the woods or -wherever safety might be found.”--Eadmer. - -[9] “If the Church had continued to buttress the thrones of the king’s -whom it annointed, or if the struggle had terminated in an undivided -victory, all Europe would have sunk down under a Byzantine or Muscovite -despotism.”--Acton, _History of Freedom in Christianity_. - -[10] “By the surrender of the significant ceremony of delivering the -bishopric by the emblematic staff and ring, it was emphatically put -on record that the spiritual powers of the bishop were not the king’s -to give; the prescription of feudalism was broken.”--Church, _Saint -Anselm_. - -[11] “With regard to Thomas’ dealings with the Church, if one thing -is clear it is this--that he was not in the least a man who pushed -his Order at the expense of his loyalty. More than once he refused to -listen to an ecclesiastical claim against the king, even when his old -friend Theobald was behind it: he was perfectly impartial: he taxed -churchmen as he taxed laymen, and in fact, so loyal and reasonable -was he that Henry, when he made him archbishop, seems to have thought -that he was wholly on his side. There were innumerable questions to be -decided between Church and State. Again and again small points came up -as to the appointment of this man or the other, as to the infliction -or remission of a fine; and again and again Thomas decided the cause -and advised the king on the merits of the case.... He was as zealous -now for the State as he was for the Church afterwards. There he stood -Chancellor of England; his business was to administer the laws, and he -knew and did his business.”--R. H. Benson, _St. Thomas of Canterbury_. - -[12] “The only instance which has occurred of the chancellorship being -voluntarily resigned either by layman or ecclesiastic.”--Campbell, -_Lives of the Chancellors_. - -[13] “It must be held in mind that the archbisholp had on his side the -Church or _Canon Law_, which he had sworn to obey, and certainly the -law courts erred as much on the side of harshness and cruelty as those -of the Church on that of foolish pity towards evil-doers.”--F. York -Powell. - -“We have to take ourselves back to a state of society in which a -judicial trial was a tournament, and the ordeal an approved substitute -for evidence, to realise what civilization owes to the Canon Law -and the canonists, with their elaborate system of written law, -their judicial evidence, and their written procedure.”--Rashdall, -_Universities of Europe during the Middle Ages_. - -[14] W. H. Hutton. - -[15] This conversation is reported by Roger of Pontigny, who ministered -to St. Thomas when the latter was in exile at that place. - -[16] Garnier was a poet, and he protests passionately against this law, -maintaining that God has called us all to His service. Much more worth -is the villein’s son who is honourable than a nobleman’s son who is -false. - -[17] W. FitzStephen. - -[18] W. FitzStephen. - -[19] Dean Stanley. - -[20] Freeman, _Historical Essays_. First series. - -[21] “Hubert was very gracious in the eyes of all the host that lay -before Acre, and in warlike things so magnificent that he was admired -even by King Richard. He was in stature tall, in council prudent, and -though not having the gift of eloquence, he was an able and shrewd wit. -His mind was more on human than divine things, and he knew all the laws -of the realm.”--Gervase. - -[22] It is notable that in our day only peerages and knighthoods are -sold, and these by political leaders to their partisans. Government -offices, the judicial bench and bishoprics are still fortunately not in -the market, though frequently allotted for partisan reasons. - -[23] “Owing to the craft of the richer citizens the main part of the -burden fell on the poor.”--Matthew Paris. - -[24] Some writers say 50,000. - -[25] William of Newburgh. - -[26] “Hubert, Archbishop of Canterbury, was a shrewd financier, and -an honourable, conscientious statesman; but as a prelate he is noted -chiefly for his quarrels with his chapter.”--W. H. Hutton, _Social -England_. - -[27] Matthew Paris. - -[28] “If he was to give up all for which he had been fighting, and -fighting successfully, against the pope and the Church for the past six -years, he must make quite sure of gaining such an advantage as would be -worth the sacrifice. Mere release from excommunication and interdict -was certainly, in his eyes, not worth any sacrifice at all. To change -the pope from an enemy into a political friend was worth it, but--from -John’s point of view--only if the friendship could be made something -much more close and indissoluble than the ordinary official relation -between the pope and every Christian sovereign. He must bind the pope -to his personal interest by some special tie of such a nature that the -interest of the papacy itself would prevent Innocent from casting it -off or breaking it.... To outward personal humiliation of any kind John -was absolutely indifferent, when there was any advantage to be gained -by undergoing it. To any humiliation which the crown or the nation -might suffer in his person, he was indifferent under all circumstances. -His plighted faith he had never had a moment’s hesitation in breaking, -whether it were sworn to his father, his brother, his allies or his -people, and he would break it with equal facility when sworn to the -supreme pontiff.... There seems, in short, to be good reason for -believing that John’s homage to the pope was offered without any -pressure from Rome and on grounds of deliberate policy.”--K. Norgate, -_John Lackland_. - -[29] K. Norgate, _John Lackland_. - -[30] “By the intervention of the Archbishop of Canterbury, with several -of his bishops and some barons, a sort of peace (_quasi pax_) was made -between the king and the barons.”--Ralph of Coggeshall. - -[31] Matthew Paris, _Greater Chronicle_, quoted by K. Norgate. - -[32] “The Charter was a treaty between two powers neither of -which trusted, or even pretended to trust, the other.”--Stubbs, -_Constitutional History_. Vol. II. - -[33] Luard. Preface to _Grosseteste’s Letters_. Rolls’ Series. 1861. - -[34] A well-known passage in Matthew Paris, vol. v, gives the monk’s -point of view of Grosseteste, the reformer:--“At this time the Bishop -of Lincoln made a visitation of the religious houses in the diocese. -If one were to tell all the acts of tyranny he committed therein, the -bishop would seem not merely unfeeling but inhuman in his severity. -For amongst other things when he came to Ramsey he went round the -whole place, examined each one of the monks’ beds in the dormitory, -scrutinized everything, and if he found anything locked up destroyed -it. He broke open the monks’ coffers as a thief would, and if he found -any cups wrought with decoration and with feet to stand on he broke -them to pieces, though it would have been wiser to have demanded them -unbroken for the poor. He also heaped the terrible curses of Moses on -the heads of those who disobeyed his injunctions and the blessings -of Moses on those who should observe the same.... And it is believed -all this he hath done to restrain from sin those over whom he hath -authority, and for whose souls he must give account.” This was written -in 1251, when Grosseteste had been sixteen years at Lincoln. - -[35] Wright, _Political Songs_. Camden Society, 1839. - -[36] Grosseteste had been unable to get his way with the barons on -the question of legitimacy of children before legal wedlock. By the -old church law marriage made such children legitimate, and at the -council of Merton, in 1236, Grosseteste, with the bishops, tried to -bring the common law into union with the church view on this matter. -He was defeated, and to this day these children are illegitimate. “It -would indeed have been better if the independence exhibited by the -majority who opposed the prelates at Merton had been reserved for -another occasion; for it cannot be deemed that the perpetuation of a -law contrary to that which prevails on the subject in almost every -European country, and which still differentiates Scotland from England -by abroad, though unintelligible line of demarcation, has been open -to grave objection on grounds of public convenience, apart from any -inherent merits or demerits it may possess.”--F. S. Stevenson, _Robert -Grosseteste_. - -[37] “Grosseteste, then, may be regarded in a threefold aspect; first, -as a reformer who sought to reform the Church from within and not -from without, by the removal of existing abuses, by the encouragement -he gave to the great religious revival of the early part of the 13th -century, and by the example of unflinching fearlessness and rectitude -which he set in his performance of the episcopal office; secondly, -as the teacher who guided the rising fortunes of the University of -Oxford; and thirdly, as the statesman who, applying to new conditions -the policy associated with the name of Stephen Langton, endeavoured to -combine into one effort the struggle of the clergy for the liberties -of the Church with the struggle of the laity for the liberties of -the nation, imbued Simon de Montfort with principles of ‘truth and -justice’ which went far beyond the mere maintenance of the privileges -of his own order, and at the same time, by his effort to reconcile him -with his sovereign, and by the whole tenour of his actions, showed -that had he lived a few years longer, his influence would have been -directed to the task of achieving by peaceful means the constitutional -advance brought about by those who, taking the sword, perished by the -sword.”--Stevenson, _Robert Grosseteste, Bishop of Lincoln_. - -[38] See recent article on “Grosseteste” in _Catholic Encyclopædia_. - -[39] Yet out of this letter and out of his great knowledge and love -of the Scriptures a notion has been current that Grosseteste was a -forerunner of Protestantism, and “a harbinger of the Reformation.” “If -this implies that he had any tendency towards the doctrinal changes -brought about in the Church at the Reformation, or that he evidenced -any idea of a separation of the Church of England from that of Rome, a -more utterly mistaken statement has never been made.”--Luard, Preface -to _Grosseteste’s Letters_. (Rolls Series.) - -As for Grosseteste’s Scriptural knowledge, “The thorough familiarity -with the Old Testament is, perhaps, only what we might expect; but the -use which is made of the actions of all the characters of Scripture, -and the forced and sometimes outrageous way in which they are -introduced to illustrate his argument, show how thoroughly ‘biblical’ -the age was, and how completely the Old Testament history was regarded -rather as the guide of men’s conduct in Christian times, than as a mere -historical record of past events.”--_Ibid._ - -[40] “The king acted as if he had sent him abroad simply to ruin his -fortunes and wreck his reputation.”--Stubbs. - -[41] Matthew Paris. - -[42] Rishanger, the chronicler for St. Albans, puts the case for the -national party:-- - - “The king that tries without advice to seek his people’s weal - Must often fail, he cannot know the wants and woes they feel. - The Parliament must tell the king how he may serve them best, - And he must see their wants fulfilled and injuries redressed. - A king should seek his people’s good and not his own sweet will, - Nor think himself a slave because men hold him back from ill. - - For they that keep the king from sin serve him the best of all, - Making him free that else would be to sin a wretched thrall. - True king is he, and truly free, who rules himself aright, - And chooses freely what he knows will ease his people’s plight. - Think not it is the king’s goodwill that makes the law to be, - For law is steadfast, and a king has no stability. - No! law stands high above the king, for law is that true light - Without whose ray the king would stray and wander from the right. - When a king strays he ought to be called back into the way - By those he rules, who lawfully his will may disobey - Until he seeks the path, but when his wandering is o’er, - They ought to help and succour him and love him as before.” - - (Translated by F. York Powell.) - - -[43] “The new form of government bears evidence of its origin; it is -intended rather to fetter the king than to extend or develop the action -of the community at large. The baronial council clearly regards itself -as competent to act on behalf of all the estates of the realm, and the -expedient of reducing the national deliberations to three sessions -of select committees, betrays a desire to abridge the frequent and -somewhat irksome duty of attendance in parliament rather than to share -the central legislative and deliberative power with the whole body of -the people. It must however be remembered that the scheme makes a very -indistinct claim to the character of a final arrangement.”--Stubbs. - -[44] A board of twenty-four--half chosen by the king and half by the -barons--had laid a body of resolutions before the Oxford Parliament, -and the first of these resolutions declared that all castles and -estates alienated from the crown should be at once resumed. - -[45] “The first time, as far as we know, English was used in any public -document.”--Blaauw, _The Barons’ War_. - -[46] - - “End, O Earl of Gloster, what thou hast begun! - Save thou end it fitly, we are all undone. - Play the man, we pray thee, as thou hast promised, - Cherish steadfastly the cause of which thou wast the head. - He that takes the Lord’s work up, and lays it down again, - Shamed and cursed may he be, and all shall say Amen. - - Earl Simon, thou of Montfort, so powerful and brave, - Bring up thy strong companies thy country now to save, - Have thou no fear of menaces or terrors of the grave, - Defend with might the nation’s cause, naught else thine own - needs crave.” - - --Rishanger, _Political Songs_. - - -[47] Stubbs. - -[48] “The Song of Lewes”--_Political Songs_. - -[49] I am indebted to my friend Fr. Bede Jarrett, O.P., for this -interesting and, I believe, hitherto unpublished suggestion. - -[50] It was to a Dominican Convent at Montargis that Simon’s widow, the -Princess Eleanor, retired after the fatal battle of Evesham. - -[51] An appeal was lodged at Rome by several English bishops against -the threatened excommunication, but the papal legate himself became -pope early in 1265, and, as Pope Clement V., was the strongest enemy of -Simon and the national cause. It was only after Evesham and the death -of Simon that Clement urged a wise policy of mercy on Henry and the -royalists. - -[52] “In this year, while Edward, the king’s son, was still held in -ward in the Castle of Hereford, dissension arose between Simon, Earl of -Leicester, and Gilbert, Earl of Gloucester.... - -“For which cause the old friendship was turned into hate, so much so -that neither the consideration of his oath nor former devotion could -thenceforth pacify the said Gilbert.... An endeavour was made by -certain prelates to restore the Earls of Leicester and Gloucester to -their former union; but they could in no wise succeed.”--W. Rishanger. - -[53] J. R. Green, “The Ban of Kenilworth,” _Historical Studies_. - -[54] “The triumph over Earl Simon had been a triumph over the religious -sentiment of the time, and religion avenged itself in its own way. -Everywhere the earl’s death was viewed as a martyrdom, and monk and -friar, however they might quarrel on other points, united in praying -for the souls of the dead as for ‘soldiers of Christ.’”--J. R. Green, -“The Ban of Kenilworth,” _Historical Studies_. - -[55] _Chronicles of Melrose._ - -[56] _Ibid._ - -[57] Wright, _Political Songs_. - -[58] See J. R. Green, “Annals of Osney and Wykes,” _Historical Studies_. - -[59] “The project was clearly to set up a new order of things -founded on social equality--a theory which in the whole history of -the Middle Ages appears for the first time in connection with this -movement.”--Gairdner. - -[60] It may be said that to-day the idea of political and social -equality is generally accepted and that of brotherhood denied. In -the fourteenth century brotherhood was esteemed, but equality was a -strange, intruding notion. - -[61] “The bias of Wyclif in theory and practice is secular, and -aristocratic, and royalist: it is not really socialistic or politically -revolutionary,”--Figgis, _Studies of Political Thought_. Nevertheless, -many writers have tried to discredit Lollardy by associating it with -social revolt, just as others have tried to discredit John Ball by -making him out a “heretic,” and a follower of Wycliff. - -[62] Froissart seems to be mainly responsible for the belief that this -John Tyler became the great leader of the movement, confusing him with -Wat Tyler, of Maidstone, the real leader. Several writers allege the -indecency of the tax-collectors. - -[63] “Tyler, according to Walsingham, was a man of ready ability and -good sense. Save in some excesses, which, perhaps, were politic, -possibly unavoidable, and certainly exaggerated, the rebels under him -are admitted to have kept good order, and to have readily submitted to -discipline.”--Thorold Rogers. To Froissart Tyler appears merely as “a -bad man, and a great enemy of the nobility.” - -[64] “Fearful lest their voyage should be prevented, or that the -populace should attack them, they heaved their anchors and with some -difficulty left the harbour, for the wind was against them, and put to -sea, when they cast anchor for a wind.”--Froissart. - -[65] Two names at least have been preserved--Squire Bertram Wilmington -of Wye and John Corehurst of Lamberhurst. - -[66] Seven years later this Earl of Salisbury, fleeing from Henry -Bolingbroke, was hanged in the streets of Cirencester at the hands of -the people. - -[67] This law of Winchester was the statute of Edward I., 1285, which -authorised local authorities to appoint constables and preserve the -peace. Tyler’s aim was to strengthen local government in the counties, -making them as far as possible self-governing communes. - -[68] “It was in the preaching of John Ball that England first listened -to the knell of feudalism, and the declaration of the rights of -man.”--J. R. Green. - -[69] “Observe how fortunate matters turned out, for had the rebels -succeeded in their intentions they would have destroyed the whole -nobility of England, and after their success other countries would have -rebelled.”--Froissart. - -[70] See Durrant Cooper--_John Cade’s Followers in Kent_. - -[71] “These two bishops were wonder covetous men, evil beloved among -the common people and holden suspect of many defaults; assenting and -willing to the death of the Duke of Gloucester, as it were said.”--(_A -Chronicle of Henry VI_). According to Gasgoigne--_Loci e Libro -Veritatum_--the people said of Ayscough: “He always kept with the king -and was his confessor, and did not reside in his own diocese of Sarum -with us, nor maintain hospitality.” - -[72] “He himself asserted that he had been a captain under the Duke -of York, and that his real name was Mortimer, which may possibly have -been true, for there were several illegitimate branches of the house of -March.”--Professor Oman, _Political History of England_. - -[73] “A young man of a godly nature and right pregnant of -wit.”--Holinshed. Shakspeare’s farcical account of the rising in _King -Henry VI._, Part II., is, of course, entirely misleading.--See the -author’s _True Story of Jack Cade_. - -[74] See the letter of John Payn in the _Paston Letters_. But Payn -wrote fifteen years afterwards, and seems to have been a person of no -very scrupulous honesty. - -[75] A special act of parliament was passed in 1452 to cancel all that -Cade had accomplished. - -[76] Cocke was a well-known supporter of Henry VI. and a man of note. -He was sheriff of London 1453, alderman in 1456, and mayor and M.P. -1462–3. Knighted by Henry in 1465, he fell from his high estate when -Edward IV. was king, and languished in prison on a charge of high -treason, only escaping with his life on payment of £8,000. - -[77] “What answer to this demand was returned I find not, but like -it is the same was granted and performed; for I find not the said -captain and Kentishmen at their being in the city to have hurt any -stranger.”--Stow. - -[78] When, by order of the Privy Council, the Exchequer seized all -Cade’s goods, these jewels were sold with the rest. They fetched £114, -and a payment of £86 7s. was subsequently made to the Duke of York. -So the crown made some profit on the transaction, but Malpas was -unrecompensed.--See Devon’s _Exchequer Rolls_. - -[79] “Whereof he lost the people’s favour and hearts. For it was to be -thought if he had not executed that robbery he might have gone far and -brought his purpose to good effect.”--Fabyan. - -[80] This church has long been pulled down. It was absorbed into St. -Saviour’s parish the following year. St. Margaret’s Hill is now part of -High Street, Borough, and the present St. George’s Church stands near -the site of old St. Margaret’s Church. - -[81] _Acts of Privy Council_, 1451. - -[82] “In the interests of truth, I must declare at the outset that -I cannot find the very slightest foundation for the assertion of -Stapleton, copied by Cresacre More and many others, that in the course -of time their friendship cooled. Abundant proofs of the contrary will -appear.”--Rev. T. E. Bridgett, _Life and Writings of Sir Thomas More_. - -[83] “Indeed, it was he who pushed me to write the _Praise of Folly_, -that is to say, he made a camel frisk.”--Erasmus to Ulrich von Hutten, -1519. - -[84] “He had a purpose to be a priest, yet God had allotted him for -another estate, not to live solitary, but that he might be a pattern -to married men: how they should carefully bring up their children, -how dearly they should love their wives, how they should employ their -endeavour wholly for the good of their country, yet excellently perform -the virtues of religious men, as piety, charity, humility, obedience -and conjugal chastity.”--Cresacre More. - -[85] Erasmus to Ulrich von Hutten. - -[86] “It is clear that Sir Thomas had a little Utopia of his own in his -family. He was making an experiment in education, and he was delighted -with its success. The fame of his learned daughters became European -through the praises of Erasmus, and was so great in England that in -1529, when they were all married ladies, they were invited by the -king to hold a kind of philosophical tournament in his presence.... -More will ever stand foremost in the ranks of the defenders of female -culture.”--Rev. T. E. Bridgett, _Life and Writings of Sir Thomas More_. - -[87] “He most warily retired from every opposition but that which -conscience absolutely required. He displayed that very peculiar -excellence of his character, which, as it showed his submission to be -the fruit of sense of duty, gave dignity to that which in others is apt -to seem to be slavish.”--Sir James Mackintosh, _Life of More_. - -[88] “Parliament is discussing the revocation of all synods and other -constitutions of the English clergy, and the prohibition of holding -synods without express license of the king. This is a strange thing. -Churchmen will be of less account than shoemakers, who have the power -of assembling and making their own statutes.”--Chapuys, _Letters and -Papers of Henry VIII._ (Rolls Series). - -[89] Chapuys, _Letters and Papers of Henry VIII._ (Rolls Series). - -[90] _Lives of the Chancellors._ - -[91] _Letters and Papers of Henry VIII._ (Rolls Series). - -[92] Roper. - -[93] “To More a heretic was neither a simple man erring by ignorance, -nor a learned man using his freedom in doubtful points: he was a man -whose heart was ‘proud, poisoned, and obstinate,’ because he denied -the Divine guidance of the Church while he claimed special Divine -inspiration for himself.”--Rev. T. E. Bridgett. - -[94] More’s _English Works--Apology_. It is only thirty years after his -death that Foxe suggests More as a persecutor. All the evidence is in -the opposite direction. - -[95] Sir James Mackintosh, _Life of More_. - -[96] See Dr. Jessop, _The Great Pillage_. - -[97] _See State Papers, Domestic, Edward VI._ - -[98] The common lands engrossed in the 15th and 16th centuries were the -farm lands cultivated in common by the peasants. The enclosure of the -commons was left to a later date, and took place between 1760 and 1830. - -[99] This Flowerdew had distinguished himself at the destruction of -the abbey at Wymondham by Henry VIII., by tearing off the lead from -the roof of the church and pulling down the choir, for the sake of the -stones, after the people had raised a large sum of money for the king -in order to save the church. - -[100] “By bearing a confident countenance in all his actions the -vulgars took him (Ket) to be both valiant and wise and a fit man to be -their commander.”--Sir John Hayward, _Life of Edward VI._ - -“This Ket was a proper person to be a ringleader of mischief, for he -was of a bold, haughty spirit, and of a cankered mind against the -Government.”--John Strype, _Ecclesiastical Memorials_. - -[101] These two “were partly fain to agree, lest they being out of -favour and place, others might come to bring all out of frame that -now might partly be well framed, and the rather they assented to keep -the people in better order during answer from the prince.”--Nicholas -Sutherton. - -[102] “That a populous and wealthy city like Norwich should have been -for three weeks in the hands of 20,000 rebels, and should have escaped -utter pillage and ruin speaks highly for the rebel leaders.”--W. Rye, -_Victoria County History of Norfolk_. - -[103] A few years later, and John Dudley, Earl of Warwick, now -Duke of Northumberland, again visited East Anglia to proclaim his -daughter-in-law, Lady Jane Grey, Queen of England. No one rose at his -call. Neither peasant nor landowner responded to the proclamation; -and John Dudley, Earl of Warwick and Duke of Northumberland, died, as -his father before him had died, convicted of treason, beheaded by the -executioner’s axe on Tower Hill. It was August 22nd, 1553, just four -years after the suppression of the peasants’ rising in Norfolk when -Northumberland was put to death. - -[104] “Robert Ket was not a mere craftsman: he was a man of substance, -the owner of several manors: his conduct throughout was marked by -considerable generosity: nor can the name of patriot be denied to him -who deserted the class to which he might have belonged or aspired, and -cast in his lot with the suffering people.”--Canon Dixon, _History of -the Church of England_. - -In 1588 a grandson of Robert Ket was burnt as a Nonconformist heretic -by order of Elizabeth. - -[105] The three were Oxford men. Sir John Eliot was at Exeter (1607), -Hampden at Magdalen (1609) and Pym at Broadgate Hall, afterwards called -Pembroke (1599). - -[106] “In Eliot’s composition there was nothing of the dogmatic -orthodoxy of Calvinism, nothing of the painful introspection of the -later Puritans. His creed, as it shines clearly out from the work of -his prison hours, as death was stealing upon him--_The Monarchy of -Man_--was the old heathen philosophic creed, mellowed and spiritualised -by Christianity. Between such a creed and Rome there was a great gulf -fixed. Individual culture and the nearest approach to individual -perfection for the sake of the State and the Church, formed a common -ground on which Eliot could stand with the narrowest Puritan.”--S. R. -Gardiner. - -[107] Eliot’s argument “was a claim to render ministerial -responsibility once more a reality, and thereby indirectly to make -parliament supreme.”--S. R. Gardiner. - -[108] “He (Eliot) was to the bottom of his heart an idealist. To him -the parliament was scarcely a collection of fallible men, just as the -king was hardly a being who could by any possibility go deliberately -astray. If he who wore the crown had wandered from the right path, he -had but to listen to those who formed, in more than a rhetorical sense, -the collective wisdom of the nation.”--S. R. Gardiner. - -[109] “His (Hampden’s) distinction lay in his power of disentangling -the essential part from the non-essential. In the previous -constitutional struggle he had seen that the one thing necessary was to -establish the supremacy of the House of Commons.”--S. R. Gardiner. - -[110] Clarendon. - -[111] “The same men who, six months before, were observed to be of very -moderate tempers, and to wish that gentle remedies might be applied, -talked now in another dialect both of kings and persons; and said -that they must now be of another temper than they were in the last -parliament.”--Clarendon. - -[112] The Nineteen Propositions fairly express the views of Pym -and Hampden at this time on the supremacy of the Commons. The main -proposals were the authority of parliament: in the _sole_ choice of -the ministers of the crown, in the regulation of state policy, in the -management of the militia, in the education of the royal children, in -the remodeling of the discipline of the Church of England; and the -guardianship by parliament of all forts and castles. It was of first -importance in Pym’s mind that parliament should have the control in -military matters. Without the power of the sword the House of Commons -could not ensure the personal safety of its members or the privileges -of free debate against the enmity of the king. To command the army was -to govern the country. - -[113] See G. P. Gooch, _History of Democratic Ideas in the Seventeenth -Century_. - -[114] “By its injudicious treatment of the most popular man in England, -parliament was arraying against itself a force which only awaited an -opportunity to sweep it away.”--G. P. Gooch, _History of Democratic -Ideas in the Seventeenth Century_. - -[115] “Advocating direct government by a democratic Parliament and -the fullest development of individual liberty, the Levellers looked -with suspicion on the Council of State as a body which might possibly -be converted into an executive authority independent of parliament, -and thoroughly distrusted Cromwell as aiming at military despotism. -Well-intentioned and patriotic as they were, they were absolutely -destitute of political tact, and had no sense of the real difficulties -of the situation, and, above all, of the impossibility of rousing the -popular sympathy on behalf of abstract reasonings.”--S. R. Gardiner, -_History of the Commonwealth and Protectorate_. - -[116] S. R. Gardiner. - -[117] The movement “had sprung into existence in response to a widely -spread apprehension that the victory of the people might be rendered -fruitless. Its call had found an echo in the ranks of the army, and by -its admirable organization it had insisted that the leaders should hear -what it had to say. It had powerfully influenced their conduct and had -introduced a radical element into their programme. When this had been -done, the soldiers felt that its _raison d’être_ as a separate party -had come to an end. The battle had been fought, and the victory, at -least for the time, had fallen to Ireton.”--G. P. Gooch, _History of -Democratic Ideas in the Seventeenth Century_. - -[118] “In other words, not only Cromwell and Ireton, but also Fairfax, -who had recently been elected a member of the House, were to be -summarily cashiered.”--S. R. Gardiner, _History of the Commonwealth_. - -[119] See the pamphlet “A Petition of Well-affected Women,” 1649. There -is something curiously familiar in the exhortation to the women. - -[120] “Unfortunately his friends, in petitioning for his release, -rested their case on the ground that all sentences given by a -court-martial were made illegal by the Petition of Right and the law -of the land. Such a doctrine would have dissolved the army into chaos, -and when Lilburne and Overton wrote to Fairfax, threatening him with -the fate of Joab and Strafford, all chance of pardon was at an end. -Lockyer firmly believed himself to be a martyr to the cause of right -and justice.”--S. R. Gardiner, _History of the Commonwealth_. - -[121] See Whitelocke’s _Memorials_, “The Army’s Martyr,” “A True -Narrative,” and “The Moderate” (1649). - -[122] “So die the Leveller corporals. Strong they, after their sort, -for the liberties of England; resolute to the very death.”--Carlyle. - -[123] Lilburne’s attitude to Winstanley’s propaganda was similar to -the attitude of the political Chartists in the 19th century to Robert -Owen’s socialism. - -[124] “Then ensued a scene, the like of which had in all probability -never been witnessed in an English court of justice, and was never -again to be witnessed till the seven bishops were freed by the verdict -of a jury from the rage of James II.”--S. R. Gardiner. - -“In a revolution, where others argued about the respective rights of -king and parliament, he spoke always of the rights of the people. His -dauntless courage and his power of speech made him the idol of the -mob.”--Professor C. H. Firth, “Lilburne,” _Dictionary of National -Biography_. - -[125] See L. A. Berens, _Digger Movement in the Days of the -Commonwealth_. - -[126] _Clarke Papers_, vol. ii. - -[127] Government rarely distinguishes between different schools of -agitators. - -[128] Between 1710 and 1867 the number of acres so enclosed was -7,660,439. - -[129] _Clarke Papers_, vol. ii. - -[130] See Graham Wallas, _Life of Francis Place_. - -[131] “Disappointment bitter and wide-spread was following closely upon -the inevitable failure of the extravagant expectations and overheated -hopes which the agitation for parliamentary reform had kindled.”--F. -York Powell, _The Queen’s Reign: a Survey_. - -[132] See Graham Wallas, _Life of Francis Place_. - -[133] Herbert Paul, _History of Modern England_. - -[134] _Ibid._ - -[135] “Want of leaders and organization, and the great difference in -objects among the Chartists themselves, led to their failure. For a -while Chartism was stayed.”--Professor T. F. Tout, _England from 1689_. - -[136] The differences between the two became more acute when Feargus -O’Connor started his land colonization schemes a few years later. -O’Brien opposed these schemes, which all ended in heavy financial -losses, and urged sticking to political reform. From 1842 O’Brien was -practically outside the Chartist movement, though it was not till 1848 -he formally retired. He died in poverty in 1864, after giving some help -to the middle-class radical movement for household suffrage. - -[137] A similar impulse fifty years later brought “Labour Churches” -into existence. - -[138] “The ministers had met the Chartist outbreaks with strong, -repressive measures, and here they had the concurrence of parliament, -which had no sympathy with the movement. The House of Commons, -indeed, had little understanding of the processes that were maturing -outside its walls. The industrial and the social evolution went on -almost unnoticed by statesmen and politicians absorbed in the party -controversy.”--Sidney Low and Lloyd Sanders, _Political History of -England_, 1837–1901. See also Hansard’s _Parliamentary Debates_ for -these years. - -[139] “The least satisfactory feature of English life in 1846 was the -condition of the labouring classes. Politically they were dumb, for -they had no parliamentary votes. Socially they were depressed, though -their lot had been considerably improved by an increased demand for -labour and by the removal of taxes in Peel’s great Budget of 1842. That -was the year in which the misery of the English proletariat reached its -lowest depth.”--Herbert Paul, _History of Modern England_. - -[140] Stephens, a “hot-headed” Chartist preacher, put the case as -he, a typical agitator of the day, saw it in 1839: “The principle of -the People’s Charter is the right of every man to have his home, his -hearth, and his happiness. The question of universal suffrage is after -all a knife-and-fork question. It means that every workman has a right -to have a good hat and coat, a good roof, a good dinner, no more work -than will keep him in health, and as much wages as will keep him in -plenty.”--See R. G. Gamage, _History of the Chartist Movement_. - -[141] Charles Kingsley, who is said to have signed the petition, gives -his view of April 10th in _Alton Locke_. - -[142] See Hansard, June, 1849. - - - - -INDEX - - - Adam of Marsh, Franciscan friar, friend of Grosseteste and - de Montfort, 120, 130 - - Aldrich, an Alderman of Norwich, 229, 231 - - Alexander III., Pope, 45, 56 - - Anselm, Abbot of Bec, 8; - called to court of William II., 8; - appointed Archbishop of Canterbury, 9; - refuses to give up church lands, 11; - firm attitude at Council of Rockingham, 15; - semblance of peace with the king, 16; - leaves England, 18; - returns at request of Henry I., 19; - his services to the king, 21; - dispute with the king, 23; - reconciliation, 26; - his death and character, 27–30; - his birthplace, 30 - - Appleton, William, 161 - - Ayscough, Bishop of Salisbury, impeached for treason, 174; - murdered at Erdington, 175 - - - Bailey, John, hanged by Cade, 184 - - Ball, John, itinerant priest from York, preaches social - revolution, 143; - released from Maidstone prison by Wat Tyler, 153; - preaches to Tyler’s followers at Blackheath, 153; - hanged as a rebel, 167 - - Barton, Elizabeth, “Holy Maid of Kent,” 206 - - Becket, Thomas, his parentage, 33; - early years, 34; - appointed Chancellor of Canterbury, 34; - ordained priest and appointed to Archbishopric, 38; - dispute with the king, 41–45; - yields to king’s demands at Council of Clarendon, 47; - refutes charges at Council of Northampton, 49; - leaves England and appeals to the pope, 55; - reconciliation with the king, 57; - lands at Sandwich, 57; - ill-will of the bishops, 58; - Henry’s sudden rage, 59; - his murder, 63; - his canonisation, 64 - - Belknap, Chief Justice, 147, 148 - - Berksted, Stephen, Bishop of Chichester, 128 - - Bigod, Hugh of Norfolk, 121 - - Bigod, Roger, 126 - - Boniface of Savoy, Archbishop of Canterbury, 110, 131 - - Bradshaw, John, 297 - - Buckingham, Duke of, 249, 250, 251, 252 - - Burdett, Sir Francis, 313 - - Burley, Sir Simon, 148, 163 - - - Cade, Jack, leader of the revolt of Kentish commons, 1450, 173; - uncertainty as to real name and family, 176; - marches to Blackheath at head of 46,000 followers, 177; - draws up and presents petition to Henry VI., 178; - no answer returned, 178; - withdraws to Sevenoaks and defeats small body of Henry’s - troops, 180; - gathers reinforcements in Kent, 181; - Henry VI. treats with him fruitlessly, 181; - enters London without opposition, 182; - preserves strict discipline in his force, 184; - forced to levy toll for support of his followers, 185; - after first good reception London turns against him, 187; - unsuccessful fight for London Bridge, 187; - treats with Henry’s representatives, 188; - many of his adherents return to their homes, 189; - refuses to lay down arms till parliament issues legal pardon, 189; - proclaimed a traitor, 189; - defeated at Queenborough, 189; - dies fighting as a fugitive, in Sussex, 189; - head exposed on London Bridge, 190 - - Cartwright, John, enters Navy and begins promising career, 308; - it is cut short by his siding with the Americans at outbreak of - war, 1776, 308; - trains the Nottinghamshire Militia, 309; - pioneer of political reform, 310; - writes and speaks on the subject, 310; - unsuccessful efforts to enter parliament, 312; - at age of 80 charged with sedition and fined, 313; - known as “Father of Reform,” 315 - - Catherine of Aragon, 203 - - Cantilupe, Bishop of Worcester, 122, 126, 133 - - Cantilupe, Thomas, Chancellor, 128 - - Cave, Robert, 148 - - Chalton, Sir John, Lord Mayor of London, 183 - - Charles I., 250 _et seq._, 280, 282 - - Church, Corporal, 286 - - Clarendon, Earl of (quoted), 262 - - Clarendon, Council of, 46 - - Clarkson, Thomas, 313 - - Cocke (or Cooke) Thomas, friend to both Henry VI. and Cade, 182 - - Cod, Thomas, Mayor of Norwich, 228, 229, 231, 232, 233 - - Coke, Lord Justice, 252 - - Colet, Dean of St. Paul’s, 199, 212 - - Conyers, Dr., Vicar of St. Martin, Norwich, 231 - - Cranmer, Archbishop, 204 - - Cromwell, Oliver, 279 _et seq._ - - Cromwell, Thomas, 208 - - Crowmer, Sheriff of Kent, 180; - arrested and sent to Tower, 181; - beheaded by Cade’s orders, 184 - - Curtis (Girste, or Ghirstis) City Merchant, 186 - - - De Burgh, Hubert, 95, 107 - - De Gray, John, Bishop of Norwich, 81, 82 - - De Morville, Hugh, 59–63 - - Derby, Henry, Earl of (afterwards Henry IV.), 157, 163, 170 - - Despenser, Henry, Bishop of Norwich, 168 - - Des Roches, Peter, Bishop of Winchester, 82, 94, 107, 108 - - De Tracy, William, 59–63 - - De Valence, William, 123, 132 - - - Eadmer (quoted), 6, 7, 14, 17, 26 - - Edward, Prince, son of Henry III., afterwards King-Edward I.; - takes oath of reform to barons, 123; - takes Gloucester in civil war, 126; - taken prisoner at Battle of Lewes, 127; - escapes to Welsh marshes, 132; - intercepts de Montfort’s relief force at Evesham, 133 - - Eliot, John, enters parliament as member for St. Germans, 249; - knighted and becomes Vice-Admiral of Devon, 249; - captures the pirate Nutt, but eventually finds himself in Marshalsea - prison over the affair, 250; - released and is returned for Newport, 1624, 250; - quarrels with Buckingham and insists upon his impeachment, 251; - imprisoned in Tower in connection therewith, but soon released, 251; - refuses forced loan and again imprisoned and deprived of - Vice-Admiralship, 252; - carries Petition of Right, 252; - attacks policy of Laud, 252; - supports John Rolle in refusing payment of taxes, 253; - summoned before Privy Council, imprisoned for fourth time, - and fined, 255; - remains passionately loyal to House of Commons, 256; - health gives way in confinement, 257; - dies in the Tower, 1632, 257; - his son’s appeal for his burial at Port Eliot, Cornwall, - refused, 257 - - Erasmus, 193, 194, 197, 202, 211, 212 - - Essex, Earl of, 267 - - Ethelmar, half-brother to Henry III., 106 - - Everard, 297, 298 - - - Fairfax, General, 298, 299 - - Falkland, Lord, 265, 266 - - Finch, Chief Justice, 262 - - Fisher, Bishop of Rochester, 206, 207, 208 - - FitzOsbert, William, called Longbeard; his early life, 72; - lays his grievances before Richard I., 72; - defies Archbishop Hubert, 73; - his arrest and death, 75 - - FitzStephen, W. (quoted), 35, 49, 53, 59 - - FitzUrse, Reginald, 59–63 - - Flowerdew, Sergeant, 222, 223 - - Frost, 321 - - Fulke, follower of Ket, 235 - - Fussell, 328 - - - Gilbert, Earl of Gloucester, 126, 128, 131, 132 - - Gough, Matthew, 186 - - Green, J. R. (quoted), 91, 92 - - Green, Squire of Wylby, 222 - - Gregory IX., Pope, letter to, from Grosseteste, 102 - - Grindcobbe, William, supporter of John Ball in Hertford, 143, 146; - follows Wat Tyler, 149; - at Mile End, 159; - hanged at St. Albans, 167 - - Grosseteste, Bishop of Lincoln, born in Suffolk of humble parentage, - goes to Oxford, rises to foremost honours there, and becomes - bishop, at sixty, 101; - institutes reforms at Oxford, 102; - befriends Dominican and Franciscan friars, 102; - withstands Henry III.’s rapacity, 104; - attends council in London, recites grievances of Henry III.’s - misrule, 107; - resists seizure of English Church revenues by Innocent IV., 108–111; - refuses canonry of Lincoln to pope’s nephew, 111; - Cardinals uphold Grosseteste against Innocent IV., 112; - makes appeal to whole realm on behalf of rights of English - Church, 113; - dies, 1235, and is buried in Lincoln Cathedral, 113; - Edward I.’s application for canonization refused, 113 - - Gunnell, Tutor in Sir Thomas More’s family, 199 - - - Hales, Sir Robert, Treasurer to Richard II., 146; - advises no conference with Tyler’s followers, 154; - beheaded on Tower Hill, 160 - - Hampden, John, refuses to pay ship-money, 258; - case decided against him, 259; - acts with Eliot against Buckingham, 261; - strong influence in House of Commons, 262; - prominent work in Long Parliament, 263; - impeached for high treason, 265; - takes refuge from Charles in city, 266; - prepares for war, 266; - raises regiment of infantry in Bucks, 267; - mortally wounded at Chalgrove, 268 - - Hazlerig, 265, 288 - - Henry I., 19–26 - - Henry II.; appoints Thomas Becket Chancellor of England, 34; - their close friendship, 35; - determines to appoint Thomas to the archbishopric, 36; - his dispute with Thomas, and its cause, 41; - draws up the Constitutions of Clarendon, 46; - his dissatisfaction with the result, 48; - charges Thomas with corrupt practices, 48–54; - his sudden rage and hasty words, resulting in the murder of the - archbishop, 63 - - Henry III.; appeals for money at Council of Westminster, 1244, 104; - confronts bishops with Innocent IV.’s letter exhorting them to give - liberally, 104; - bishops evade coercion, 105; - king again tries in 1252, 106; - bishops, led by Grosseteste, refuse, 106; - his miserable misrule, 108; - dealings with Simon of Montfort in Gascony, 118–120; - his financial difficulties reach climax, 1257, 120; - continued quarrels with barons, 122; - obtains dispensation from promises to barons, 124; - civil war is declared, 126; - defeated by Simon of Montfort, and peace made, 1264, 127; - war again breaks out, 132; - is victorious, 137 - - Henry VIII., 197, 201, 202, 203, 207, 208 - - Holland, Sir John, 159 - - Holles, 265 - - Horne, Alderman, 182 - - Horne, Alderman, supports Tyler, and welcomes him to London, 156 - - Hotham, Sir John, 267 - - Howe, Lord, 308 - - Hugh of Lincoln, 77 - - Herbert of Bosham (quoted), 38, 58 - - - Iden, Alexander, 189, 190 - - Innocent III., Pope, 77, 81, 83, 95 - - Innocent IV., Pope, 104, 106, 110, 111, 113 - - Ireton, General, 280, 286 - - Islip, Archbishop of Canterbury, 144 - - - John, King, refuses to acknowledge Stephen Langton’s appointment to - archbishopric, 81; - seizes estates of Canterbury, and drives chapter into exile, 82; - is excommunicated, 83; - meets primate at Winchester and is formally absolved, 85; - strife with barons, 86; - his campaign to recover lost Angevine provinces, 87; - capitulation to the barons, 90; - signs the Great Charter, 91; - his death, 95 - - John of Gaunt, calls parliament at Northampton, 147; - his unpopularity with the people, 151; - his palace of the Savoy and its valuable contents destroyed, 157 - - John of Salisbury (quoted), 56 - - Jones, Ernest, 324; - joins Chartist movement at 27, 325; - son of an officer and educated abroad, 325; - works with Feargus O’Connor, 325; - attends Chartist convention, 327; - addresses large meetings in London, 328; - arrested, tried, found guilty of seditious speech and - imprisoned, 328; - on his release Chartist movement declining, 329; - contests Halifax unsuccessfully, 330; - gives support to advanced radicals, 330; - stands twice unsuccessfully for Nottingham, 330; - dies suddenly at the age of 50, 330 - - - Kemp, Cardinal, Archbishop of York, Chancellor to Henry VI., - 187, 188, 190 - - Kent, Earl of, 159 - - Ket, Robert, landowner in Norfolk, a tanner by trade, 223; - sympathies on the side of the people, 223; - offers to lead the movement against enclosures of land, 224; - he is eagerly accepted as captain, and leads large army towards - Norwich, 224; - issues manifesto attacking landlords, 225; - advances to Mousehold, and his force increases to 20,000, 228; - sends statement to Edward VI., 229; - king replies by herald, 229; - sets about organising and victualling his followers, as he is not - content with vague promises, 230; - arrests landowners, 231; - repudiates king’s “pardon” as being a just and innocent man, 232; - his arrest ordered by king’s messenger, but impossible in the - presence of his followers, 232; - friction arises between Norwich authorities and the rebels, 232; - fight ensues, Norwich in his hands, 233; - unsuccessfully opposed by Marquis of Northampton, 234; - commands in Norwich for three weeks, 235; - disappointed at rising not becoming general, 236; - negotiates with Earl of Warwick, sent to suppress revolt, 237; - abrupt conclusion, and battle follows, 238; - his mistaken tactics and defeat, 239; - his followers surrender to Warwick, 239; - his flight and capture, 239; - tried, found guilty of high treason and condemned to death, 241; - hanged in chains in Norwich, 241 - - Ket, William, 223, 239, 240, 241 - - Knolles, Sir Robert, 156 - - Knyvett, Sir Edmund, 236 - - - Langham, Simon, Archbishop of Canterbury, 144 - - Langland, Robert, 145 - - Langton, Stephen, appointed to archbishopric of Canterbury against - King John’s wishes by Innocent III., 81, 82; - is driven into exile by the king, 82; - returns six years later, 85; - starts the movement for the Great Charter, 86; - frames articles for the Charter, 90; - disagreement with papal legate, 94; - works for preservation of peace during early years of Henry - III.’s reign, 95; - his character and place in history, 96 - - Laud, Archbishop, 252, 253, 256, 257, 260, 262, 272 - - Legge, John, 147, 160 - - le Despenser, Hugh, Justiciar, 126, 128, 134 - - Lilburne, John, apprenticed to a cloth merchant in London and becomes - friend of Prynne, 278; - charged before Star Chamber with circulating unlicensed books, and - sentenced to be whipped, pilloried, and imprisoned, 278; - released by order of Long Parliament, 278; - fights at Edgehill and Marston Moor, where he is taken - prisoner, 278; - leaves army in 1645 rather than take the Covenant, 279; - resists the tyranny of parliamentary government, 279; - heads the party in the army called the Levellers, 281; - again imprisoned and released in 1649, 282; - writes pamphlets against the government and is again - imprisoned, 284; - petition presented to parliament for his release, 284; - tried for treasonable writings, 287; - fined and banished, 288; - goes to Holland, and returns, without permission, to London, - in 1653, 289; - arrested and acquitted, 289; - again imprisoned by Cromwell for two years, 290; - converted to Quakerism, 290; - released and pensioned, 290; - dies at Eltham, 290 - - Litster, Geoffrey, follower of John Ball in Norfolk, 143, 146; - his death, 168, 217 - - Looney, 328 - - Lovett, 319, 322 - - Luard (quoted), 101–2 - - Lyons, Richard, 161 - - - Macaulay, Lord (quoted), 264 - - Malpas, Philip, 185 - - Martin, Papal Legate, 110 - - Matthew of Westminster (quoted), 127 - - Maurice, C. E. (quoted), 95 - - Mendall, John, a name by which Jack Cade was known, 175 - - Moleyns, Bishop of Chichester, supporter of Duke of Suffolk, killed at - Portsmouth, 174 - - Montfort, Henry of, eldest son of Earl of Leicester, 133, 134 - - Montfort, Simon of, second son of Earl of Leicester, 132, 133 - - Montfort, Simon of, Earl of Leicester, son of first Earl of Leicester, - marries Eleanor, sister of Henry III., and widow of Earl of - Pembroke, 117; - boyhood passed in France, 117; - leaves for crusades, distinguished career in Palestine, 118; - returns in 1242, 118; - works with Grosseteste in his reforms, 118; - goes to Gascony for five years (1248–53) and deals with turbulent - nobles, 118; - saves Gascony for English crown, and restores order in the - province, 119; - Henry III.’s ingratitude, 119; - recognized leader of the barons on his return to England, 120; - successful in “Mad Parliament,” 1258, 122; - as “foreigner” yields castles of Kenilworth and Odiham, 123; - fresh difficulties with Henry III. in carrying out Provisions of - Oxford, 124; - civil war imminent, 1264; - and many bishops and barons desert Simon, 125; - offers £30,000 to king to make peace and adhere to Provisions of - Oxford--proposal rejected, 126; - Battle of Lewes won by Simon, 126; - peace made, 127; - draws up new scheme of reform, the precursor of later representative - government, 129; - fresh disturbances and defections, followed by renewal of war, 132; - Battle of Evesham, and death of Simon, 134; - interred in Evesham Abbey, 134 - - More, Sir Thomas, born 1478, member of Cardinal Morton’s household, - leaves there for Oxford, and later studies law in Lincoln’s - Inn, 193; - friendship with Erasmus, 194; - spends four years with Carthusians, 195; - leaves Charterhouse, marries and enters parliament, 195; - opposes Henry VII.’s exactions, 195; - Under-Sheriff for the City, 196; - embassies to Flanders and Calais, 197; - enters Henry VIII.’s service, and rises rapidly to highest offices - of State, 197; - happy domestic life, 198; - withholds support from king on his divorce from Catherine of - Aragon, 203; - resigns chancellorship, 205; - declines to be present at Anne Boleyn’s coronation, 206; - unsuccessful attempt to implicate him in the “treason” of Holy Maid - of Kent, 206; - finds himself unable to take oath denying papal supremacy, and is - sent to Tower, 207; - indicted for treason, 208; - sentenced to death, 209; - beheaded on Tower Hill, 210; - beatified, 213 - - Mortimer, name by which Jack Cade was popularly known, 176 - - Mortimer, Roger, 132 - - - Newton, Sir John, Governor of Rochester Castle, taken prisoner - by Tyler, 149; - sent with message from Tyler to the king, 154 - - Nicholas, papal legate, 86 - - Norfolk, Duke of, 202 - - Northampton, Council of, 48 - - Northampton, Marquis of (William Parr), 234 - - - Oastler, 323 - - O’Brien, James Bronterre, 320, 321, 322 - - O’Connor, Feargus, 320, 323, 329, 330 - - Otho, papal legate, 109, 110 - - Overton, Richard, 284 - - - Palgrave, Sir Francis (quoted), 22, 23 - - Pandulf, papal legate, 83, 94 - - Pankhurst, Mrs., 336 - - Pankhurst, Christabel, 336 - - Paris, Matthew (quoted), 100, 105, 108, 113, 117, 124 - - Parker, Matthew, afterwards Archbishop of Canterbury, 231, 232 - - Perkins, Corporal, 286 - - Petibone, John, 232 - - Place, Francis, 314, 319, 320 - - Powell, Professor York (quoted), 30, 65, 91, 121, 135 - - Prince, 284 - - Pym, John, enters House of Commons, 1614, 260; - conspicuous in “Short Parliament,” 260; - supports Eliot in Buckingham’s impeachment, 261; - becomes leader of parliamentary party, 261; - canvasses England on horseback before “Long Parliament,” 261; - opens charge of impeachment against Strafford, 262; - active work in parliament, 263, 264; - makes overtures to the queen, 263; - impeached for high treason, 265; - takes refuge in city from Charles, 266; - secures Portsmouth and Hull for the parliament, 266; - his “solemn league and covenant” accepted by parliament, 269; - dies, 1643, and buried in Westminster Abbey, 269 - - - Rich, Edmund, Archbishop of Canterbury, 106; - retires to Pontigny, 1240, and dies, 109 - - Richard II., agrees to interview with Tyler, 154; - allows himself to be dissuaded, 155; - sends to Tyler for written statement of grievances, 157; - agrees to a meeting at Mile End, 159; - assents to Tyler’s requests, 160; - second meeting at Smithfield, 162; - again agrees to Tyler’s demands, 164; - after Tyler’s death personally disperses his followers, 166; - the danger passed, rebels fiercely punished, 167; - formally annuls charters granted to Tyler, 168; - his death, 170 - - Richard the Breton, 59–63 - - Richard, Earl of Cornwall, half brother to Henry III., became King of - the Romans, 118 - - Richard, Earl of Gloucester, 121, 122, 124 - - Rishanger, Chronicler for St. Albans (quoted), 121, 134 - - Rockingham, Council of, 13, 15 - - Roger of Wendover (quoted), 88 - - Roper, William, son-in-law to Sir Thomas More, 195, 196, 202 - - Roper, Margaret (his wife), 198 - - Russell, Lord John, 321, 326, 329 - - - Sadler, 323 - - Salisbury, Earl of, counsels Richard II. not to interview Tyler, 155; - at Smithfield, 163; - his death, 170 - - Sanders, Henry, 297 - - Say-and-Sele, Lord, treasurer to Henry VI., impeached for - treason, 174; - arrested and taken to Tower, 181; - beheaded by Cade’s order, 184 - - Scales, Lord, guardian of prisoners in Tower, 182; - in conjunction with mayor and corporation opposes Cade, 186 - - Seldon, 252 - - Shaftesbury, Lord, 323 - - Sharpe, 328 - - Sheffield, Lord, 234 - - Sibley, Alderman, 156 - - Somerset, Protector, 221, 236 - - Stafford, Archbishop of Canterbury, Chancellor to Henry VI., - 181, 187, 188 - - Stafford, Sir Humfrey, 180 - - Stafford, Sir William, 180 - - Standish, Ralph, 165, 166 - - Steward, Augustine, 234, 235 - - Strafford, Earl of, 252, 256, 262, 263 - - Straw, Jack, priest in Essex, follower of John Ball, 143; - acts as lieutenant to Wat Tyler, 149; - hanged without trial, 167 - - Strode, 265 - - Sudbury, Simon, Archbishop of Canterbury, 144; - his palace at Canterbury ransacked by Tyler, 152; - Lambeth palace stormed by Tyler and records destroyed, but building - uninjured, 156; - beheaded by Tyler, on Tower Hill, 161 - - Suffolk, Duke of, chief minister to Henry VI., 173; - impeached as a traitor, 174; - beheaded, 174 - - Suffolk, Earl of, President of Richard II.’s council, 155, - 163, 167, 170 - - Sutherton, Leonard, 232 - - - Tonge, Alderman, 156 - - Theobald, Archbishop, 33, 34, 36 - - Thompson, Corporal William, 285 - - Thompson, Cornet, 286 - - Tressilian, Sir Robert, 167, 170 - - Tyler, John, 148, 149 - - Tyler, Wat, chosen captain of peasants at Maidstone, 149; - his recorded history can be followed for eight days only, 150; - his followers at first moderate, 151; - at Canterbury, 152; - bursts open gaol at Maidstone and releases Ball and other - prisoners, 153; - sets out for London at head of 30,000 men, 153; - encamps at Blackheath, 153; - sends Sir John Newton with message to Richard II., 154; - interview refused, 155; - he marches on London Bridge, and destroys adjacent property, 155; - keeps his followers under strict discipline, 156; - demands interview with the king, 158; - conference at Mile End, 159, 160; - invites king to meet him again, at Smithfield, 162; - his demands agreed to, 164; - in sudden scuffle draws dagger, strikes Walworth, and is mortally - wounded in return, 165; - his head exposed on London Bridge, 166 - - - Urban, Pope, 18, 19 - - - Vernon, 328 - - Vincent, 321 - - Von Hutten, Ulrich, 193 - - - Warwick, Earl of, High Chamberlain to Henry VIII., 236–240 - - Walter, Hubert, Bishop of Salisbury, afterwards Archbishop of - Canterbury, 69, 70, 73, 76, 77, 81 - - Walter of Coventry (quoted), 85 - - Walworth, William, Mayor of London, owns London houses of - ill-fame, 155; - the same destroyed by Tyler, 155; - attempts to fortify London Bridge, 155; - urges king and council to action, 157; - at Smithfield, 163; - wounds Tyler mortally, 165; - knighted by Richard, 166 - - Walwyn, 283 - - Warham, Archbishop, 197 - - Watson, a Norwich preacher, 229 - - Waynfleet, William, Bishop of Winchester, 188 - - Wellington, Duke of, 326 - - Wentworth (see Strafford, Earl of). - - Weston, Chancellor of the Exchequer, 252 - - Wilberforce, William, 313 - - William I., his character, 3; - condition of country under, 3–5; - death, 5 - - William II., his character, 5; - condition of England under, 6; - appoints Anselm to Archbishopric of Canterbury, 10; - his quarrel with Anselm, 11–13, _et seq._; - his death, 19 - - Williams, 328 - - Windebank, 262 - - Winstanley, Gerrard, 286; - leader of the “Digger” movement, 293; - born in Lancashire, but settled in London as a trader, 294; - fails, and retires to the country, 294; - publishes pamphlets, social and religious, 295; - first action of the “Diggers,” 297–8; - appeals to General Fairfax against interference, 299; - receives little notice, 300; - makes further active efforts, 300; - movement suppressed, 300; - little known of him later, 301 - - Wollstonecraft, Mary, 336 - - Wolsey, Cardinal, 197, 201, 202, 203, 208, 217, 222 - - Wraw, John, supporter of Ball in Suffolk, 143, 146; - follows Wat Tyler, 149; - at Blackheath, 153; - returns to Suffolk to announce rising, 153; - is hanged as rebel, 167 - - -_The Westminster Press (Gerrards Ltd.), Harrow Road, London, W._ - - - - -Transcriber’s note: - -Punctuation, hyphenation, and spelling were made consistent when a -predominant preference was found in the original book; otherwise they -were not changed. - -Simple typographical errors were corrected; unpaired quotation -marks were remedied when the change was obvious, and otherwise left -unpaired. - -Illustrations in this eBook have been positioned between paragraphs -and outside quotations. In versions of this eBook that support -hyperlinks, the page references in the List of Illustrations lead to -the corresponding illustrations. - -Footnotes, originally at the bottoms of pages, have been collected and -placed just before the Index of this eBook. - -The index was not checked for proper alphabetization or correct page -references. - - - -***END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK LEADERS OF THE PEOPLE*** - - -******* This file should be named 64437-0.txt or 64437-0.zip ******* - - -This and all associated files of various formats will be found in: -http://www.gutenberg.org/dirs/6/4/4/3/64437 - - -Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will -be renamed. - -Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright -law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works, -so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United -States without permission and without paying copyright -royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part -of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project -Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm -concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark, -and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive -specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this -eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook -for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports, -performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given -away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks -not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the -trademark license, especially commercial redistribution. - -START: FULL LICENSE - -THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE -PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK - -To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free -distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work -(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project -Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full -Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at -www.gutenberg.org/license. - -Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project -Gutenberg-tm electronic works - -1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm -electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to -and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property -(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all -the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or -destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your -possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a -Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound -by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the -person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph -1.E.8. - -1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be -used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who -agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few -things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works -even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See -paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project -Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this -agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm -electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below. - -1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the -Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection -of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual -works in the collection are in the public domain in the United -States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the -United States and you are located in the United States, we do not -claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing, -displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as -all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope -that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting -free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm -works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the -Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily -comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the -same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when -you share it without charge with others. - -1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern -what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are -in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, -check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this -agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, -distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any -other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no -representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any -country outside the United States. - -1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg: - -1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other -immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear -prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work -on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the -phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, -performed, viewed, copied or distributed: - - This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and - most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no - restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it - under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this - eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the - United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you - are located before using this ebook. - -1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is -derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not -contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the -copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in -the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are -redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project -Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply -either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or -obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm -trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. - -1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted -with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution -must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any -additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms -will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works -posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the -beginning of this work. - -1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm -License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this -work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm. - -1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this -electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without -prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with -active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project -Gutenberg-tm License. - -1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary, -compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including -any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access -to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format -other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official -version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site -(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense -to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means -of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain -Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the -full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1. - -1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying, -performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works -unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9. - -1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing -access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works -provided that - -* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from - the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method - you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed - to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has - agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project - Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid - within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are - legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty - payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project - Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in - Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg - Literary Archive Foundation." - -* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies - you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he - does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm - License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all - copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue - all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm - works. - -* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of - any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the - electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of - receipt of the work. - -* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free - distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works. - -1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project -Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than -are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing -from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The -Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm -trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below. - -1.F. - -1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable -effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread -works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project -Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm -electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may -contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate -or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other -intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or -other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or -cannot be read by your equipment. - -1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right -of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project -Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project -Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project -Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all -liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal -fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT -LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE -PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE -TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE -LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR -INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH -DAMAGE. - -1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a -defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can -receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a -written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you -received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium -with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you -with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in -lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person -or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second -opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If -the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing -without further opportunities to fix the problem. - -1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth -in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO -OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT -LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE. - -1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied -warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of -damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement -violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the -agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or -limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or -unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the -remaining provisions. - -1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the -trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone -providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in -accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the -production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm -electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, -including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of -the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this -or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or -additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any -Defect you cause. - -Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm - -Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of -electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of -computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It -exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations -from people in all walks of life. - -Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the -assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's -goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will -remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project -Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure -and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future -generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see -Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at -www.gutenberg.org - -Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation - -The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit -501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the -state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal -Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification -number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by -U.S. federal laws and your state's laws. - -The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the -mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its -volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous -locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt -Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to -date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and -official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact - -For additional contact information: - - Dr. Gregory B. Newby - Chief Executive and Director - gbnewby@pglaf.org - -Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg -Literary Archive Foundation - -Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide -spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of -increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be -freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest -array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations -($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt -status with the IRS. - -The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating -charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United -States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a -considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up -with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations -where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND -DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular -state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate - -While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we -have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition -against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who -approach us with offers to donate. - -International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make -any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from -outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff. - -Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation -methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other -ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To -donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate - -Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. - -Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project -Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be -freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and -distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of -volunteer support. - -Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed -editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in -the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not -necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper -edition. - -Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search -facility: www.gutenberg.org - -This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm, -including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to -subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks. - diff --git a/old/64437-0.zip b/old/64437-0.zip Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 969309a..0000000 --- a/old/64437-0.zip +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/64437-h.zip b/old/64437-h.zip Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 0b0df34..0000000 --- a/old/64437-h.zip +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/64437-h/64437-h.htm b/old/64437-h/64437-h.htm deleted file mode 100644 index f80a10a..0000000 --- a/old/64437-h/64437-h.htm +++ /dev/null @@ -1,14019 +0,0 @@ -<!DOCTYPE html PUBLIC "-//W3C//DTD XHTML 1.0 Strict//EN" - "http://www.w3.org/TR/xhtml1/DTD/xhtml1-strict.dtd"> -<html xmlns="http://www.w3.org/1999/xhtml"> -<head> -<meta http-equiv="Content-Type" content="text/html; charset=UTF-8" /> -<title>The Project Gutenberg eBook of Leaders of the People, by Joseph Clayton</title> - <link rel="coverpage" href="images/cover.jpg" /> - <style type="text/css"> - -body { - margin-left: 10%; - margin-right: 10%; -} - -div.body { - max-width: 40em; - margin-left: auto; - margin-right: auto; -} - - -h1, h2, h3 { - text-align: center; - clear: both; - margin-top: 2.5em; - margin-bottom: 1em; - word-spacing: .2em; - line-height: 1.3em; -} - -h1 {margin-bottom: 0;} -h1 {font-size: 3em; letter-spacing: .1em;} -h2, h3 {font-size: 2em; letter-spacing: .05em;} -h2.left, h3.left {text-align: left;} -h2.chap {margin-bottom: 0;} -h2.b05, h3.b05 {margin-bottom: .5em;} -h2+p {margin-top: 1.5em;} -h2 .subhead, h3 .subhead {display: block; margin-top: .2em; margin-bottom: 1em;} - -.transnote h2 { - margin-top: .5em; - margin-bottom: 1em; -} - -.subhead { - text-indent: 0; - font-size: smaller; -} - -p { - text-indent: 1.75em; - margin-top: .51em; - margin-bottom: .24em; - text-align: justify; -} -.caption p, .center p, p.center {text-align: center; text-indent: 0;} - -.p0 {margin-top: 0em;} -.p1 {margin-top: 1em;} -.p2 {margin-top: 2em;} -.p4 {margin-top: 4em;} -.ptp {margin-top: 12em;} -.b1 {margin-bottom: 1em;} -.vspace {line-height: 1.5;} - -.in0 {text-indent: 0;} -.in2 {padding-left: 2em;} - -.smaller {font-size: 85%;} -.larger {font-size: 125%;} -.large {font-size: 150%;} - -.drop-cap {text-indent: 0; margin-bottom: 1.1em;} -p.drop-cap:first-letter { - float: left; - margin: .04em .3em 0 0; - font-size: 400%; - font-weight: bold; - line-height:0.7em; - text-indent: 0; - clear: both; -} -p.drop-cap .firstword {margin-left: -1.2em;} -p .firstword {font-size: 110%;} - -.center {text-align: center;} - -.smcap {font-variant: small-caps;} -.allsmcap {font-variant: small-caps; text-transform: lowercase;} -.firstword {text-transform: uppercase;} - -.bold {font-weight: bold;} - -hr.chap { - width: 33%; - margin: 4em auto 4em auto; - clear: both; -} - -table { - margin-left: 0; - margin-right: auto; - max-width: 80%; - border-collapse: collapse; -} - -td {padding-bottom: .5em;} -.smaller td {padding-bottom: 0;} - -.tdl { - text-align: left; - vertical-align: top; - padding-right: 1em; - padding-left: 1.5em; - text-indent: -1.5em; -} - -.tdc {text-align: center;} - -.tdr { - text-align: right; - vertical-align: bottom; - padding-left: .3em; - white-space: nowrap; -} -.tdr.top{vertical-align: top; padding-left: 0; padding-right: .5em;} - -.pagenum { - position: absolute; - right: .25em; - text-indent: 0; - text-align: right; - font-size: 70%; - font-weight: normal; - font-variant: normal; - font-style: normal; - letter-spacing: normal; - line-height: normal; - color: #acacac; - border: .0625em solid #acacac; - background: #ffffff; - padding: .0625em .125em; -} - -.figcenter { - margin: 2em auto 2em auto; - text-align: center; - page-break-inside: avoid; - max-width: 30em; -} - -img { - padding: 1em 0 .5em 0; - max-width: 100%; - height: auto; -} - -a.ref {text-decoration: none;} - -.caption {text-align: center; margin-top: 0;} - -ul {margin-left: 3em; padding-left: 0;} -li {list-style-type: none; padding-left: 2em; text-indent: -2.5em; text-align: left;} - -.footnotes { - border: thin dashed black; - margin: 4em 5% 1em 5%; - padding: .5em 1em .5em 1.5em; -} - -.footnote {font-size: .95em;} -.footnote p {text-indent: 1em;} -.footnote p.in0 {text-indent: 0;} -.footnote p.fn1 {text-indent: -.7em;} -.footnote p.fn2 {text-indent: -1.1em;} -.footnote p.fn3 {text-indent: -1.5em;} - -.fnanchor { - vertical-align: 60%; - line-height: .7; - font-size: smaller; - text-decoration: none; -} -.footnote .fnanchor {font-size: .8em;} - -a.ref {text-decoration: none;} - -.index {margin-left: 1em;} -ul.index {padding-left: 0;} -li {list-style-type: none;} -li.indx, li.ifrst {list-style-type: none; padding-left: 3em; text-indent: -3em; padding-top: .2em;} -li.isub1 {padding-left: 3em; text-indent: -2em;} -li.ifrst {padding-top: 1em;} - -.blockquot { - margin: 1.5em 5% 1.5em 5%; - font-size: 95%; -} -.blockquot.left {margin-left: 0;} -.blockquot.p0 {margin-top: 0;} - -.poetry-container { - margin: 1.5em auto; - text-align: center; - font-size: 98%; -} - -.poetry { - display: inline-block; - text-align: left; - margin-left: 0; -} - -.poetry .stanza {padding: 0.5em 0;} -.poetry .verse {text-indent: -3em; padding-left: 3em;} -.poetry .attrib {margin-right: -2em; text-align: right; margin-top: -.5em;} -.poetry .indentq {text-indent: -3.45em;} - -.transnote { - background-color: #999999; - border: thin dotted; - font-family: sans-serif, serif; - margin-left: 5%; - margin-right: 5%; - margin-top: 4em; - margin-bottom: 2em; - padding: 1em; -} - -.sigright { - margin-right: 2em; - text-align: right;} - -.gesperrt1 {letter-spacing: 0.03em; margin-right: -0.22em;} -.wspace {word-spacing: .3em;} - -span.locked {white-space:nowrap;} - -.tpnarrow {max-width: 25em; margin-left: auto; margin-right: auto;} -hr.thick {margin: .2em 0 0 0; width: 100%; border-top: .4em solid black;} -hr.thin {margin: .2em 0 0 0; width: 100%; border-top: thin solid black;} - -@media print, handheld -{ - body {margin: 0;} - - h3, .chapter, .newpage {page-break-before: always;} - h2.nobreak, .nobreak {page-break-before: avoid; padding-top: 0;} - - p { - margin-top: .5em; - text-align: justify; - margin-bottom: .25em; - } - - table {width: auto; max-width: 100%; margin: 1em auto 1em 0;} - - .tdl { - padding-left: 1em; - text-indent: -1em; - padding-right: 0; - } - - .figcenter {max-width: 100%; margin: 0 auto 0 auto;} - img {max-height: 80%;} - - p.drop-cap {text-indent: 1.75em; margin-bottom: .24em;} - p.drop-cap:first-letter { - float: none; - font-size: 100%; - margin-left: 0; - margin-right: 0; - text-indent: 1.75em; - } - - p.drop-cap .firstword {margin-left: 0;} - p .firstword {font-size: 100%;} - .firstword {font-variant: normal;} - - hr { - margin-top: .1em; - margin-bottom: .1em; - visibility: hidden; - color: white; - width: .01em; - display: none; - } - - ul {margin-left: 1em; padding-left: 0;} - li {list-style-type: none; padding-left: 1em; text-indent: -1.5em;} - - .blockquot {margin: 1.5em 3% 1.5em 3%;} - - .poetry-container {text-align: left;} - .poetry {display: block; text-align: left; margin-left: 10%; margin-right: 5%;} - .poetry .attrib {text-align: right; margin-right: 0;} - .poetry .stanza {page-break-inside: avoid;} - - .transnote { - page-break-inside: avoid; - margin-left: 2%; - margin-right: 2%; - margin-top: 1em; - margin-bottom: 1em; - padding: .5em; - } - - .index {margin-left: 0;} - -} - -.poetry .indent0 {text-indent: -3em;} -.poetry .indent12 {text-indent: 3em;} -.poetry .indent2 {text-indent: -2em;} -.poetry .indent4 {text-indent: -1em;} -.poetry .indent6 {text-indent: 0em;} - - - h1.pgx { text-align: center; - clear: both; - font-weight: bold; - font-size: 190%; - margin-top: 0em; - margin-bottom: 1em; - word-spacing: 0em; - letter-spacing: 0em; - line-height: 1; } - h2.pgx { text-align: center; - clear: both; - font-weight: bold; - font-size: 135%; - margin-top: 2em; - margin-bottom: 1em; - word-spacing: 0em; - letter-spacing: 0em; - page-break-before: avoid; - line-height: 1; } - h3.pgx { text-align: center; - clear: both; - font-weight: bold; - font-size: 110%; - margin-top: 2em; - margin-bottom: 1em; - word-spacing: 0em; - letter-spacing: 0em; - line-height: 1; } - h4.pgx { text-align: center; - clear: both; - font-weight: bold; - font-size: 100%; - margin-top: 2em; - margin-bottom: 1em; - word-spacing: 0em; - letter-spacing: 0em; - line-height: 1; } - hr.pgx { width: 100%; - margin-top: 3em; - margin-bottom: 0em; - margin-left: auto; - margin-right: auto; - height: 4px; - border-width: 4px 0 0 0; /* remove all borders except the top one */ - border-style: solid; - border-color: #000000; - clear: both; } - </style> -</head> -<body> -<h1 class="pgx" title="">The Project Gutenberg eBook, Leaders of the People, by Joseph Clayton</h1> -<p>This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States -and most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no -restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it -under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this -eBook or online at <a -href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you are not -located in the United States, you'll have to check the laws of the -country where you are located before using this ebook.</p> -<p>Title: Leaders of the People</p> -<p> Studies in Democratic History</p> -<p>Author: Joseph Clayton</p> -<p>Release Date: February 1, 2021 [eBook #64437]</p> -<p>Language: English</p> -<p>Character set encoding: UTF-8</p> -<p>***START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK LEADERS OF THE PEOPLE***</p> -<p> </p> -<h4 class="pgx" title="">E-text prepared by deaurider, Charlie Howard,<br /> - and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team<br /> - (https://www.pgdp.net)<br /> - from page images generously made available by<br /> - Internet Archive<br /> - (https://archive.org)</h4> -<p> </p> -<table border="0" style="background-color: #ccccff;margin: 0 auto;" cellpadding="10"> - <tr> - <td valign="top"> - Note: - </td> - <td> - Images of the original pages are available through - Internet Archive. See - https://archive.org/details/leadersofpeoples00clayiala - </td> - </tr> -</table> -<p> </p> -<div class="body"><div class="transnote"> -<p class="center large bold">Transcriber’s Note</p> -<p>Larger versions of most illustrations may be seen by right-clicking them -and selecting an option to view them separately, or by double-tapping and/or -stretching them.</p> -</div></div> -<p> </p> -<hr class="pgx" /> -<div class="body"><p> </p> -<p> </p> -<p> </p> - -<div id="i_frontis" class="figcenter"> - <img src="images/i_f001.jpg" width="1545" height="1989" alt="" /> - <div class="caption"><p><i>John Hampden.</i></p> - -<p><i>From a print by J. Houbraken 1740.</i></p></div></div> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="newpage p1 center wspace tpnarrow"> -<h1> -LEADERS OF<br /> -THE PEOPLE</h1> - -<p class="larger p0 b0">STUDIES IN DEMOCRATIC HISTORY</p> - -<p class="larger gesperrt1"><i>By</i> JOSEPH CLAYTON <span class="in2">❦</span> <span class="in2">❦</span></p> - -<p class="b1">WITH A FRONTISPIECE IN PHOTOGRAVURE<br /> -<span class="gesperrt1">AND NUMEROUS OTHER ILLUSTRATIONS</span></p> - -<hr class="thick" /><hr class="thin" /> - -<div class="ptp"> </div> - -<hr class="thin" /><hr class="thick" /> - -<p><span class="larger">NEW YORK: MITCHELL KENNERLEY</span><br /> -TWO EAST TWENTY-NINTH STREET · MCMXI</p> -</div> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="tpnarrow"> -<p class="newpage p4 center vspace"> -<span class="wspace">To the Memory of</span></p> - -<p class="p1 center wspace larger">FREDERICK YORK POWELL</p> - -<p class="p1 center">Regius Professor of Modern History<br /> -at the University of Oxford<br /> -1894–1904</p> - -<p class="p1 center smaller">“I loved him in life and I love him<br /> -none the less in death: for what<br /> -I loved in him is not dead.”</p> -</div> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_i">i</span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak left" id="CONTENTS">CONTENTS</h2> -</div> - -<table id="toc" summary="Contents"> -<tr class="smaller"> - <td> </td> - <td> </td> - <td class="tdc"><i>Page</i></td> -</tr> -<tr> - <td class="tdl" colspan="2"><span class="smcap">Preface</span></td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#PREFACE">xi</a></td> -</tr> -<tr> - <td class="tdr top">I.</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Archbishop Anselm and Norman Autocracy</span>, 1093–1130</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#hdr_1">3</a></td> -</tr> -<tr> - <td class="tdr top">II.</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Thomas of Canterbury, the Defender of the Poor</span>, 1162–1170</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#hdr_2">33</a></td> -</tr> -<tr> - <td class="tdr top">III.</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">William FitzOsbert, the First English Agitator</span>, 1188–1189</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#hdr_3">69</a></td> -</tr> -<tr> - <td class="tdr top">IV.</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Stephen Langton and the Great Charter</span>, 1207–1215</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#hdr_4">81</a></td> -</tr> -<tr> - <td class="tdr top">V.</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Bishop Grosseteste, the Reformer</span>, 1235–1253</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#hdr_5">99</a></td> -</tr> -<tr> - <td class="tdr top">VI.</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Simon of Montfort and the English Parliament</span>, 1258–1265</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#hdr_6">117</a></td> -</tr> -<tr> - <td class="tdr top">VII.</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Wat Tyler and the Peasant Revolt</span>, 1381</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#hdr_7">141</a></td> -</tr> -<tr> - <td class="tdr top">VIII.</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Jack Cade, the Captain of Kent</span>, 1450</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#hdr_8">173</a></td> -</tr> -<tr> - <td class="tdr top">IX.</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Sir Thomas More and Freedom of Conscience</span>, 1529–1535</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#hdr_9">193</a></td> -</tr> -<tr> - <td class="tdr top">X.</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Robert Ket and the Norfolk Rising</span>, 1549</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#hdr_10">217</a></td> -</tr> -<tr> - <td class="tdr top">XI.</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Eliot, Hampden, and Pym and the Supremacy of the Commons</span>, 1626–1643</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#hdr_11">245</a></td> -</tr> -<tr> - <td class="tdr top">XII.</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">John Lilburne and the Levellers</span>, 1647–1653</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#hdr_12">277</a></td> -</tr> -<tr> - <td class="tdr top">XIII.</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Winstanley the Digger</span>, 1649–1650</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#hdr_13">293</a></td> -</tr> -<tr> - <td class="tdr top">XIV.</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Major Cartwright, the Father of Reform</span>, 1776–1820</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#hdr_14">307</a></td> -</tr> -<tr> - <td class="tdr top">XV.</td> - <td class="tdl"><span class="smcap">Ernest Jones and Chartism</span>, 1838–1868</td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#hdr_15">319</a></td> -</tr> -<tr> - <td class="tdl" colspan="2"><span class="smcap">Conclusion</span></td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#CONCLUSION">335</a></td> -</tr> -<tr> - <td class="tdl" colspan="2"><span class="smcap">Index</span></td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#INDEX">339</a></td> -</tr> -</table> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_ix">ix</span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak left" id="LIST_OF_ILLUSTRATIONS">LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS</h2> -</div> - -<table id="loi" summary="List of Illustrations"> -<tr> - <td class="tdl">JOHN HAMPDEN<br /><cite>From the Engraving by Jacob Houbraken</cite></td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#i_frontis"><i>Frontispiece</i></a></td> -</tr> -<tr class="smaller"> - <td> </td> - <td class="tdr">facing p.</td> -</tr> -<tr> - <td class="tdl">ARCHBISHOP ANSELM<br /><cite>From an Old French Engraving in the British Museum</cite></td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#ip_3">3</a></td> -</tr> -<tr> - <td class="tdl">THOMAS À BECKET<br /><cite>From an Engraving after Van Eyck</cite></td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#ip_33">33</a></td> -</tr> -<tr> - <td class="tdl">KING RICHARD II.<br /><cite>From the Panel Painting in the Sanctuary in Westminster Abbey</cite></td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#ip_141">141</a></td> -</tr> -<tr> - <td class="tdl">SIR THOMAS MORE<br /><cite>From the Drawing by Hans Holbein</cite></td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#ip_193">193</a></td> -</tr> -<tr> - <td class="tdl">SIR JOHN ELIOT<br /><cite>From a Steel Engraving by William Holl</cite></td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#ip_245">245</a></td> -</tr> -<tr> - <td class="tdl">JOHN PYM<br /><cite>From the Engraving by Jacob Houbraken</cite></td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#ip_257">257</a></td> -</tr> -<tr> - <td class="tdl">MAJOR CARTWRIGHT<br /><cite>From a Contemporary Drawing</cite></td> - <td class="tdr"><a href="#ip_307">307</a></td> -</tr> -</table> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_xi">xi</span></p> - -<h2 class="nobreak left b05" id="PREFACE">PREFACE</h2> -</div> - -<div class="blockquot left p0"> - -<p class="p0 in0 larger">“<i>Let us now praise famous men, and our<br /> -fathers who begat us.</i>”</p></div> - -<p class="drop-cap"><span class="firstword">The</span> names of the seventeen men, here -named “Leaders of the People,” are for -the most part familiar in our mouths as -household words. Those who triumphed, like -Anselm and Stephen Langton; or whose cause -triumphed, like Simon of Montfort, Eliot, Pym and -Hampden, are beyond any loss of fame. Those -who in high place quitted themselves like men and -died game (if the phrase may be permitted), as did -Thomas Becket and Sir Thomas More, have, for all -time, deservedly their reward. The unsuccessful -rebels, FitzOsbert (called Longbeard), Wat Tyler, -Jack Cade and Robert Ket, are hard put to get rid -of the obloquy heaped upon them by contemporary -authority; while the later rebels, equally unsuccessful, -Lilburne, Winstanley, Major Cartwright and -Ernest Jones, relying on the pen rather than the -sword, escaped the hangman, and in so doing -narrowly escaped oblivion. Good Bishop Grosseteste, -living out his long life, thwarted often, but -unmartyred, enjoys the reputation commonly awarded -to conscientious public servants who die in harness.</p> - -<p>On the whole, re-perusing the records of these -seventeen men, who would altogether reverse the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_xii">xii</span> -verdicts of time? The obloquy may be removed -when the work of the rebels is fairly seen, and it -may be judged that they deserved better of the State -than appeared when they troubled its peace. The -rebels of the pen, too, should be worthy of recollection -in this age, for they wrought manfully with the -weapon now at once so powerful and so popular. -The greater men of our series stand out higher as -the distance increases. So far readjusted, the -awards of history may be accepted.</p> - -<p>But with all the differences of character, one common -quality binds these men whose stories are here -retold—a resolute hatred of oppression. And one -common work, successful or unsuccessful, was theirs—to -labour for the liberties of England and the -health of its people. The value of each man’s work -can only be stated approximately: it is difficult to -make full allowance for the vastly different parts our -heroes, statesmen and rebels alike, were called to -play. The great thing is, that whatever the part, -they played it faithfully, as they read it, to the end. -We may admit the degrees of service given: it is -impossible to do otherwise. Some of these Leaders -shone as great orbs of light in their day and -generation, lighting not only England, but all western -Europe—and still their light burns true and clear -across the centuries. Others were but flickering -rush-lights—long extinct now. But none were will-o’-the-wisps, -for all helped to show the road to be -travelled by English men and women seeking free<span class="pagenum" id="Page_xiii">xiii</span>dom, -and moving ever towards democracy. At the -least, we—enjoying an inheritance won at a great -price, and only to be retained on terms no easier—can -keep the memory green of some few valiant servants -of our liberties. What is wanted is a real history of -the growth of the idea of freedom and of popular -liberty in this country; and these rough biographical -sketches may be accepted as a contribution to the -materials for such a book. “Biography is a department -of history, and stands to it as the life-history -of a plant or an animal does to general biology.”</p> - -<p>I have gone back to all the original sources to get -once more at the lives of these “Leaders of the -People,” and to see them as they were seen by their -contemporaries; but I have also done my best to -read what the historians of our own day have written -concerning them, and in mentioning my authorities -I have, in each case, given a list of the modern -books that seem to me valuable.</p> - -<p class="sigright">J. C.</p> - -<p><i>September, 1910.</i></p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<h2 id="hdr_1">Archbishop Anselm and Norman Autocracy<br /> - -<span class="subhead">1093–1109</span></h2> -</div> - -<p><span class="smcap">Authorities</span>: Eadmer—<cite xml:lang="la" lang="la">Historia Novorum</cite> and <cite>Life -of Anselm</cite>; Orderic of St. Evroul; <cite>The English -Chronicle</cite>; Florence of Worcester; William of Malmesbury; -(Rolls Series); Sir Francis Palgrave—<cite>England -and Normandy</cite>; Freeman—<cite>Norman Conquest</cite>, Vol. V., -<cite>Reign of William Rufus</cite>; Dean Church—<cite>St. Anselm</cite>.</p> - -<div id="ip_3" class="figcenter"> - <img src="images/i_p002.jpg" width="1573" height="1905" alt="" /> - <div class="caption"><p>ARCHBISHOP ANSELM</p> - -<p>(<cite>From an old French Engraving in the British Museum.</cite>)</p></div></div> -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_3">3</span></p> - -<h3 class="left">ARCHBISHOP ANSELM AND<br />NORMAN AUTOCRACY -<span class="subhead">1093–1109.</span></h3> - -<p class="drop-cap"><span class="firstword">The</span> first real check to the absolutism of -Norman rule in England was given by -Anselm, Archbishop of Canterbury.</p> - -<p>The turbulent ambition of Norman -barons threatened the sovereignity of William the -Conqueror and of his son, the Red King, often -enough, but these outbreaks promised no liberty for -England. The fires of English revolt were stamped -out utterly five years after Senlac, and the great -Conqueror at his death left England crushed; but he -left it under the discipline of religion, and he left it -loyal to the authority of the crown, grateful for -the one protection against the lawless rule of the -barons.</p> - -<p>The English Chronicler, writing as “one who -knew him and once lived at his court,” summed up -the character of the Conqueror’s life and work in -words that have been freely quoted through the -<span class="locked">centuries:—</span></p> - -<p>“King William was wiser and mightier than any -of his forerunners. He built many minsters, and was -gentle to God’s servants, though stern beyond all -measure to those who withstood his will.... So -stark and fierce was he that none dared resist his will. -Earls that did aught against his bidding he put in -bonds, and bishops he set off their bishoprics, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_4">4</span> -abbots off their abbacies, and thanes he cast into -prison. He spared not his own brother, called Odo, -who was the chief man next to the king, but set him -in prison. So just was he that the good peace he -made in this land cannot be forgotten. For he -made it so that a man might fare alone over his realm -with his bosom full of gold, unhurt; and no man -durst slay another man whatsoever the evil he hath -done him; and if any man harmed a woman he was -punished accordingly. He ruled over England, and -surveyed the land with such skill that there was not -one hide but that he knew who held it, and what -it was worth, and these things he set in a written -book. So mighty was he that he held Normandy -and Brittany, won England and Maine, brought -Scotland and Wales to bow to him, and would, -had he lived two years longer, have won Ireland -by his renown, without need of weapons. Yet -surely in his time men had much travail and very -many sorrows; and poor men he made to toil hard -for the castles he had built. He fell on covetousness, -and the love of gold; and took by right and -by unright many marks of gold and more hundred -pounds of silver of his people, and for little need. -He made great deer-parks, and ordered that whoso -slew hart or hind, him men should blind; and -forbade men to slay deer or boar, and made the -hare go free; he loved the big game as if he were -their father. And the poor men that were oppressed -he recked nought of. All must follow the king’s -will if they would live, or have land, or even a quiet -life.”</p> - -<p>But now, in September, 1087, the great King -William was dead, with his life-work done; and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_5">5</span> -from the tyranny of a strong and just ruler, England -passed to the despotism of his fearless son, William -the Red, who was “terrible and mighty over his -land and his men and towards all his neighbours;” -in whose reign “all that was loathsome in the eyes -of God and righteous men was of common use; -wherefore he was loathed by well-nigh all his -people, and hateful to God as his end showed.”</p> - -<p>There was much of the later Puritan in William I. -in the steadfastness of purpose, the suppression of -“malignants,” and determination to have justice -done, no less than in the sincerity for Church -reform, and the deep respect for the ordinances -of religion. No king of England worked more -harmoniously with a strong archbishop than -William I. with Lanfranc—save, perhaps, Charles I. -with Laud.</p> - -<p>Then on the death of William I., followed less -than two years later by Lanfranc’s, came the -reaction in Church and State from the efforts after -law, religion, and social decency under the Conqueror’s -rule.</p> - -<p>The Red King had all his father’s sternness and -strength, but was without any of that belief in -justice, that faith in the Sovereign Power of a -Living God, that desire for law and order, and -that grave austerity in morals, which saved the -Conqueror from baseness in his tyranny.</p> - -<p>William II., unmarried, made the wildest and -most brutish profligacy fashionable at court. To -pay for his debaucheries and extravagances he -plundered all who could pay, in especial the Church, -enjoying the revenues of all vacant sees and abbeys, -and declining to fill up the vacancies so that this<span class="pagenum" id="Page_6">6</span> -enjoyment might remain. After Lanfranc, as the -king’s chief adviser, came Ranulf (nicknamed the -Torch, or Firebrand), a coarse, unscrupulous bully, -with the wit of a criminal lawyer. This man was -made Bishop of Durham, and Justiciar. For him -government meant nothing but the art of getting -money for his royal master, and silencing all -opposition.</p> - -<p>For over three years there was no Archbishop -of Canterbury, and the Red King refused to fill -up the vacancy caused by Lanfranc’s death, preferring -to enjoy the revenues and possessions of -the see; a thing that was shocking to all lovers -of religion, and scandalous to those who cared for -public decency and the good estate of the country.</p> - -<p>Eadmer, a contemporary, describes the condition -of England in those early years of William <span class="locked">II.:—</span></p> - -<p>“The king seized the church at Canterbury, the -mother of all England, Scotland, and Ireland, and -the neighbouring isles; he bade his officers to make -an inventory of all that belonged to it, within and -without; and after he had fixed an allowance for -the support of the monks who served God in that -place, he ordered the remainder to be disposed of -at a rent and brought under his domain. So he -put up the Church of Christ to sale; giving the -power of lordship over it to anyone who, however -hurtful he might be, would bid the highest price. -Every year, in wretched succession, a new rent -was set; for the king would allow no bargain to -remain settled, and whoever promised more ousted -him who was paying less, unless the former tenant, -giving up his original bargain, came up of his own -accord to the offer of the later bidder: and every<span class="pagenum" id="Page_7">7</span> -day might be seen, besides, the most abandoned -of men on their business of collecting money for -the king, marching about the cloisters of the -monastery, heedless of the religious rule of God’s -servants, and with fierce and savage looks giving -their orders on all sides; uttering threats, lording -it over every one, and showing their power to the -utmost. What scandals and quarrels and irregularities -arose from this I hate to remember. Some -of the monks of the church were dispersed at the -coming of this misfortune, and sent to other houses, -and those who remained suffered many tribulations -and indignities. What shall I say of the church -tenants, ground down by such wasting and misery, -that one might doubt, but that worse followed, -whether escaping with bare life they could have -been more cruelly oppressed. Nor did all this -happen only at Canterbury. The same savage -cruelty raged in all her daughter churches in -England, which, when bishop or abbot died, at -that time fell into widowhood. And this king, -too, was the first who ordered this woeful oppression -against the churches of God; he had inherited -nothing of this sort from his father, but was alone -in keeping the vacant churches in his own hands. -And thus, wherever you looked, there was wretchedness -before your eyes; and this distress lasted for -nearly five years over the Church of Canterbury, -always increasing, always, as time went on, growing -more cruel and evil.”</p> - -<p>There is no word of exaggeration in this pitiful -lament of Eadmer’s. England under William II. -was at the mercy of a Norman whose notion of -absolute monarchy was to bleed the land as a subject<span class="pagenum" id="Page_8">8</span> -province. Courageous in battle he was, and skilful -in arms, but utterly heedless of the welfare of the -people he ruled. It was enough for the Red King -if his demands for money were met. There was no -one strong enough to gainsay his will, or stand -before him as the prophets of old stood before the -kings of Israel, until Anselm came to Canterbury. -It is only in the utterances of men like Eadmer we -learn something of the misery of the nation.<a id="FNanchor_1" href="#Footnote_1" class="fnanchor">1</a></p> - -<p>The king was with his court at Gloucester at -Christmas, 1092, and Anselm, then abbot of the -famous monastery of Bec in Normandy, was in -England at that time; partly to comfort his friend, -Earl Hugh of Chester, who was sick, and partly to -attend to the English affairs of his monastery.</p> - -<p>Anselm was known as the friend of Lanfranc. -He had been a welcome guest at the court of the -Conqueror and in the cloisters at Canterbury. His -character stood high above all contemporaries in -England or Normandy. Anselm was surely the right -man to be made archbishop, and so put an end to a -state of things which even to the turbulent barons -was discreditable to the country.</p> - -<p>The Red King bade Anselm come to his court, -and received him with great display of honour.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_9">9</span> -Then came a private interview, and Anselm at once -told the king how men spoke ill of his misrule: -“Openly or secretly things were daily said of him -by nearly all the men of his realm which were not -seemly for the king’s dignity.” They parted, and -Anselm was busy for some time in England. When -the abbot wished to return to Bec William refused -him leave to quit the country.</p> - -<p>At the beginning of Lent, March, 1093, the king -was lying sick at Gloucester. It was believed the -sickness was mortal. Certainly the king thought -himself dying. Anselm was summoned to minister -to him, and on his arrival bade the king “make a -clean confession of all that he knows that he has -done against God, and promise that, should he -recover, he will without pretence amend in all things. -The king at once agreed to this, and with sorrow of -heart engaged to do all that Anselm required, and to -keep justice and mercy all his life long. To this he -pledged his faith, and made his bishops witnesses -between himself and God, sending persons in his -stead to promise his word to God on the altar. An -Edict was written and sealed with the king’s seal -that all prisoners should be set free in all his dominions, -all debts forgiven, all offences heretofore committed -pardoned and forgotten for ever. Further, -good and holy laws were promised to the whole -people, and the sacred upholding of right and such -solemn inquest into wrongdoing as may deter -others.”</p> - -<p>Thus Eadmer.</p> - -<p>Florence of Worcester puts the matter more -briefly. “When the king thought himself about to -die he vowed to God, as his barons advised him, to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_10">10</span> -amend his life, to sell no more churches nor farm -them out, but to defend them by his kingly -might, and to end all bad laws and to establish just -laws.”</p> - -<p>There was still the vacant archbishopric to be -filled, and the king named Anselm for Canterbury.</p> - -<p>In vain Anselm pleaded that he was an old man—he -was then sixty—and unfit for so great a responsibility, -that he was a monk and had shunned the -business of the world.</p> - -<p>The bishops assembled round the sick king’s bed -would not hear the refusal. Here was religion well -nigh destroyed in England, and evil rampant, and -the Church of God stricken almost to death, and at -such a time was Anselm to prefer his own ease and -quiet to the call to deliver Canterbury from its -bondage? By main force they placed a pastoral -staff within his hands, and while the crowd shouted -“Long live the bishop!” he was “carried rather -than led to a neighbouring church.” The king at -once ordered that Anselm should be invested with -all the temporal rights of the see, as Lanfranc had -held them, and in September, 1093, Anselm was -enthroned at Canterbury, and in December he was -consecrated.</p> - -<p>Anselm warned the bishops and nobles when they -forced the archbishopric upon him that they were -making a mistake. “You have yoked to the plough -a poor weak sheep with a wild bull,” he said. “This -plough is the Church of God, and in England it has -been drawn by two strong oxen, the king and the -Archbishop of Canterbury, one to do justice and -to hold power in the things of this world, the other -to teach and govern in the things eternal. Now<span class="pagenum" id="Page_11">11</span> -Lanfranc is dead, and with his untamed companion -you have joined an old and feeble sheep.”</p> - -<p>That the king and the archbishop were unevenly -yoked was manifest on William’s recovery, but it -was no poor sheep with whom Rufus had to deal, -but a man as brave and steadfast as he was gentle -and wise.</p> - -<p>Trouble began at once when William rose from -his sick-bed. Anselm was now enthroned and no -attempt was made to revoke the appointment. But -the king’s promises of public amendment were -broken without hesitation. The pardoned prisoners -were seized, the cancelled debts redemanded and the -proceedings against offenders revived.</p> - -<p>“Then was there so great misery and suffering -through the whole realm that no one can remember -to have seen its like in England. All the evil -which the king had wrought before he was sick -seemed good by the side of the wrong which he did -when he was returned to health.”</p> - -<p>The king wanting money for his expedition -against his brother, Robert of Normandy, tried -to persuade Anselm to allow the Church lands, -bestowed since Lanfranc’s death on vassals of the -crown on tenure of military service, to remain with -their holders. He was answered by steady refusal. -Had Anselm yielded, he would have been a party to -the alienation of lands, that, as part of the property -of the see, he was bound to administer for the -common good; he would have been a party not -only to the spoiling of the Church, but to the -robbery of the poor and needy, whose claims, in -those days, to temporal assistance from Church -estates were not disputed. Any subsequent restitution<span class="pagenum" id="Page_12">12</span> -of such lands was impossible, he foresaw, if it -was shown that the archbishop had confirmed what -the king had done.</p> - -<p>Then came the question of a present of money to -the king. Anselm brought five hundred marks, -and, but for his counsellors and men of arms, who -told him the archbishop ought to have given twice -as much, William would have taken the gift gladly -enough. As it was, to show his dissatisfaction, the -money was returned. Anselm went boldly to the -king and warned him that money freely given was -better than a forced tribute. To this frank rebuke -of the extortion practised by the king’s servants, -William answered that he wanted neither his money, -nor his preaching, nor his company. Anselm retired -not altogether displeased at the refusal, for too -many of the clergy bought church offices by these -free gifts after they were instituted. In vain his -friends urged him to seek the king’s favour by -increasing his present, Anselm gave the five hundred -marks to the poor, and shook his head at the idea of -buying the king’s favour.</p> - -<p>But if Anselm declined to walk in the path of -corruption to oblige the king, William was equally -resolute to make the path of righteousness a hard -road for the archbishop.</p> - -<p>In February, 1094, when the Red King was at -Hastings waiting to cross to Normandy, Anselm -appealed to him to sanction a council of bishops, -whose decisions approved by the crown should have -the authority of law. There were two things for -such a council to do: (1) stop the open vice and -profligacy which ravaged the land; (2) find abbots -for the many monasteries then without heads. In<span class="pagenum" id="Page_13">13</span> -Anselm’s words, the council was “to restore the Christian -religion which was well-nigh dead in so many.”</p> - -<p>William treated the request with angry contempt, -and when Anselm sent bishops to him asking why -the king refused him friendship, an evasive answer -was returned.</p> - -<p>“Give him money,” said the bishops again to -Anselm, “if you want peace with him. Give him the -five hundred marks, and promise him as much more, -and you will have the royal friendship. This, it -seems to us, is the only way out of the difficulty.”</p> - -<p>But it was not Anselm’s way. He would not even -offer what had been rejected. “Besides, the greater -part of it was spent on the poor.”</p> - -<p>William burst out into wrathful speech when he -was told of this reply. “Never will I hold him as -my father and archbishop, and ever shall I hate him -with bitter hatred. I hated him much yesterday, -and to-day I hate him still more.”</p> - -<p>A year later (March, 1095) at a great council of -bishops and nobles, held at the castle of Rockingham, -the king’s hatred had full vent. From the first -the Archbishop of Canterbury received from the -Pope a <i xml:lang="la" lang="la">pallium</i>, the white woollen stole with four -crosses, which was “the badge of his office and -dignity,”<a id="FNanchor_2" href="#Footnote_2" class="fnanchor">2</a> and Anselm was anxious to journey to -Rome to obtain his pallium from Pope Urban. William -objected to this on the ground that there was -another claimant to the papacy, and that until he -had decided who was the rightful pope no one in -England had a right to do so. In vain Anselm<span class="pagenum" id="Page_14">14</span> -pointed out that he, with all Normandy, had acknowledged -Urban before he had become archbishop. -William retorted angrily that Anselm could only -keep his faith to the Apostolic See by breaking his -faith to the king.</p> - -<p>The council of Rockingham met to settle the -question—not the question of the supremacy of -Rome in Western Christendom<a id="FNanchor_3" href="#Footnote_3" class="fnanchor">3</a>—but the question -whether, in England, there was any higher authority -than the crown. William did not pretend to -dispute the papal supremacy in the Church. His -claim was that the king alone must first acknowledge -the pope before any of his subjects could do -so. In reality the king’s one desire was “to take -from Anselm all authority for maintaining the -Christian religion. For as long as any one in all -the land was said to hold any power except through -him, even in the things of God, it seemed to him -that the royal dignity was diminished.” (Eadmer.) -William acknowledged Pope Urban readily enough, -but he would have Archbishop Anselm understand -that the papacy must be acknowledged by permission -of the king of England. That was the -real ground of contention between these two men: -was there any power on earth higher in England -than the English crown? According to William, to -appeal to Rome was to dispute the absolutism of the -crown. Anselm maintained that in all things of -God he must render obedience to the Chief -Shepherd and Prince of the Church, to the Vicar<span class="pagenum" id="Page_15">15</span> -of St. Peter; and in matters of earthly dignity he -must render counsel and service to his lord the king.</p> - -<p>The bishops at Rockingham were the king’s -men. Many of them had bought their bishoprics, -all were afraid of the royal displeasure. The stand -made by Anselm, unsupported though he was, did -something to inspire a better courage in the ranks of -the clergy<a id="FNanchor_4" href="#Footnote_4" class="fnanchor">4</a>; but in that Lent of 1095 there was no -sign of support for the archbishop. William only -wanted to break the will of this resolute old man, -the one man in all the kingdom who dared to have -a mind and utterance of his own, and the mitred -creatures of the king supported their lord even to -the point of recommending the forcible deposition -of Anselm from his see, or at least of depriving him -of the staff and ring of office. With one consent -the bishops accepted the king’s suggestion of -renouncing all obedience to Anselm.</p> - -<p>But the barons were not so craven. To the -king’s threat, “No man shall be mine, who will be -his” (Anselm’s), the nobles said bluntly that not -having taken any oath of fealty to the archbishop -they could not abjure it. And Anselm was their -archbishop. “It is his work to govern the Christian -religion in this land, and we who are Christians -cannot deny his guidance while we live here.”</p> - -<p>The three days’ conference at Rockingham ended -in disappointment to the hopes of William of absolute -autocracy, and in general contempt for the prelates -whose abject servility had availed nothing.</p> - -<p>Anselm alone stood higher in the eyes of the men<span class="pagenum" id="Page_16">16</span> -of England, and greater was the ill-will of William. -For another two years Anselm held his ground -against the king. The pallium was brought from -Rome by Walter, Bishop of Albano, and placed on -the altar at Canterbury, and Anselm was content -to take it from the altar. William had written in -vain to Pope Urban praying for the deposition of -Anselm, and promising a large annual tribute to -Rome if his prayer was granted. The pope, of -course, declined to do anything of the sort, and -William had to make the best of the situation. He -wanted money for his own purposes, and his barons -were now against him in his quarrel with the archbishop. -For a time William adopted a semblance -of peace with Anselm, but his anger soon blazed -out again. The ground of complaint this time was -that the soldiers whom the archbishop had sent to -the king for his military expedition against Wales -were inadequate—without proper equipment, and -unfit for service. The archbishop was summoned to -appear before the King’s Court to “do the king right.”</p> - -<p>From the time of his acceptance of the archbishopric, -Anselm had been hoping against hope -that the king would support him, as the Conqueror -had supported Lanfranc, in the building up of the -Christian religion in England—this summons to -the King’s Court was the death-blow to all these -hopes. The defendant in the King’s Court was at -the mercy of the king, who could pronounce whatever -judgment he pleased.<a id="FNanchor_5" href="#Footnote_5" class="fnanchor">5</a> Anselm returned no -answer to the summons, but his mind was made up.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_17">17</span></p> - -<p>“Having knowledge that the king’s word ruled -all judgment in the King’s Court, where nothing was -listened to except what the king willed, it seemed to -Anselm unbecoming that he should contend, as if -disputing, as litigants do, about a matter of words, -and should submit the justice of his cause to the -judgment of a court where neither law, nor equity, -nor reason prevailed. So he held his peace, and -gave no answer to the messenger.” (Eadmer.)</p> - -<p>From the despotism of the Red King Anselm -would turn for justice to the centre of Christendom. -In England he was impotent to stem the evil that -flowed from the savage absolutism of the throne. -All that one man could do to resist the royal -tyranny Anselm had done, and now this summons to -the King’s Court was the final answer to all his -efforts to restrain a lawless king, and to promote the -Christian religion in England. He would not go -through the farce of pleading in the King’s Court, -where judgment was settled by the unbridled caprice -of the king, self-respect forbade the archbishop from -that; he would appeal to the only court on earth -higher than the courts of kings—the court whose -head, in those days, was the head of Christendom.<a id="FNanchor_6" href="#Footnote_6" class="fnanchor">6</a></p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_18">18</span></p> - -<p>William dropped the summons to the King’s -Court, and for a time refused permission to Anselm -to leave the country. Bishops and barons now -urged Anselm not to persist in his appeal to Rome. -But the archbishop was resolute, and in the autumn -of 1097 the king yielded, and Anselm left the -country.<a id="FNanchor_7" href="#Footnote_7" class="fnanchor">7</a></p> - -<p>The first campaign against despotism in England -was over—the battle was to be renewed when -Henry I. wore the crown.</p> - -<p>At Rome Pope Urban, with all the goodwill in -the world, and with a very real affection and regard -for Anselm, could do nothing against the Red King -except rebuke his envoys, and do honour to the -much-tried archbishop. Anselm himself prevented -the excommunication of William when it was proposed -at the Council of Bari, October, 1098.</p> - -<p>But Pope Urban would not allow Anselm to -resign his archbishopric, and this in spite of all -Anselm’s entreaties.</p> - -<p>In the spring of 1099 came a General Council at<span class="pagenum" id="Page_19">19</span> -Rome—at which Anselm assisted—a council remarkable -for its decision against allowing clergy to -receive investiture of churches from the hands of -laymen, and by so doing to become the vassals of -temporal lords. Excommunication was declared to -be the penalty for all who gave or received Church -appointments on such conditions.</p> - -<p>It was at the close of this council that an outspoken -Bishop of Lucca called attention to Anselm’s -case. “One sits amongst us in silence and meekness -who has come from the far ends of the earth. -His very silence cries aloud. His humility and -patience, so gentle and so deep, as they rise to God -should set us on fire. This one man has come here, -wronged and afflicted, seeking judgment and justice -of the Apostolic See. And now this is the second -year, and what help has he found?”</p> - -<p>Pope Urban answered that attention should be -given, but nothing further was done.</p> - -<p>Anselm left Rome and went to Lyons, remaining -in France until the death of William in August, -1100. Henry was at once chosen king in his room, -and crowned at Westminster three days after his -brother’s death. Six weeks later, at Henry’s earnest -request—he prayed him “to come back like a father -to his son Henry and the English people”—Anselm -landed at Dover and returned to take up the task -allotted to him on his consecration as archbishop.</p> - -<p>Henry at the outset of his reign promised “God -and all the people” that the old scandals of selling and -farming out the Church lands should be stopped, -and “to put down all unrighteousness that had been -in his brother’s time, and to hold the best laws that -ever stood in any king’s day before him.” That this<span class="pagenum" id="Page_20">20</span> -charter was of value may be taken from the verdict -on the king by the Chronicler of the time. “Good -man he was and great awe there was of him. No -man durst misdo against another in his day. He -made peace for man and beast. Whoso carried a -burden of gold and silver no man durst do him -wrong.”</p> - -<p>Two evils that pressed very hardly on the mass -of hard-working people, the devastation that attended -the king’s progress through the land<a id="FNanchor_8" href="#Footnote_8" class="fnanchor">8</a>, and the coining -of false money, were at Anselm’s instigation -checked by the king.</p> - -<p>But with all Henry’s desire for the restoration of -religion and law in the land, he was the Conqueror’s -son, and for Anselm the struggle against absolutism -in government was not yet over. Only now the -battle was not with a fierce, untamed despot like the -Red King, but with an autocrat of an even more -formidable type, a stern man of business, in whose -person alone must be found the source of all law -and order, and who would brook no questioning of -the royal will.</p> - -<p>At the beginning of his reign Henry found the -archbishop’s loyalty and good sense invaluable. As -Lanfranc had stood by the Conqueror in a marriage -which was objectionable from the point of view of -Church law, so Anselm stood by his son when he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_21">21</span> -sought the hand of Edith, daughter of the sainted -Queen Margaret of Scotland. Here the objection -to the marriage was not on the grounds of affinity or -consanguinity, but in the fact that Edith was an -inmate of the convent at Romsey, and, it was alleged, -a professed nun. Edith insisted that she had but -taken refuge in the convent to obtain the protection -of her aunt Christina, the abbess, and she had worn -the habit of a nun as a safeguard against the brutal -passions of the Red King and his courtiers. The -fear of violence at the hands of the Normans had -driven women to take the veil, and Lanfranc had -been known to grant release from vows taken under -such mortal pressure. Anselm was not the man to -exalt the letter of the law above the spirit of liberty. -He was content that a council of the great men in -Church and State should hold an inquiry, and on -their verdict declaring Edith free of her vows, the -archbishop gave his blessing on the marriage.</p> - -<p>The same great qualities of loyalty and good -sense made Anselm stand by the king when the -Norman lords, pricked on by Ranulf the Torch, the -rascally Bishop of Durham (who had escaped from -imprisonment in the Tower by making his gaolers -drunk), and hating Henry for “his English ways,” -proposed to back up Robert of Normandy in his -attempts to seize the crown. According to Eadmer, -but for Anselm’s faithfulness and labours, which -turned the scale when so many were wavering, King -Henry would have lost the sovereignty of the realm -of England at that time.</p> - -<p>But Anselm’s services to the king are of small -account by the side of his services to English liberty, -and Anselm’s resistance to Henry’s demands for an<span class="pagenum" id="Page_22">22</span> -absolute monarchy was of lasting influence in the -centuries that followed.<a id="FNanchor_9" href="#Footnote_9" class="fnanchor">9</a></p> - -<p>The struggle began when Henry called upon -Anselm for a new declaration of homage to the -crown, and required him to receive the archbishopric -afresh by a new act of investiture. This was a -claim that had never been made before. “It imported -that on the death of the sovereign the archbishop’s -commission expired, that his office was subordinate -and derivative, and the dignity therefore reverted to -the crown.” (Sir F. Palgrave.)</p> - -<p>Anselm met the demand with the answer that -such a course was impossible. Nay, the very ecclesiastical -“customs” which for some time past had given -the appointment of bishops and abbots to the crown, -and had made the bishops “the king’s men” by obliging -them to do homage and to receive investiture of -their office with ring and staff at the royal hands, were -now impossible for Anselm. The Council at the -Lateran, at which Anselm had been present, had -forbidden the bishops of the Church to become the -vassals of the kings of the earth, and Anselm was -not the man to question this decision. He had seen -only too much, under William the Red, of the curse -of royal supremacy in the Church. He had stood up -alone against the iniquities of misrule, just because -the bishops, who should have been pastors and overseers -of a Christian people, were the sworn creatures -of the king. Henceforth it was forbidden by the -authority that rested in the seat of St. Peter at Rome -for a bishop to receive consecration as a king’s vassal.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_23">23</span></p> - -<p>But if Anselm would be no party to what had -become an intolerable evil, Henry would not give -up the rights his father had exercised without a -contest. He was willing to do his best for the -Church, but it must be in his own way. “Pledging -himself in his own heart and mind not to abate a -jot of his supremacy over the clergy, he would -exercise his authority in Church affairs somewhat -more decently than his father, and a great deal -more than his brother; but that was all.” (Sir F. -Palgrave.)</p> - -<p>Both Henry and Anselm recognized the gravity -of the issue. Were the bishops and abbots to -continue to receive investiture from the king they -were “his men,” and his autocracy was established -over all. Stop the investiture and the bishops were -first and chiefly the servants of the Most High, -acknowledging a sovereignty higher than that -exercised by the princes of this world, and preferring -loyalty to the Church Catholic and its -Father at Rome, to blind obedience to the crown.</p> - -<p>In brief, the question in dispute really was—Was -there, or was there not, any power on earth greater -than the English crown?—a question which no -English king before Henry VIII. answered successfully -in the negative. In contending for the freedom -of the bishops of the Church from vassalage to the -crown, Anselm was contending for the existence of -an authority to which even kings should pay -allegiance. It was not the rights of the clergy -that were at stake, for the terrors of excommunication -did not prevent bishops from receiving -consecration on Henry’s terms, and Anselm stood -alone now, as in the days of the Red King, in the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_24">24</span> -resistance to despotism. It was the feeling and -the knowledge, which Anselm shared with the best -churchmen of his day, that great as the power of -the king must be, it was a bad thing for such power -to exist unchecked, and that it were well for the -world that its mightiest monarchs should know -there was a spiritual dominion given to the successor -of St. Peter, and to his children, a dominion -of divine foundation that claimed obedience even -from kings.</p> - -<p>Anselm put it to the king that the canons of -the Church, and the decrees of a great council -had forbidden the “customs” of investiture which -the king claimed; and he pleaded that he was an -old man, and that unless he could work with the -king on the acceptance of the Church canons, it -was no use his remaining in England, “for he -could not hold communion with those who broke -these laws”: Henry, for his part, was much disturbed. -It was a grave matter to lose the investiture -of churches, and the homage of prelates; it -was a grave matter, too, to let Anselm leave the -country while he himself was hardly established -in the kingdom. “On the one side it seemed -to him that he should be losing, as it were, -half of his kingdom; on the other, he feared lest -Anselm should make his brother Robert King of -England,”—for Robert might easily be brought to -submit to the Apostolic See if he could be made -king on such terms.</p> - -<p>Henry suggested an appeal to the pope on the -question of the right of the crown to “invest” the -bishops, and Anselm, who all along was anxious -for peace—if peace could be obtained without<span class="pagenum" id="Page_25">25</span> -acknowledgment of royal absolutism—at once -agreed.</p> - -<p>The pope, of course, could not grant Henry’s -request. To allow the high offices of the Church -to be disposed of at the caprice of kings and princes, -without any recognition of the sacredness of these -offices, to admit that the chief ministers of religion -were first and foremost “the king’s men,” seemed -to Pope Paschal, as it seemed to Anselm, a concession -to evil, and the establishment of a principle -which experience had proved thoroughly vicious -and mischievous.</p> - -<p>Then for nearly three years a correspondence -dragged on between Henry and the pope, neither -wishing for an open rupture, and in the meantime, -Henry, backed by most of the bishops and nobles -in setting at nought the canons which had forbidden -investiture, proposed to go on appointing and investing -new bishops as before.</p> - -<p>Finally, the king appealed to Anselm to go to -Rome “and try what he could do with the pope, -lest the king by losing the rights of his predecessors -should be disgraced.”</p> - -<p>Anselm was now (1103) an old man of seventy, -but he agreed to go; only “he could do nothing -to the prejudice of the liberty of the Church or his -own honour.” What Henry hoped for was that the -pope would grant some personal dispensation in the -matter of the royal “customs,” and he had tried to -persuade Anselm that such dispensation was sure -to be granted. Anselm did not believe the dispensation -possible or desirable, but left the decision -with the acknowledged head of Christendom at -Rome; and though for another three years Henry<span class="pagenum" id="Page_26">26</span> -urged his suit, no dispensation could be wrung from -the pope. All that the pope would grant was that -the bishops might do “homage” to the crown for -their temporal rights.</p> - -<p>At last, in April, 1106, Anselm returned to -England. The bishops themselves, who had sided -with the king against him, implored him to return, -so wretched had become the state of religion in -England in his absence. They promised to do his -commands and to fight with him the battle of the -Lord.</p> - -<p>Henry, fresh from the conquest of Normandy, -sent word of his good-will, and of his desire for -the archbishop’s presence. The long drawn-out -battle was over, and the king had to be content with -“homage,” and to resign the claim to investiture.</p> - -<p>“On August 1st (1107) an assembly of bishops, -abbots, and chief men of the realm, was held in -London, in the king’s palace, and for three days -the matter of the investiture of churches was fully -discussed between the king and the bishops in -Anselm’s absence. Then, in the presence of -Anselm and before the whole multitude, the king -granted and decreed that henceforth and for ever -no one should be invested in England with bishopric -or abbey by staff and ring, either by the king or the -hand of any layman; while Anselm allowed that no -one chosen for a bishopric should be refused consecration -for having done homage to the king. -This having been settled, the king, by the counsel -of Anselm and the chief men of the realm, appointed -priests in nearly all those churches in England -which had long been widowed of their pastors.” -(Eadmer.)</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_27">27</span></p> - -<p>Victory rested with Anselm. The old archbishop -had done his best for the liberty of religion, and by -contending for this liberty he had wrought for -common freedom.<a id="FNanchor_10" href="#Footnote_10" class="fnanchor">10</a> Later ages and struggles were -to bring out more clearly that some measure of -political and social liberty must follow the demand -for freedom in religion. “Religious forces, and -religious forces alone, have had sufficient influence -to ensure practical realisation for political ideas.” -(Figgis, <cite>Studies of Political Thought</cite>.)</p> - -<p>Anselm’s life was nearly over, his work was accomplished, -a philosophical treatise “Concerning the -agreement of Foreknowledge, Predestination and -the Grace of God with Free Will” was written with -difficulty in the last years. Then his appetite failed -him, and all food became loathsome. At last he was -persuaded to take to his bed, and on April 21st, 1109—the -Wednesday of Holy Week—at daybreak -Anselm passed away.</p> - -<p>Anselm’s name has long been enrolled in the -calendar of the saints of the Church Catholic, no less -is it to be cherished by all who love liberty. Well -may it be said of him, “he was ever a close follower -of Truth, and walked in noble companionship with -Pity and Courage.” Anselm’s plain good sense and -charity were conspicuous in his benediction of the -marriage of Henry and Edith, but these great -qualities were earlier displayed when Lanfranc consulted -him as to the claims of the English Archbishop -Ælphege to be canonised as a martyr.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_28">28</span> -Ælphege had been slain by the Danes for refusing -to ransom his life at the expense of his tenants; -and Anselm replied to Lanfranc that he who would -die rather than oppress his tenants dies for justice’ -sake, and he who dies for justice dies a martyr for -Christ.</p> - -<p>His sympathy and humaneness shone out a -thousand times. There is the story Eadmer tells of -an abbot, who came to Anselm at Bec, and deplored -that he could do no good with the boys at his -monastery. “In spite of all we do they are perverse -and incorrigible,” said the abbot, despondently. -“We are always beating them, but they only get -worse: and though we constrain them in every way -we can, it’s all of no use.” “<em>Constrain</em> them!” -answered Anselm. “Tell me, my lord abbot, when -you plant a tree in your garden, do you so tie it up -that it cannot stretch forth its branches? And if -you did so, what sort of tree would it become a few -years hence when you released it? But this is just -what you do with your boys. You cramp them in -with terrors and threats and blows, so that it is quite -impossible for them to grow or enjoy any freedom. -And kept down in this way their temper is spoilt by -evil thoughts of hatred and suspicion against you, -and they put down all you do to ill-nature and dislike. -Why are you so harsh with them? Are they not -human beings of the same nature as yourself? How -would you like to be treated as you treat them?” -The abbot was finally persuaded that he had been -all wrong. “We have wandered,” he said, “from -the way of truth, and the light of discretion hath not -shone on us.”</p> - -<p>There is another story which gives Anselm’s pity<span class="pagenum" id="Page_29">29</span> -and feeling of kinship with the whole animal -creation. It was when he was archbishop, and was -riding one day from Windsor to Hayes that a hare -chased by the dogs of some of his company took -refuge under the feet of his horse. Anselm at once -pulled up and forebade the hare to be molested, and -when his escort laughed gleefully at the capture, the -archbishop said: “You may laugh, but it is no -laughing matter for this poor unhappy creature, -which is like the soul of a departing man pursued -by evil spirits. Mortal enemies attack it, and it -flies to us for its life: and while it turns to us -for safety we laugh.” He rode on, and in a loud -voice forbade the dogs to touch the hare; which, -glad to be at liberty, darted off to the fields and -woods.</p> - -<p>That Anselm never wavered in his tenderness for -the weak and oppressed may be learnt from the -great Church Synod held at Westminster in -1102—a council summoned on the strong request -of the archbishop. The slave trade was specially -denounced at this council as a “wicked trade used -hitherto in England, by which men are sold like -brute animals,” and a canon was drawn up to that -effect.</p> - -<p>Anselm’s enduring courage and desire for truth -are conspicuous all his life. He fought single-handed -against both William and Henry, and no -weight of numbers, no world-wise talk from other -prelates could make him budge. If he withstood -the Red King and his court at Rockingham, equally -firm was he in withstanding the Norman barons -who were inclined to break away from their sworn -allegiance to Henry. No Englishman by birth or<span class="pagenum" id="Page_30">30</span> -blood was Anselm, for he was born at Aosta, and -spent the greater part of his life on the Continent, -but he brought to England the finest gifts of life, -and gave them freely in service to England’s liberty. -He withstood an absolutism that threatened the -total enslavement of the nation, and the witness he -bore to liberty was taken up and renewed in the -centuries that followed. “Anselm was truly a great -man. So good that he was held a saint in his very -lifetime, so meek that even his enemies honoured -him, so wise that he was the foremost thinker of his -day, and the forerunner of the greatest philosophers -of ours.” (F. York Powell.)</p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<h2 id="hdr_2">Thomas of Canterbury<br /> - -<span class="subhead">The Defender of the Poor</span> -<span class="subhead">1162–1170</span></h2> -</div> - -<p><span class="smcap">Authorities</span>: Benedict of Peterborough; Garnier; -William FitzStephen; John of Salisbury; Herbert of -Bosham; Alan of Tewkesbury; Edward Grim; Roger -of Pontigny; William of Canterbury; Robert of Cricklade—<cite>Materials -for the History of Thomas Becket</cite>, -7 vols.; <cite>Thomas Saga</cite> (Icelandic), translated by Magnusson; -Giraldus Cambrensis; Gervase of Canterbury; -William of Newburgh; Roger of Hoveden, III.; Ralph -Diceto (Rolls Series); Froude, R. H.—<cite>Remains</cite>, -Vol. 3; <cite>Life of Becket</cite>, by Canon J. C. Robertson; -<cite>Life of St. Thomas Becket</cite>, by John Morris, S.J.; -Stubbs—<cite>Constitutional History</cite>, Vol. I; Freeman—<cite>Historical -Essays</cite>, 1st Series; W. H. Hutton—<cite>English -History by Contemporary Writers</cite>—<cite>St. Thomas -of Canterbury</cite>.</p> - -<div id="ip_33" class="figcenter"> - <img src="images/i_p032.jpg" width="1745" height="2640" alt="" /> - <div class="caption"><p>THOMAS A BECKET</p> - -<p>(<cite>From an old Engraving after Van Eyck.</cite>)</p></div></div> -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_33">33</span></p> - -<h3 class="left">THOMAS OF CANTERBURY<br /> -THE DEFENDER OF THE POOR -<span class="subhead">1162–1170</span></h3> - -<p class="drop-cap"><span class="firstword">Fifty</span> years after the death of Anselm the -struggle with absolute monarchy had to -be renewed in England, and again the -Archbishop of Canterbury was the antagonist -of the crown, standing alone for the most part, as -Anselm stood, in his resistance to autocracy.</p> - -<p>The contrast is great between the upbringing and -character of Anselm and of Thomas; but both men -gave valiant service in the cause of liberty in -England, and both are placed in the calendar of -the saints. For Thomas and Anselm alike the -choice was between the favour of the King of -England, the safe broad road of passive obedience, -and the following of the call of conscience on the -craggy way of royal displeasure; and to the everlasting -honour of these two men, and of the religion -they professed, they chose the steep and narrow -path with no faltering step, and followed the gleam, -heedless of this world’s glory, heedless of life itself.</p> - -<p>Thomas was no monk as Anselm was, when the -king nominated him for the archbishopric of Canterbury. -His early life was not spent in the cloister -but in the employment of a wealthy London sheriff, -in the office of Archbishop Theobald, at Lambeth, -and as Chancellor of England.</p> - -<p>The son of gentle parents—his father Gilbert<span class="pagenum" id="Page_34">34</span> -sometime sheriff—“London citizens of the middle -class, not usurers nor engaged in business, but living -well on their own income,” according to FitzStephen, -Thomas was the first Englishman to be made archbishop. -His gifts marked him out for high office. -Theobald had sent him abroad to study law at the -great school at Bologna, and at the age of 36 made -him archdeacon of Canterbury, at that time “the -dignity in the Church of England next after the -bishops and abbots, and which brought him an -hundred pounds of silver.” A year later, 1155, the -young newly crowned king, Henry II., on the advice -of old Archbishop Theobald, made Thomas the -Chancellor. Theobald, anxious about the present, -and apprehensive for the future—for the king was -very young, and those about him were known to -be hostile to the freedom of the Church and willing -to treat England as a conquered land—sought to -prevent the evils which seemed to be at hand by -making Thomas a partner of the King’s counsels. -He could say, after ten years’ experience, that -Thomas was high-principled and prudent, wisely -zealous for justice, and whole-hearted for the freedom -of the Church, and he held forth to the king on -the wisdom, the courage and the faithfulness of his -archdeacon, “and the admirable sweetness of his -manners.”</p> - -<p>The appointment was made, nor could anyone -say that it was ill done, or that Theobald in his -recommendation, or Henry II. in his acceptance, of -Thomas for the chancellorship could have done -better for England.</p> - -<p>The chancellor was magnificent, and his dignity -was accounted second from the king. Nobles sent<span class="pagenum" id="Page_35">35</span> -their children to Thomas to be trained in his service. -The king commended to him his son, the heir to -the throne. Barons and knights did homage to -him. On his embassy to the French king never -had been seen such a retinue of followers, and such -a lavish display of the wealth and grandeur of -England. The proud and mighty he treated with -harshness and violence. Yet it was said, by those -who knew him intimately, that he was lowly in his -own eyes, and gentle and meek to those who were -humble in heart. And in the courts of kings, where -chastity is never commonly extolled, or purity of -life the fashion, Thomas, the chancellor, was known -for his cleanness of living and his unblemished -honour. Many enemies he had, many who hated -him for his power; but never was breath of scandal -uttered against the chancellor’s private life, or -suggestion made that the carnal lusts and appetites -which, unbridled, play havoc with men great and -small, could claim Thomas for their subject.</p> - -<p>He might be reproached by a monk for that he, -being an archdeacon, lived so secular a life, wearing -the dress of a courtier, and charging on the field -with knights in France, but it could not be alleged -that church or realm suffered neglect from the -chancellor. “By divine inspiration and the -counsel of Thomas, the lord king did not long -retain vacant bishoprics and abbacies, so that the -patrimony of the Crucified might be brought into -the treasury, as was afterwards done, but bestowed -them with little delay on honourable persons, and -according to God’s law.” (W. FitzStephen.)</p> - -<p>The close friendship and warm affection of the -king for his chancellor were known to all. When<span class="pagenum" id="Page_36">36</span> -the day’s business was done “they would play together -like boys of the same age.” They sat together -in church and hall and rode out together. “Never -in Christian times were there two men more of one -mind or better friends.” It was natural on the -death of Archbishop Theobald, in 1161, that people -should point to Thomas as his successor, though the -chancellor shrank, as Anselm had done, from the -post.</p> - -<p>“I know three poor priests in England any one -of whom I would rather see advanced to the archbishopric -than myself,” he declared earnestly, when -his friend the prior of Leicester (who also remonstrated -with him for his unclerical dress) told him -the rumours of the court. “For as for me, if I was -appointed, I know the king so through and through -that I should be forced either to lose his favour or, -which God forbid, to lay aside the service of God.”</p> - -<p>Thomas uttered the same warning to Henry -when the king proposed the primacy to him. “I -know certainly,” he said, “that if God should so dispose -that this happen, you would soon turn away -your love, and the favour which is now between us -would be changed into bitterest hate. I know that -you would demand many things in Church matters, -for already you have demanded them, which I could -never bear quietly, and the envious would take occasion -to provoke an endless strife between us.”</p> - -<p>But Henry’s mind was made up. Residing -largely in France, he would have Thomas, Archbishop -of Canterbury and Chancellor, to rule England -as his vice-regent. Six years had Thomas been -the king’s friend and chancellor, but the king did -not know at all the real character of his man, or<span class="pagenum" id="Page_37">37</span> -rather it was inconceivable to the royal mind that -Thomas, whom the king had raised from a mere -nobody, from Archdeacon of Canterbury, an important -ecclesiastic at best, to the chief man in the -realm, should ever dare set himself at variance with -the king’s will. Henry, with his untiring energy, -was earnest enough for good government in Church -and State under an absolute monarchy, and he -counted on greater co-operation with Thomas in -carrying out his plans, were the latter archbishop. -Hitherto, more than once the chancellor had succeeded -in moderating the king’s outbursts of wrath -against some hapless offender, but he had never -shown himself a partisan of the clergy at the expense -of the commonwealth,<a id="FNanchor_11" href="#Footnote_11" class="fnanchor">11</a> and his lack of pride in his -order had even incurred rebuke, so little of the -ecclesiastic did this statesman appear.</p> - -<p>Thomas understood the king better than the king -understood his chancellor. But his protests were in -vain. He was as surely marked for the archbishopric -as Anselm had been. Bishops of the -province approved and the monks of Canterbury -duly voted for the king’s chancellor in common consent, -Gilbert Foliot, the Bishop of Hereford, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_38">38</span> -afterwards of London, and the archbishop’s enemy -to the end, alone opposing the election.</p> - -<p>“Then the archbishop-elect was by the king’s authority -declared free of all debts to the crown and given -free to the Church of England, and in that freedom -he was received by the Church with the customary -hymns and words of praise.” (Herbert of Bosham.)</p> - -<p>On June 2nd, 1162, the Saturday after Whit -Sunday, Thomas was ordained priest and on the -following day consecrated bishop. (The new archbishop -instituted the festival of Trinity Sunday to -commemorate his consecration, and some 200 years -later the festival was made of general observance in -the Catholic Church.) The king realised the mistake -he had made within a year of the consecration. -The brilliant chancellor was no sooner archbishop -than he turned from all the gaieties of the world, -and while no less a statesman, adopted the life of his -monks—though never himself a monk—at Canterbury. -Henceforth Archbishop Thomas was the -unflinching champion of the poor and them that had -no helper, the resolute defender of the liberties of -the Church against all who would make religion -subject to the autocracy of the king of England.</p> - -<p>Thomas was forty-four years old, in the full -strength of his manhood, when he was made archbishop, -and for eight years he did battle with the -crown, only laying down his charge at the call of -martyrdom.</p> - -<p>The first disappointment to Henry was the resignation -of the chancellor’s seal.<a id="FNanchor_12" href="#Footnote_12" class="fnanchor">12</a> It was clear to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_39">39</span> -Thomas that he could no longer serve the crown and -do the work of a Christian bishop at the same time, -and he had accepted with full sense of responsibility -the see of Canterbury. There was no room for the -egotism that loves power, the vaulting ambition -that o’erleaps itself, or even the self-deception that -persuades a man holding to high position at sacrifice -of principle that his motive is disinterested, in St. -Thomas of Canterbury. More than once England -was to see in later years men who strove vainly to -serve with equal respect the Christian religion and -the royal will—the service always ended in the -triumph of the latter. Thomas was far too clearly-sighted -to imagine such joint service possible, and -for him, elected and consecrated to the primacy of -the English Church, there was no longer any choice. -As chancellor, keeping his conscience clear, he had -done the best he could for law and order as the -king’s right hand man. As Archbishop of Canterbury -his duty, first and foremost, was to maintain -the Christian religion and defend the cause of the -poor and needy.</p> - -<p>But to Henry the resignation of the chancellorship -was an act of desertion, a declared challenge to -the royal supremacy. Henry II. was no more the -man than his grandfather Henry I. had been to brook -anything that threatened resistance to the king’s -rule.</p> - -<p>Courtiers who hated Thomas were always at hand -to poison the ears of the king by defaming the archbishop, -and this, says William FitzStephen, was the -first cause of the trouble. Another cause was the -hatred of the king for the clergy of England, hatred -provoked by the notoriously disreputable lives of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_40">40</span> -more than one clerk in holy orders. The battle -between Henry and Thomas began on this matter of -criminous clerks.</p> - -<p>William the Conqueror and Lanfranc recognizing -that the Church, strong and well ordered, made for -national well-being, had set up ecclesiastical courts -wherein all matters affecting church law and discipline -were to be dealt with by the clergy, to the -end that the clergy should not be mixed up in lawsuits -and should be excluded from the lay courts. -Henry II. was not satisfied that criminous clerks -were adequately dealt with in these ecclesiastical -courts, where no penalty involving bloodshed might -be inflicted, and where the savage punishments of -mutilation had no place. Thomas was as anxious as -the king for the Church to be purged of abuses, but -he was resolved not to hand over offenders to the -secular arm. The archbishop was an ardent -reformer. “He plucked up, pulled down, scattered -and rooted out whatever he found amiss in the vineyard -of the Lord,” wrote a contemporary; but he -would shelter his flock as far as he could by the -canon law from the hideous cruelties of the King’s -Courts.<a id="FNanchor_13" href="#Footnote_13" class="fnanchor">13</a> It was not for the protection of the clergy -alone the archbishop was fighting in the councils -summoned by the king at Westminster in 1163, and -at Clarendon in 1164.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_41">41</span></p> - -<p>“Ecclesiastical privileges were not so exclusively -priestly privileges as we sometimes fancy. They -sheltered not only ordained ministers, but all ecclesiastical -officers of every kind; the Church Courts -also claimed jurisdiction in the causes of widows and -orphans. In short, the privileges for which Thomas -contended transferred a large part of the people, -and that the most helpless part, from the bloody -grasp of the King’s Courts to the milder jurisdiction -of the bishop.” (Freeman, <cite>Historical Essay</cite>, First -Series.)</p> - -<p>Before the climax of the dispute between Henry -and Thomas was reached at Clarendon, the archbishop -had resisted the king in a matter of arbitrary -taxation—“the earliest recorded instance of resistance -to the royal will in a matter of taxation”<a id="FNanchor_14" href="#Footnote_14" class="fnanchor">14</a>—and -had fallen still further in the king’s disfavour.</p> - -<p>Henry was at Woodstock, on July 1st, 1163, with -the archbishop and the great men of the land, and -among other matters a question was raised concerning -the payment of a two shillings land tax on -every hide of land. This was an old tax dating -from Saxon times, which William the Conqueror -had increased. It was paid to the sheriffs, who in -return undertook the defence of the county, and -may be compared with the county rates of our own -day. The king declared this tax should in future be -collected for the crown, and added to the royal -revenue; and no one dared to question this decision -until Archbishop Thomas arose and told the king to -his face that the tax was not to be exacted as -revenue, but was a voluntary offering to be paid to -the sheriffs only “so long as they shall serve us<span class="pagenum" id="Page_42">42</span> -fitly and maintain and defend our dependants.” It -was not a tax that could be enforced by law.</p> - -<p>Henry, bursting with anger, swore, “By God’s -Eyes” it should be given as revenue, and enscrolled -as a king’s tax.</p> - -<p>The archbishop replied with quiet determination, -“aware lest by his sufferance a custom should come -in to the hurt of his successors,” that, “by the -reverence of those Eyes,” by which the king had -sworn, not one penny should be paid from his lands, -or from the rights of the Church. The king was -silenced, no answer was forthcoming to the objector, -and the tax was paid as before to the sheriffs. But -“the indignation of the king was not set at rest,” -and in October came the Council of Westminster.</p> - -<p>The king at once demanded that criminous clerks -should not only be punished in the Church Courts -by the sentence of deprivation, but should further -be handed over to the King’s Courts for greater -penalties, alleging that those who were not restrained -from crime by the remembrance of their -holy orders would care little for the loss of such -orders.</p> - -<p>The archbishop replied quietly that this proposed -new discipline was contrary to the religious liberty of -the land, and that he would never agree to it. The -Church was the one sanctuary against the barbarities -of the law, and Thomas to the end would maintain -the security it offered. More important it seemed to -him that clerical offenders should escape the king’s -justice, than that all petty felons who could claim -the protection of the Church should be given over -to mutilation by the king’s officers. The bishops -silently supported the primate in this matter, though<span class="pagenum" id="Page_43">43</span> -they told him plainly, “Better the liberties of the -Church perish than that we perish ourselves. Much -must be yielded to the malice of the times.”</p> - -<p>Thomas answered this pitiful plea by admitting -the times were bad. “But,” he added, “are we to -heap sin upon sin? It is when the Church is in -trouble, and not merely when the times are peaceful, -that a bishop must cleave to the right. No greater -merit was there to the bishops of old who gave their -blood for the Church than there is now to those who -die in defence of her liberties.”</p> - -<p>But the bishops were wavering, fearful of defying -the king’s will. And when Henry, defeated for the -moment by the archbishop’s stand, angrily called -upon them to take an oath to observe in future -“the royal customs” of the realm as settled by his -grandfather, Henry I., they all agreed to do so, -adding the clause “saving the rights of their order.” -The king objected, calling for the promise to be -made “absolutely and without qualifications,” until -Thomas reminded him that the fealty the bishops -swore to give the crown “in life and limb and -earthly honour” was sworn “<i xml:lang="la" lang="la">salvo ordine suo</i>,” and -that the “earthly honour” promise, which included -all the royal “customs” of Henry I., was not to be -given by bishops in any other way.</p> - -<p>It was now late at night, and the king broke up -the council in anger, leaving the bishops to retire as -they would.</p> - -<p>Henry was resolved to abolish the Church Courts -and destroy the protection they afforded. He would -have all brought under the severity of his law, in -spite of the archbishop. He knew the bishops were -wavering and were fearful of the royal displeasure.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_44">44</span> -Thomas Becket, and Thomas Becket alone, was the -obstruction to the king’s schemes, and firm as Becket -might stand, the king would break down his opposition.</p> - -<p>The very day after Westminster the king demanded -the resignation of all the fortresses and -honours Thomas had held under the crown since -he had been made chancellor, and these were -surrendered at once.</p> - -<p>Then Henry tried a personal appeal, and once -more the two met together in a field near Northampton. -Henry began by reminding Thomas of -all he had done for him.</p> - -<p>“Have I not raised you from a mean and lowly -state to height of honour and dignity? How is it -after so many benefits and so many proofs of my -affection, which all have seen, you have forgotten -these things, and are now not only ungrateful, but -my opponent in everything?”</p> - -<p>The archbishop answered: “Far be it from me, -my lord. I am not forgetful of the favours which -God has conferred upon me at your hands. Far be -it from me to be so ungrateful as to resist your will -in anything so long as it is in accord with God’s -will.” St. Thomas, enlarging on the necessity of -obedience to God rather than to men, should the -will of man clash with the will of God, the king at -last interrupted him impatiently with the intimation -that he did not want a sermon just then.</p> - -<p>“Are you not my man, the son of one of my -servants?”</p> - -<p>“In truth,” the archbishop answered, “I am not -sprung from a race of kings. Neither was blessed -Peter, the prince of the apostles, to whom was committed -the leadership of the Church.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_45">45</span></p> - -<p>“And in truth Peter died for his Lord,” said the -king.</p> - -<p>“I too will die for my Lord when the time comes,” -replied the archbishop.</p> - -<p>“You trust too much to the ladder you have -mounted by,” said the king.</p> - -<p>But the archbishop answered: “I trust in God, -for cursed is the man that putteth his trust in man.” -Then the archbishop went on to remind Henry of -the proofs he had given of his fidelity in the years -when he was chancellor, and warned him that he -would have done well to have taken counsel with his -archbishop concerning spiritual things than with -those who had kindled the flame of envy and vengeance -against one who had done them no wrong.</p> - -<p>The only reply the king gave was to urge that -the Archbishop should drop the words “saving -their order” in promising to obey the royal customs.</p> - -<p>The archbishop refused to yield, and so they -parted.<a id="FNanchor_15" href="#Footnote_15" class="fnanchor">15</a></p> - -<p>At the close of the year the archbishop’s difficulties -had been increased by appeals on all sides to -yield to the king. The bishops were for peace at -any price, and the Pope, Alexander III., threatened -by an anti-pope, and anxious for the good will of the -king of England, sent an abbot to Thomas urging -him to give way, on the ground that Henry only -wanted a formal assent to the “customs” for the -sake of his dignity, and had no intention of doing -anything harmful to the Church.</p> - -<p>Under these circumstances Thomas decided to -yield. He went to the king at Woodstock and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_46">46</span> -declared that the obnoxious phrase, “saving our -order,” should be omitted from the promise to observe -the “customs.”</p> - -<p>Without delay the king ordered his justiciar, -Richard of Lucy, and his clerk, Jocelin of Balliol, to -draw up a list of the old “customs” and liberties of -his grandfather Henry I., and on the 29th of January, -1164, a great council was held at Clarendon to ratify -the agreement between the bishops and the king.</p> - -<p>Sixteen constitutions or articles were drawn up, -and Thomas, over-persuaded by the prayers of the -bishops and the desire for peace, gave his promise -unconditionally to observe them. But no sooner -had he done so, and the articles were placed before -him in black and white, than he repented.</p> - -<p>The very first article declared that all disputes -about Church patronage were to be tried in the -King’s Court, and was intolerable, because while the -State held it was a question of the rights of property, -the Church view was that the main point was the -care of souls, a spiritual matter for churchmen, not -lawyers, to decide.</p> - -<p>The other articles which Thomas objected to, and -which the pope subsequently refused to ratify, decreed: -(1) That clerks were to be tried in the King’s -Courts for offences of common law. (2) That neither -archbishops, bishops, nor beneficed clerks were to -leave the kingdom without the king’s license. (This, -said St. Thomas, would stop all pilgrimages and -attendance at councils at Rome, and turn England -into a vast prison. “It was right enough to apply -for the king’s leave before the departure, but to bind -one’s-self by an oath not to go without it was against -religion and was evil.”) (3) That no member of the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_47">47</span> -king’s household was to be excommunicated without -the king’s permission. (4) That no appeals should -be taken beyond the archbishop’s court, except to be -brought before the king. (This was a definite -attempt to prohibit appeals to Rome, and Thomas -pointed out that the archbishop on receiving the -pallium swore expressly not to hinder such appeals. -The acceptance of this article left the king absolute -master.)</p> - -<p>The last article, declaring that serfs or sons of -villeins were not to be ordained without the consent -of the lord on whose land they were born, was not -opposed by the pope, and the only contemporary -objection seems to have been raised by Garnier, a -French monk and a biographer of Thomas Becket.<a id="FNanchor_16" href="#Footnote_16" class="fnanchor">16</a></p> - -<p>Thomas had promised obedience to these constitutions, -but he would not put his seal to them. It -seemed to him that it was not only the old “customs” -that had been drawn up, but rather a new -interpretation of these customs. The great Council -of Clarendon was over. Thomas received a copy of -the constitutions and rode off, and the king had to -be content for the time with the promises delivered.</p> - -<p>In abject remorse Thomas wrote to the pope -confessing his assent to the Constitutions of Clarendon, -and for forty days he abstained from celebrating -the mass. The pope, still anxious to prevent any -open rupture between the king and the archbishop, -wrote in reply that “Almighty God watches not the -deed, but considers rather the intention and judges -the will,” and that Thomas was absolved by apostolic<span class="pagenum" id="Page_48">48</span> -authority. All the same, Pope Alexander III., without -in any way censuring Thomas, throughout the -long struggle with Henry never stands up roundly -for the archbishop.</p> - -<p>Neither Henry nor Thomas could rest satisfied -with Clarendon. The archbishop had compromised -for the sake of peace, but his quick revulsion had -provoked a keener hostility in the king. To Henry -it seemed the time had come to drive Thomas out -of public life by compelling him to resign the see -of Canterbury. With Thomas out of the way -Henry could carry out his plans for a strong -central government, for bringing all under the -pitiless arm of the law. Thomas was the one -man in the kingdom who dared offer resistance, -and if Thomas was no longer archbishop and some -supple creature of the king was in his place, the -royal power would be absolute, for there seemed -no fear of any interference from Pope Alexander III.</p> - -<p>There were plenty of the archbishop’s enemies -among the nobles at the court ready to fan the -king’s anger against Thomas, and by October, 1164, -Henry was ready to crush the primate.</p> - -<p>Another council was summoned to meet at -Northampton, and now Archbishop Thomas was -to learn the full significance of the Constitutions -of Clarendon.</p> - -<p>The first charge against Thomas was that he had -refused justice to John, the Treasurer-Marshal, who -had taken up some land under the see of Canterbury. -John had taken his suit to the King’s Court, -and Thomas was further charged with contempt of -the majesty of the crown for not putting in a -personal appearance at this court. The king now<span class="pagenum" id="Page_49">49</span> -pressed for judgment against the archbishop for -this contempt, and the council ordered that he -should be condemned to the loss of all his moveable -property, and 500 pounds of silver was accepted as -an equivalent fine.</p> - -<p>“It seemed to all that, considering the reverence -due to the king and by the obligation of the oath of -homage, which the archbishop had taken, and by -the fealty to the king’s earthly honour which he had -sworn, he was in no way to be excused, because -when summoned by the king he had neither come -himself, nor pleaded infirmity, or the necessary -work of his ecclesiastical office.” (W. FitzStephen).</p> - -<p>It was not easy to get the sentence pronounced -against Thomas. Barons and bishops were willing -enough to stand well with the king, and they agreed -without contradiction to the fine. But the barons -declined to act as judge on a spiritual peer, and -insisted that one of the bishops must do this -business. Henry, Bishop of Winchester, at last, -on the king’s order, pronounced the sentence.</p> - -<p>Thomas protested. “If I were silent at such a -sentence posterity would not be. This is a new -form of sentence, no doubt in accordance with the -new laws of Clarendon. Never has it been heard -before in England that an Archbishop of Canterbury -has been tried in the King’s Court for such a cause. -The dignity of the Church, the authority of his -person, the fact that he is the spiritual father of -the king and of all his subjects, require that he -should be reverenced by all.” For an archbishop -to be judged by his suffragans was, he declared, -for a father to be judged by his sons.</p> - -<p>The bishops implored him to bow to the decree<span class="pagenum" id="Page_50">50</span> -of the council, and Thomas yielded, “not being -willing that a mere matter of money should cause -strife between the king and himself.”</p> - -<p>The next day, Friday, October 9th, the king -pressed Thomas more fiercely, calling upon him -to give account for large sums spent during his -chancellorship, and for various revenues of vacant -churches during that period. The total amount -was 30,000 marks.</p> - -<p>In vain the archbishop urged that this demand -was totally unexpected; that he had not been -summoned to Northampton to render such an -account; and that the justiciar, Richard, had -declared that he was free of all claims when he -laid down the chancellorship. The king demanded -sureties, “and from that day barons and knights -kept away from the archbishop’s house—for they -understood the mind of the king.”</p> - -<p>All Saturday Thomas was in consultation with -the bishops, most of whom expressed themselves -strongly on the king’s side. Henry of Winchester -suggested the present of 2,000 marks to the king as -a peace-offering, and this was done. But the king -would not have it. Hilary, of Chichester, said, -addressing the archbishop, “You ought to know -the king better than we do, for you lived with him -in close companionship and friendship when you -were chancellor. Who is there who could be your -surety for all this money? The king has declared, -so it is said, that he and you cannot both remain -in England as king and archbishop. It would be -much safer to resign everything and submit to his -mercy. God forbid lest he arrest you over these -moneys of the chancellorship, or lay hands on you.”<span class="pagenum" id="Page_51">51</span> -One or two less craven urged the archbishop to -stand firm, as his predecessors had done, in the -face of persecution.</p> - -<p>“Oh, that you were no longer archbishop and -were only Thomas,” said Hilary, putting the matter -briefly.</p> - -<p>All Sunday was spent in consultations. On -Monday the archbishop was too ill to attend the -council, but on Tuesday his mind was made up, -and when he entered the council it was with the -full dignity of an archbishop, carrying the cross of -the archbishop in his hand.</p> - -<p>The bishops were in despair. There were all -sorts of rumours in the air. It was known the king -was full of anger, and it was said that the archbishop’s -life was in danger. The bishops implored -him to resign, or else to promise complete submission -to the councils of Clarendon. They said he would -certainly be tried and condemned for high treason -for disobedience to the king, and asked him what -was the use of being archbishop when he had the -king’s hatred.</p> - -<p>Gilbert Foliot, Bishop of London, declared contemptuously -of Thomas, when someone asked him -why he did not carry the archbishop’s cross for him, -“He always was a fool, and always will be.”</p> - -<p>Thomas had now only one answer to the bishops. -He forbad them to take any part in the proceedings -against him, announced that he had appealed to -“our Mother, the Church of Rome, refuge of all -the oppressed,” to prevent any of them taking part, -and ordered them to excommunicate any who should -dare lay secular hands upon the primate.</p> - -<p>Then, holding his cross, the archbishop took his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_52">52</span> -usual place in the council-chamber, while the king -sat in an inner room.</p> - -<p>In the face of personal danger all the strength -and courage of Thomas Becket were aroused. He -had yielded at Clarendon for the sake of peace, and -no good had come of it. He had submitted to be -fined rather than be involved in a miserable dispute -about money, and now he was threatened with -demands for money which were beyond his resources. -There was nothing to prevent the king piling up -greater and greater sums against him, till hopeless -ruin had been reached. He was powerless to withstand -such an onslaught. To Rome, “the refuge of -all the oppressed,” would Thomas appeal, and then, -if it seemed well to the pope, he would retire from -Canterbury. But he would not surrender his post, -however great the wrath of the king, unless it were -for the welfare of the Christian Church.</p> - -<p>In the council-chamber Thomas sat alone, with -one or two clergy attending him, including Herbert -of Bosham and William FitzStephen, while the -bishops went in to the king’s chamber. Among -the nobles the cry was going up that the archbishop -was a perjurer and a traitor, because, after signing -at Clarendon, he now, in violation of those constitutions, -forbad bishops to give judgment in a case -that did not involve bloodshed, and had further -made appeal to Rome.</p> - -<p>Then the king sent to know whether the archbishop -refused to be bound by the Constitutions of -Clarendon, and whether he would find sureties to -abide by the sentence of the court regarding the -accounts of his chancellorship.</p> - -<p>Thomas again pointed out that he had not been<span class="pagenum" id="Page_53">53</span> -called there to give an account of his chancellorship, -that on his appointment to the archbishopric he had -been declared by the king free of all secular claims, -and that he had forbidden the bishops to take part -in any judgment against him, and had appealed to -Rome, “placing his person and the church of -Canterbury under the protection of God and the -pope.”</p> - -<p>At the end of this speech the barons returned in -silence to the king, pondering the archbishop’s -words.</p> - -<p>But hostile murmuring soon broke the silence, -and Thomas could overhear the barons grumbling -that, “King William, who conquered England, -knew how to tame his clerks. He had put his own -brother Odo in prison, and thrown Stigand, Archbishop -of Canterbury, into a dungeon.”</p> - -<p>The bishops renewed their pitiful chorus. Thomas -had placed them between the hammer and the anvil -by his prohibition: of disobedience to Canterbury -on the one hand, and of the king’s anger on the -other. They had given their word at Clarendon, -and now they were being forced to go against the -promises they had made. They, too, would appeal -to Rome against his prohibition, “lest you injure us -still more.”</p> - -<p>All that Thomas could say was that the Constitutions -of Clarendon had been sent to the pope for -confirmation, and had been returned, rather condemned -than approved. “This example has been -given for our learning, that we should do likewise, -and be ready to receive what he receives at Rome, -and reject what he rejects. If we fell at Clarendon, -through weakness of the flesh, the more ought we<span class="pagenum" id="Page_54">54</span> -to take courage now, and in the might of the Holy -Ghost contend against the old enemy of man.”<a id="FNanchor_17" href="#Footnote_17" class="fnanchor">17</a></p> - -<p>So bishops and nobles came and went between -the king and the archbishop, and the day drew on. -Henry allowed the bishops to stand apart from the -judgment, and demanded sentence from the barons, -and Earl Robert of Leicester advanced as the -spokesman of the council to where the archbishop -was sitting. The earl began to speak of the judgment -of the court, when Thomas rose and refused to -hear him.</p> - -<p>“What is this you would do?” he cried. “Would -you pass sentence on me? Neither law nor reason -permit children to pass sentence on their father. -You are nobles of the palace, and I am your spiritual -father. I will not hear this sentence of the king, or -any judgment of yours. For, under God, I will be -judged by the pope alone, to whom before you all -here I appeal, placing the church of Canterbury -with all thereto belonging under God’s protection -and the protection of the pope.” Then he turned -to the bishops. “And you, my brethren, who have -served man rather than God, I summon to the -presence of the pope; and now, guarded by the -authority of the Catholic Church and the Holy See, -I go hence.”</p> - -<p>So he passed out of the hall, no one gainsaying -his passage, though some plucked rushes from the -floor and threw at him. There were shouts of -anger, and again the cries of “traitor” and “perjurer” -were raised. The archbishop turned on Earl -Hamelin, the king’s brother, and Randulf of Brok, -who were calling “traitor,” and said sternly: “If I<span class="pagenum" id="Page_55">55</span> -were not a priest, my own arms should quickly -prove your lie. And you, Randulf, look at home -(his cousin had lately been hanged for felony) before -you accuse the guiltless!”</p> - -<p>His horses were at the gate, and a great crowd -that were afraid lest the archbishop had been killed. -St. Thomas mounted, and accompanied by Herbert -of Bosham, rode back to the monastery of St. -Andrew, where he had been lodging. The crowd -thronged him and prayed for his blessing all the -way until the monastery was reached, and then he -would have the multitude come in to the refectory -and dine with him. Of his own retinue of forty -who had come with him to Northampton, scarce six -remained; and so the places of those who had -thought it safer to desert their lord were filled by -the hungry multitude. It was the archbishop’s farewell -banquet, and he, the constant champion of the -poor, had those whom he loved for his guests that -day.</p> - -<p>At nightfall, after compline had been sung and the -monks dispersed to their cells, the archbishop, with -three other men in the dress of lay brothers, rode -out from Northampton by the north gate, and at -dawn were at Grantham. Three weeks later -Thomas had reached Flanders, and the exile had -begun which was only to end six years later when -death was at hand.</p> - -<p>It was useless to remain in England, hopeless as -Thomas was of any support from the bishops. He -could but appeal, as Anselm had appealed, to the -one court that alone was recognised as owning a -higher authority than that of the kings of this world, -the court of Rome.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_56">56</span></p> - -<p>But Pope Alexander, still harassed by an anti-pope -set up by the Emperor Frederick, could do as little -for Thomas as his predecessor had done for Anselm, -though he refused to allow him to resign the -archbishopric. Unlike Anselm, Thomas vigorously -carried on his contest with the king from the -friendly shelter of King Louis of France, and -Henry retaliated without hesitation, driving out of -England all the friends and kinsmen of Thomas, to -the number of four hundred, and threatening a like -banishment to the Cistercian monks, because -Thomas had taken refuge in their monastery at -Pontigny.</p> - -<p>The fear that the pope would allow the archbishop -to pronounce an interdict against England, and a -sentence of personal excommunication against its -king, drove Henry in 1166 to appeal himself to the -pope. “Thus by a strange fate it happened that -the king, while striving for those ‘ancient customs,’ -by which he endeavoured to prevent any right of -appeal (to the pope), was doomed to confirm the -right of appeal for his own safety.” (John of -Salisbury.)</p> - -<p>Months and years passed in correspondence. -More than once Henry and Thomas met at the -court of Louis, but neither would yield. The -pope, without blaming the archbishop, and without -sanctioning any extreme step against Henry, did -what he could to make peace between them.</p> - -<p>At last, in the summer of 1170, the king really -was disturbed by the fear of an interdict, for his last -act against Archbishop Thomas had been to have his -son crowned by the Archbishop of York, in defiance -of all the rights and privileges of the see of Canterbury.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_57">57</span> -Besides this, Louis was threatening war -because his daughter, who was married to the young -King Henry, had not been crowned with her -husband. Henry hastened over to France and -made friends with Thomas, and the reconciliation -took place at Freteral. The king solemnly promised -that the archbishop should enjoy all the possessions -and rights of which he had been deprived in his -exile, and that his friends and kinsmen should all be -allowed to return home. He even apologised for -the coronation of his son. It seemed as if the old -friendship had been revived. “We conversed -together until the evening as familiarly as in the -days of our ancient friendship. And it was agreed -I should arrange my affairs and then make some -stay with the king before embarking for England; -that the world might know how thoroughly we are -restored to his favour and intimacy. We are not -afraid that the king will not fulfil his promises, -unless he is misled by evil counsellors.” So Thomas -wrote to the pope in July, 1170. Yet there were -many—including King Louis—who doubted the -sincerity of the reconciliation, for Henry was not -willing to give the kiss of peace to his archbishop.</p> - -<p>On December 1st Thomas landed at Sandwich, -and went at once to Canterbury. The townspeople -and the poor of the land welcomed him with enthusiastic -devotion. “Small and great, old and young, -ran together, some throwing themselves in his way, -others crying and exclaiming, ‘Blessed is he that -cometh in the name of the Lord.’ In the same -manner the clergy and their parishioners met him in -procession, saluting their father and begging his -blessing.... And when all things in the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_58">58</span> -cathedral was solemnly ended, the archbishop went -to his palace, and so ended that joyful and solemn -day.” (Herbert of Bosham.)</p> - -<p>But against the affection and goodwill of his own -people at Canterbury, and a similar demonstration of -rejoicing by multitudes of clergy and people in -London, Thomas had to face the fact that the -bishops generally hated his return, that the young -Prince Henry, recently crowned, who had been his -pupil, refused to see him and ordered his return to -Canterbury, and that the nobles openly spoke of -him as a traitor to the king. “This is a peace for -us which is no peace, but rather war,” said the -archbishop bitterly.</p> - -<p>The end was not far off. Thomas, as zealous for -good discipline in the Church as Henry was for -strong authority in the State, was no sooner returned -than he was asked to withdraw the sentence of -excommunication against the Archbishop of York -and the Bishops of London and Salisbury. He -promised to do this if the bishops on their part -would promise to submit to the decision of the pope -on the matter. London and Salisbury were moved -to receive absolution on these terms, but Roger, of -York, who had always been against Becket, dissuaded -them, urging them to throw themselves on -the protection of the king, and threatening Thomas -“with marvellous and terrible things at the hands of -the king” unless he relented. Naturally, these -threats left the archbishop undisturbed, and Roger -of York, with Gilbert Foliot of London and Jocelin -of Salisbury, at once hastened over to France to lay -their case before the king.</p> - -<p>These bishops were not the only men who<span class="pagenum" id="Page_59">59</span> -troubled Thomas in these last days. Randulf de -Broc, with others of his family, and certain -knights, all known as strong “king’s men,” “sought -every means to entangle him in a quarrel,” and did -not stop from robbing a ship belonging to the archbishop -and from seizing a number of horses, and -mutilating one of them. Thomas replied by excommunicating -Randulf and Robert de Broc, the -boldest of these offenders.</p> - -<p>At Christmas more than one of the archbishop’s -followers warned him that his life was in danger, -and Thomas seems to have realised that his position -was hazardous. But he would not fly.</p> - -<p>Already his murderers were at hand.</p> - -<p>The excommunicated bishops had reached the -king at Bur, near Bayeux, had told their story, and -had coloured it with a fanciful description of Thomas -making a circuit of England at the head of a large -body of men.<a id="FNanchor_18" href="#Footnote_18" class="fnanchor">18</a> Someone had said, “My lord, as -long as Thomas lives, you will have neither peace -nor quiet in your kingdom, nor will you ever see -good days;” and at this Henry had burst out into a -terrible rage of bitterness and passion, for such fits -at times took possession of him, “Here is a man,” -he cried out, “who came to my court a sorry clerk, -who owes all he has to me, and insults my kingdom -and lifts his heel against me. And not one of the -cowardly sluggish knaves, whom I feed and pay so -well, but suffers this, nor has the heart to avenge -me!”</p> - -<p>The words were spoken, and four of the king’s -knights—Reginald FitzUrse, William of Tracy, -Hugh of Morville, and Richard the Breton—hearing<span class="pagenum" id="Page_60">60</span> -what was said, and that Roger of York had declared -“as soon as Thomas is dead all this trouble will be -ended, and not before,” at once departed. They -sailed from different ports and met together at -Saltwood, the castle of the Brocs, on December 28th. -The following day they rode on to Canterbury, -taking with them twelve of Randulf’s men and -Hugh of Horsea, who was called the Evil Deacon.</p> - -<p>The king, on finding the four knights had left the -court, gave orders to have them stopped, but it was -too late. They were then at Canterbury, and entering -the hospitable doors of the palace had made -direct for the archbishop’s private chamber.</p> - -<p>It was four o’clock. Dinner had been at three, -and Thomas was sitting on his bed talking to John -of Salisbury, Edward Grim, and a few other friends. -When the knights entered, Thomas recognized -Reginald, William, and Hugh, for they had served -under him years before, and waited for them to -speak.</p> - -<p>Reginald FitzUrse was the spokesman. He -declared they had come from the king, that Thomas -must take an oath of fealty to the newly-crowned -prince, and must absolve the excommunicated -bishops. Thomas answered that the bishops might -have been absolved on their willingness to obey the -judgments of the Church, and that the king had -sanctioned what had been done at their reconciliation.</p> - -<p>Reginald denied there had been any reconciliation, -and swore that Thomas was imputing treachery to -the king in saying such a thing.</p> - -<p>The archbishop pointed out that the reconciliation -had taken place in public, and that Reginald himself -had been present.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_61">61</span></p> - -<p>Reginald swore he had never been there, and had -not heard of it. And at this the other knights -broke in, swearing again and again, by God’s -wounds, that they had borne with him far too long -already.</p> - -<p>Then Thomas reminded them of the insults and -losses he had endured, especially at the hands of the -De Brocs, since his return.</p> - -<p>Hugh of Morville answered him that he had his -remedy in the King’s Courts, and ought not to excommunicate -men on his own authority.</p> - -<p>“I shall wait for no man’s leave to do justice on -any that wrong the Church and will not give satisfaction,” -Thomas replied.</p> - -<p>“What do you threaten us! Threats are too -much!” cried Reginald FitzUrse.</p> - -<p>Then the knights bit their gloves and angrily -defied the archbishop.</p> - -<p>Thomas told them that they could not intimidate -him. “Once I went away like a timid priest; now -I have returned, and I will never leave again. If I -may do my office in peace, it is well: if I may not, -God’s will be done.” Then he turned to remind -them they had once sworn fealty to him when he -was chancellor.</p> - -<p>“We are the king’s men,” they shouted out, “and -owe fealty to no one against the king!”</p> - -<p>Bidding his servants keep the archbishop within -the precincts on peril of their lives, the knights -withdrew.</p> - -<p>“It is easy to keep me,” said Thomas, “for I -shall not go away. I will not fly for the king or -for any living man.”</p> - -<p>“Why did you not take counsel with us and give<span class="pagenum" id="Page_62">62</span> -milder answer to your enemies?” said John of -Salisbury. “You are ready to die, but we are not. -Think of our peril!”</p> - -<p>“We must all die,” the archbishop answered, -“and the fear of death must not turn us from doing -justice.”</p> - -<p>Word was quickly brought in that the knights -were putting on their armour in the courtyard, and -the monks, frightened at the sight of these men with -drawn swords entering the orchard to the west of -the cathedral, rushed to the archbishop and implored -him to fly to the cathedral. Thomas smiled at their -terror, saying, “All you monks are too cowardly, it -seems to me.” And not till vespers had begun -would he leave for the minster. The knights broke -into the cloisters after him, and reaching St. Benet’s -chapel began to hammer at the door, which for safety -the monks had barred behind them.</p> - -<p>Thomas at once ordered the door to be unbolted, -saying, “God’s house shall not be made a fortress on -my account.” He slipped back the iron bar himself, -and the angry knights rushed in with cries of -“Where is the traitor? Where is the archbishop?”</p> - -<p>It was five o’clock and a dark winter’s night. Had -Thomas chosen, he could easily have escaped death -by concealing himself in the crypt or in one of the -many hiding places in the cathedral. But he felt his -hour had come and met it without faltering. John -of Salisbury and the rest of the monks and clerks -vanished away and hid themselves, leaving only -Edward Grim, Robert of Merton and William FitzStephen -with the archbishop. Soon only Grim was -left, when the archbishop came out boldly, and -standing by a great pillar near the altar of St. Benedict,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_63">63</span> -answered his accusers. “Here I am: no -traitor, Reginald, but your archbishop.”</p> - -<p>They tried to drag him from the church, but he -clung to the great pillar, with Edward Grim by his -side. For the last time Reginald called on him to -come out of the church. “I am ready to die, but -let my people go, and do not hurt them,” was the -archbishop’s answer. William Tracy seized hold of -him, but Thomas hurled him back. Upon that -FitzUrse shouted, “Strike! strike!” And Tracy -cut savagely at the head of the archbishop. Grim -sprang forward and the blow fell on his arm, and he -fell back badly wounded.</p> - -<p>Then Thomas commended his cause and that of -the Church to St. Denis and the patron saints of the -cathedral, and his soul to God, and without flinching -bowed his head to his murderers. FitzUrse, Tracy -and Richard the Breton struck the archbishop down, -and Hugh the Evil Deacon mangled in brutal -fashion the head of St. Thomas before calling out to -the others: “Let us go now; he will never rise -again!”</p> - -<p>Then they all rushed from the church, and shouting, -“King’s knights! King’s knights!” proceeded -to plunder the palace. They fled north that -night to the castle of Hugh of Morville at Knaresborough, -where for a time they lived in close -retirement. Tracy subsequently went on a pilgrimage -to Rome and Palestine, but all four “within -two years of the murder were living at court on -familiar terms with the king.”<a id="FNanchor_19" href="#Footnote_19" class="fnanchor">19</a></p> - -<p>Henry and all his court were horrified when the -news was brought of the archbishop’s martyrdom,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_64">64</span> -for all the people proclaimed the murdered prelate a -saint and a martyr, and “a martyr he clearly was, -not merely to the privileges of the Church or to the -rights of the see of Canterbury, but to the general -cause of law and order as opposed to violence.”<a id="FNanchor_20" href="#Footnote_20" class="fnanchor">20</a> -Had St. Thomas yielded in the matter of the excommunicated -bishops, and sought favour with the -king at the expense of the liberties and discipline of -the Church, and had he given way to the savage, -lawless turbulence of the king’s knights, he would -not only have escaped a violent death, but might -have lived long in the sunshine of the royal pleasure. -He chose the rougher, steeper road, daring all to -save the Church and the mass of the English people -from being brought under the iron heel of a king’s -absolute rule, and he paid the penalty, pouring out -his blood on the stones of the minster at Canterbury -to seal the vows he had taken when he first entered -the city as archbishop.</p> - -<p>In his dying St. Thomas was even stronger than -in his life. Henry hastened to beg the forgiveness -of Rome for his rash words that had provoked the -murder, and in the presence of the pope’s legates -in Normandy promised to give up the Constitutions -of Clarendon and to stand by the papacy against the -emperor. Nor did he make any further attempt in -his reign to bring the Church under the subjection -of the crown, but built up a great system of legal -administration, which in substance exists to-day.</p> - -<p>St. Thomas was canonised four years after his -death. “There was no shadow of doubt in men’s -minds that here was one who was a martyr as fully -as any martyr of the catacombs and the Roman<span class="pagenum" id="Page_65">65</span> -persecutions.” (R. H. Benson, <cite>St. Thomas of Canterbury</cite>.) -Countless miracles were alleged to prove -the sanctity of the dead hero, and pilgrims from all -parts made their way to the shrine of the “blessful -martyr” at Canterbury. Not only in England, but -in France and Flanders, and particularly in Ireland -was there an outburst of devotion to St. Thomas.</p> - -<p>The shrine at Canterbury was destroyed by -Henry VIII., who after a mock trial of the archbishop -slain more than 300 years earlier, declared -that “Thomas, sometime Archbishop of Canterbury, -had been guilty of contumacy, treason and rebellion,” -and “was no saint, but rather a rebel and traitor to -his prince.”</p> - -<p>But though Thomas, canonised by the pope on -the prayers of the people of England, could be struck -out of the calendar of the Church of England by the -arbitrary will of King Henry VIII., as an enemy of -princes, and his shrine destroyed, it is beyond the -power of a king to reverse the sentence of history or -to blast for ever the fame of a great and courageous -champion of the poor of this land. Time makes -little of the insults of Henry VIII. Thomas of -Canterbury died for the religion that in his day protected -the people against the despotism of the crown. -“He was always a hater of liars and slanderers and -a kind friend to dumb beasts (hence his rage with -De Broc for mutilating a horse) and all poor and -helpless folk.” (F. York Powell.)</p> - -<p>That Henry II. strove to make law predominant -in the spirit of a great statesman is as true as that -Thomas strove to mitigate the harshness of the -law. As a writer of the twelfth century put it: -“Nothing is more certain than that both strove<span class="pagenum" id="Page_66">66</span> -earnestly to do the will of God, one for the sake of -his realm, the other on behalf of his Church. But -whether of the two was zealous in wisdom is not -plain to man, who is so easily mistaken, but to the -Lord, who will judge between them at the last day.”</p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<h2 id="hdr_3">William FitzOsbert, called Longbeard<br /> - -<span class="subhead">The First English Agitator</span> -<span class="subhead">1196</span></h2> -</div> - -<p><span class="smcap">Authorities</span>: Roger of Hoveden; William of Newburgh; -Gervase of Canterbury; Matthew Paris; Ralph -Diceto; (Rolls Series); <cite xml:lang="la" lang="la">Rotuli Curiæ Regis</cite> (Sir F. Palgrave. -Vol. I.).</p> -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_69">69</span></p> - -<h3 class="left">WILLIAM FITZOSBERT<br /> -CALLED LONGBEARD, THE<br /> -FIRST ENGLISH AGITATOR -<span class="subhead">1196</span></h3> - -<p class="drop-cap"><span class="firstword">When</span> Richard I., on his accession, -picked out Hubert Walter, Bishop of -Salisbury, to be Archbishop of Canterbury, -he chose a prelate whom he could -rely upon as his representative. Hubert had been a -crusader; he was the nephew of Ralph Glanville—who -sold the justiciarship to William Longchamp, -Bishop of Ely, for £3,000, and followed Richard to -Palestine, dying of the plague at Acre in 1191—and -though a man of little learning he was a capital -lawyer, a strong administrator and expert at raising -money for the king.<a id="FNanchor_21" href="#Footnote_21" class="fnanchor">21</a> Hubert was no champion of -the poor as St. Thomas had been, no preacher of -righteousness like St. Anselm, no stickler for the -rights of the Church or the liberties of the people; -he was “the king’s man,” and “forasmuch as he was -neither gifted with a knowledge of letters nor endued -with the grace of lively religion, so in his days the -Church of England was stifled under the yoke of -bondage.” (Geraldus Cambrensis.)</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_70">70</span></p> - -<p>Richard Cœur de Lion, occupied with the crusades, -had no mind for the personal government of -England. He depended on his ministers for money -to pay for his military expeditions to Palestine. -England was to him nothing more than a subject -province to be bled by taxation. Both William -Longchamp and Hubert Walter—to whom Richard -committed the realm when he left England for good -in 1194—did all that could be done to meet the -king’s demands. Government offices, earldoms and -bishoprics were sold to the highest bidder.<a id="FNanchor_22" href="#Footnote_22" class="fnanchor">22</a> Judges -bought their seats on the bench and cities bought -their charters. Crown lands already granted to -tenants were again taken up by the king’s authority, -and the occupier compelled to pay for readmission -to his holding. Tournaments were revived, because -everyone taking part was obliged to take a royal -license. Even the great seal was broken by the -justiciar’s authority, and all documents signed by it -had to be reissued, with the payment of the usual -fees (or stamp duties) for new contracts. “By these -and similar inquisitions England was reduced to -poverty from one sea to the other,” for more than -£1,000,000 was sent to Richard by Hubert in the -first two years of his justiciarship.</p> - -<p>The only protest against the general distress -came from London, and not from the aldermen or -burghers, but from the voteless labouring people -upon whom the whole burden of raising the city’s -taxes had been thrown. Against this monstrous -injustice William Longbeard FitzOsbert stood out<span class="pagenum" id="Page_71">71</span> -as the spokesman of the poor of London, and died a -martyr for their cause.</p> - -<p>London’s political importance had been seen in -the struggles against King Cnut and William the -Conqueror. Its remarkable influence in national -politics (an influence that endured to the middle -of the nineteenth century) was manifest when -London acclaimed Stephen as King of England in -1135. At the close of the twelfth century, London, -with the civic charter it had just obtained from -Richard, with its thirteen convent churches and more -than a hundred parish churches within its boundaries, -with its great cattle market at Smithfield and its -growing riverside trade, was already prosperous and -overcrowded. “The city was blessed with the healthiness -of the air and the nature of its site, in the -Christian religion, in the strength of its towers, the -honour of its citizens and the purity of its women; -it was happy in its sports and fruitful of high spirited -men.” It had its darker side, but at that time “the -only plagues were the intemperate drinking of foolish -people and the frequent fires.”</p> - -<p>Richard’s charter left to the citizens the business -of assessing their own taxes, and in 1196 there was -trouble over this matter; for in that year the city -fathers decided that the large sums required by -Archbishop Hubert for the king’s needs should be -paid in full by the poorer craftsmen and labourers, -who had no say in the matter.<a id="FNanchor_23" href="#Footnote_23" class="fnanchor">23</a></p> - -<p>“And when the aldermen assembled according to -usage in full hustings for the purpose of assessing -the taxes, the rulers endeavoured to spare their own<span class="pagenum" id="Page_72">72</span> -purses and to levy the whole from the poor.” (Roger -of Hoveden.)</p> - -<p>Whereupon up rose William Longbeard, the son -of Osbert, and made his memorable protest against -these rascally proceedings, to go down to history as -the first popular agitator in England.</p> - -<p>An exceptional man was this Longbeard, a man -of commanding stature and great strength, ready -witted, something of an orator and a lawyer, who -“burning with zeal for righteousness and fair play -made himself the champion of the poor,” holding that -every man, rich or poor, should pay his share of the -city’s burdens according to his means.</p> - -<p>Longbeard was not of the labouring people himself. -He was a member of the city council, though -by no means a rich man. He had distinguished -himself as a crusader in 1190, making the journey to -Portugal against the Moors; and a vision of St. -Thomas Becket had appeared to him and his fellow -Londoners when their ship was beset by storms off -the coast of Spain.</p> - -<p>Longbeard was known to the king, and he was -already hateful to the ruling class because he had -declared that Richard was being defrauded by financial -corruption of the money raised for the crown. -He had also accused his brother of treason in 1194, -but the case was not proved.</p> - -<p>Richard was in Normandy in 1196, and Longbeard -having banded together 15,000 men in London, -under an oath that they would stick by him and -each other, went to the king and laid their grievances -before him. Richard heard the appeal sympathetically -enough, for after all, as long as the money was -forthcoming, he had no particular desire that the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_73">73</span> -pockets of rich burghers should be spared at the -expense of the poor, but left matters in the hands of -Archbishop Hubert the justiciar. Longbeard returned -to London, and with his 15,000<a id="FNanchor_24" href="#Footnote_24" class="fnanchor">24</a> workmen in -revolt, bid an open defiance to the justiciar.</p> - -<p>Only a fragment of one of Longbeard’s speeches -has been preserved, a solitary specimen of popular -oratory in the twelfth century.<a id="FNanchor_25" href="#Footnote_25" class="fnanchor">25</a></p> - -<p>Taking a passage from the prophet Isaiah for his -text: “Therefore with joy shall ye draw water -from the wells of the Saviour” (Isaiah xii, 3), the -agitator delivers his message.</p> - -<p>“I am,” he saith, “the saviour of the poor. You -the poor, who have endured the hard hands of the -rich, draw ye from my wells the waters of sound -doctrine, and this with joy, for the time of your -visitation is at hand. For I will divide the waters -from the waters, and the People are the waters. I -will divide the humble and faithful from such as are -proud and froward. I will divide the just from the -unjust, even as light from darkness.”</p> - -<p>For a time Longbeard was too strong for the -justiciar. Archbishop Hubert had no force at his -disposal for the invasion of London, for a battle -with Longbeard and his league.</p> - -<p>At a great gathering of citizens, held in St. Paul’s -Churchyard, the justiciar’s men sent to arrest Longbeard -had been driven out of the city with violence. -All that Hubert could do was to give orders for the -arrest of any lesser citizens found outside London, -and two small traders from the city actually were -taken into custody at the town of Stamford on Mid-Lent -Sunday, 1196, under this authority.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_74">74</span></p> - -<p>But the aldermen grew more and more frightened -at Longbeard’s bold speeches and his big public -meetings, and weakness and cowardice began to -demoralise the league. The people, who had -risen for “liberty and freedom,” fell away from -their leader, and FitzOsbert was left with a -comparatively small band to face the anger of the -justiciar.</p> - -<p>Backed up by the city fathers, Hubert’s officers -again attempted to seize the agitator. Longbeard, -hardly pressed, snatched an axe from one of his assailants—a -citizen named Godfrey—and slew him; and -then retreated, overwhelmed by numbers, to take -refuge in the church of St. Mary-le-Bow in Cheapside. -There was a right of sanctuary in this -church, a right not to be denied to the commonest -felon.</p> - -<p>But what were rights of sanctuary to the justiciar—bent -on hunting his prey to the death? He commanded -Longbeard “to come out and abide by the -law,” and gave orders to his men that, failing instant -obedience, he was to be dragged out.</p> - -<p>Longbeard’s answer was to climb up into the -church tower, and thereupon Hubert ordered the -tower to be set on fire, and this was done. And -now the only chance of life for William Longbeard -and his followers was to cut their way through -the host of their enemies and make a bold rush -for safety. It was a remote chance at the best, -but sooner that than to perish in the burning -tower.</p> - -<p>At the very church door Longbeard was struck -down—some say by Godfrey’s son—and his little -company were quickly slain or taken prisoners.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_75">75</span> -Loaded with chains, the once bold advocate of the -poor of London, now badly hurt, was at once haled -off to the Tower. Sentence was pronounced without -delay of the law, William, the son of Osbert, -was to be dragged to the elms at Tyburn and there -hanged in chains.</p> - -<p>A few days later—it was just before Easter—the -wounded man was stripped naked, tried to the tail -of a horse and dragged over the rough stones of the -streets of London. He was dead before Tyburn -was reached, but the poor broken body, on whom -the full vengeance of the rich and mighty had been -wreaked, was strung up in chains beneath the -gallows elm all the same. Bravely had Longbeard -withstood the rulers of the land in the day of his -strength; now, when life had passed from him, his -body was swinging in common contempt. And -with him were nine of his followers hanged.</p> - -<p>So died William, called Longbeard, son of Osbert, -“for asserting the truth and maintaining the cause -of the poor.” And since it is held that to be faithful -to such a cause makes a man a martyr, people -thought he deserved to be ranked with the martyrs. -For a time multitudes—the very folk who had -fallen away from their champion in the hour of -battle and need—flocked to pay reverence to the -ghastly, bloodstained corpse that hung at Tyburn, -and pieces of the gibbet and of the bloodstained -earth beneath were carried off and counted as sacred -relics. All the great, heroic qualities of the man -were recalled. He was accounted a saint. Miracles -were alleged to take place when his relics were -touched.</p> - -<p>Then the dead man’s enemies were aroused, an<span class="pagenum" id="Page_76">76</span> -alleged death-bed confession was published, wherein -Longbeard was made out to be a sorry criminal. -Not the least of the offences laid to his charge -was that a woman, who was not his wife, had stood -faithfully by the rebel, even when the church was on -fire.</p> - -<p>The times were rough. It is probable that Longbeard, -crusader and fighting man, had sins enough -to confess before death took him. But his traducers -were silent as to these sins in the man’s lifetime. -They waited until no answer could be given before -uttering their miserable libels against the one -courageous champion of the poor.</p> - -<p>Longbeard had roused the common working -people to make a stand against obvious oppression -and injustice—there was the head and front of his -offending, there was his crime; earning for him not -only a felon’s death, but the loss of character, and -the branding for all time with the contemptuous -title “Demagogue.”</p> - -<p>Yet in the slow building up of English liberties -William FitzOsbert played his part, and laid down -his life in the age-long struggle for freedom, as many -a better has done.</p> - -<p>In 1198, two years after the death of Longbeard, -Hubert was compelled to resign the justiciarship. -His monks at Canterbury, to whom the Church of -St. Mary, in Cheapside, belonged, and who had no -love for their archbishop,<a id="FNanchor_26" href="#Footnote_26" class="fnanchor">26</a> indignant at the violation -of sanctuary and the burning of their church, -appealed to the king and to the pope, Innocent III.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_77">77</span> -to make Hubert give up his political activities and -confine himself to the work of an archbishop. In -the same year a great council of the nation, led by -St. Hugh of Lincoln, flatly refused a royal demand -for money made by Hubert.</p> - -<p>Innocent III. was against him, the great barons -were against him, and Hubert resigned. But he -held the archbishopric till 1205.</p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<h2 id="hdr_4">Stephen Langton and the Great Charter<br /> - -<span class="subhead">1207–1228</span></h2> -</div> - -<p><span class="smcap">Authorities</span>: Roger of Wendover and Matthew -Paris; Walter of Coventry; Ralph of Coggeshall (Rolls -Series); <cite>Letters of Innocent III.</cite>; Rymer’s <cite>Fœdera</cite>; K. -Norgate—<cite>John Lackland</cite>; Stubbs—<cite>Select Charters</cite>; -Mark Pattison—<cite>Stephen Langton</cite> (Lives of the English -Saints); C. E. Maurice—<cite>Stephen Langton</cite>.</p> -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_81">81</span></p> - -<h3 class="left">STEPHEN LANGTON AND<br /> -THE GREAT CHARTER -<span class="subhead">1207–1228</span></h3> - -<p class="drop-cap"><span class="firstword">When</span> Hubert Walter, Archbishop of -Canterbury—the old Justiciar of -Richard I.—ended his long life of -public service on July 12th, <span class="allsmcap">A.D.</span> 1205, -King John exclaimed, with frank satisfaction, “Now -for the first time I am King of England!” As -long as Hubert was alive there was one man strong -enough to restrain the king, and the primate and -William the Marshall together had done something -to guard England against the foulest and most -ruthless tyranny of all its kings. To the end -William the Marshall was a brave and patriotic -statesman, but he served the crown rather than the -people.</p> - -<p>On Hubert’s death John meant to have for archbishop -a creature of his will, and he was defeated by -Pope Innocent III., who, dismissing the appeal of -the monks of Canterbury for Reginald, their subprior, -and John’s appeal for his nominee, John de -Gray, Bishop of Norwich, proposed the English-born -Cardinal, Stephen Langton, “than whom there -was no man greater in the Roman court, nor was -there any equal to him in character and in learning.” -The monks consented to Stephen’s appointment, -but John’s reply was a flat refusal, and when<span class="pagenum" id="Page_82">82</span> -on June 7th, 1207, Pope Innocent proceeded to -consecrate Stephen Langton Archbishop of Canterbury, -the king’s rage broke out. Innocent’s wise -judgment gave England one of its noblest and -greatest archbishops, and the service wrought by -Langton for the liberties of England’s people was -of deep and lasting value. But the immediate price -to be paid for later profit was heavy.</p> - -<p>John met Langton’s consecration by seizing the -estates of Canterbury, driving the chapter into exile, -and proclaiming that anyone who acknowledged -Stephen as archbishop should be accounted a public -enemy. The remonstrances and warnings of the -pope were disregarded, and in March, 1208, all -England was laid under an interdict, and there was -an end to the public ministrations of religion in the -country for six years—to the bitter distress of the -common people.</p> - -<p>Immediately the interdict came into force, John -declared all the property of the clergy, secular or -monastic, to be confiscated, and there was no one -to stay his hand from speedy spoliation. For the -barons were willing enough to see the clergy robbed -and the king’s treasury filled at the expense of the -Church, and of the bishops only two were left in -England—Peter des Roches, of Winchester, and -John de Gray, of Norwich—and both these were -willing tools of the king. Never did John enjoy his -royal will and pleasure with such unhindered ferocity -as in that year 1209. Had the barons stood by the -Church they might have saved England unspeakable -miseries, and as it was the laity were soon in as -sorry a plight as the clergy, “and it seemed as -though the king was courting the hatred of every<span class="pagenum" id="Page_83">83</span> -class of his subjects, so burdensome was he to both -rich and poor.”<a id="FNanchor_27" href="#Footnote_27" class="fnanchor">27</a></p> - -<p>In 1211 came Pandulf from Pope Innocent with -suggestions for peace. Let the king restore the -property of the clergy, and receive Archbishop -Langton, with his kinsmen and friends, and the -other exiled bishops “fairly and in peace” and the -interdict should be withdrawn. John declined to -receive Langton as archbishop, and Pandulf, in the -presence of the whole council, pronounced the papal -sentence of excommunication on the king, absolving -all his subjects from allegiance, and commanding -their obedience to whomsoever should be sent as -John’s successor.</p> - -<p>John treated the excommunication with cheerful -contempt, and pursued the evil tenour of his way. -But his position was precarious, for the barons—especially -the northern barons—were plotting his -overthrow, and the pope had decided that Philip of -France should depose John and reign in his stead. -John was driven to capitulate to the pope at the end -of 1212, and in May, 1213, Pandulf arrived, and -the invasion by Philip was stopped, to the exceeding -annoyance of the French king.</p> - -<p>John met the papal legate at Ewell, near Dover, -and in the presence of “the great men of the -realm,” swore to carry out all Innocent’s demands, -promising that Stephen should be received and -recompense paid to the clergy for their losses. -Then the King of England formally surrendered -“to God and to the Holy Mother Church of Rome, -and to Pope Innocent and his Catholic successors,” -the whole realm of England and Ireland, “with all<span class="pagenum" id="Page_84">84</span> -rights thereunto appertaining, to receive them back -and hold them thenceforth as a feudatory of God -and the Roman Church.” He swore fealty to the -pope for both realms, and added that he would send -a yearly tribute of 1,000 marks. At the same time -John declared that the act of homage was voluntary, -done, “not at the driving of force nor the compulsion -of fear, but of our own good free will and by -the common counsel of our barons.”</p> - -<p>There is no evidence that the pope asked for this -abject submission, but there are good reasons why -John desired that political protection of the papacy -which he obtained by the act of homage.<a id="FNanchor_28" href="#Footnote_28" class="fnanchor">28</a> (Matthew -Paris has a story that John was willing to pay -homage and tribute to the Mohammedan Emir of -Morocco in order to effect an alliance with some -foreign power.)</p> - -<p>The barons themselves appealed to the pope two -years later to take their part against John, on the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_85">85</span> -ground that it was only by their compulsion the king -had been brought to pay homage to Rome, and -though they were then to curse the papal overlordship -they had helped procure, and England was to -come to regard John’s surrender to the pope as -“a thing to be detested for all time,” in that year 1213 -the protection of the pope was invaluable to John -and, as some thought, to the country. “For matters -were in such a strait, and so great was the fear on -all sides, that there was no more ready way of avoiding -the imminent peril—perhaps no other way at all. -For when once he had put himself under apostolical -protection and made his realms a part of the patrimony -of St. Peter, there was not in the Roman -world a sovereign who durst attack him or would -invade his lands, in such awe was Pope Innocent -held above all his predecessors for many years -past.” (Walter of Coventry.)</p> - -<p>The long war being at an end Stephen Langton -and four of the exiled bishops landed in June, and -Stephen was now to do the work of archbishop, the -work he had been solemnly consecrated to six years -before.</p> - -<p>John met the primate at Winchester, and swore -on the gospels in the cathedral “that he would -cherish, defend and maintain the holy Church and -her ordained ministers; that he would restore the -good laws of his forefathers, especially St. Edward’s, -rendering to all men their rights; and that before -the next Easter he would make full restitution of all -property which had been taken away in connection -with the interdict.” Then Stephen formally absolved -the king from excommunication and gave him the -kiss of peace, to the general rejoicing.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_86">86</span></p> - -<p>And now England was to see what sort of archbishop -it was Pope Innocent had sent to Canterbury. -With a king as cruel as he was vigorous, and as -astute as he was unscrupulous, with barons who -knew neither loyalty nor patriotism. Archbishop -Stephen, out of such materials, was to win for his -native land the Great Charter, and to have it written -in black and white that all who would might read -the several duties of king and people. In August -Langton, in St. Paul’s Cathedral, read to the barons -the old coronation charter of Henry I., and reminded -them that the liberties promised in that document -were to be recovered. “With very great joy the -barons swore they would fight for these liberties, -even unto death if it were needful, and the archbishop -promised that he would help with all his -might.” Thus within three months of his setting -foot in England Langton had started the movement -for the Great Charter.</p> - -<p>But not with king and barons only had the archbishop -to deal. There were endless difficulties with -the clergy concerning the restitution of their property, -and the payment of compensation to be -settled. And above all there was Nicholas, the -papal legate, in England, usurping the primate’s -functions, filling up vacant bishoprics and churches, -regardless of the rights of the Church and of the -archbishop. Nicholas was recalled to Rome when -the interdict was finally removed, and in November, -1214, John made a public proclamation that free -and undisturbed election to all the churches in his -realm should be allowed henceforth. This was an -attempt on the king’s part to have the Church on -his side against the barons, for the battle was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_87">87</span> -beginning between John and the barons which was -to be fought to a bitter end.</p> - -<p>John’s last campaign to recover the lost Angevine -provinces for the English crown ended in disaster, -and he returned to England in 1214 to face the full -discontent of the barons whom he had harassed and -insulted from the day he came to the throne, and of -a country suffering from “the evil customs which -the king’s father and brother had raised up for the -oppression of the Church and realm, together with -the abuses which the king himself had added -thereto.”</p> - -<p>The national grievances were enormous and -intolerable. The whole administration of justice -was corrupt, and no one could be sure how the -arbitrary decisions of the king’s officers would be -carried out. Liberty of the person was a farce when -free men could be arrested, evicted from their lands, -exiled and outlawed without legal warrant or a fair -trial. “In a word, the entire system of government -and administration set up under the Norman kings, -and developed under Henry and Richard, had been -converted by the ingenuity of John into a most -subtle and effective engine of royal extortion, oppression -and tyranny over all classes of the nation, from -earl to villein.”<a id="FNanchor_29" href="#Footnote_29" class="fnanchor">29</a></p> - -<p>Here and there the barons had struck against -some act of personal injury, and the northern barons -had been conspicuous in their resentment, refusing -to follow John as their liege lord in his expeditions to -France. But there was neither cohesion nor any sense -of national injury amongst the barons until Stephen -Langton, with a full sense of the responsibility<span class="pagenum" id="Page_88">88</span> -laid on the successor of Lanfranc and Anselm, -of Theobald and Thomas, took the lead, and by -strong, courageous effort sought to end for all time -in England such tyranny as the country had endured -under John’s rule. To Langton this was no mere -struggle between a despotic king and a set of turbulent -nobles. It was a struggle to win recognition of -law for <em>all</em> men, and to restore some measure of -justice and the enjoyment of fair liberty throughout -the land. The people had neither spokesman nor -champion, and no man heeded their wrongs save -Langton. More than 150 years were to pass before -John Ball and Wat Tyler would appear at the head -of a peasant army in revolt. In the reign of John, -yeomen, peasant and artizan were dumb. It was -Langton who saw that the barons fighting for their -own rights could be made to fight for all England.</p> - -<p>In November the barons came together at St. -Edmundsbury, and in the abbey church “they swore -on the high altar that if the king sought to evade -their demand for the laws and liberties of the charter -of King Henry I., they would make war upon him -and withdraw from fealty to him till he should by a -charter furnished with his seal confirm to them all -that they demanded. They also agreed that after -Christmas they would go all together to the king -and ask him for a confirmation of these liberties, and -that meanwhile they would so provide themselves -with horses and arms that if the king should seek to -break his oath, they might, by seizing his castles, -compel him to make satisfaction. And when these -things were done every man returned to his own -home.” (Roger of Wendover.)</p> - -<p>John kept Christmas at Worcester, but his court<span class="pagenum" id="Page_89">89</span> -was very small, and he realised that he stood -alone. All through the years of the interdict the -pope’s ban had not kept the nobles from attendance -on the king; it was now when he stood reconciled -to the Church that John found himself deserted. -He moved to London at the new year, and there on -the Epiphany came the confederate barons, making -display of arms, and praying that the laws and -liberties of Edward the Confessor written in the -charter of Henry I. might be confirmed. John -urged that the question was too big and too difficult -to be settled off hand, and asked that it should be -put off till Easter. This was agreed to on condition -that the king pledged himself by three sureties to -fulfil his promises. Archbishop Stephen, William -the Marshall and the Bishop of Ely were accepted -as sureties, and in accepting the post Langton -proved his great statesmanship. There was no -question of going over to the king’s side. The -barons knew the archbishop as their chief ally, but -John knew that Langton was to be trusted as implicitly -as he trusted William the Marshall. Langton’s -one desire was to see the written enactment -granting constitutional liberties, and ending the -worst of the royal abuses.</p> - -<p>John did not waste the time allotted to him, but -worked his hardest to gain friends and supporters -against the barons, and to break up the confederacy. -It was all to no purpose. His commissioners to the -County Courts—in the southern and midland shires, -sent to explain the king’s cause—met with no -success. Nobles and churchmen alike stood aloof, -and all John could do was to write to the knights at -Poitou to send him mercenaries, and to appeal to<span class="pagenum" id="Page_90">90</span> -his liege lord, the pope, against his rebellious -subjects. Finally, he took the cross, hoping for -the favours awarded to a crusader. These efforts -were all of no avail. The mercenaries were inadequate. -The pope’s letters of rebuke to the barons -for their conspiracies and conjurations were unheeded, -and at Easter, John (whom the pope had -warned to harken to “just petitions”) was driven to -send the primate and the Marshall for a definite -statement of the laws and liberties demanded.</p> - -<p>The barons, who were assembled at Brackley, -presented “a certain schedule,” probably compiled -with Langton’s assistance, and this was read to the -king by the primate. “They might as well ask for -my kingdom at once,” was John’s reply to the -various items, and he swore he would never grant -liberties that would mean his own enslavement. -Both Langton and the Marshall strove to persuade -the king to yield, but to no purpose; and all that -remained was to return to the barons and to state -that the king refused their demands. Then the -barons, on hearing this, flew to arms, formally -renounced their homage and fealty to the king, and -chose a military leader for themselves—Robert -Fitz-Walter. London welcomed the insurgents on -May 24th, and John, with a handful of mercenaries, -had the whole baronage against him. Capitulation -was inevitable. From Windsor John sent -envoys to the barons in London, promising, for the -sake of peace and for the welfare and honour of his -realm, to concede the laws and liberties demanded, -and advising the appointment of time and place for -a meeting for “the settlement of all these things.” -The barons at once fixed the meeting for June 15th,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_91">91</span> -in a meadow called Runnymead, between Staines -and Windsor, and there, in the presence of well-nigh -all the baronage of England, of Archbishop -Stephen, and seven bishops, and “a multitude of -most illustrious knights,” the Great Charter was -signed. It was the work of Langton.<a id="FNanchor_30" href="#Footnote_30" class="fnanchor">30</a> It was he -who had inspired the movement, had framed the -articles, and had brought the struggle to a successful -issue.</p> - -<p>“One copy of the Great Charter still remains in -the British Museum, injured by age and fire, but -with the royal seal still hanging from the brown, -shrivelled parchment. It is impossible to gaze without -reverence on the earliest monument of English -freedom which we can see with our own eyes and -touch with our own hands, the Great Charter to -which from age to age patriots have looked back as -the basis of English liberty.” (J. R. Green.)</p> - -<p>Yet the Charter itself was in the main but the -old charter of Henry I. writ large. It set up no -new rights and conferred no new privileges. It -sanctioned no constitutional changes, and proclaimed -no new liberties. Its real importance is in the fact -that it was a <em>written</em> document—“this great table -of laws, won by the people of England from a -tyrannous king, was the first great act which laid -down in black and white the main points of the -constitution and the several rights and duties of -king and people.” (F. York Powell.)</p> - -<p>“The bonds of unwritten custom, which the older -grants did little more than recognize, had proved too<span class="pagenum" id="Page_92">92</span> -weak to hold Angevins; and the baronage now threw -them aside for the restraints of written law. It is in -this way that the Great Charter marks the transition -from the age of traditional rights, preserved in the -nation’s memory and officially declared by the -primate, to the age of written legislation, of parliaments -and statutes, which was soon to come.” (J. R. -Green.)</p> - -<p>The first article of the Charter guaranteed the -freedom of the English Church, and, in especial, the -freedom of elections, “which was reputed most -requisite.”</p> - -<p>By the Great Charter the feudal rights of the -king over his vassals were defined and settled, -and the tenants of the barons were protected -in similar way from the lawless exactions of their -lords.</p> - -<p>No scutage or aid was to be levied by the crown, -“save by the common council of the realm”—except -the three customary feudal aids for the ransoming -of the king, the knighting of his eldest son, and the -marriage of his eldest daughter. This common -council, consisting of bishops, abbots, earls, and -greater barons, was to be summoned by special writ. -The free rights of London and the other chartered -towns were fully admitted.</p> - -<p>The Court of Common Pleas (cases between -subjects) was to sit at Westminster (and not to -follow the king in his wanderings), and judges of -assize were to go on circuit four times a year.</p> - -<p>No free man was to be seized, imprisoned, ousted -of his land, outlawed, banished, or in any way -brought to ruin, save by the legal judgment of his -peers or by the law of the land.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_93">93</span></p> - -<p>To no man was justice to be sold, denied, or postponed -by the king.</p> - -<p>The free right of Englishmen and foreigners to -pass in and out of the country in time of peace was -granted.</p> - -<p>The king’s mercenaries, “all the gang that came -with horses and arms to the hurt of the realm,” were -to be sent out of England.</p> - -<p>Finally, by a supplementary document, the barons -present at Runnymead were to choose out of the -whole baronage twenty-five sworn guardians of the -Charter, who, in the event of any violation of its -articles, were not to hesitate from making war on -the king till the matter had been put right.</p> - -<p>Well might John exclaim, in a wild burst of rage, -when the Charter was signed, and he was alone with -his foreign troops, “They have given me five-and-twenty -over-kings!”</p> - -<p>The twenty-five were to ensure the king’s obedience -to the Charter, but who was to ensure the obedience -of the twenty-five?—all of whom were of the -party of revolt against the king. A safeguard was -obviously necessary, and a second court of barons, -thirty-eight in number, was chosen—(which included -William the Marshall)—and these first swore -obedience to the twenty-five, and then a second -oath to enforce on king and barons mutual -respect.<a id="FNanchor_31" href="#Footnote_31" class="fnanchor">31</a></p> - -<p>The Great Charter was signed, and within a week -it was published throughout all England. But the -“sort of peace” patched up between John and -the barons was not to last. None of the barons -believed that the king would abide by the oaths he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_94">94</span> -had sworn, and they, for their part, prepared for -war.<a id="FNanchor_32" href="#Footnote_32" class="fnanchor">32</a></p> - -<p>To the Continent John looked for aid, “seeking -to be revenged upon his enemies by two swords, -the sword of the spirit and the sword of the flesh, -so that if one failed he could count upon the other -for success.” He had appealed to the pope in May, -and Innocent’s reply had been a general condemnation -of all disturbers of the peace. Pandulf, the -papal legate, was at Runnymead, and in August, -when the barons were openly making ready for -hostilities, he and Peter des Roches, of Winchester, -called on Stephen Langton to enforce the papal -sentence of excommunication against certain of the -barons. Langton, who was about to set out to -Rome for a general council, declined to do this until -he had seen the pope and discussed the whole -question with him. He believed the sentence had -been drawn up by the pope under a misunderstanding. -Thereupon Pandulf and Peter des Roches, by -virtue of their authority, declared Stephen disobedient -to the papal mandate, and pronounced his -suspension from his office of archbishop.</p> - -<p>Langton made no protest against the sentence but -went to Rome, and was present at the general -council in November. His chiefest work for England -was done when the Charter was signed at Runnymead. -With the king and the barons at civil war, -the country ravaged by John’s foreign bands of -merciless savages, and the barons praying Louis, the -son of Philip of France, to take the English crown,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_95">95</span> -what could Archbishop Stephen accomplish? Pope -Innocent had declared the Charter annulled on the -ground that both king and barons had made the -pope the over-lord of England, and that in consequence -nothing in the government and constitution -of the country could be altered without his knowledge -and sanction. But as the legate, the primate, -and the bishops had all left for Rome, the pope’s -disallowing of the Charter never got published in -England at all, though it was known that he had -sent letters.</p> - -<p>The sentence of suspension was removed from -Langton in February, 1216. A few months later -the great pope, Innocent III., passed away, and in -October John was dead.</p> - -<p>In 1217 Stephen Langton was back again at -Canterbury, to remain for eleven more years the -primate of England. With William the Marshall -and Hubert de Burgh, Stephen worked for the preservation -of public peace during those early years of -Henry III. We find him in 1223 demanding a fresh -confirmation of the Charter in the council at Oxford, -and two years later its solemn proclamation is -required by the archbishop and the barons as the -price of a new subsidy. Equally resolute is Archbishop -Stephen for public order, threatening with -all the pains and penalties of excommunication the -barons, who (in spite of Hubert de Burgh’s letters -from the pope declaring Henry to be of age) were -anxious to keep the royal castles in their own hands. -“At a time when constitutional freedom was hardly -known, when insurrection seemed the only possible -means of checking despotism, he (Langton) -organized and established a movement for freedom<span class="pagenum" id="Page_96">96</span> -which by every act and word of his life he showed -to be in opposition to mere anarchy.” (C. E. -Maurice.)</p> - -<p>Stephen Langton was never canonized, though -application was made to Rome to that end shortly -after his death in 1228. His learning had made him -famous in Paris before Pope Innocent summoned -him to Rome to become cardinal priest of St. -Chrysogonus. His wise statesmanship was proved -by the victory he won for England’s liberties over -so energetic and ruthless a despot as John, and -with such material as the barons. His strength of -character and disinterested patriotism were impaired -by no taint of baseness or self seeking. If Stephen -Langton is not numbered with the saints, he ranks -high in the great list of England’s primates, serving -religion as faithfully as he served justice and social -order, and his name is resplendent for all time in the -charters of English liberty.</p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<h2 id="hdr_5">Bishop Grosseteste, the Reformer<br /> - -<span class="subhead">1235–1253</span></h2> -</div> - -<p><span class="smcap">Authorities</span>: <cite>Letters of Robert Grosseteste</cite>, edited -by Luard; <cite xml:lang="la" lang="la">Monumenta Franciscana</cite>; <cite>Letters of Adam -of March and Eccleston on the coming of the Friars</cite>, -edited by Brewer; <cite xml:lang="la" lang="la">Annales Monastici</cite>—Burton and -Dunstable; Matthew Paris (Rolls’ Series); Samuel -Pegge—<cite>Life of Robert Grosseteste</cite>, 1793; F. S. Stevenson, -M.P.—<cite>Robert Grosseteste, Bishop of Lincoln</cite>; -M. M. C. Calthrop—<cite>Victoria County History—Lincolnshire</cite>; -Gasquet—<cite>Henry III. and the Church</cite>.</p> -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_99">99</span></p> - -<h3 class="left">BISHOP GROSSETESTE<br /> -THE REFORMER -<span class="subhead">1235–1253</span></h3> - -<p class="drop-cap"><span class="firstword">The</span> story of Robert Grosseteste’s bishophood -is the record of eighteen years’ unflinching -battle with abuses in Church -and State. From his enthronement as -Bishop of Lincoln in 1235 till his death in 1253 -Grosseteste is conspicuous as a reformer. Now it is -the slackness of the clergy he is combatting, enforcing -discipline on men and women who, vowed -to religion, preferred an easier way of life. At -another time he is maintaining the laws and liberties -of the nation against Henry III., who with all his -piety knew neither honesty nor truth in his sovereignty. -Right on till the last year of his life -Grosseteste is as vigorous in resisting papal encroachments -on the English Church as he is in -dealing with his clergy or with the king. As a -reformer his work is threefold:—(1) The correction -of current abuses in the Church. (2) Maintenance -of justice under the misrule of Henry III. (3) -Resistance to the aggressive claims of the papacy. -With all this work, fighting enemies of England at -home and abroad, Grosseteste is busy administering -his enormous diocese of Lincoln—then the largest -in the country, including as it did the counties -of Lincoln, Leicester, Buckingham, Huntingdon, -Northampton, Oxford and Bedford (Oxford and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_100">100</span> -Peterborough were afterwards carved out of Lincoln)—and -is found writing to and advising all -manner of men, kings, nobles and peasants.</p> - -<p>Here is the character of Bishop Grosseteste as -his contemporary, Matthew Paris, saw it, and -Matthew was a monk, and the champion of the -monks, and hated Grosseteste’s stern interference -with monastic <span class="locked">life:—</span></p> - -<p>“He was an open confuter of both pope and -king, the corrector of monks, the director of priests, -the instructor of clerks, the support of scholars, a -preacher to the people, a persecutor of the incontinent, -the tireless student of the Scriptures, the -hammer and despiser of the Romans. At the table -of bodily refreshment he was hospitable, eloquent, -courteous, pleasant and affable. At the spiritual -table devout, tearful and contrite. In his episcopal -office he was sedulous, venerable and indefatigable.”</p> - -<p>Six hundred years later the whirligig of time -leaves this verdict of old Matthew Paris unreversed, -and finds Grosseteste’s reputation enhanced.</p> - -<p>“There is scarcely a character in English history -whose fame has been more constant, both during -and after his life, than Robert Grosseteste, Bishop -of Lincoln from 1235 to 1253. As we find his -advice sought universally during his lifetime, and -his example spoken of as that which almost all the -other prelates of his day followed, so was it also -after his death. If threats from Rome and excommunications -from Canterbury fell harmlessly upon -him while alive, his example nerved others in subsequent -years—as in the case of Sewal, Archbishop -of York—to bear even worse attacks without giving -way. And probably no one has had a greater<span class="pagenum" id="Page_101">101</span> -influence upon English thought and English literature -for the two centuries which followed his time; few -books will be found that do not contain some quotations -from Lincolniensis, ‘the great clerk, Grostest.’”<a id="FNanchor_33" href="#Footnote_33" class="fnanchor">33</a></p> - -<p>A Suffolk man was Grosseteste, and born of -humble parents. Sent to Oxford by his friends he -becomes master of the schools and chancellor of the -university—the foremost scholar of his day—receives -various ecclesiastical preferments, and at the age of -sixty is freely elected by the chapter of Lincoln as -their bishop. If the canons of Lincoln believed -that Grosseteste’s age would ensure comparative -quiet for the diocese and a continuance of the loose -order of his immediate predecessors, they were -speedily undeceived.</p> - -<p>Grosseteste brought into Lincoln an energy for -religion that disturbed the easy-going monks, with -their comfortable common-room life, and altogether -upset the secular clergy with their illegal marriages -and their parochial revellings. In the first year of -his authority Grosseteste’s letter to his archdeacons, -followed by his diocesan constitutions, shows the -hand of the reformer. He calls attention to the -neglect of the canonical hours of prayer—certain -clergy “fearing not God nor regarding man, either -do not say the canonical hours or say them in -mutilated fashion, and that without any sign of devotion, -or at an hour more suitable to their own -desires than convenient to their parishioners”—to -the private marriages of many priests, to the strife -and bloodshed and desecration caused by the miracle -plays in churchyards, and to the drunkenness and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_102">102</span> -gluttony attendant on funeral feasts. Grosseteste -also complains that the parochial clergy oppose the -preaching friars, “maliciously hindering the people -from hearing the sermons of the friars, and permitting -those to preach who make a trade of it, and -who only preach such things as may draw money.” -Incidentally, and with a curiously modern touch, -Grosseteste urges his archdeacons to warn mothers -and nurses against overlaying their children at night, -for it seems many infants were suffocated in this way.</p> - -<p>Grosseteste relied on the friars, Franciscan and -Dominican, to revive religion in his diocese. -From their first coming to England he had befriended -the little brothers of St. Francis and St. -Dominic’s order of preachers, and at Oxford had -been conspicuously their rector. He writes to Pope -Gregory IX. in the highest praise of the Franciscans: -“Inestimable benefits have been wrought in my -diocese by the friars. They enlighten our whole -land with the bright light of their preaching and -learning.”</p> - -<p>The secular clergy and the monks generally by -no means shared Grosseteste’s appreciation of the -preachers of poverty, and when the Bishop of Lincoln -began to rout up the monasteries in his diocese -with visitations and enquiries the dismay was -considerable. The Benedictine monks in England -were good, easy men in the thirteenth century—Grosseteste -finds no grave faults against morality to -rebuke in them—fond of their pleasant social life, -and enjoying the comfort of an existence that had -few temporal cares beyond finding money for pope -and king. At the worst their sloth was culpable. -Grosseteste charged upon them with his preaching<span class="pagenum" id="Page_103">103</span> -friars, calling for amendment and the fulfilment of -duties, attacking old abuses sanctioned by custom, -and showing no tolerant sympathy for the infirmities -and shortcomings of middle-aged clerks.<a id="FNanchor_34" href="#Footnote_34" class="fnanchor">34</a> Respect -him they must, for the learning and high character -of the bishop were conspicuous in the land, but the -dislike of all this strenuous exhortation was not concealed. -The very chapter of Lincoln, which had -elected him bishop, refused to admit Grosseteste as -their visitor, or to acknowledge his jurisdiction over -their proceedings, and only after six years of controversy -and litigation was the case finally decided at -Rome (1245) wholly in the bishop’s favour. A sentence -of excommunication pronounced upon him by -the monks at Canterbury during the vacancy of the -see was of course entirely ignored by Grosseteste. -If the clergy resented Grosseteste’s call to arms, it is -to be remembered that they had suffered considerably -from the tyranny of the times, and had been -reduced under the general oppression to a feeble -and sluggish timidity. The old “Song of the -Church”<a id="FNanchor_35" href="#Footnote_35" class="fnanchor">35</a> tells how low they had fallen:</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_104">104</span></p> - -<div class="poetry-container"> -<div class="poetry"> - <div class="stanza"> - <div class="verse indent0">Free and held in high esteem the clergy used to be,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">None were better cherished: or loved more heartily.</div> - <div class="verse indent2">Slaves are they now: despised, brought low,</div> - <div class="verse indent12">Betrayed (as all deplore)</div> - <div class="verse indent2">By those from whom: their help should come;</div> - <div class="verse indent12">I can no more.</div> - </div> - <div class="stanza"> - <div class="verse indent0">King and pope alike in this: to one purpose hold.</div> - <div class="verse indent0">How to make the clergy yield their silver and their gold.</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Truth to say: the pope gives way,</div> - <div class="verse indent12">Far too much to the king</div> - <div class="verse indent2">Our tithes he grants: for the crown’s wants</div> - <div class="verse indent12">To his liking.</div> - </div> -</div> -</div> - -<p>To check the rapacity of the king, and to stop -the seizure of Church revenues for Italian clerics, -and thereby to raise the English clergy from their -state of sluggish despondency was Grosseteste’s -work for England. We find him conspicuous at the -council summoned by the king to meet at Westminster -in 1244. In vain Henry III. appealed for -money, bishops and nobles reminded him that the -money so frequently granted had done no good -either to the king or the country, and that a justiciar -and chancellor must be appointed for the strengthening -of the state. Henry demurred, tried postponements -and delays, and these failing, summoned the -bishops alone, and confronted them with a letter -from Pope Innocent IV. exhorting them to give -liberally to the king. Even this failed to move the -prelates. After much discussion, however, some -were for “a mild answer,” for many of the prelates -“fearing the king’s instability and the pusillanimity -of the royal counsellors,” were unwilling to deny the -pope’s request. Grosseteste clinched the matter by -declaring they must all stand together with the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_105">105</span> -barons:<a id="FNanchor_36" href="#Footnote_36" class="fnanchor">36</a> “We may not be divided from the -common counsel. For it is written if we be divided -we shall all perish forthwith,” The next day Henry -tried to get at each of the bishops separately—an -old device. “But they with wary heed would not be -so entrapped, and by departing early in the morning -escaped the net in which they had once been caught; -and so the council broke up to the king’s discontent.” -(Matthew Paris.)</p> - -<p>Again in 1252 Henry summoned the bishops, and -tried to coerce them into giving him money by producing -a papal mandate, authorising the payment -of a full tithe of all Church revenues to the king for -the space of three years. To make matters worse, -“payment was not to be made on the old assessment, -but on a new assessment conducted with -strict inquiry, at the will and judgment of the royal -agents and extortioners, who would seek their own -profit before the king’s.” The excuse was that the -king was about to start on a pilgrimage. Grosseteste -was then an old man, but he blazed out at this -monstrous demand, especially when the king’s -messengers went on to explain that the tithe for two -years might be paid at once, and that the third<span class="pagenum" id="Page_106">106</span> -year’s tithe could also be raised before the king -actually started. “By our Lady,” said the sturdy -bishop of Lincoln, “what does all this mean? You -assume that we shall agree to this damnable levy, -and go on arguing from premises that have not been -admitted. God forbid that we should thus bend -our knee to Baal.”</p> - -<p>The king’s half-brother, Ethelmar, bishop-elect of -Winchester, deprecated resistance to the will of -pope and king, and urged that the French had consented -to pay a similar demand. “Yes,” said the -Bishop of Ely, “and it brought their king no good.” -“For the very reason the French have yielded must -we resist,” replied Grosseteste. “To do a thing -twice makes it a custom, and if we pay too, we -shall have no peace. For my own part, I say plainly -that I will not pay this evil demand, lest the king -himself as well as us should incur the heavy wrath -of God.” The other bishops followed Grosseteste’s -lead, and the old man went on to advise them to -pray the king to think of his eternal salvation, and -to restrain his rash impulses. Henry naturally -declined to send an independent remonstrance to the -pope against the mandate, and the bishops decided -they could do nothing in the way of granting this -special tithe. But they were hard put to it, “between -the pulling of the king and the pushing of the pope.”</p> - -<p>All Grosseteste’s dealings with the king show the -same firm resolution to stop the royal extortion, and -to insist on the fulfilment of the charters of liberties -obtained from the crown. He carries on the work -of Stephen Langton, always backing up the unsuccessful -efforts of the good St. Edmund Rich -(Archbishop of Canterbury, 1234–1240) to keep<span class="pagenum" id="Page_107">107</span> -Henry faithful to his word, and prepares the way for -the great campaign of his friend Simon of Montfort.<a id="FNanchor_37" href="#Footnote_37" class="fnanchor">37</a> -The very worst period of Henry’s long -reign is covered by Grosseteste’s episcopal life. -Hubert de Burgh’s wise rule was over by 1232, and -Peter des Roches and the horde of aliens were -fleecing the country for the next twenty years. It -is not till after Grosseteste’s death that the barons -dealt with Henry’s misrule to any purpose.</p> - -<p>At the great council held in London in 1248, at -which Grosseteste was present, a full list of the -national grievances is given: the lavish waste of the -wealth of the country on foreigners, the ruin of -trade by the arbitrary seizure of goods by the king -and his agents, the robbery of poor fishermen by -royal authority, “so that they think it safer to trust -themselves to the stormy waves and seek a further -shore,” and the keeping bishoprics and abbacies -vacant so that the crown may enjoy the revenues -therefrom, are the chief causes of complaint. They -were not new grievances, for the most part, and they<span class="pagenum" id="Page_108">108</span> -were not to die with Henry III., all charters and -royal promises notwithstanding.</p> - -<p>Added to the common wrongs of Henry’s wretched -misrule were the papal extortions, directly encouraged -by the king. In return for papal mandates directing -churchmen to supply the king with money, what -could Henry—himself the most devoted servant of -the papacy—do but help the pope to get what he -could out of England? The wealth of England -was held to be of fabulous amount at Rome, and -popes beset by fierce ungodly emperors naturally -turned to it in their need as to a treasury.</p> - -<p>But the thing was intolerable to Grosseteste. He -had studied in Paris, he welcomed Dominican and -Franciscan friars from the continent as no other -prelate did, and had no objection to foreigners <i xml:lang="la" lang="la">per se</i>. -But the pope claimed the revenues of church livings -for boys and presented illiterates to benefices—to -the obvious degradation of the Church in England. -Grosseteste was always willing enough to raise what -money he could for the holy see, but appoint unworthy -and incompetent clerks to livings in his -diocese, that he would not do—not for any pope.</p> - -<p>The country groaned under the biting avarice of -the Roman see, as it bled under the vampire politics -of Peter des Roches and his needy, greedy crew of -Bretons and Poitevins.</p> - -<p>What it all meant to England Matthew Paris has -told us in his description of things in 1237:</p> - -<p>“Now was simony practised without shame and -usurers on various pleas openly extorted money from -the common people and lesser folk; charity expired, -the liberty of the Church withered away, religion -was trampled to the dust. Daily did illiterate<span class="pagenum" id="Page_109">109</span> -persons of the lowest class, armed with bulls from -Rome, burst forth into threats; and, in spite of the -privileges handed down to us from good men of old, -they feared not to plunder the revenues consecrated -by our holy forefathers for the service of religion, the -support of the poor, and the nourishment of strangers, -but thundering out their excommunications they -quickly and violently carried off what they demanded. -And if those who were wronged and robbed sought -refuge by appealing or pleading their privileges, they -were at once suspended and excommunicated by a -papal writ. Thus mourning and lamentation were -heard on all sides, and many exclaimed with heart-rending -sobs, ‘It were better to die than to behold -the sufferings of our country and its saints. Woe to -England, once the chief of provinces, the mistress -of nations, the mirror of the Church, the exemplar -of religion, and now brought under tribute,—trampled -on by worthless men, and the prey of men -of low degree.’”</p> - -<p>The arrival of Otho, in 1237, a papal legate (on -the request of Henry), far from remedying, increased -the contemporary distress. For though Otho was a -discreet man, he was more eager to get money for -Rome than to deal with the oppression that plagued -England, and when he did give advice it was spurned -by those who saw his grasping hands. Archbishop -Edmund was particularly vexed at having a papal -legate set over him, and what with one disappointment -and another finally gave up in despair the task -of guiding the English Church, and in 1240 went to -die at Pontigny, where his predecessors Anselm and -Thomas had lived in exile.</p> - -<p>Grosseteste stuck to his post, and the Franciscans<span class="pagenum" id="Page_110">110</span> -and Dominicans, whom he aided, poured in oil and -wine on the wounds of the Church folk, and revived -religion in the country.</p> - -<p>Grosseteste fought the extortionate papal demands -for Church revenues all the time. In 1239, with -his fellow bishops, he tells Otho plainly that the -Church is drained dry by the grasping importunity -of Rome. Otho left in 1241, and that same year -saw Boniface of Savoy, a handsome, soldierly man -appointed to Canterbury as St. Edmund’s successor. -The following year came a new extortioner from -Rome, named Martin, an altogether inferior person -to Otho, but with all the legate’s powers of suspension -and excommunication. His confiscations and -rapacity provoked a remonstrance to the pope even -from Henry. Martin at last, in 1245, had to fly for -his life from England, and when Grosseteste subsequently -had a calculation made of the English -Church revenues enjoyed by foreigners, it was found -that the incomes of foreign clerks appointed by Pope -Innocent IV. amounted to more than 70,000 marks—more -than treble the king’s income. And all this -was done in spite of refusals by Grosseteste to -appoint illiterates or allow boys to hold benefices.</p> - -<p>The barons sided with the Church against Martin, -and drew up a long protest which they sent to the -pope at the council of Lyons in 1245. In this they -complained:—That the pope, not content with -Peter’s Pence, which had been paid cheerfully from -old times, wrung money from the Church against -the law of the realm, without the king’s permission; -and that the pope wrongfully put ignorant, covetous, -or absentee Italians into English livings notwithstanding -his own promises, the rights of patrons,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_111">111</span> -and the privileges of the English clergy. A year -later the protest was repeated with another item -objecting to the pope’s claim to recall former -charters.</p> - -<p>Innocent IV.’s answer to this was to threaten to -dethrone Henry as he had dethroned his brother-in-law, -the Emperor Frederick. The king weakly said -no more, the barons, without a leader, were equally -silent, and the Church continued “to sate the greed -of Rome.”</p> - -<p>But in Grosseteste there was no spirit of surrender. -In 1253, the very last year of his life, he was called -upon by the pope to provide a nephew of his with a -canonry at Lincoln, and the bishop’s letter of refusal -is, perhaps, the only well remembered thing of all -Grosseteste’s writings. This letter was not, as -commonly stated, sent to the pope but to his representative -who was also named Innocent.<a id="FNanchor_38" href="#Footnote_38" class="fnanchor">38</a> “The -pope has power to build up,” wrote Grosseteste, -“but not to pull down. These appointments tend -to destruction, not edification, being of man’s device -and not according to the words of the Apostles or -the will of Christ. By my very love and obedience -to the Holy See I must refuse obedience in things -altogether opposed to the sanctity of the Apostolic -See and contrary to Catholic unity. As a son and -a servant I decline to obey, and this refusal must not -be taken as rebellion, for it is done in reverence to -divine commands.”</p> - -<p>(This letter is quoted by Matthew Paris and in -the <cite>Burton Annals</cite>. It can be read in full in the -<cite>Epistles</cite>, No. 128.)</p> - -<p>When the pope heard of this answer he talked<span class="pagenum" id="Page_112">112</span> -angrily of “the old madman” who dared to sit in -judgment on him, and blustered about the king of -England being his vassal. The cardinals, however, -said frankly that Grosseteste had spoken the truth, -and that he was far too good a man to be condemned. -“He is Catholic,” they declared, “and of -deepest holiness. More religious, and more saintly -than we are, and of better life. They say that -among all the bishops there is no one his equal, still -less his superior. All the clergy of France and -England know this. Besides, he is considered a -great philosopher, thoroughly learned in Latin and -Greek; and he is zealous for justice, and a man who -deals in theology, a preacher to the people, a lover -of chastity, and a persecutor of those who practise -simony.” So they extolled him. And it is to the -everlasting credit of the cardinals of the Roman See -in that year 1253 that they could discern the sincerity -and the great qualities of the brave old bishop who -defied the pope’s unrighteous commands. There -was no question at Rome of any disloyalty on -Grosseteste’s part to the Holy See, no suggestion -of any failing as a good Catholic.<a id="FNanchor_39" href="#Footnote_39" class="fnanchor">39</a> And Pope<span class="pagenum" id="Page_113">113</span> -Innocent IV. wisely let the matter drop, when the -cardinals assured him it would never do to interfere -with Grosseteste.</p> - -<p>Before he died Grosseteste made a last appeal “to -the nobles of England, the citizens of London and -the community of the whole realm” on behalf of -the Rights of the English Church, making a careful -list of the ills to be redressed. He also solemnly -charged his friend Simon of Montfort, never, as he -valued his immortal soul, to forsake the cause of the -English people, but to stand up even to the death, -if needs be, for a true and just government, and -with prophetic foresight spoke of the heavier troubles -coming on the land.</p> - -<p>On October 9th, 1253, the long life and the magnificent -battling with odds were over, and the great -bishop passed away. He was buried in Lincoln -Cathedral, and in 1307, King Edward I. and the -dean and chapter of St. Paul’s made application for -his canonization, but without success. Fifty years -later and Edward III.’s Statutes of Provisors, 1351, -and Praemunire, 1353, by their prohibition of papal -bulls and of the appointment of papal nominees to -English benefices, may be accepted as the real -acknowledgment of Grosseteste’s political work.</p> - -<p>“I confidently assert (wrote Matthew Paris) that -his virtues pleased God more than his failings displeased -Him.”</p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<h2 id="hdr_6">Simon of Montfort and the -English Parliament<br /> - -<span class="subhead">1258–1265</span></h2> -</div> - -<p><span class="smcap">Authorities</span>: Matthew Paris; William of Rishanger; -Thomas of Wykes; Adam of Marsh—<cite xml:lang="la" lang="la">Monumenta -Frascescana</cite>, <cite>Burton Annals</cite>, <cite xml:lang="la" lang="la">Annales Monastici</cite>; Robert -of Gloucester—<cite>Royal letters of Henry III.</cite> (Rolls Series); -<cite>Political Songs</cite> (Camden Society, 1839); <cite>Chronicle of -Melrose</cite>; Stubbs—<cite>Constitutional History</cite>, vol. ii; and -<cite>Select Charters</cite>; W. H. Blaauw—<cite>The Barons’ War</cite>; -Dr. Pauli—<cite>Simon of Montfort</cite> (translated by Una M. -Goodwin); G. W. Prothero—<cite>Simon of Montfort</cite>; Dr. -Shirley in <cite>Quarterly Review</cite>, cxix. 57.</p> -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_117">117</span></p> - -<h3 class="left">SIMON OF MONTFORT AND<br /> -THE ENGLISH PARLIAMENT -<span class="subhead">1258–1265</span></h3> - -<p class="drop-cap"><span class="firstword">“In</span> the year of our Lord 1238, which was the -twenty-second of his reign, King Henry -held his court in London at Westminster, -and there on the day after Epiphany, which -was a Thursday, Simon de Montfort solemnly espoused -Eleanor, daughter of King John, sister of -Henry III., and widow of William Marshall, Earl of -Pembroke. The king himself gave away the bride -to the said Simon, Earl of Leicester, who received -her gratefully by reason of his disinterested love for -her, her own beauty, the rich honours that were -attached to her, and the distinguished and royal -descent of the lady, for she was the legitimate -daughter of a king and queen, and furthermore was -sister of a king, of an empress (the wife of Frederic -II.), and of a queen (Joan, wife of Alexander II. of -Scotland). Our lord the pope, too, gave him a dispensation -to marry this noble lady.”</p> - -<p>Thus Matthew Paris, when Earl Simon, then a -man about thirty-seven, and “tall and handsome,” -enjoyed the royal favour and stood godfather to the -infant Prince Edward. Simon had only done homage -as Earl of Leicester in 1232; his boyhood was -passed in France, and his father was the great -soldier who led the French crusade against the -Albigenses. Earl Richard of Cornwall, Henry’s<span class="pagenum" id="Page_118">118</span> -brother—soon to become King of the Romans—objected -to the marriage, regarding it as one more -victory for the foreigners whom Henry nourished at -the expense of England. But Simon was no real -alien. His grandmother had been sister and heiress -of the Earl of Leicester, and Simon’s French training -no more made him a stranger in England than did -Stephen Langton’s years of study in Paris and -Rome unfit him for the primacy of the English -Church.</p> - -<p>Henry’s favour was short-lived. Earl Simon -made friends with Earl Richard and left for the -crusades, disgusted with the king’s want of honesty. -So much wisdom did he show in Palestine, and so -great was his prowess, that Simon might have stayed -in the east as regent for the young King of Jerusalem. -But he had work to do in England, and -came home with Richard in 1242.</p> - -<p>Here against all the disorder of misrule and the -royal and papal extortions Simon laboured with his -friend Bishop Grosseteste, and he is conspicuous at -the Parliament of Westminster in 1244, and in -drawing up the great protest to the pope a year later.</p> - -<p>Then for five years (1248–53) Simon was in -Gascony contending with a body of nobles whom -neither Henry II. nor Richard I. had been able to -make good subjects, and whose only object in -making formal acknowledgment of Henry III. was to -escape the rule of Louis of France. Henry gave -Simon neither men nor money, and lent a willing -ear to all the complaints of Simon’s enemies in Gascony -and in England.<a id="FNanchor_40" href="#Footnote_40" class="fnanchor">40</a> At his own expense the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_119">119</span> -Earl of Leicester saved Gascony for the English -crown, and brought peace and law and trade to that -province. Henry’s return was to make Simon -answer trumped-up charges of robbery, cruelty and -treason brought by Gascons in 1252. The charges -were not proved, although Henry sent his own -commissioner to Gascony to make enquiry. Earl -Richard and other nobles who knew the country -were convinced of Simon’s justice, and Simon, who -was in England trying to raise supplies, turned -sharply on the king, reminding him of unfulfilled -promises. “Keep thy agreement with me,” he went -on, “or pay me the money I have spent in thy service; -for it is well known I have impoverished my -earldom beyond recovery for the honour of the -king.” “There is no shame in breaking my word to -a traitor,” the king answered angrily. At this Simon -in open wrath declared the king a liar, only saved -by the shelter of royalty from the penalty of his -speech. “Call thyself a Christian?” said the earl. -“Dost thou ever confess thy sins?” “Yes,” said the -king, “I do.” “Thy confession is useless without repentance -and atonement.” said the earl. The king, -more angry than ever, retorted, “I repent of one thing, -and that is that I made thee an earl in England, to -wax fat and kick against me. Get thee to Gascony, -thou who lovest strife, and take thy fill there and -meet thy father’s fate.” “I go willingly, my lord,” -came the answer. “And, ungrateful as thou art, I -will not return till I have made these rebels thy subjects -and thy enemies thy footstool.”</p> - -<p>Simon returned to Gascony, and though Henry -again undermined his authority, he kept his word, -only giving up his command when the work was done.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_120">120</span></p> - -<p>Adam of Marsh, a Franciscan friar, the friend -and correspondent of Grosseteste, often writes to -Simon in those days, encouraging and advising him. -“Better is patience in a man than force,” says Adam, -“and better he who rules his own passions than he -who storms a city.” He prays this strong upright -soldier-statesman to find comfort in the frequent -reading of the Holy Scriptures, “breaking through -as far as you can the cares and distractions of storm -and trouble,” and recommends the 29th, 30th and -31st chapters of the book of Job, “together with the -delightful commentaries of St. Gregory.”</p> - -<p>Once more back in England, the time soon came -when Simon was the recognised leader of the barons -in their struggle with the king. And this leadership -gave England its first representative parliament.</p> - -<p>Henry was in greater financial difficulties than -ever in 1257. The mad scheme of accepting the -crown of Sicily for his second son Edmund from the -pope, on condition that the cost of driving out Manfred, -the Emperor Frederick’s son, undertaken by -the pope, was to be paid for by England, had been -adopted by Henry in spite of the opposition of -bishops and nobles. Henry pledged his kingdom -with the pope as security for the expenditure in -Sicily,<a id="FNanchor_41" href="#Footnote_41" class="fnanchor">41</a> and at last in the parliament of 1257 had to -confess his indebtedness. Fourteen thousand marks -were owing to Pope Alexander, and this wretched -debt, in addition to the general contempt for law and -justice by the king’s judges, sheriffs and foreign -favourites, drove matters to a climax. The wet -summer of 1257, followed by a failure at harvest, -brought famine in the winter.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_121">121</span></p> - -<p>The barons insisted that the time had come for -constitutional amendment. “The king’s mistakes -call for special treatment,” said Richard, Earl of -Gloucester, at a parliament early in 1258, and Simon, -closely related to the royal house as he was, agreed. -The swarm of royal parasites from Poitou raised -objections to any interference with Henry’s prerogative, -but were swept aside. “If the king can’t do -without us in war he must listen to us in peace. -And what sort of peace is this when the king is led -astray by bad counsellors and the land is filled with -foreign tyrants who grind down native-born Englishmen?” -So the barons argued.<a id="FNanchor_42" href="#Footnote_42" class="fnanchor">42</a></p> - -<p>To Henry’s threat, “I will send reapers and reap -your fields for you,” Hugh Bigod of Norfolk had -retorted briskly, “And I will send you back the -heads of your reapers.”</p> - -<p>Parliament met again in June that year at Oxford—the -“Mad Parliament” it was called—and the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_122">122</span> -barons came fully armed, for civil war seemed imminent. -But the barons led by Richard of Gloucester -and Earl Simon carried all before them and the war -was postponed for five years.</p> - -<p>The work of this parliament, well known as the -Provisions of Oxford, was one more attempt to get -the Great Charter honestly observed. Under this -<span class="locked">constitution:—</span></p> - -<p>The king was to have a standing council of fifteen, -by whose advice he was to act, and to whom the -justiciar, chancellor and treasurer were to be accountable.</p> - -<p>Parliament was to meet three times a year—February, -June and October. Four knights were -to be chosen by the king’s lesser freehold tenant-knights -in each county.</p> - -<p>To save expense twelve commissioners were to be -chosen to represent the baronage—“and the commonalty -shall hold as established that which these -twelve shall do.”<a id="FNanchor_43" href="#Footnote_43" class="fnanchor">43</a> The fifteen counsellors consisted -of six of the king’s party, and nine of the barons’—the -most conspicuous of the latter were Simon of -Montfort, Richard of Gloucester, and Bishop Cantilupe, -of Worcester.</p> - -<p>Then the oath was taken, “that neither for life -nor death, for hatred or love, or for any cause whatever, -would they be bent or weakened in their<span class="pagenum" id="Page_123">123</span> -purpose to regain praiseworthy laws, and to cleanse -the kingdom from foreigners.”</p> - -<p>Henry and Prince Edward, his eldest son, took the -oath willingly enough—though the latter soon began -“to draw back from it so far as he could.” The -king’s half-brothers and the rest of the aliens not only -refused the oath, but swore that as long as they had -breath they would never surrender their castles, -revenues, or wardships.<a id="FNanchor_44" href="#Footnote_44" class="fnanchor">44</a> Simon, who on the -ground of his foreign birth had at once yielded his -castles of Kenilworth and Odiham, without recompense, -turned to William de Valence—who was -blustering more than the rest—and said sharply, -“To a certainty you shall either surrender your -castles or lose your head.” The barons made it -plain that they were in agreement with this, and -then were the Poitevins afraid, not knowing what to -do; “for if they hid themselves in their castles they -would be starved out; for all the people would -besiege them and utterly destroy their castles.” The -aliens fled to the continent, and the new constitution -was proclaimed in every county—in Latin, French, -and English.<a id="FNanchor_45" href="#Footnote_45" class="fnanchor">45</a></p> - -<p>Twenty years had passed since Henry had blessed -Simon’s marriage with his sister Eleanor, and Simon -had stood godfather to Prince Edward, and now -after the Parliament at Oxford, meeting the Earl of -Leicester in the Bishop of Durham’s palace on the -Thames bank, the king cannot conceal his fear of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_124">124</span> -the one man who held up the good cause—“like a -pillar that cannot be moved.” The king had taken -refuge from a thunderstorm, and to Simon’s assurance -that the storm was passing, and was no longer to be -feared, answered grimly, “I fear thunder and -lightning a good deal, Lord Simon, but by the -Head of God, I fear you more than all the thunder -and lightning in the world.”</p> - -<p>“Everyone suspected that these astounding words -broke from the king because the Earl of Leicester -manfully and boldly persevered in carrying out the -provisions, compelling the king and all the enemies -of these provisions to assent to them, and utterly -banishing his brothers, who were corrupting the -whole kingdom.” (Matthew Paris.)</p> - -<p>Manfully as the great earl might strive, he could -not accomplish the carrying out of the Provisions of -Oxford. Henry was quickly at his old work, -obtaining from Rome a dispensation from his old -promises on the ground they had been obtained by -compulsion, and bringing back his foreign supporters. -The barons neither held together nor made any -serious effort to promote good government.</p> - -<p>Richard of Gloucester, jealous of Simon, fell away -from the national cause before his death in 1262.<a id="FNanchor_46" href="#Footnote_46" class="fnanchor">46</a></p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_125">125</span></p> - -<p>Prince Edward stood by his oath, but did nothing -to prevent the break-up of the provisional government, -and soon openly supported his father.</p> - -<p>In spite of all this the Provisions, modified at -Westminster in 1259, endured for five years, and -then it seemed as if nothing could save the country -from civil war. As a last resource appeal was made -by both sides to King Louis of France to arbitrate -concerning the fulfilment of the Provisions, and at -Amiens, in January, 1264, the award was given. -Louis solemnly gave sentence for the king against -the barons, entirely annulling the Statutes and Provisions -of Oxford, and in particular declaring the -king free to appoint his own ministers, councils, and -sheriffs, and to employ aliens. But by the award—the -mise—of Amiens the earlier charters given by -the crown were to remain, and all disputes arising -out of the Parliament of Oxford were to be suppressed. -Louis gave as a reason for annulling the provisions -that the pope had already annulled them.</p> - -<p>The appellants had turned to Louis hoping for -peace. The award was the signal for war. Many -of the bishops and barons at once withdrew from -Simon, who answered the deserters by declaring, -“Though all should forsake us, I and my four sons -will fight to the death in the righteous cause I have -sworn to uphold, to the honour of the Church and -the good of the realm. Many lands have I travelled, -heathen and Christian, but nowhere have I seen -such bad faith and falsehood as in England.”</p> - -<p>London was enthusiastic in its support of the -barons, and the Cinque Ports, the scholars of -Oxford, and the Dominican and Franciscan friars -were all on the side of reform. Chief among<span class="pagenum" id="Page_126">126</span> -Simon’s supporters were Bishop Cantilupe, of Worcester, -Gilbert, the young Earl of Gloucester, Hugh -le Despenser, the justiciar, and Roger Bigod.</p> - -<p>War began in March, when Prince Edward -captured Gloucester, joined Henry at Oxford, and -then seized Nottingham and Northampton, while -Simon and the citizens of London attacked -Rochester. Henry turned south, and encamped in -full force near Lewes.</p> - -<p>Again Simon laboured for peace, and in his own -name and the name of Gilbert of Gloucester, the -Bishops of Worcester and London went as ambassadors -to Henry. Simon offered £30,000 to the -king if he would make peace and keep to the Provisions -of Oxford, and assured him that he had -taken up arms not against Henry but against those -who were “not only our enemies, but yours, and -those of the whole kingdom.”</p> - -<p>The king treated the proposal with scorn, and -Prince Edward added an additional message of -contempt.</p> - -<p>On the 14th of May the battle of Lewes was -fought and won by Simon, “through a singular conjunction -of skill and craft on the one side, and rashness -and panic on the other.”<a id="FNanchor_47" href="#Footnote_47" class="fnanchor">47</a></p> - -<p>The Earl of Leicester went into the battle fighting -for his country and his oath, and with the exhortation -to his men “to pray God, if this our undertaking -be pleasing in His sight, to give us might to fulfil -the same, serving Him as good knights.”</p> - -<p>The stout old Bishop of Worcester blessed the -troops, “who had among them all but one faith, one -will in all things, one love towards God and their<span class="pagenum" id="Page_127">127</span> -neighbour, so that they feared neither to offend the -king nor even to die for the sake of justice, rather -than violate their oaths.” (Matthew of Westminster.)</p> - -<p>At the end of the day the defeat of the royalists -was complete, and the king, Prince Edward and his -kinsmen were prisoners.</p> - -<p>Then peace was made, Henry once more swearing -to keep the charters and articles of Oxford, to employ -no aliens, to submit the Provisions to arbitration -again, to live thriftily till his debts were paid, -and to give his son Edward and his nephew Henry -as hostages for good behaviour till a permanent -reform in the constitution was made. Early in June -these terms of peace were proclaimed in London, to -the general satisfaction, and on all sides the people -shouted their thankfulness to Simon.</p> - -<div class="poetry-container"> -<div class="poetry"> - <div class="stanza"> - <div class="verse indent0">God’s blessing on Earl Simon, his sons and followers light!</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Who put their lives in jeopardy and fought a desperate fight,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Because their hearts were moved to hear their English brethren groan</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Beneath the hard taskmasters’ rods, making a grievous moan,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Like Israel under Pharaoh’s yoke, in thraldom and in dread,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Their freedom gone, their lives scarce spared, so evilly they sped.</div> - <div class="verse indent0">But at the last the Lord looked down and saw His people’s pain,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">And sent a second Mattathias to break their bonds in twain;</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Who with his sons so full of zeal for the law and for the right,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Will never flinch a single inch before the tyrant’s might.</div> - <div class="verse indent0">To Simon’s faith and faithfulness alone our peace we owe,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">He raised the weak and hopeless and made the proud to bow,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">He set the realm at one again and brought the mighty low.<a id="FNanchor_48" href="#Footnote_48" class="fnanchor">48</a></div> - </div> -</div> -</div> - -<p>And now in the summer of 1264 Earl Simon was -to show what he could do for England, for the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_128">128</span> -victory of Lewes had placed power in his hands, and -he stood indisputably the foremost man in the realm. -For one short year his counsel was to guide the -destinies of England and to make that year memorable -for all time by the creation of the first representative -Parliament.</p> - -<p>A new scheme of government was at once drawn -up. Three electors chosen by the barons were to -appoint a council of nine for the guidance of the -king, and Simon of Montfort, Gilbert of Gloucester, -and Stephen Berksted, Bishop of Chichester, were -speedily chosen as the three electors. Hugh le -Despenser remained justiciar, and Thomas Cantilupe, -the bishop’s nephew, became chancellor. (This -Thomas subsequently became Bishop of Hereford, -died in Italy, and was canonized.)</p> - -<p>Then in December came the issue of writs for -Simon of Montfort’s famous Full Parliament of 1265. -Two knights are to be returned from each shire, and -for the first time from each city and borough the -burgesses are to send two representatives. Hitherto -Parliament had consisted of barons and clergy, and -knights sent by the king’s tenants, and the representation -of the townspeople was unknown. Simon’s -earlier policy at Oxford had done nothing to extend -the basis of government or create a national responsibility -for the laws. “The provisions of 1258 -restricted, the constitutions of 1264 extended the -limits of parliament.... Either Simon’s views of a -constitution had rapidly developed, or the influence -which had checked them in 1258 were removed. -Anyhow, he had had genius to interpret the mind of -the nation and to anticipate the line which was taken -by later progress.” (Stubbs.)</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_129">129</span></p> - -<p>This development of Simon’s views may fairly be -traced to his close and intimate connection with the -Dominican friars.<a id="FNanchor_49" href="#Footnote_49" class="fnanchor">49</a> Simon’s father, the warrior of -the Albigensian wars, had been the warm friend of -St. Dominic. Simon himself was equally the friend -of Bishop Grosseteste, the champion of the friars. -As far back as 1245 Simon had founded a Dominican -priory at Leicester. In 1263 he had been present at -a General Chapter of the Dominican Order in Holborn, -London, and the Parliament of Oxford had -met in a Dominican priory in that city. All along -the friars had supported the popular movement.<a id="FNanchor_50" href="#Footnote_50" class="fnanchor">50</a></p> - -<p>Now the peculiarity of the Dominican Order of -Friars is its representative form of government. -Each priory sends two representatives to its provincial -chapter, and each province sends two representatives -to the general chapter of the order.</p> - -<p>Simon of Montfort, when the opportunity came to -him for striking out a reform in the English Parliament, -adopted the plan which he had studied and -seen at work amongst the Preaching Friars. “The -idea of representative government had ripened in his -hand,” and his genius interpreted the mind of the -nation. In spite of all the scorn that has been -poured on popular elections and the Houses of -Parliament, in spite of all the imperfections that -necessarily are attached to any constitutional system -devised by the wit of man, the idea of representative -government has become the inspiration of the -nations of the world. The failings of democracy are<span class="pagenum" id="Page_130">130</span> -obvious, the weak spots in popular electoral systems -glaring; but mankind, once grasping the idea of -freedom in politics, clamours eagerly for responsibility -in law-making and the administration of justice, -and refuses to rest satisfied under any despotism or -bureaucracy, benevolent or malevolent. Suppressed -by dictators, perverted by demagogues, abused by -the unscrupulous in power, there still seems nothing -better in politics for mankind than self-government. -“Better is he who rules his own temper than he who -storms a city,” wrote Friar Adam of Marsh to Simon -of Montfort. “Better self-government for a people -than world-wide conquest,” the average man declares, -and the opinion slowly moulds the destinies of -nations, till “patriotism” becomes the word for good -service in politics.</p> - -<p>The verse of the thirteenth century <span class="locked">chronicler:—</span></p> - -<div class="poetry-container"> -<div class="poetry"> - <div class="stanza"> - <div class="verse indent0">The king that tries without advice to seek his people’s will,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Must often fail, he cannot know the woes and wants they feel,</div> - </div> -</div> -</div> - -<p class="in0">gets re-expression in the nineteenth century in Abraham -Lincoln’s: “Government of the people, by the -people, for the people.” Always threatened by the -personal ambition of man, often overthrown when -ambition held the sword of power, contemptible -to the wise and prudent because of the simplicity and -innocence of “the people,” denounced as dangerous -by the professional expert in bureaucracy because of -the ignorance of “the people,” its inadequacy the -common theme of the disappointed—representative -government survives its enemies, defies its critics, and -with its blemishes unconcealed, finds the company of -its lovers ever increasing and recruiting in its behalf.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_131">131</span> -For since that first Full Parliament of Earl Simon’s -in 1265 it has never been possible to get rid of the -notion that representative government was a key to -the portals of freedom; and though the wider the -freedom the greater the responsibility, to the credit -of the race at all times men and women have pressed -forward, not rejecting responsibility.</p> - -<p>Simon’s parliament sat from January to March. -Its chief business was the confirmation of the treaty -of peace at Lewes, and Henry swore as usual to -maintain the new constitution, the charters and provisions. -The government was short-lived. Danger -from France, where the queen and Archbishop Boniface -of Canterbury and all Henry’s alien courtiers -planned invasion with an army collected in Holland, -had passed away at the close of the previous summer. -There had been a great muster of troops for national -defence near Dover, bad weather had incapacitated -the queen’s fleet, and Louis of France agreed to -negotiations in place of war. The Cinque Ports -mariners refused a landing to the pope’s legate, who -was ready to excommunicate the new government, -and flung his papal bull in the sea.<a id="FNanchor_51" href="#Footnote_51" class="fnanchor">51</a></p> - -<p>Not from abroad but from within came the foes -who overthrew Simon’s government and murdered -the great statesman. Earl Gilbert, of Gloucester, -like his father, grew jealous of Simon’s leadership, -and disputed his authority as to the ransom of some -of the prisoners of Lewes, and Simon’s sons added<span class="pagenum" id="Page_132">132</span> -fuel to the flame by their pride and overbearing -insolence. Roger Mortimer and some of the nobles -of the Welsh marches rose for King Henry in the -spring of 1265, and Gilbert deserted the barons for -the king.<a id="FNanchor_52" href="#Footnote_52" class="fnanchor">52</a> William of Valence landed in South -Wales with a body of crossbowmen in May, and -when Simon reached Hereford to put down the -rebellion, Prince Edward, who, with the king, had -been in Simon’s custody, made his escape to Mortimer -and the marches.</p> - -<p>Edward quickly raised troops, and joined Gilbert -at Ludlow, where he took an oath to obey the laws -and charters of the realm. Simon, in some danger -of being cut off by this movement on his rear, sent -word to his second son—Simon—to go to Kenilworth -and join him at Evesham, and then turned -back from Wales.</p> - -<p>The younger Simon was surprised at Kenilworth -by a sudden raid by Edward. His camp was broken -up, his banners taken, and he was driven back into -the castle. Edward, fully aware that Earl Simon -had only a small force with him, hurried off to -Evesham to attack him, before young Simon could -rally his scattered troops and come to his father’s -help.</p> - -<p>On the morning of August 4th Earl Simon halted -at Evesham, and at the king’s request, for Henry -was still his captive, heard mass and dined. His<span class="pagenum" id="Page_133">133</span> -son’s army, now on its way, halted for the same -purpose at Alcester. “He was now only ten miles -distant and the junction of father and son seemed -secure.”<a id="FNanchor_53" href="#Footnote_53" class="fnanchor">53</a> But Prince Edward was already between -them. “As the morning broke his army lay across -the road that led northward from Evesham to -Alcester. Ere three hours had passed the corpse of -the great earl lay mangled amid a ring of faithful -knights, and the ‘murder of Evesham, for battle -none it was,’ was over.”</p> - -<p>At first Simon thought the advancing army was -his son’s, for Edward displayed the captured banners -of Kenilworth, but when he saw the standards of the -prince and of Gloucester, and the well-known banner -of Mortimer, the truth was clear.</p> - -<p>“By the arm of St. James,” cried the earl, “they -come on skilfully, for they have turned my lessons -against me. God have mercy on our souls, for our -bodies are theirs! Though if Simon were to come -up we might hope yet.” He turned to his eldest -son, and pointing to the banner of Gloucester said, -“See, Henry, what your pride has done.”</p> - -<p>In vain Henry urged his father to fly while escape -was possible. “I had as lief die here in a good -cause as in the Holy Land,” said the earl, and the -barons and knights standing round were equally -resolute to fight to the end—though they had but -two men to every seven of the enemy. The good -Bishop of Worcester blessed the little army as he -had done at Lewes, and then the battle began. The -Welsh footsoldiers quickly lost heart and fled from -Simon and the field, and the barons were soon -hemmed in. One by one they fell—Henry of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_134">134</span> -Montfort, Hugh le Despenser, the wise and upright -justiciar, and Simon himself, wounded and unhorsed, -“fought on to the last like a giant for the -liberties of England.” A soldier stabbed him in the -back under the mail he wore, and then he was borne -down and slain, overwhelmed by numbers rather -than conquered. “So a death full of honour ended -the chivalry and prowess, ennobled by so many -deeds in so many lands.” “Thus lamentably fell -the flower of knighthood, leaving to others an -example of steadfast courage. Who can prevent -the treachery of friends? Those who had eaten his -bread had raised their heels against him. Those -who had spoken words of love to him with their lips -lied in their throats, for their hearts were not right -with him, and they betrayed him in his hour of -need.” (W. Rishanger.)</p> - -<p>For nearly three hours the unequal battle was -fought, in the midst of storm and darkness. So -dark was it that King Henry, who had been forced -to remain with Simon’s knights, had difficulty in -saving his life, and was actually wounded by a javelin -before he was recognized by Edward’s soldiers.</p> - -<p>The monks of Evesham carried the bodies of -some of the barons into the abbey for burial, and -after horrible mutilations by the victors the remains -of the great earl were reverently interred by the -side of Hugh le Despenser, before the high altar.</p> - -<p>“Those who knew Simon praise his piety, admire -his learning, and extol his prowess as a knight and -skill as a general. They tell of his simple fare and -plain russet dress, bearing witness to his kindly -speech and firm friendship to all good men, describe -his angry scorn for liars and unjust men, and marvel<span class="pagenum" id="Page_135">135</span> -at his zeal for truth and right, which was such that -neither pleasure nor threats nor promises could turn -him aside from keeping the oath he swore at Oxford; -for he held up the good cause ‘like a pillar that -cannot be moved, and like a second Josiah esteemed -righteousness the very healing of his soul.’ As a -statesman he wished to bind the king to rule according -to law, and to make the king’s ministers responsible -to a full Parliament; and though he did not -live to see the success of his policy, he had -pointed out the way by which future statesmen -might bring it about.” (F. York Powell.)</p> - -<p>The news of Simon’s death was received with -general mourning as it spread over the land. He -was acclaimed by the people as a saint and martyr, -and miracles were said to be worked by his relics.<a id="FNanchor_54" href="#Footnote_54" class="fnanchor">54</a> -The Franciscan friars drew up a service in his -honour—“consisting of lessons, responses, verses, -hymns, and other matter appertaining to the honour -and respect due to a martyr.”<a id="FNanchor_55" href="#Footnote_55" class="fnanchor">55</a> But the pope who -had excommunicated Simon was not likely to hear of -canonization, and “as long as Edward lives the service -compiled in Simon’s honour cannot gain acceptance -to be chanted within the church of God, which -was hoped for.”<a id="FNanchor_56" href="#Footnote_56" class="fnanchor">56</a></p> - -<p>The “Lament of Earl Simon,”<a id="FNanchor_57" href="#Footnote_57" class="fnanchor">57</a> compared the -mighty statesman with Thomas of Canterbury:</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_136">136</span></p> - -<div class="poetry-container"> -<div class="poetry"> - <div class="stanza"> - <div class="verse indent0">For by his death Earl Simon hath</div> - <div class="verse indent2">In sooth the victory won,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Like Canterbury’s martyr he</div> - <div class="verse indent2">There to the death was done.</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Thomas the good, that never would</div> - <div class="verse indent2">Let holy church be tried;</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Like him he fought, and flinching not,</div> - <div class="verse indent2">The good earl like him died.</div> - </div> - <div class="center"><i>Refrain:</i></div> - <div class="stanza"> - <div class="verse indent4">Now low there lies the flower of price</div> - <div class="verse indent6">That knew so much of war;</div> - <div class="verse indent4">The Earl Montfort, whose luckless sort,</div> - <div class="verse indent6">The land shall long deplore.</div> - </div> - <div class="stanza"> - <div class="verse indent0">Death did they face to keep in place</div> - <div class="verse indent2">Both righteousness and peace;</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Wherefore the saint from sin and taint</div> - <div class="verse indent2">Shall give their souls release.</div> - <div class="verse indent0">They faced the grave that they might save</div> - <div class="verse indent2">The people of this land;</div> - <div class="verse indent0">For so his will they did fulfill</div> - <div class="verse indent2">As we do understand.</div> - </div> - <div class="center"><i>Refrain.</i></div> - <div class="stanza"> - <div class="verse indent0">Sir Simon now, that knight so true,</div> - <div class="verse indent2">With all his company,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Are gone above to joy and love</div> - <div class="verse indent2">In life that cannot die;</div> - <div class="verse indent0">But may our Lord that died on rood</div> - <div class="verse indent2">And God send succour yet</div> - <div class="verse indent0">To them that lie in misery,</div> - <div class="verse indent2">Fast in hard prison set.</div> - </div> - <div class="center"><i>Refrain.</i></div> -</div> -</div> - -<p>The good cause for which Simon had fought -might well have seemed lost, when Edward’s -knights were hacking the dead body of the great -earl to pieces at Evesham. But it was not exactly -a “Royalist victory,” for the very men who stood -victors over the mangled corpse of Earl Simon were<span class="pagenum" id="Page_137">137</span> -men as resolute as he was to enforce the Great -Charter and its results against the king.<a id="FNanchor_58" href="#Footnote_58" class="fnanchor">58</a></p> - -<p>In the hour of triumph Henry struck hard, and a -mad reaction of terror ensued. But the movement -Simon had led could not be turned back, and the -very savage extravagance of the royalist party -defeated its own ends. A general sentence of -disinheritance against all who had fought with -Simon drove the disinherited barons to keep up -the fight. The siege of Kenilworth, where Sir -Henry of Hastings defied the whole royal army, -lasted from June to December, 1266, and was only -ended by Parliament insisting on the king appointing -a board of twelve, who made a just award -concerning the disinherited. By this award, called -the Ban of <span class="locked">Kenilworth:—</span></p> - -<p>The royal obligation to keep the charters was -required.</p> - -<p>The acts of Simon were annulled, and the full -prerogatives of the crown declared.</p> - -<p>The freedom of the Church was demanded.</p> - -<p>Justice was to be done according to the laws and -customs of the realm.</p> - -<p>The adherents of Simon were to be punished by -fine and not by disinheritance, so that the king -could repay those who had served him faithfully -without giving occasion for fresh war.</p> - -<p>Simon was not to be proclaimed a saint (seeing -he died under the excommunication of the Church), -and those who spread idle tales of miracles done at -his tomb were to be punished.</p> - -<p>A complete indemnity was promised to all who -accepted the ban within forty days.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_138">138</span></p> - -<p>For a time the ban was rejected, and it was not till -the summer of 1267 that the struggle was finally over. -Peace was assured by the Parliament of Marlborough -in November, 1267, which re-enacted the Provisions -of Westminster (1259) as a statute.</p> - -<p>The lasting value of Simon’s work was seen in -1295, when Edward I. summoned his great representative -parliament on the professed principle that -“that which touches all shall be approved by all.” -This assembly, by that very principle, served as “a -pattern for all future assemblies of the nation.” -(Stubbs.)</p> - -<p>Had Simon of Montfort received canonization by -the Church he would surely have been the patron -saint of all workers in the world of politics, and of all -who honestly and courageously engage in public -work.</p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<h2 id="hdr_7">Wat Tyler and the Peasant Revolt<br /> - -<span class="subhead">1381</span></h2> -</div> - -<p><span class="smcap">Authorities</span>: Walsingham; Knyghton—(Rolls -Series); Wright’s <cite>Political Songs</cite>—(Rolls Series); -Froissart; Professor Oman—<cite>Great Revolt of 1381</cite>, -containing translation of a chronicle of the rising in the -Stow MSS., first published in <cite>English Historical Review</cite>, -1895; André Réville—<cite xml:lang="fr" lang="fr">Le Soulèvement des Travailleurs</cite> -(1898); Dr. G. Kriehn—<cite>American Review</cite>, 1902; -Edgar Powell—<cite>Rising of 1381 in East Anglia</cite>; Dr. -James Gairdner—<cite>Lollardy and the Reformation</cite>; G. M. -Trevelyan—<cite>England in the Age of Wycliff</cite>; J. Clayton—<cite>Wat -Tyler and the Great Uprising</cite>.</p> - -<div id="ip_141" class="figcenter"> - <img src="images/i_p140.jpg" width="1430" height="1941" alt="" /> - <div class="caption"><p>KING RICHARD II.</p> - -<p>(<cite>From the Panel Painting in the Sanctuary at Westminster Abbey.</cite>)</p></div></div> -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_141">141</span></p> - -<h3 class="left">WAT TYLER AND THE<br /> -PEASANT REVOLT - -<span class="subhead">1381</span></h3> - -<p class="drop-cap"><span class="firstword">The</span> Peasant Revolt of 1381, led by Wat -Tyler, was not only the first great national -movement towards democracy, it was the -first uprising of the English people in -opposition to all their hitherto recognised rulers in -Church and State, and it was the first outburst in -this land against social injustice.<a id="FNanchor_59" href="#Footnote_59" class="fnanchor">59</a></p> - -<p>The Black Death in 1349 and the pestilence that -ravaged the country in 1361 and 1369 upset the old -feudal order. The land was in many places utterly -bereft of labour, and neither king nor parliament -could restore the former state of things. Landowners, -driven by the scarcity of labour, went in for -sheep farming in place of agriculture, and were compelled -to offer an increase of wages in spite of the -Statutes of Labourers (1351–1353) which expressly -forbade the <span class="locked">same:—</span></p> - -<p>“Every man or woman of whatsoever condition, -free or bond, able in body, and within the age of -three-score years, and not having of his own whereof -he may live, nor land of his own about the tillage of -which he may occupy himself, and not serving any -other, shall be bound to serve the employer who<span class="pagenum" id="Page_142">142</span> -shall require him to do so, and take only the wages -which were accustomed to be taken in the neighbourhood -two years before the pestilence.”</p> - -<p>This act remained the law until the fifth year of -Elizabeth.</p> - -<p>“Free” labourers, landless men but not serfs, -wandered away to the towns or turned outlaws in -the forests. Serfs—only a small number of the -population, for the Church had always recommended -their liberation, even while abbots and priors retained -them on Church estates, and Edward III. had encouraged -granting freedom in return for payment in -money—escaped to those incorporated towns that -promised freedom after eighteen months’ residence. -Villeins and lesser tenants commuted the service due -from them to their landlords by money payments, -and so began the leasehold system of land tenure.</p> - -<p>For thirty years preceding the Peasant Revolt -the social changes had bred discontent, and discontent -rather than misery is always the parent of -revolt.</p> - -<p>An early statute of Richard II., framed for the -perpetual bondage of the serfs, heightened the discontent.</p> - -<p>“No bondman or bondwoman shall place their -children at school, as has been done, so as to advance -their children in the world by their going into the -Church.”</p> - -<p>This same act made equal prohibition against -apprenticeship in the town.</p> - -<p>The free labourer had his grievance against the -Statute of Labourers. Villeins and cottar tenants -had no sure protection against being compelled to -give labour service to their lords; and they, with<span class="pagenum" id="Page_143">143</span> -the freehold yeomen and the town workmen and -shopkeepers, hated the heavy taxation, the oppressive -market tolls and the general misgovernment.</p> - -<p>To unite all these forces of social discontent into -one great army, which should destroy the oppression -and establish freedom and brotherhood, was the work -John Ball—an itinerant priest who came at first -from St. Mary’s at York, and then made Colchester -the centre of his journeyings—devoted himself to for -twenty years.</p> - -<p>Ball preached a social revolution, and his gospel -was that all men were brothers, and that serfdom and -lordship were incompatible with brotherhood. In -our times such teaching is common enough, but in -the fourteenth century, with its sumptuary laws and -its feudal ranks, only in religion was this principle -accepted.<a id="FNanchor_60" href="#Footnote_60" class="fnanchor">60</a> John Ball became the moving spirit in -the agitation set on foot by his teaching. He had -his colleagues and lieutenants, John Wraw in Suffolk -and Jack Straw in Essex—both priests like himself—William -Grindcobbe in Hertford and Geoffrey -Litster in Norfolk. The peasants were organised -into clubs, and letters were sent by Ball far and wide -to stir up revolt. In Kent and the eastern counties -lay the main strength of the revolutionaries—it was -in Kent that Ball was particularly active just before -the rising—but Sussex, Hampshire, Lincolnshire, -Warwickshire, Yorkshire and Somerset were all -affected, so grave and so general was the dissatisfaction, -and so hopeful to the labouring people was the -message delivered by John Ball.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_144">144</span></p> - -<p>Of course Ball did not escape censure and the -penalty of law during his missionary years. He -was excommunicated and cast into prison by three -Archbishops of Canterbury, Islip, Simon Langham, -and Simon Sudbury, for teaching “errors, schisms, -and scandals against the popes, archbishops, bishops, -and clergy,” and he was only released from prison, -from Archbishop Sudbury’s gaol at Maidstone, by -the rough hands of the men of Kent when the rising -had begun. The “errors” of John Ball were civil and -social rather than theological. The notion that Ball -and his fellow socialists of the fourteenth century were -mixed up with Wycliff and the Lollards has really no -foundation in fact.<a id="FNanchor_61" href="#Footnote_61" class="fnanchor">61</a> Wycliff’s unorthodox views on -the sacraments and his attacks on the habits of the -clergy were of no interest to the social revolutionists, -and John of Gaunt, the steady friend of Wycliff, -was hated above all other men in the realm by the -leaders of the revolt. Wycliff expressed as little -sympathy with the Peasant Revolt of his day as -Luther later in Germany did with the Peasant War, -or Cranmer with the Norfolk rising under Ket in -1549.</p> - -<p>John Ball’s sermons were all on one text—“In -the beginning of the world there were no bondmen, -all men were created equal. Servitude of man to -man is contrary to God’s will.” He declared that -“things will never go well in England so long as -goods are not kept in common, and so long as there<span class="pagenum" id="Page_145">145</span> -are villeins and gentlefolks.” He harped on the -social inequalities of his age, quoting freely from -Langland’s <cite>Piers the Plowman</cite>, and enlarging on -the famous couplet:</p> - -<div class="poetry-container"> -<div class="poetry"> - <div class="stanza"> - <div class="verse indent0">When Adam delved and Eve span,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Who was then the gentleman?</div> - </div> -</div> -</div> - -<p>As years went by and the time grew ripe for -revolt, there is a definite call to rise in Ball’s letters and -speeches. “Let us go to the king, and remonstrate -with him,” he declares, “telling him we must have it -otherwise, or we ourselves shall find the remedy.”</p> - -<p>Richard II. was but eleven when he came to the -throne in 1377. “He is young. If we wait on him -in a body, all those who come under the name of -serf or are held in bondage will follow us, in the -hope of being free. When the king shall see us we -shall obtain a favourable answer, or we must then -ourselves seek to amend our condition.”</p> - -<p>Some of the rhymed letters Ball sent out, bidding -his hearers “stand together manfully in the truth,” -urge preparation for the coming conflict:</p> - -<div class="poetry-container"> -<div class="poetry"> - <div class="stanza"> - <div class="verse indent0">John Ball greeteth you all,</div> - <div class="verse indent2">And doth to understand he hath rung your bell.</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Now with right and might, will and skill,</div> - <div class="verse indent2">God speed every dell.</div> - </div> - <div class="stanza"> - <div class="verse indent2">John the miller asketh help to turn his mill right:</div> - <div class="verse indent4">He hath ground small, small,</div> - <div class="verse indent4">The King’s Son of Heaven will pay for it all,</div> - <div class="verse indent2">Look thy mill go right, with its four sails dight.</div> - </div> - <div class="stanza"> - <div class="verse indent0">With right and with might, with skill and with will,</div> - <div class="verse indent2">And let the post stand in steadfastness,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Let right help might, and skill go before will,</div> - <div class="verse indent4">Then shall our mill go aright.</div> - <div class="verse indent0">But if might go before right, and will go before skill,</div> - <div class="verse indent4">This is our mill mis-a-dight.</div><span class="pagenum" id="Page_146">146</span> - </div> - <div class="stanza"> - <div class="verse indent0">Beware ere ye be woe,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Know your friend from your foe,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Take enough and cry ‘Ho!’</div> - <div class="verse indent0">And do well and better and flee from sin,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">And seek out peace and dwell therein,</div> - <div class="verse indent2">So biddeth John Trueman and all his fellows.</div> - </div> -</div> -</div> - -<p>In other letters he greets John Nameless, John -the Miller, and John Carter, and bids them stand -together in God’s name; and bids Piers Plowman “go -to his work and chastise well Hob the Robber (Sir -Robert Hales, the king’s treasurer); and take with -you John Trueman and all his fellows, and look that -you choose one head and no more.”</p> - -<p>These letters and the preaching did their work; -the peasants were organised; men of marked courage -and ability were found in various counties; and -“the one head and no more” was ready in Kent to -lead the army of revolt to the king when the signal -should be given. Litster, Grindcobbe, and Wraw -were at their posts. In every county from Somerset -to York the peasants flocked together, “some armed -with clubs, rusty swords, axes, with old bows -reddened by the smoke of the chimney corner, and -odd arrows with only one feather.”</p> - -<p>John Ball had rung his bell, and at Whitsuntide, -at the end of May, 1381, came the great uprising, -the “Hurling-Time of the Peasants.” The fire was -all ready to be kindled, and a poll-tax, badly ordered, -set the country ablaze.</p> - -<p>The poll-tax was first levied, in 1377, on all over -fourteen years of age. Two years later it was -graduated, from 4d. on every man and woman of the -working class to £6 13s. 4d. on a duke or -archbishop. Even this with a further tax on wool -was found insufficient.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_147">147</span></p> - -<p>So early in 1381 John of Gaunt called the parliament -together at Northampton, and declared that -£160,000 must be raised. Parliament refused to -find more than £100,000, and the clergy, owning at -that time one-third of the land, promised £60,000. -Again a poll-tax was demanded. This time everybody -over fifteen was required to pay 1s., but in districts -where wealthy folks lived it was held sufficient that -the amount collected in every parish averaged 1s. -per head; only the rich were not to pay less than -£1 per household, nor the poor less than 8d. In -parishes where all were needy the full shilling was -demanded without exception. It soon appeared -that the money was not to be raised. In many -parts the returns as to the population liable to the -tax were not even filled in with any attempt at -accuracy, and numbers avoided liability by leaving -their homes—to escape a tribute, which to the -struggling peasant meant ruin. Of the £100,000 -required only £22,000 was forthcoming.</p> - -<p>Then one John Legge undertook to supply the -deficit, if he had the authority of the crown to act -as special commissioner to collect the tax. The -appointment was made, with the result that the -methods of the tax-collectors provoked revolt, and -Legge lost his life over the business.</p> - -<p>The rising began in Essex, when the villagers of -Fobbing, Corringham, and Stanford-le-Hope were -summoned to meet the tax-commissioner at Brentwood. -Unable to pay, they fell upon the collectors -and killed them. The government met this assault -by sending down Chief Justice Belknap to punish -the offenders. But as the judge merely had for -escort a certain number of legal functionaries, and as<span class="pagenum" id="Page_148">148</span> -the blood of the people was up, Belknap was received -with open contempt, and, forced to swear on the -Bible that he would hold no other session in the -place, was glad to escape from the town without -injury. And with this defiance and overpowering of -the king’s officers the signal was given, the beacon of -revolt well lighted.</p> - -<p>It was June 2nd, Whit Sunday, when the Chief -Justice was driven out of Brentwood; two days -later Kent had risen at Gravesend and Dartford.</p> - -<p>At Gravesend Sir Simon Burley, the friend of -Richard II., seized a workman in the town, claiming -him as a bondsman of his estate, and clapped him in -Rochester Castle, refusing to hear of release unless -£300 was paid.</p> - -<p>At the same time word went about that the tax-collector -at Dartford was insulting the women, and -that, in especial, the wife and daughter of one John -Tyler had been abused with gross indecency.</p> - -<p>Whereupon this John Tyler, “being at work in -the same town tyling of an house, when he heard -thereof, caught his lathing staff in his hand, and ran -reaking home; where, reasoning with the collector, who -made him so bold, the collector answered with stout -words, and strake at the tyler; whereupon the tyler, -avoiding the blow, smote the collector with his lathing -staff, so that the brains flew out of his head. -Wherethrough great noise arose in the streets, and -the poor people being glad, everyone prepared to -support the said John Tyler.”<a id="FNanchor_62" href="#Footnote_62" class="fnanchor">62</a></p> - -<p>Robert Cave, a master baker of Dartford, led the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_149">149</span> -people straight off to Rochester; and the castle -having been stormed, and all its prisoners released, -Sir John Newton, the governor of the castle, was -retained in safe custody.</p> - -<p>And now the time had come for good generalship -and discipline in the ranks, if the fire of revolt was -to burn aright. Accordingly at Maidstone, on -June 7th, Wat Tyler is chosen captain of the host; -and proof is quickly given that the rising is not for -mob rule or general anarchy, but to redress positive -and intolerable wrongs. (Five Tylers are mentioned -in the records of the Peasant Revolt: Wat Tyler, of -Maidstone; John Tyler, of Dartford, who slays the -tax-collector, and is not heard of again; Walter Tyler, -of Essex; and two Tylers of the City of London—William, -of Stone Street, and Simon, of Cripplegate.)</p> - -<p>In every respect was this Wat Tyler a man of -remarkable gifts. Chosen as leader by the voice -of his neighbours in Kent, his authority is at once -obeyed without dispute, and his influence is seen to -extend beyond the borders of his own county. -Jack Straw acts as his lieutenant; John Wraw, of -Suffolk, and William Grindcobbe, of St. Albans, -come to him for advice; and it is not till Tyler -moves on London with his army that the rising -becomes national. He is plainly marked out as a -great leader of masses of men. Skilful, courageous, -humane, Wat Tyler is proved to be; firm, clear-headed, -downright in manner, and yet large-hearted, -jovial and brotherly—equally at home with king or -beggar. There is nothing of the fanatical doctrinaire -about this first great leader of the English people. -He could order the execution of “traitors,” but -he is not the man for bloodshed in England if the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_150">150</span> -revolution he and John Ball aimed at can be accomplished -by peaceful means. After more than 500 -years the reputation of Wat Tyler stands out untarnished -and unshaken.<a id="FNanchor_63" href="#Footnote_63" class="fnanchor">63</a></p> - -<p>Yet for eight days—and eight days only—does -history allow us to follow the career of this remarkable -man. On June 7th Wat Tyler was chosen by -the men of Kent to lead the revolt; on June 15th -he was dead. Of his antecedents we know nothing. -Parentage, birth-place, age, height, and personal -appearance, are all unrecorded. His trade alone we -can infer, and we know that his contemporaries -trusted him to the full: for no suggestion has been -made of any kind of rivalry or jealousy amongst the -leaders, or of criticism or grumbling amongst the -rank and file.</p> - -<p>Wat Tyler emerges from the obscurity of history -to become a strong democratic leader. For eight -days he commands a vast army of men; he confronts -the king as an equal; orders the execution of the -chief ministers of the crown; and wrests from the -king promises of fundamental social importance. -Then, in the very hour of victory, an unexpected -blow from an enemy strikes him down, and death -follows. Surely to few men is it awarded to achieve -an immortal reputation in so brief a public life.</p> - -<p>No sooner is Tyler acclaimed as leader at -Maidstone than the commons of Kent are flocking -to the standard of revolt. The cry is for “King<span class="pagenum" id="Page_151">151</span> -Richard and the Commons,” and it goes hard with -any who refuse to take the oath. John of Gaunt is -the enemy. John of Gaunt is held to be responsible -for all the mischief wrought on the coast towns of -Kent by the privateer fleets of the Scots and the -French, for the raiding of Rye and Winchelsea. -(Only in the previous year these fleets had invaded -the Thames as far as Gravesend.) John of Gaunt -is the head and front of the misrule that bled the -land with poll-taxes. John of Gaunt is the incarnation -of the landlord rule that would keep the -labourer in bondage for ever. So bitter is the -feeling against John of Gaunt, and so acute the fear -that he is aiming at the crown, that a vow is taken -by the men of Kent that no man named “John” -shall be King of England.</p> - -<p>John of Gaunt was the common enemy. But -John of Gaunt was far away on the Scottish border, -and there were enemies near at hand to be dealt -with. The manor-houses of Kent were attacked; -in a few cases, where their owners were notoriously -bad landlords, were burnt. The main thing, however, -was to obtain the rent-rolls, the lists of tenants and -serfs, and all the documents of the lawyers. These -papers were seized and destroyed by the peasants, -for no assurance of freedom was possible while such -evidence of service could be produced. These -documents were the legal instruments of landlord -rule; and as the people had risen to end this rule, -a beginning had to be made by destroying the -machinery. There was no general reign of terror -in the country; there was nothing of the ferocity of -the Jacquerie in France; no slaughter of landlords; -and no common destruction of property.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_152">152</span></p> - -<p>The nobility seemed to expect judgment at the -hands of the people, and those who were at Plymouth -making preparation for their invasion of -France put to sea as quickly as possible when news -came of the rising.<a id="FNanchor_64" href="#Footnote_64" class="fnanchor">64</a> But the people had risen not -for blind vengeance or for civil war, and the class -who suffered badly at the rising were the lawyers -rather than the landlords. It was the lawyer’s hand -that the peasants saw and felt, and not the mailed -fist, for the lawyer was not only the land agent of the -lord of the manor, he was also the judge in matters -of dispute between landlord and tenant, and it was -he who kept the lists of villeins and serfs, and in the -service of his lord did not scruple to manipulate -those lists.</p> - -<p>In those first days of the rising, when yeomen and -more than one landholder joined the army of revolt,<a id="FNanchor_65" href="#Footnote_65" class="fnanchor">65</a> -and all who were willing to cry “King Richard and -the Commons” were counted as supporters, the -worst that the landlord suffered (except in extreme -cases) was the loss of his papers, but the lawyer -who clung to his office was often hanged without -mercy, as a scourge to the commonwealth.</p> - -<p>Tyler was at Canterbury on Monday, June 10th, -and here Archbishop Sudbury’s palace was ransacked -for papers, and his tenant-rolls burnt. Beyond -this, and a rough exhortation to the monks to -prepare to elect a new archbishop, no injury was -done. The following day Tyler was back at Maidstone,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_153">153</span> -and his men burst open the archbishop’s -prison and released John Ball, with all others who -had incurred ecclesiastical displeasure. This accomplished, -with John Ball, the people’s poor priest, in -the midst of them, 30,000 men of Kent—yeomen, -craftsmen, villeins and peasants—set out for London -under Wat Tyler’s command.</p> - -<p>Blackheath was reached at nightfall on Wednesday, -June 12th, and a camp fixed; but a few indefatigable -rebels hastened on to Southwark that same -night to burst open the Marshalsea and King’s -Bench prisons. John Wraw was at Blackheath, and -after a short conference with Wat Tyler, hastened -back to Suffolk to announce that the hour of rising -had struck.</p> - -<p>Near Eltham Tyler had overtaken the young -king’s mother, the widow of the Black Prince, returning -from a pilgrimage, and had promised that no -harm should befall her or her women from his host. -Reassured, the princess and her company went on -their way in safety to the Tower of London, where -Richard and his council were assembled, and told -of the great uprising.</p> - -<p>Judges had already been despatched into Kent at -the first news of the disorders, but had turned back -before reaching Canterbury, not liking the look of -things.</p> - -<p>Early on Thursday morning, June 13th, the camp -at Blackheath was astir. It was Corpus Christi day -and a solemn festival. After mass had been said -before all the people, John Ball preached on his old -theme of equality and brotherhood. “For if God -had intended some to be serfs and others lords He -would have made a distinction between them at the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_154">154</span> -beginning.” He went on to speak of the work to be -taken in hand at once.</p> - -<p>“Now is the opportunity given to Englishmen, -if they do but choose to take it, of casting off -the yoke they have borne so long, of winning the -freedom they have always desired. Wherefore let -us take good courage and behave like the wise husbandman -of scripture, who gathered the wheat into -his barn, but uprooted and burned the tares that had -half-choked the good grain. Now the tares of -England are her oppressive rulers, and the time of -harvest has come. Ours it is to pluck up these -tares and make away with them all—the evil lords, -the unjust judges, the lawyers, every man indeed -who is dangerous to the common good. Then -should we all have peace for the present and -security for the future. For when the great ones -have been rooted up and cast away, all will enjoy -equal freedom, all will have common nobility, rank -and power.”</p> - -<p>The sermon was received with bursts of cheers, -and the people shouted that John Ball should be -archbishop, “for that the present archbishop and -chancellor, Simon Sudbury, was but a traitor.”</p> - -<p>Later that morning Sir John Newton arrived at -the Tower with a message from Tyler, asking for an -audience with the king. All along it was the belief -of the commons that the king had but to hear the -tale of their wrongs and redress would be speedily -obtained.</p> - -<p>“Hold no speech with the shoeless ruffians,” was -the advice of Sir Robert Hales, the treasurer. But -Richard agreed to an interview, and presently rowed -down the Thames in the royal barge as far as Rotherhithe<span class="pagenum" id="Page_155">155</span> -with the Earl of Suffolk (President of the -Council), and the Earls of Salisbury and Warwick.</p> - -<p>The river bank was crowded with the commons -of Kent, and Wat Tyler and John Ball urged the -king to land and listen to the message his subjects -brought. They were promptly rebuked by the Earl -of Salisbury<a id="FNanchor_66" href="#Footnote_66" class="fnanchor">66</a> for their boldness:</p> - -<p>“Gentlemen, you are not properly dressed, nor -are you in a fit condition for the king to talk to -you.”</p> - -<p>Instead of landing, Richard listened to the counsels -of fear and pride, and the royal barge was -turned and rowed back swiftly to the Tower.</p> - -<p>Wat Tyler and the men of Kent, with thousands -more from Surrey, at once marched on to London -Bridge, where they destroyed the houses of ill-fame -that clustered round the south side of the bridge. -The prisons had been pulled down the night before, -and now the brothels were burnt to the ground and -their inmates dismissed—that the new City of -God of John Ball’s vision might be cleansed of -its old foulness. These places of infamy, rented by -Flemish women, were the property of William -Walworth, the Mayor of London; and their destruction -filled him with rage against the invaders.</p> - -<p>Walworth made some attempt to fortify London -Bridge by placing iron chains across the bridge; -and he gave orders for the drawbridge to be pulled -up, in order that a passage might be prevented. -But on Tyler’s threat that he would burn the bridge -if a way was not quickly made for him, Alderman<span class="pagenum" id="Page_156">156</span> -Sibley (who, with Aldermen Horne and Tonge, -supported the claims of the revolutionaries on the -City Corporation) had the chains removed and the -draw-bridge lowered, and Alderman Horne met -Tyler at the city gate and bade him welcome.</p> - -<p>Fifty thousand men followed Tyler in London, -and the city was now at the mercy of the peasant -army. Walworth, who had no want of spirit, declared -to the king and his council in the Tower that -6,000 soldiers could be raised in the city, but “fear -had so fallen upon the soldiery that they seemed -half dead with fright.” Sir Robert Knolles with -600 men-at-arms guarded the Tower.</p> - -<p>It was now that Wat Tyler’s great qualities of -leadership and the good discipline of his army were -seen. With London in his hands, he warned his -followers that death would be the instant punishment -for theft; and proclaimed to the citizens, “We -are indeed zealots for truth and justice, but we are -not thieves and robbers.” Every respect was to be -shown to the persons and property of the people of -London, and wrath was only to fall on John of -Gaunt and the ministers of the crown, and the -lawyers—the enemies, as it seemed to Tyler, of the -good estate of England. In return, the citizens -offered bread and ale freely to the invaders, and -London artisans joined their ranks in large -numbers.</p> - -<p>The archbishop’s palace at Lambeth was soon -stormed, and all the records it contained were -destroyed; the building itself was left uninjured.</p> - -<p>At four o’clock in the afternoon the Savoy Palace of -John of Gaunt, by the Strand, was in flames; and -all its wealth of treasure, rich tapestries and costly<span class="pagenum" id="Page_157">157</span> -furniture, rare vessels of gold and silver, precious -stones, and art work of priceless value, heaped up -on a bonfire or ground to powder. The Duke of -Lancaster’s jewelled coat, covered with gems, was -set up as a target and riddled with arrows, before it -was cut into a thousand pieces and pounded to dust. -One wretched man was caught attempting to sneak -off with a silver cup; and being taken in the act, -was put to death as Tyler had decreed. The Savoy -was burnt to the ground, but no one interfered with -its inhabitants; and Henry, Earl of Derby, John of -Gaunt’s son (who was to reign in Richard’s stead as -Henry IV.), passed out with all his servants unmolested. -The wine-cellar proved fatal to certain -of the host, who, drinking freely, perished, buried -under the fallen building.</p> - -<p>From the Savoy the army of destruction passed -to the Temple, the head-quarters of the Knights -Hospitallers, of whom Sir Robert Hales was president, -and a hive of lawyers. The Temple was -burnt, but no lives were lost; for the lawyers, “even -the most aged and infirm of them, scrambled off with -the agility of rats or evil spirits.”</p> - -<p>At nightfall the priory of the Hospitallers at -Clerkenwell, the prisons at the Fleet and at Newgate, -and the Manor House at Highbury, had all been -demolished; and the men of Essex, led by Thomas -Faringdon, a London baker, were at Mile End; -while William Grindcobbe, with a body of men from -St. Albans, lay at Highbury.</p> - -<p>In vain Walworth urged the king and his -royal council to act. Richard had sent to Tyler -asking for a written statement of the grievances -of the commons, and had been told in reply<span class="pagenum" id="Page_158">158</span> -that the king must meet his commons face to face, -and hear with his own ears their demands. In the -evening Walworth proposed that the garrison at -the Tower should be despatched against Tyler, “to -fall upon these wretches who were in the streets, and -amounted to 60,000, while they were asleep and -drunk. They might be killed like flies,” Walworth -added, “for not one in twenty had arms.”</p> - -<p>But the handful of soldiers at the Tower were in -mortal terror of the peasant host, and “all had so -lost heart that you would have thought them more -like dead men than living.”</p> - -<p>The Earl of Salisbury checked Walworth’s rash -proposals. “If we begin what we cannot carry -through,” he observed, “we shall never be able to -repair matters. It will be all over with us and our -heirs, and England will be a desert.”</p> - -<p>An open conflict with Tyler and his 60,000 was -a very hazardous proceeding. Who could be sure -of escape if it came to battle? So far Tyler had -only struck at the chief ministers and the lawyers, -and why should others risk their lives in such a -quarrel? Besides, it was said that Wat Tyler and a -mad priest of Kent were for doing away with all -nobles, and for making all men equal, and caution was -necessary in dealing with men who held such strange -opinions. England without its nobility would be a -desert, and at all costs such an irreparable calamity -as the loss of England’s nobility must be prevented.</p> - -<p>So Walworth got no help in his plans for resistance; -and when that night a messenger from Tyler -warned the king that if he refused to meet the -commons of England in open conference, the people -would seize the Tower, Richard sent word in reply<span class="pagenum" id="Page_159">159</span> -promising to meet his subjects on the morrow at -noon at Mile End, and there hear their complaints.</p> - -<p>Tyler accepted the king’s word, and after sleeping -with his men hard by the Tower, at St. Catherine’s -Wharf, was at Mile End betimes. Here he met -Grindcobbe, and hearing that the people of Hertfordshire -had trouble with the abbot at St. Albans, -bade Grindcobbe return and accomplish freedom for -the abbot’s tenants and serfs.</p> - -<p>Richard went to Mile End with no large retinue, -and two of his companions, the Earl of Kent and -Sir John Holland, left him at Whitechapel and -galloped off in craven fear of the multitude that -thronged the road. Richard, though he was only -fifteen, displayed both courage and cunning when -confronted with Tyler. He knew that the discontent -in the country was directed against the government, -and not against the king, and that the misrule -could not fairly be laid to his charge. Besides, he -was the son of the Black Prince, and the people -showed no signs of hostility. His policy was to -yield and to wait an opportunity for regaining power.</p> - -<p>The conference at Mile End began with a request -from Richard to know what was required of him. -Tyler answered that first all traitors should be executed, -and to this demand the king agreed. Then -four definite proposals were put forward by Wat -Tyler:</p> - -<p>1. A free and general pardon to all concerned in -the rising.</p> - -<p>2. The total abolition of all villeinage and serfdom.</p> - -<p>3. An end to all tolls and market dues,—“freedom -to buy and sell in all cities, burghs, mercantile<span class="pagenum" id="Page_160">160</span> -towns, and other places within our kingdom of -England.”</p> - -<p>4. All customary tenants to be turned into lease-holders -whose rent should be fixed at 4d. an acre for -ever.</p> - -<p>Richard at once assented to these requests, and to -prevent any uncertainty and remove all doubt or -suspicion of good faith, thirty clerks were set to work -on the spot to draw up charters of manumission, -and to present banners to each county represented.</p> - -<p>Then Richard bade the people return home in -peace, bearing the king’s banner in token that the -king had granted the request of his subjects. One -or two from each village remained to carry the -charters of freedom signed and sealed by royal -warrant.</p> - -<p>Richard was taken at his word. Thousands of -the peasants dispersed that day believing their cause -had triumphed. Nothing could be plainer than the -charters of manumission:—“Know that of our -special grace we have manumitted all our liege and -singular subjects and others of the county of Hertford, -freed each and all of their old bondage, and -made them quit by these presents; pardon them all -felonies, treasons, transgressions, and extortions committed -by any and all of them, and assure them of -our <i xml:lang="la" lang="la">summa pax</i>.”</p> - -<p>So ran the document which the peasants of Hertford -bore, and similar charters were given to the -counties of Bedford, Essex, Kent, and Surrey.</p> - -<p>Richard was also taken at his word concerning -the execution of traitors, and by the authority of -Wat Tyler, Archbishop Sudbury, the chancellor, Sir -Robert Hales, the treasurer, and John Legge, the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_161">161</span> -poll-tax commissioner, were dragged out of the -Tower and beheaded on Tower Hill. When Richard -returned from Mile End the heads of these three -men were on the gate of London Bridge.</p> - -<p>Simon Sudbury, Archbishop of Canterbury, deserved -a better fate, for he was an amiable and gentle -priest, and “lenient to heretics.” As chancellor he -shared the punishment of a government deservedly -hated, but there were many who deplored his death.</p> - -<p>The soldiers at the Tower offered no resistance, -but joked and fraternised with the people.</p> - -<p>(John of Gaunt’s chaplain, William Appleton, -some of Legge’s subordinates, and Richard Lyons -also perished that day on Tower Hill. Of these, -Richard Lyons was a thoroughly corrupt person, -who five years earlier had been convicted of gross -usury and of fraudulently “forestalling” in the wool -trade, and had escaped the penalty of the law on -being sentenced to pay a heavy fine and suffer imprisonment. -At one time he had been a member of -Edward III.’s council, and in that capacity had enriched -himself and his friends at the expense of the -nation.)</p> - -<p>A cry was raised in London that night against -the Flemings, and many of these industrious aliens, -whose only offence was the employment of cheap -labour, were put to death, denied even the right of -sanctuary when they fled to the altar of the church -of the Austin Friars. The houses of certain unpopular -citizens were also fired, and it went hard -with all who refused to shout for “King Richard -and the Commons.”</p> - -<p>But Tyler gave no sanction to the attack on the -Flemings, and though the London mob took the law<span class="pagenum" id="Page_162">162</span> -into its own hands and dealt roughly with those -whom it disliked, there is no evidence of general -rioting and disorder. To the end the peasant folk -in London remembered the brotherhood John Ball -had proclaimed, and respected their fellows, and -their good order is a lasting tribute to their leaders.</p> - -<p>Tyler, with the bulk of the men of Kent and -Surrey, remained in the city, and the king hearing -of what had happened at the Tower, decided to pass -the night at the Wardrobe, by St. Paul’s, whither his -mother had gone when the Tower was invaded.</p> - -<p>Tyler, in spite of all that had been obtained at -Mile End, was not satisfied. The peasants and -serfs had been freed by royal warrant, but the landlords -remained in possession of power, and there -was no promise of better government, no word as to -the restoration of the old common rights in the -land, or the repeal of the savage forest laws. -Reforms had been won, but the changes were not -strong enough to ensure a social revolution.</p> - -<p>Once more, on the Saturday, June 15th, Richard -was invited to meet his subjects, and again he -declared his willingness, summoning his commons -by proclamation to meet him that afternoon at -Smithfield, in the square outside St. Bartholomew’s -Priory.</p> - -<p>It seemed on the morning of June 15th as though -the rising had succeeded triumphantly. The peasants -had their charters of manumission, the nobles were -thoroughly alarmed and cowed, the soldiery powerless, -and Wat Tyler and his men still held the City -of London.</p> - -<p>Holding such an advantage, Tyler determined to -make the king decree further reforms, and when the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_163">163</span> -two met at Smithfield, the confidence of victory could -be seen in the peasant leader’s bearing.</p> - -<p>Richard, with two hundred retainers, and with -Henry, Earl of Derby, the Earls of Suffolk and -Salisbury, Sir Simon Burley, and Walworth, the -mayor, were on the east side of the square, the -great priory at their back.</p> - -<p>Tyler and his army drew up on the west side, -and when Walworth opened the proceedings by -calling on Wat Tyler to speak with the king, Tyler, -seated on a little horse, rode out into the middle of -the square with a single attendant. There he dismounted, -dropped on one knee before the king, and -shook him heartily by the hand. He bade Richard -be of good cheer, and declared that within a fortnight -he should have even more thanks from the -commons than he had won already. “You and I -shall be good comrades yet,” Tyler added.</p> - -<p>Richard, in some embarrassment, enquired why -the commons did not return home, and Tyler answered -with a great and solemn oath that no one -should leave the city until they had got a further -redressing of all their grievances. “And much the -worse will it be for the lords of this realm if this -charter be refused,” he concluded.</p> - -<p>Then Richard bade Tyler say what charter it was -the commons demanded.</p> - -<p>“First, then,” said Tyler, “let no law but the law -of Winchester prevail throughout the land, and let -no man be made an outlaw by the decree of judges -and lawyers.<a id="FNanchor_67" href="#Footnote_67" class="fnanchor">67</a> Grant also that no lord shall henceforth<span class="pagenum" id="Page_164">164</span> -exercise lordship over the commons; and since -we are oppressed by so vast a horde of bishops and -clerks, let there be but one bishop in England; and -let the property and goods of the holy Church be -divided fairly according to the needs of the people in -each parish, after in justice making suitable provision -for the present clergy and monks. Finally, let -there be no more villeins in England, but grant us -all to be free and of one condition.”</p> - -<p>“All that you have asked for I promise readily,” -Richard answered, “if only it be consistent with -the regality of my crown. And now let the commons -return home since their requests have been -granted.”</p> - -<p>In the presence of his nobles and the hearing of -his people the king had promised that the demands -of his subjects should be granted.</p> - -<p>For Wat Tyler the victory seemed complete, and -now that the battle was won he called out that he -was thirsty, and complained of a parched throat. -The days had been strenuous, and Tyler longed for -a draught of the good home-brewed beer of his -native county. His attendant brought him water, -and Tyler rinsed out his mouth with it, to the disgust -of the king’s courtiers. Then beer was brought in -a mighty tankard, and Tyler drank a deep draught -to the health of “King Richard and the Commons.” -He remounted his little horse, while the nobles stood -by in silent and sullen anger, “for no lord or counsellor -dared to open his mouth and give an answer -to the commons in such a situation.” Had they not -heard it proclaimed that henceforth all were to be -free and equal in the land?</p> - -<p>A “valet of Kent,” some knight in the royal<span class="pagenum" id="Page_165">165</span> -service, broke silence, muttering loudly his opinion -that Wat Tyler was the greatest thief and robber -in all Kent.</p> - -<p>Tyler caught the abusive words, and immediately -ordered his attendant to cut down the man who had -spoken in this insulting fashion.</p> - -<p>The “valet” edged back within the ranks of the -king’s party, and Tyler drew his dagger. Walworth, -sharing to the full the rage of the nobles at the -capitulation of the king, and yet anxious to avoid a -conflict, shouted that he would arrest all those who -drew weapons in the royal presence. Tyler struck -impatiently at Walworth, but the blow was harmless, -for the mayor had armour on beneath his jerkin.</p> - -<p>Before Tyler could defend himself the mayor -retaliated. Drawing a short cutlass he slashed at -Tyler, wounding him in the neck so that he fell -from his horse. And with the fall of their leader fell -all the promised liberties of the peasants, and the -rising collapsed.</p> - -<p>Two knights, Ralph Standish and another, plunged -their swords into him while he was on the ground. -Still, mortally wounded though he was, Tyler -managed to scramble on to his little horse. He -rode a yard or two, gave a last call on the commons -to avenge his death, and then dropped to the ground -to rise no more.</p> - -<p>Had the commons at once attacked the king’s -party, they would have conquered. But confusion -fell upon the people, and there was no one ready to -take command. “Let us stand together,” “We will -die with our captain or avenge him,” “Shoot, lads, -shoot,”—the various cries went up, and the bowmen -looked to their weapons.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_166">166</span></p> - -<p>But Richard, with the presence of mind that -marked his dealings with the people at Mile End, -turned the doubt and uncertainty to his own advantage. -He rode out boldly into the middle of the -square, reminded the people that he, and not Tyler, -was their king, and bade them follow him into the -fields and receive their charters.</p> - -<p>There was no reason to refuse obedience, no -reason to mistrust the king. Tyler had always -spoken well of Richard, and the people themselves -had seen him only yesterday sign their charters, and -had heard him in Tyler’s presence, only a few -minutes ago, promise to do the will of the commons. -It was not by the king’s hand that their leader had -been slain.</p> - -<p>A small band carried Tyler’s body into the Priory -of St. Bartholomew, while the rest of the peasants -followed Richard into the fields that stretched from -Clerkenwell to Islington. Here he held them until -Sir Robert Knolles arrived with 700 soldiers, for -Walworth had lost no time in spreading the news -that Tyler was dead, and in raising a troop for the -king. By Richard’s orders the commons were dispersed -when the soldiery arrived, the men of Kent, -now broken and dispirited, being marched through -the city, and left to take their way home.</p> - -<p>That very night Walworth and Standish were -knighted for what they had done, and in the morning -Wat Tyler’s head stared horribly from London -Bridge.</p> - -<p>“My son, what sorrow I have suffered for thee -this day,” cried the king’s mother, when Richard -came to the Wardrobe.</p> - -<p>“I know it well, madam,” answered the king;<span class="pagenum" id="Page_167">167</span> -“but rejoice with me now, and thank God that I -have this day won back my heritage of England, -so nearly lost.”</p> - -<p>The great uprising was over. Wat Tyler had -fallen, as it seemed, in the very hour of victory.</p> - -<p>By Walworth’s orders, Jack Straw and two prominent -men of Kent were hanged on the night of -June 15th, without the formality of trial. Jack -Straw, an itinerant priest sharing John Ball’s views, -it is said, explained before he died what had been in -the minds of the leaders of the revolt. They had -meant to get rid of the supremacy of the landlords -altogether, and to substitute for the established -clergy a voluntary ministry of mendicant friars; the -boy-king was to be enlisted in the cause of the -revolution before the monarchy was finally abolished; -and in place of parliament and royal council each -county was to enjoy self-government.<a id="FNanchor_68" href="#Footnote_68" class="fnanchor">68</a></p> - -<p>No longer in the presence of danger, the king and -his ministers struck fiercely at the rebels.</p> - -<p>On June 18th a general proclamation was issued -ordering the arrest of all malefactors and the dispersal -of all unruly gatherings. On June 22nd, -Chief Justice Sir Robert Tressilian went on assize, -and “showed mercy to none and made great havock.” -John Ball was taken at Coventry and, with Grindcobbe, -hanged at St. Albans on July 15th.</p> - -<p>The Earl of Suffolk went down to Suffolk with -500 lances on June 23rd, and John Wraw, with -twenty others, including four beneficed clergy, was -quickly taken and hanged. Henry Despenser,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_168">168</span> -Bishop of Norwich, grandson of Edward III.’s -minister, suppressed the rising in Norfolk, and -walked beside Litster to the gallows.</p> - -<p>At least a thousand peasant lives were sacrificed -to the law under Tressilian’s sentence.</p> - -<p>At Waltham a deputation came to Richard to ask -if it were true that the royal promises and charters -were annulled, and the king’s answer left no room -for doubt, for it breathed all the hatred and contempt -of the commons that Tyler had striven to end:</p> - -<p>“O vile and odious by land and sea, you who are -not worthy to live when compared with the lords -whom ye have attacked; you should be forthwith -punished with the vilest deaths were it not for the -office ye bear. Go back to your comrades and bear -the king’s answer. You were and are rustics, and -shall remain in bondage, not that of old, but in one -infinitely worse. For as long as we live, and by -God’s help rule over this realm, we will attempt by -all our faculties, powers, and means to make you -such an example of offence to the heirs of your -servitude as that they may have you before their -eyes, and you may supply them with a perpetual -ground for cursing and fearing you.”</p> - -<p>In despair at this rough ending to all their -cherished hopes of freedom, the Essex peasants -made a last attempt to fight for liberty, and on -June 28th, at Great Baddow and Billericay, more -than 500 fell before the king’s soldiery.</p> - -<p>On July 2nd all the charters of manumission and -royal pardons were declared formally annulled, -and sheriffs were strictly forbidden to release any -prisoners. It was not till August 30th an amnesty -was granted to those suspected of taking part in the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_169">169</span> -rising. In the autumn parliament refused to ratify -the charters, and the lawyers declared that without -the consent of parliament the charters were illegal.</p> - -<p>So there was an end to all Wat Tyler and the -peasants had risen to obtain, and well might it seem -that the rising had been in vain.<a id="FNanchor_69" href="#Footnote_69" class="fnanchor">69</a></p> - -<p>Yet it was not altogether in vain that John Ball -had rung his bell and died for his faith, that Wat -Tyler had led the peasant folk of Kent to do battle -for freedom. The poll-tax was stopped for one -thing. And villeinage was doomed. “The landlords -gave up the practice of demanding base -services; they let their lands to leasehold tenants, -and accepted money payments in lieu of labour; -they ceased to recall the emancipated labourer into -serfdom or to oppose his assertion of right in the -courts of the manor and the county.” (W. Stubbs.)</p> - -<p>The great uprising brought out the desire for -personal liberty in the labouring people of England -that has never since been utterly quenched. It was -the first insistence that peasants and serfs were men -of England. “It taught the king’s officers and -gentle folks that they must treat the peasants like -men if they wished them to behave quietly, and -it led most landlords to set free their bondsmen, -and to take fixed money payments instead of uncertain -services from their customary tenants, so -that in a hundred years’ time there were very few -bondsmen left in England.” (F. York Powell.)</p> - -<p>If Wat Tyler died as a man should for the cause -he loves, few of those who trampled on the cause of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_170">170</span> -the peasants were to know the paths of peace in -later years.</p> - -<p>Richard died in prison at the hands of Henry -Bolingbroke, John of Gaunt’s son, whom Tyler had -let depart in safety when the Savoy was in flames. -The Earls of Suffolk and Warwick died exiled -fugitives. The Earl of Salisbury, fleeing from -Henry V., was hanged in the streets of Cirencester. -Chief Justice Tressilian was hanged for a traitor in -1387, and Sir Simon Burley was beheaded.</p> - -<div class="poetry-container"> -<div class="poetry"> - <div class="stanza"> - <div class="verse indent0">This worldly wealth is nought perseverant</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Nor ever abides it in stabilitie.</div> - </div> -</div> -</div> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<h2 id="hdr_8">Jack Cade, the Captain of Kent<br /> - -<span class="subhead">1450</span></h2> -</div> - -<p><span class="smcap">Authorities</span>: William of Worcester, Gregory, Mayor -of London, 1451–2; <cite>Collections of a London Citizen</cite>; <cite>an -English Chronicle</cite>; <cite>Three Fifteenth Century Chronicles</cite> -(Camden Society); Fabyan—<cite>Ellis Letters</cite> (second series), -<cite>Issue Rolls, Devon, Rolls of Parliament, Paston Letters</cite>, -vol. i, with introduction by Dr. Gairdner; Orridge—<cite>Illustrations -of Jack Cade’s Rebellion</cite>; Durrant Cooper—<cite>John -Cade’s Followers in Kent and Sussex</cite>; J. Clayton—<cite>True -Story of Jack Cade</cite>; Dr. G. Kriehn—<cite>The English -Rising in 1450</cite>, Strasburg, 1892.</p> -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_173">173</span></p> - -<h3 class="left">JACK CADE, THE<br /> -CAPTAIN OF KENT -<span class="subhead">1450</span></h3> - -<p class="drop-cap"><span class="firstword">The</span> rising of the commons of Kent in 1450 -under their captain, Jack Cade, was the -protest of people—sick of the misrule at -home and of the mismanagement of affairs -abroad—driven to take up arms against an incapable -government that would not heed gentler measures.</p> - -<p>It was not such a peasant revolt as Wat Tyler -had led, this rising of the fifteenth century. It was -largely the work of men of some local importance, -and country squires were active in enrolling men, -employing the parish constable for that purpose in a -good many parishes.<a id="FNanchor_70" href="#Footnote_70" class="fnanchor">70</a></p> - -<p>For years discontent had been rife. Henry VI., a -weak, religious man, more fit for the cloister than -the throne, had lost the great statesmen of the early -years of his reign. The Duke of Bedford, good -Duke Humphrey of Gloucester, and Cardinal Beaufort -were all dead, and Richard, Duke of York, by -far the ablest man left among the nobles, had been -banished to the government of Ireland. The Duke -of Suffolk became the chief minister of the crown in -1445, and all the disasters of the war in France and -of corrupt maladministration in England were laid at -his door. Suffolk was responsible for the king’s -marriage with the penniless princess, Margaret of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_174">174</span> -Anjou, who, ambitious and self-willed, proved the -worst possible counsellor for Henry. And the price -of this marriage was the territories of Anjou and -Maine, which were ceded to Margaret’s father, -besides a heavy tax of one-fifteenth of all incomes -demanded by Suffolk in payment for his expenses in -arranging and carrying out the undesirable wedding. -The years of Suffolk’s ministry saw nothing but -defeat and disgrace as the hundred years’ war with -France drew to its end. The victories of Edward -III. and Henry V., and all the wealth of life and -treasure poured out so lavishly by England, had -come to nothing, and by 1451 all France save Calais -was lost. Popular discontent turned to action early -in 1450 against Suffolk and his fellow ministers. At -the opening of parliament Suffolk was impeached as -a traitor, along with Lord Say-and-Sele, the treasurer, -and Ayscough, Bishop of Salisbury; and -Suffolk, without even demanding a trial by his peers, -threw himself on the king’s mercy. Henry was -satisfied with the banishment of his fallen minister -for five years; but when Suffolk went on board, the -sailors of the vessel that was to take him across seas -decreed a capital sentence, and after a rough court-martial -trial the Duke of Suffolk was beheaded on -May 2nd in a small boat off the coast of Dover, and -his body left on the sands. Four months earlier, -Moleyns, Bishop of Chichester, who had only just -resigned the keepership of the Privy Seal, and was -known as a supporter of Suffolk’s, had been slain by -the sailors of Portsmouth, when he arrived at that -town with arrears of pay long overdue to the troops. -Ayscough, Bishop of Salisbury, survived till the end -of June, and then, at the time when Cade was marching<span class="pagenum" id="Page_175">175</span> -on London, he was dragged away from the very -altar of Erdington Church, in Wiltshire, when he -had said mass, and put to death on a hill there by -the infuriated people of his diocese.<a id="FNanchor_71" href="#Footnote_71" class="fnanchor">71</a></p> - -<p>Widespread as the discontent was in 1450, there -was no general movement throughout the land as -in the days when John Ball and his companions -bound the peasants together by village clubs. Kent, -“impatient in wrongs, disdaining of too much -oppression, and ever desirous of new change -and new fangleness,” was well organised for -revolt, and the men of Surrey and Sussex were -ready to bear arms with Cade. Outside these -counties no one is found to have taken the lead -against the government. Kent and Sussex had -their own reasons for revolt, for piracy swept the -English Channel unchecked, and the highways were -infested with robbers—soldiers broken in the war; -and they had their leader—Mortimer, whom some -called “John Mendall” and others, later, Jack Cade. -So by the end of May a full list of grievances and -necessary reforms was drawn up, and the commons -of Kent had, for the second time in history, risen in -arms and encamped on Blackheath, resolute to get -redress from the king for their injuries.</p> - -<p>The success of democratic revolt depends largely -on the clear courage of its leaders and the complete -confidence of the people in those they elect for their -captains. In 1450 Jack Cade proved himself both<span class="pagenum" id="Page_176">176</span> -clear-headed and brave, and the men of Kent followed -him whole-heartedly.</p> - -<p>To this day we are still in the dark as to the real -name and family of the Captain of Kent. He was -known popularly as “Mortimer,” and was so described -in the “pardon” he received. He was a -man of some property, or he would not have been -attainted by special act of parliament, nor have -enjoyed the confidence of the men of substance who -accepted his generalship. He was known as an -Irishman and as a soldier in the French wars, and it -is likely enough that he served under the Duke of -York both in France and Ireland. His strong -advocacy of the claims of York favours the notion of -kinsmanship; but, on the other hand, York was by -far the ablest statesman of the day, and to demand -his recall to the king’s council was no guarantee of -family motives.</p> - -<p>There was some talk at the time that Cade was -called John Aylesmere, and that he was married to -the daughter of a Surrey squire at Taundede. But -there is no more evidence for these things than for -the charges made against him in the warrant for his -arrest, that he had once killed a woman in Sussex -and had then fled to France and fought with the -French arms.</p> - -<p>The undisputed high character of Cade’s followers -is all against the portrait painted by the government -after his death; when, anxious to blacken the good -name of so resolute a leader, it was made out that -he was merely a disreputable ruffian. The landowners -of Kent and Sussex would never have -accepted for their captain a mere swashbuckling -blackguard. They rallied to him as a Mortimer,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_177">177</span> -seeing in him a likeness to Richard, Duke of York.<a id="FNanchor_72" href="#Footnote_72" class="fnanchor">72</a> -If his real name was Cade, then he was probably a -squire or yeoman, for Cade was no uncommon name -round Mayfield and Heathfield in Sussex, and Cades -were landed proprietors near Reigate as late as the -seventeenth century.</p> - -<p>It was enough that, chosen Captain of Kent, Cade, -or Mortimer, was known and trusted as a brave, -upright man of good character and ability.<a id="FNanchor_73" href="#Footnote_73" class="fnanchor">73</a> -Whether descended from nobles or of good Sussex -stock was a small matter to men in earnest for the -changes and reforms the country needed.</p> - -<p>Ashford was the heart of the rising, and from -Ashford the host marched to Blackheath, where, at -the beginning of June, the camp was fixed. The -army, estimated at 46,000, included 18 esquires, 74 -county gentlemen, and some five clerks in holy -orders, who were presently joined by the Abbot of -Battle, the Prior of Lewes, and twenty-three county -gentlemen from Sussex.</p> - -<p>Cade at once explained that they must deal -directly with the king if they were to get relief from -their present burdens, and then set to work to draw -up the bill of “the complaint and requests” of the -commons of Kent, while the rank and file laboured -“to dyke and stake the camp all about, as it had -been in the land of war.”</p> - -<p>But war had not yet been declared, and for the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_178">178</span> -present discipline was loose in the camp at Blackheath.<a id="FNanchor_74" href="#Footnote_74" class="fnanchor">74</a> -“As good was Jack Robin as John at the -Noke, for all were as high as pig’s feet; until the -time that they should come and speak with such -states and messengers as were sent unto them. -Then they put all their power into the man that was -named captain of all their host.”</p> - -<p>On June 7th the king was at Smithfield with -20,000 soldiers, and messengers were promptly -despatched to Blackheath to know the meaning of -the insurrection. Cade answered by showing the -petition he had drawn up, and mentioned that they -had assembled “to redress and reform the wrongs -that were done in the realm, and to withstand the -malice of them that were destroyers of the common -profit, and to correct and amend the defaults of them -that were the king’s chief counsellors.” He then -sent off the “bill of complaints” to the king and to -the parliament then sitting at Westminster, “and -requested to have answer thereof again, but answer -he had none.” The “complaint” was received with -contempt, and the opinion of the king’s counsellors -was that “such proud rebels should rather be suppressed -and tamed with violence and force than with -fair words or amicable answer.”</p> - -<p>Yet “the complaint,” which consisted of fifteen -articles, was no revolutionary document. It contained -protests against the royal threat to lay waste -Kent in revenge for the death of the Duke of -Suffolk; the diversion of the royal revenue raised -by heavy taxation to “other men”; the banishment<span class="pagenum" id="Page_179">179</span> -of the Duke of York “to make room for unworthy -ministers who would not do justice by law, but -demanded bribes and gifts”; the purveyance of -goods for the royal household without payment; the -arrest and imprisonment on false charges of treason -of persons whose goods and lands were subsequently -seized by the king’s servants, who then “either compassed -their deaths or kept them in prison while they -got possession of their property by royal grant”; -the interference with the old right of free election of -knights of the shire by “the great rulers of the -country sending letters to enforce their tenants and -other people to choose other persons than the -common will is to elect”; the misconduct of the war -in France, demanding inquiry and the punishment by -law of those found guilty. Complaint was also -made of various local grievances—the insecurity of -property, the arbitrary conduct of the lords of the -seaports, the extortion in taxation owing to sheriffs -and under-sheriffs farming their offices, the fines -exacted by sheriffs for non-compliance with the -orders of the court of exchequer (whose writs were -sealed with green wax) when no summons or warning -had been given, and the “sore expense” incurred -by there being only one Court of Sessions in -the whole county.</p> - -<p>Five “requests” were added to the bill of complaints. -These expressed the desire of the commons -that the king should reign “like a king royal”; that -“all the false progeny and affinity of the Duke -of Suffolk” should be banished from the king’s -presence and brought to trial, and the Duke of York -and his friends included in the royal council; that -punishment should be meted out to those responsible<span class="pagenum" id="Page_180">180</span> -for the death of the Duke of Gloucester; that the -extortions practised daily by the king’s servants in -the taking of goods from the people should cease; -that the old Statute of Labourers for keeping down -wages should be abolished; and that the “false -traitors” and “great extortioners,” Lord Say and -Crowmer, the sheriff of Kent, should be brought low.</p> - -<p>In brief, the charter of the commons of Kent -demanded the total expulsion of all Suffolk’s -ministers and relatives from public service, the -return of the Duke of York and his party to power, -the suppression of the bribery, corruption, and -extortion practised by the sheriffs and government -servants, and the repeal of the Statute of Labourers.</p> - -<p>It would have been well if Henry had heeded -these complaints and requests. As it was he pushed -on to Blackheath, in spite of murmuring in his army, -and Cade, unwilling to risk a battle, and knowing -that disaffection was at work in London, quietly -withdrew to Sevenoaks. There was no spirit in the -royal troops to suppress the rising, and many -favoured the Captain of Kent. But two knights, -Sir Humfrey Stafford and Sir William Stafford, -kinsmen of the Duke of Buckingham and the Archbishop -of Canterbury, and men of some military -repute, decided to pursue the rebels and advanced to -Sevenoaks with a small picked body of soldiers. -Their defeat was complete. Both knights were -slain, and those of their men who were not cut to -pieces fled from the battle, or joined Cade’s host.</p> - -<p>The result of this disaster to the royal plans was -that Henry returned to London with an army that -soon melted away, or broke into open disorder. -Many of the nobles, who on receipt of the petition of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_181">181</span> -the commons of Kent had called for violent measures -against the rebels, now left the king, and, with their -retainers, rode to their country estates. Henry, to -appease the clamour of some of his own followers, -ordered the arrest of Lord Say-and-Sele, the king’s -treasurer, and of Sheriff Crowmer, and bade officers -take them to the Tower. Parliament was dissolved, -and Cade was busy in Kent gathering reinforcements, -and doing what he could to repair locally -the mischief of Suffolk’s rule before proceeding to -London.<a id="FNanchor_75" href="#Footnote_75" class="fnanchor">75</a></p> - -<p>As a last resource, Henry decided to treat with -Cade by ambassadors, and on June 29th, when the -commons were again encamped on Blackheath, came -the Duke of Buckingham, and Stafford, Archbishop -of Canterbury, for many years the king’s -chancellor—a gentle old man, who, if he had made -no stand against the misgovernment himself, was -hardly to be blamed—to arrange, if possible, a -peaceful settlement.</p> - -<p>The conference came to nothing, for neither -Buckingham nor the archbishop could promise Cade -any positive redress of grievances, or the interview -he sought with the king.</p> - -<p>“These lords found him sober in talk, wise in -reasoning, arrogant in heart, and stiff in opinions; -one who that by no means would dissolve his -army, except the king in person would come to -him, and assent to the things he would require” -(Holinshed.)</p> - -<p>The failure of the mission was reported, and -Henry, after appointing Lord Scales as guardian of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_182">182</span> -the prisoners in the Tower, hastily fled to Kenilworth, -although the lord mayor and citizens of -London promised to stand by him if he would -remain in the city. There was little of sovereignty -in Henry VI., son of Henry V., the conqueror of -Agincourt. Quiet he loved, and in religious exercises -he found the satisfaction that others found in war -and statecraft.</p> - -<p>On the first of July the way was open for the -commons to enter London. Suffolk, Bishop -Moleyns, and Bishop Ayscough had all been -summarily executed. Lord Say, the treasurer, -alone remained of the discredited ministers. No -opposition was offered to Cade by the citizens of -London. The Common Council had discussed the -rising, and at the Guildhall only one dissentient -voice had been raised to the admission of the -Captain of Kent to the city. One Horne, a stockfishmonger -and alderman, alone objected to any -recognition of the unlawful assembly of the commons, -and he was sent to Newgate prison for safety, -and on Cade’s entry fined 500 marks for his daring -speech.</p> - -<p>Negotiations had been opened between the City -Council and the commons while the latter were at -Blackheath, and Thomas Cocke (or Cooke),<a id="FNanchor_76" href="#Footnote_76" class="fnanchor">76</a> a past -warden of the Drapers’ Company, acted as the -mutual friend of both parties. From Cocke the -corporation learnt of Cade’s purposes, and that the -city stood in no danger from the rising; and it was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_183">183</span> -Cocke who carried instructions from Cade to the -wealthy foreign merchants, requiring them to furnish -horses, arms and money for his army.</p> - -<p>“Ye shall charge all Lombards and strangers, -being merchants, Genoese, Venetians, Florentines and -others this day to draw them together: and to ordain -for us, the captain, twelve [sets of] harness complete, -of the best fashion, twenty-four brigandines, twelve -battle-axes, twelve glaves, six horses with saddle -and bridle completely harnessed, and 1,000 marks of -ready money.”</p> - -<p>So ran the summons, which was duly obeyed.<a id="FNanchor_77" href="#Footnote_77" class="fnanchor">77</a> -For Cade had added the stern warning that “if this -demand be not observed and done, we shall have the -heads of as many as we can get of them.”</p> - -<p>The corporation had really no choice but to welcome -Cade. Kings and nobles had fled, and here -was the Captain of Kent with 50,000 men come to -do justice at their gates. London had suffered as -badly as any place from the misgovernment of the -country, and it was plain the commons of Kent were -no army of maurauders, for no complaint had been -heard of their ill doing in Kent, and their captain -had treated with full civility the Duke of Buckingham -and Archbishop Stafford.</p> - -<p>So the keys of the city were presented to Cade, -and at five o’clock on the 2nd of July the Captain of -Kent, mounted on a good horse, rode across London -Bridge, followed by all his army. In Cannon Street, -in the presence of Sir John Chalton, the Lord -Mayor, and a great multitude of people, Cade laid<span class="pagenum" id="Page_184">184</span> -down his sword on the old London Stone and declared -proudly, “Now is Mortimer lord of this city.” -At nightfall he returned to his headquarters, the -White Hart, a famous inn in Southwark, and next -morning was betimes in the city. That day sentence -was passed on Lord Say-and-Sele and on his son-in-law, -Sheriff Crowmer. They were removed from the -Tower by Cade’s orders, taken to the Guildhall, -tried and condemned for “divers treasons,” and for -“certain extortions,” and executed forthwith. Say -was beheaded at the standard in Cheapside, and -Crowmer at Mile End, and so bitter was the public -feeling against these two men, and so fierce the -popular hatred, that their heads were carried on -poles through the city, and made to kiss in ghastly -embrace before being placed on London Bridge.</p> - -<p>These, with a third man named John Bailey, who -was hanged with Cade’s permission for being a -necromancer and a dabbler in magic and the black -arts, were the only persons put to death while Mortimer -was lord of the city. At Southwark, where -the commons were now encamped, as at Blackheath, -theft in the popular army was treated as a capital -offence, and two or three “lawless men” were -hanged. It was inevitable if discipline and good -order were to be obtained in so vast a company that -punishment should follow sharp and swift on all who -brought discredit on the rising.</p> - -<p>Lord Say and Sheriff Crowmer being dead, the -city fathers saw no further purpose in Cade’s lordship, -and they dreaded being called upon to contribute -to the support of his army, for they knew that -Cade needed money for his men. To the everlasting -credit of the commons no charge was laid against<span class="pagenum" id="Page_185">185</span> -them of riot or disorder. The city was in their -hands for three days, yet no harm befell the citizens. -On their captain alone has blame fallen for the -events of those days in July.</p> - -<p>The difficulties of the man were immense. He -had rendered no mean service to the state by calling -attention to the ills that plagued the country, and -proposing remedies. He had roused a large body of -Englishmen to demand a better government, and by -the sharp method of the times he had got rid of a -bad minister and a corrupt sheriff, so that public life -was at least the healthier for the deliverance from two -of its oppressors. And now he had this army of 50,000 -men, all needing food and shelter—an orderly, well-disciplined -body, no mob of mercenaries—and the -city of London, with all its wealth, gave him nothing.</p> - -<p>Cade had to get supplies. The commons of Kent -could not live on the good will of the London people. -Their captain was forced to levy toll where he could. -At present all he had received was the tribute from -the foreign merchants and 500 marks from the fishmonger -Horne.</p> - -<p>On July 3rd, the night of Say’s execution, Cade -supped with Philip Malpas, Cocke’s father-in-law. -Malpas was one of Suffolk’s party, a King Henry’s -man, unpopular in the city, and though an alderman -and a draper, an expelled member of the city council. -Warned by Cocke, Malpas got rid of his valuables -before Cade arrived. But the Captain of Kent -found certain jewels belonging to the Duke of York -in the house, and these he carried off.<a id="FNanchor_78" href="#Footnote_78" class="fnanchor">78</a></p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_186">186</span></p> - -<p>The following night Cade supped with a merchant -named Curtis (Ghirstis according to Fabyan, Girste -according to Stow) in the parish of St. Margaret -Pattens and before he left insisted on a contribution -to the war chest. Curtis paid, but he resented -bitterly the abuse of his hospitality. It seemed to -him, as it seemed to his fellow merchants to whom -he told the tale of his wrongs, sheer robbery, and -the following morning (Sunday, July 5th), while -Cade rested quietly at the White Hart in Southwark, -the city fathers were busy shaking their heads -over the business, and grave anxiety filled their -minds. This might be but the beginning of pillage; -there were always materials in London for a riot, -apart from Cade’s army.</p> - -<p>“And for this the hearts of the citizens fell from -him, and every thrifty man was afraid to be served -in like wise, for there was many a man in London -that awaited and would fain have seen a common -robbery” (Stow.)<a id="FNanchor_79" href="#Footnote_79" class="fnanchor">79</a></p> - -<p>In the course of the day mayor and corporation -were in consultation with Lord Scales, the Governor -of the Tower, with the result that decision was made -to prevent Cade and the commons from re-entering -the city. London Bridge was at once seized and -fortified by the citizens, and Matthew Gough, a distinguished -soldier in the French wars, was placed in -command.</p> - -<p>Cade, knowing nothing of the hostility he had -created, took his ease that day—it was the last -peaceful Sabbath he was to know. Towards evening<span class="pagenum" id="Page_187">187</span> -he gave orders for the King’s Bench and Marshalsea -prisons to be opened, and their inmates—for -the most part victims of official extortion and injustice—to -be released. This was done, and certain -“lawless men” convicted of disobedience were haled -off to be hanged; to the end there was no relaxing -of discipline.</p> - -<p>Then came word that the passage of London -Bridge was stopped, and the right of entry to the -city barred against the commons as against a foe. -Cade took this as a declaration of war, of the civil -war he had done his best to prevent, and sallied out -to force an entrance. At nine o’clock the battle -began on the bridge, and all through the short -summer night it raged, neither side effecting victory. -“For some time the Londoners were beat back to -the stulpes at St. Magnus corner, and suddenly -again the rebels were repulsed and driven back to -the stulpes at Southwark.” It was not till nine -o’clock on Monday morning that the commons, -wearied and disheartened, fell back from the fray, -and Cade understood that the attack had failed, and -that for the first time since the assembling of the -people on Blackheath, at the end of May, a check -had been given to the democratic movement. A -hasty truce was settled between Cade and the mayor, -that while the truce lasted the commons should not -cross into London nor the citizens into Southwark. -Cardinal Kemp, Archbishop of York, the king’s -chancellor, who with old Archbishop Stafford had -been left undisturbed in the Tower since the king’s -ignominious flight, immediately decided that the -time had come to arrange a settlement with the -Captain of Kent.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_188">188</span></p> - -<p>Kemp sent messengers that day to the White -Hart, asking Cade to meet the representatives of the -king, “to the end that the civil commotions and disturbances -might cease and tranquility be restored,” -and Cade consented.</p> - -<p>Kemp, who had himself presided at the trial and -condemnation of Suffolk, brought to the conference, -which was held in the church of St. Margaret, -Southwark,<a id="FNanchor_80" href="#Footnote_80" class="fnanchor">80</a> on July 7th, Archbishop Stafford and -William Waynfleet, Bishop of Winchester. The -chancellor, bent on making peace, also brought -pardons to all concerned, duly signed and sealed. -He listened courteously to Cade’s “complaints” and -“requests,” received the petition, promised it should -have the full consideration of parliament, and then -announced a full pardon to all who should return home.</p> - -<p>The proposals of the bishops won the general -approval of the commons. There was nothing to be -gained, it seemed, by remaining in arms, now they -had won a promise that their charter should come -before parliament.</p> - -<p>Cade alone hesitated. What if parliament should -disavow these “pardons,” and the commons be -treated as the peasants were treated when they -trusted a king’s word? He asked for the endorsement -of his own pardon, and the pardons of his -followers, by parliament before his army dispersed. -Chancellor Kemp explained that this was impossible, -because parliament was dissolved. The people were -satisfied with the cardinal’s word. The rising was -at an end.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_189">189</span></p> - -<p>The following day the bulk of the commons -departed from Southwark for their farms and -cottages in Kent and Surrey and Sussex. Cade -watched them go. His own mind was made up. -Not till parliament should give him a pardon of -indisputable legality would he lay down his arms. -With a small band of followers he set off for -Rochester, sending what goods and provisions he -had by water.</p> - -<p>The rising was at an end, and nothing more was -heard in parliament, or elsewhere, of the famous -charter of “complaints” and “requests.”</p> - -<p>With the break-up of the insurgent army, the -government woke to activity. Alexander Iden was -appointed sheriff of Kent, and marrying Crowmer’s -widow, subsequently gained considerable profit. -Within a week the king’s writ and proclamation, -declaring John Cade a false traitor, was posted -throughout the countryside, and Cade, defeated in -an attempt to get possession of Queenborough -Castle, was a fugitive with the reward of 1,000 -marks on his head, alive or dead, and with Sheriff -Iden in hot pursuit.</p> - -<p>Near Heathfield, in Sussex, Iden came up with -his prey, early on Monday, July 13th.</p> - -<p>Cade died fighting. A broken man, worn and -famished, friendless and alone, he still had his -sword. The spirit of Mortimer, Captain of Kent, -flickered up in the presence of his enemies—it were -better to die sword in hand fighting for freedom -than to perish basely by the hangman. So Cade -fought his last fight in the Sussex garden, and fell -mortally wounded, overpowered by the sheriff and -his men.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_190">190</span></p> - -<p>In all haste Iden sent off the dead body to -London; it was identified by the hostess of the -White Hart, and three days later the head was -stuck on London Bridge. The body was quartered -and portions sent to Blackheath, Norwich, Salisbury, -and Gloucester, for public exposure. The sheriffs of -London, upon whom the gruesome task fell of -despatching these remains, complained bitterly of -the cost of this proceeding, “because that hardly any -persons durst nor would take upon them the carriage -for doubt of their lives.”<a id="FNanchor_81" href="#Footnote_81" class="fnanchor">81</a></p> - -<p>Iden got his 1,000 marks reward, besides getting -the governorship of Rochester Castle, at a salary of -£36 per annum.</p> - -<p>Cade was “attainted of treason” by act of parliament, -and all his goods, lands, and tenements made -forfeit to the crown. A year later another act of -parliament made void all that had been done by -Cade’s authority during the rising.</p> - -<p>In January, 1451, Henry VI. went into Kent with -his justices, and this royal visitation was known as -the harvest of heads; for in spite of Cardinal -Kemp’s pardons, twenty-six men of Canterbury and -Rochester implicated in the rising were hanged.</p> - -<p>So the last echoes of the rising died away, and -corruption and misgovernment remained. But the -commons of Kent and their captain had done what -they could, and in the only way that seemed possible, -to get justice done, and their failure was without -dishonour.</p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<h2 id="hdr_9">Sir Thomas More and the -Freedom of Conscience<br /> - -<span class="subhead">1529–1535</span></h2> -</div> - -<p><span class="smcap">Authorities</span>: William Roper—<cite>Life of Sir Thomas -More</cite>, 1626; Harpsfield—<cite>Life of More</cite> (Harleian -MSS.); Stapleton—<cite xml:lang="la" lang="la">Ires Thomæ</cite>, 1588; Cresacre -More—<cite>Life of More</cite>, 1627; Erasmus—<cite xml:lang="la" lang="la">Epistolae</cite> -(Leyden, 1706); Sir James Mackintosh—<cite>Life of More</cite>, -1844; Campbell—<cite>Lives of the Chancellors</cite>; Foss—<cite>Lives -of the Judges</cite>; <cite>Calendar of State Papers—Henry -VIII.</cite>, edited by Dr. Brewer and Dr. Gairdner -(Rolls Series); <cite>More’s English Works</cite>, edited by -William Rastell; Rev. T. E. Bridgett—<cite>Life of Blessed -John Fisher</cite>, and <cite>Life and Writings of Sir Thomas -More</cite>, 1891.</p> - -<div id="ip_193" class="figcenter"> - <img src="images/i_p192.jpg" width="1509" height="2094" alt="" /> - <div class="caption"><p>SIR THOMAS MORE</p> - -<p>(<cite>From the Drawing by Hans Holbein.</cite>)</p></div></div> -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_193">193</span></p> - -<h3 class="left">SIR THOMAS MORE AND THE<br /> -FREEDOM OF CONSCIENCE - -<span class="subhead">1529–1535.</span></h3> - -<p class="drop-cap"><span class="firstword">“Did</span> Nature ever frame a sweeter, happier -character than that of More?”—so -Erasmus wrote in 1498, when Thomas -More was twenty, and Erasmus, recently -come to England, some ten years older. It was -at the beginning of their friendship, a friendship -that was to last unbroken till death,<a id="FNanchor_82" href="#Footnote_82" class="fnanchor">82</a> and More had -then passed from the household of Cardinal Morton -to Oxford, and from Oxford to Lincoln’s Inn, to -take up his father’s calling and follow the law as a -barrister.</p> - -<p>Twenty years later Erasmus, writing at length to -Ulrich von Hutten, gives us a portrait of More in -full manhood. Temperance, simplicity, human -affection, good humour, independence of mind—these -qualities are conspicuous.</p> - -<p>“I never saw anyone so indifferent about food. -Until he was a young man he delighted in drinking -water, but that was natural to him. Yet, that he -might not seem to be singular or unsociable, he -would conceal his temperance from his guests by<span class="pagenum" id="Page_194">194</span> -drinking the lightest beer, or often pure water, out -of a pewter vessel.”</p> - -<p>“He prefers milk diet and fruits, and is especially -fond of eggs. He would rather eat corned beef and -coarse bread than what are called delicacies.”</p> - -<p>“He likes a simple dress, using neither silk nor -purple nor chains of gold—except on state occasions. -It is wonderful how careless he is of all that ceremony -which most men identify with politeness. -He neither requires it from others nor is anxious -to use it himself, though when it is necessary, at -interviews or banquets, he knows how to employ -it. But he thinks it unmanly to waste time over -such trifles.”</p> - -<p>“He seems born and fashioned for friendship, and -is a most faithful and enduring friend. He is easy of -access to all; but if he chances to get familiar with -one whose vices will not brook correction, rather -than a sudden breaking off, he gradually relaxes the -intimacy and quietly drops it. He abhors games of -tennis, dice, cards, and the like, by which most -gentlemen kill time. Though he is rather too negligent -of his own interests, no one is more diligent in -behalf of his friends. So polite, and so sweet-mannered -is he in company, that no one is too -melancholy to be cheered by him. Since boyhood -he has always so delighted in merriment that it seems -to be part of his nature; yet his merriment is never -turned into buffoonery.”</p> - -<p>“No one is less led by the opinions of the crowd, -yet no one is less eccentric.”</p> - -<p>The friendship of More and Erasmus had ripened -in those twenty years. In More’s house, and at his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_195">195</span> -instigation, Erasmus had written the <cite>Praise of -Folly</cite>,<a id="FNanchor_83" href="#Footnote_83" class="fnanchor">83</a> and the great scholar watched with warm -interest the famous career and the brilliant character -of the man he loved so heartily.</p> - -<p>More was already high in Henry VIII.’s favour -when Erasmus could write that no one was less led by -the opinions of the crowd, and more than once his -independence and courage of mind had been proved -in the twenty years that had passed.</p> - -<p>Drawn at first to the monastic life, More had -spent four years (1500–1504) with the Carthusians -in Smithfield, “frequenting daily their spiritual -exercises, but without any vow.” Then it is plain -to him that his vocation is not the priesthood, but -marriage and public life, and he leaves the Charterhouse, -and in 1505 is married and in Parliament.<a id="FNanchor_84" href="#Footnote_84" class="fnanchor">84</a> -But all his life the devotion to religion, and to the -services of the Church, remain in More, and he is -ascetic in the mortifications of the body till the spirit -and the will ride supreme.</p> - -<p>In the House of Commons More stood out against -the exactions of Henry VII., and at once fell under -the king’s displeasure.</p> - -<p>More’s son-in-law, Roper, tells the story:</p> - -<p>“In the time of King Henry the Seventh, More -was made a burgess of the Parliament wherein was -demanded by the king (as I have heard reported) -about three-fifteenths, for the marriage of his eldest<span class="pagenum" id="Page_196">196</span> -daughter, that then should be Scottish Queen; at -the last debating whereof he made such arguments -and reasons against, that the king’s demands were -thereby overthrown. So that one of the king’s privy -chamber being present thereat, brought word to the -king out of the Parliament house that a beardless boy -had disappointed all his purpose. Whereupon the -king, conceiving great indignation towards him, -could not be satisfied until he had some way -revenged it. And forasmuch as he, nothing have, -nothing could lose, his Grace devised a causeless -quarrel against his father, keeping him in the Tower -till he had made him pay a hundred pounds fine.... -Had not the king soon after died, Sir -Thomas More was determined to have gone over -sea, thinking that being in the king’s indignation, he -could not live in England without great danger.”</p> - -<p>The grant from parliament to the king was reduced -from £113,000 to £30,000 by More’s action; and if -this action brought royal anger, it won for More the -confidence of his fellow-citizens in London, so that -we see him in the second year of Henry VIII. under-sheriff -for the city, and according to Erasmus and -Roper, the most popular lawyer of the day. With -all his legal business, and good income, More is -never anxious after money. “While he was still -dependent on his fees, he gave to all true and -friendly counsel, considering their interests rather -than his own; he persuaded many to settle with -their opponents as the cheaper course. If he could -not induce them to act in that manner—for some -men delight in litigation—he would still indicate the -method that was least expensive.”<a id="FNanchor_85" href="#Footnote_85" class="fnanchor">85</a></p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_197">197</span></p> - -<p>More’s rising reputation was bound to attract the -notice of Henry VIII., for the king was alert in the -early years of his reign to get good men at the -court, and Wolsey, who had become chancellor on -Archbishop Warham’s retirement in 1515, was -anxious to enlist More in the royal service. The -court had no attractions for More, his embassies to -Flanders and Calais, to settle trade disputes and -difficulties with France, wearied him, and in 1516 he -was engaged in finishing his <cite>Utopia</cite>. According -to Roper, it was More’s independence of mind that -made the king force office at court upon him. A -ship belonging to the pope, which had put into -Southampton, was claimed by Henry as a forfeiture. -More argued the case so clearly that the commissioners -decided in the pope’s favour, and the king at -once declared he must have More in his service.</p> - -<p>Then for the next twelve years Sir Thomas More -enjoyed the royal favour and friendship. His promotion -was rapid. Secretary of state, master of -requests when the king was travelling, privy councilor, -under-treasurer, or chancellor of the exchequer—all -these offices were filled. In 1521 More -was knighted, in 1523 he was speaker of the House -of Commons, and in 1525 chancellor of the Duchy -of Lancaster.</p> - -<p>Erasmus writes to Ulrich von Hutten in 1519 in -praise of More’s public work: “In serious matters -no man’s advice is more prized, and when the king -wishes for recreation no man’s conversation is more -entertaining. Often there are matters deep and involved -that demand a grave and prudent judge, -and More unravels these questions in a way that -gives satisfaction to both sides. Yet no one has<span class="pagenum" id="Page_198">198</span> -ever prevailed on him to receive a gift for his decision. -Happy that commonwealth where kings -appoint such officials! No pride has come to him -with his high estate. With all the weight of state -affairs he remembers his old friends, and returns -from time to time to the books he loves so well. -Whatever influence has come to him with his high -office, whatever favour he enjoys with his wealthy -king, he uses all for the good of the state and for -the assistance of his friends. Ever fond of conferring -benefits and wonderfully prone to pity, his disposition -has grown with his power of indulging it. Some -he helps with money, to others he gives protection, -and others he recommends for promotion. When -he can help in no other way he does it by his advice: -no one is sent away dejected. You might well say -that he had been appointed the public guardian of -the distressed and needy.”</p> - -<p>If the cares of state did not cut off Sir Thomas -More from assisting old acquaintances, they made -great inroads into the home life he loved so well. -He had married again on the death of his first wife, -and his letters to his children, especially to his “most -dear daughter, Margaret”—Roper’s wife—are full -of tenderness. He is anxious about the education of -his children, and rejoices that his daughter shares -his love for books. We find him writing to Margaret -Roper just after her marriage in <span class="locked">1522:—</span></p> - -<p>“I am therefore delighted to read that you have -made up your mind to give yourself diligently to -philosophy, and to make up by your earnestness in -future for what you have lost in the past by neglect. -My darling Margaret, I indeed have never found -you idling, and your unusual learning in almost<span class="pagenum" id="Page_199">199</span> -every kind of literature shows that you have been -making active progress. So I take your words as -an example of the great modesty that makes you -prefer to accuse yourself falsely of sloth rather than -to boast of your diligence, unless your meaning is -that you will give yourself so earnestly to study that -your past history will seem like indolence by comparison.... -Though I earnestly hope that you will -devote the rest of your life to medical science and -sacred literature, so that you may be well furnished -for the whole scope of human life, which is to have -a healthy soul in a healthy body, and I know that -you have already laid the foundations of these studies, -and there will be always opportunity to continue the -building; yet I am of opinion that you may with -great advantage give some years of your yet flourishing -youth to humane letters and liberal studies.... -It would be a delight, my dear Margaret, to me to -converse long with you on these matters, but I have -just been interrupted and called away by the servants, -who have brought in supper. I must have -regard to others, else to sup is not so sweet as to talk -with you.”<a id="FNanchor_86" href="#Footnote_86" class="fnanchor">86</a></p> - -<p>The close friend of Erasmus and Dean Colet, an -accepted champion of the New Learning, More -was naturally enthusiastic for education—for girls as -for boys. He had written to Gunnell, for a time the -tutor of his <span class="locked">family:—</span></p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_200">200</span></p> - -<p>“Though I prefer learning, joined with virtue, to -all the treasures of kings, yet renown for learning, -when it is not united with a good life, is nothing else -than splendid and notorious infamy: this would be -especially the case in a woman.... Since erudition -in woman is a new thing and a reproach to the sloth -of men, many will gladly assail it and impute to -literature what is really the fault of nature, thinking -from the vices of the learned to get their own -ignorance esteemed as virtue. On the other hand -if a woman (and this I desire and hope with you as -the teacher for all my daughters) to eminent virtue -should add an outwork of even moderate skill in -literature, I think she will have more real profit than -if she had obtained the riches of Crœsus and the -beauty of Helen.”</p> - -<p>In this letter More goes on to speak of the profit -of learning and the happiness of those who give -themselves to it—“possessing solid joy they will -neither be puffed up by the empty praises of men nor -dejected by evil tongues.”</p> - -<p>“These I consider the genuine fruits of learning, -and though I admit that all literary men do not -possess them, I would maintain that those who give -themselves to study with such views (avoiding the -precipices of pride and haughtiness, walking in the -pleasant meadows of modesty, not dazzled at the -sight of gold) will easily attain their end and become -perfect. Nor do I think that the harvest will be -much affected whether it is a man or a woman who -sows the field. They both have the same human -nature, which reason differentiates from those of -beasts; both therefore are equally suited for those -studies for which reason is perfectioned, and becomes<span class="pagenum" id="Page_201">201</span> -fruitful like a ploughed land on which the seed of -good lessons has been sown.”</p> - -<p>This strong love for wise learning, laying emphasis -on a complete education—the training in virtue no -less than the knowledge of letters—had its roots in -More’s character. The “genuine fruits of learning” -ripen in his life and death. His wide toleration, -which will blame no man for not taking the path he -trod to martyrdom, is coupled inextricably with a -refinement of conscience that cannot be sullied by a -denial of his faith. The freedom of conscience -Thomas More claimed for himself he most willingly -allows to others. Just as the education he valued for -himself he extends to all his children.</p> - -<p>Standing largely aloof from the violent controversies -Luther had started, hating the bitter -intolerance and savage abuse of theological strife, -refusing to be drawn into the deadly discussion of -Henry VIII.’s divorce, Sir Thomas More is content -to live in loyal devotion to his religion and to the -service of the state, if haply he may. And when this -is denied him he is content to die, retaining his -tolerant good-humour and the love of his kind to -the end, and without resentment at his fate.</p> - -<p>The courage of the sage never failed Sir Thomas -More in his public work. As “a beardless boy” he -had resisted in parliament the king’s extortions, as -speaker of the House of Commons he protected the -privileges of the commons. Wolsey had come down -to the House with all his train to command a subsidy, -but no word was uttered in reply to his address. In -vain Wolsey appealed for an answer, Sir Thomas -More could only declare that the speaker, then the -mouthpiece of the commons, had nothing to say till<span class="pagenum" id="Page_202">202</span> -he had heard the opinion of the House. “Whereupon, -the cardinal, displeased with Sir Thomas -More that had not in this parliament in all things -satisfied his desire, suddenly arose and departed.”</p> - -<p>High as More stood at that time in the affection -of Henry, Sir Thomas knew the king, and the -nature of the favour of princes. Roper relates that -when he offered his congratulations, at the time of -the appointment to the chancellorship of the Duchy -of Lancaster, More answered, “I may tell thee I -have no cause to be proud thereof, for if my head -would win him a castle in France (for then was there -war betwixt us) it should not fail to go.”</p> - -<p>Aware of Henry’s character, More yet had no -choice but to accept the lord chancellorship from the -king on Wolsey’s fall in 1529. It was no matter -for personal satisfaction, and More’s reply to the -Duke of Norfolk was substantially the same as his -previous answer to Roper: “Considering how wise -and honourable a prelate had lately before taken so -great a fall, he had no cause to rejoice in his new -dignity.” Erasmus wrote, “I do not at all congratulate -More, nor literature; but I do indeed -congratulate England, for a better or holier judge -could not have been appointed.”</p> - -<p>On November 3rd, 1529, Sir Thomas More, as -chancellor, opened parliament, and in a long speech -declared that “the cause of its assembly was to -reform such things as had been used or permitted by -inadvertence, or by changes of time had become -inexpedient.” It was the opening of the seven years’ -parliament, and before six years should run, this -same parliament would, at the king’s order, condemn -Sir Thomas More by act of attainder.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_203">203</span></p> - -<p>The position of the new chancellor was dangerous -from the first. Wolsey had fallen because he had -failed to help Henry to a divorce from his queen, -Catherine of Aragon, and More had been made his -successor because the king had counted on him to -accomplish the “great matter.” All that Sir -Thomas could hope for was that he might be -allowed to do his work as chancellor without being -mixed up with divorce proceedings. As long as he -was not called upon to declare publicly that the -divorce was right, he had no wish to interfere in the -matter. First to last no word of approval came -from More’s lips to encourage Henry in the divorce, -but he was not the man to express judgment on a -case that he did not wish brought before him.<a id="FNanchor_87" href="#Footnote_87" class="fnanchor">87</a> In -the end the chancellor’s very silence turned Henry’s -disappointment to active displeasure, and More’s life -was taken in savage revenge for non-compliance -with the royal will.</p> - -<p>Henry’s divorce dates the beginning of the Protestant -Reformation in England—of that ecclesiastical -revolution in which the supremacy of Rome -was rejected, the crown superseded the pope as -supreme head of the Church of England, and -England was detached from the rest of Roman -Catholic Christendom. In the reigns of Edward VI. -and Elizabeth the revolution proceeded still further, -and Catholic rites and doctrines, service books and -ceremonies were rigorously cast out of the Church -of England, and all who adhered to the old order in<span class="pagenum" id="Page_204">204</span> -religion were punished by law. But those days were -far off as yet.</p> - -<p>More, at the outset of this revolution, declines to -follow the king in the rejection of the old allegiance -to Rome. All he asks for is freedom of conscience -to remain in the faith of his fathers, to worship as -Christians in England had worshipped since the -coming of Augustine. To escape death by giving -up this freedom is impossible for Sir Thomas More.</p> - -<p>The divorce from Queen Catherine is the turning -point in More’s worldly fortunes as well as in ecclesiastical -affairs in England.</p> - -<p>Eighteen years passed from the day of Henry’s -marriage to Catherine, on his accession to the -throne, before the divorce was mooted. The -scruple was that Catherine had been formerly -betrothed to his dead brother Arthur; the moving -force of Henry’s petition for divorce was the desire -to marry Anne Boleyn. Unable to get the marriage -annulled at Rome, or to get a favourable opinion -from the universities, Henry fell back on Archbishop -Cranmer to decree the divorce, and finally this was -done in 1533, all appeals to Rome being henceforth -forbidden. Henry had already, in 1531, called upon -the clergy to acknowledge him as the supreme head -of the Church of England, and the following year -they were required to surrender the ancient right to -meet and enact canons.<a id="FNanchor_88" href="#Footnote_88" class="fnanchor">88</a></p> - -<p>In these four years the chancellor had kept out of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_205">205</span> -political life as far as he could, and had given his -attention to his judicial work. But in May, 1532, -he resigned the great seal into the king’s hands, -“seeing that affairs were going badly, and likely to -be worse, and that if he retained his office he would -be obliged to act against his conscience, or incur the -king’s displeasure as he had already begun to do, for -refusing to take his part against the clergy. His -excuse was that his salary was too small, and that he -was not equal to the work. Everyone is concerned, -for there never was a better man in the office.”<a id="FNanchor_89" href="#Footnote_89" class="fnanchor">89</a></p> - -<p>Nothing is known of Sir Thomas More’s work in -the chancery except his integrity and his despatch. -“When More took the office there were causes that -had remained undecided for twenty years. He presided -so dexterously and successfully that once after -taking his seat and deciding a case, when the next -case was called, it was found that there was no second -case for trial. Such a thing is said never to have -happened before or since.” (Stapleton.)</p> - -<p>For nearly two years More lived unmolested after -his resignation of the chancellorship; but he had -incurred the enmity of the king and the hatred of -Anne Boleyn, and Henry was swiftly driving at -certain changes in religion that were to bring Sir -Thomas More to the Tower and the block, and -many another honest Christian to the prison and the -gallows of Tyburn.</p> - -<p>In June, 1533, after Cranmer had duly pronounced -Henry’s marriage with Catherine void, came the -coronation of Anne Boleyn, and Sir Thomas More -declined an invitation from some of the bishops to -be present at the celebration. He knew that his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_206">206</span> -absence would be marked unfavourably by the king, -and was ready to pay the penalty; but his care in -avoiding the expression of any disapproval of -Henry’s proceedings required an equal care that no -approval should be expressed. To have been present -at the coronation of Anne would have been, for -More, to condone the divorce.</p> - -<p>In the autumn came an attempt to include More, -with Bishop Fisher and certain monks and friars, in -the treason of the “Holy Maid of Kent,”—Elizabeth -Barton, a Canterbury nun. The -“treason” amounted to this, that the nun, who was -given to prophesying, declared that God had revealed -to her to speak against Henry’s divorce, and -it was sufficient to bring her to Tyburn. But against -Sir Thomas More no shred of evidence could be -procured, for none existed. He had seen the nun, -and talked with her, and “held her in great estimation,” -but would neither commit himself to a belief -in her visions, nor permit any discussion on the -king’s doings; but wrote to the nun a letter which -could not have been more prudent, as he exhorted -her “to attend to devotion, and not meddle in the -affairs of princes.”</p> - -<p>The name of Sir Thomas More was struck out of -the bill of attainder, but the days of his liberty were -already numbered.</p> - -<p>The Act of Succession, passed in March, 1534, -made Mary, the daughter of Henry and Catherine, -illegitimate, and Elizabeth, Anne’s child, the heir to -the throne. The act also declared that “all the -nobles of the realm, spiritual and temporal, and all -other subjects arrived at full age, should be obliged -to take corporal oath, in the presence of the king or<span class="pagenum" id="Page_207">207</span> -his commissioners, to observe and maintain the whole -effect and contents of the act,” under the penalties -for treason for refusal. The words of the oath were -not inserted in the act, and the commissioners drew -up a formula, requiring all persons to affirm in -addition that the marriage with Catherine was invalid, -and the marriage with Anne valid, and further -to recall and repudiate allegiance to any foreign -authority, prince, or potentate. This was a much -larger demand than parliament had authorised, for it -contained a denial of the papal supremacy, while all -that the act had required was an acknowledgment of -the succession to the crown. The pope had only just -given his final decision on Henry’s appeal for divorce -(March, 1534), and the decision had been against the -king and in favour of the marriage. The oath -now administered was in direct opposition to the -supremacy of Rome, and as such was impossible to -the consciences of men like Sir Thomas More and -Bishop Fisher, though the great bulk of the clergy -took it without giving any trouble.</p> - -<p>More was quite prepared to swear to the succession -of Elizabeth. Parliament had, in his eyes, a -plain right to decide who should wear the crown, -and the doctrine of divine hereditary kingship does -not come in till the Stuarts. But this mere willingness -to comply with the letter of the law was not -sufficient. More’s silent want of sympathy with the -divorce, and with the breach it involved with Rome, -was intolerable to Henry, who had counted More -amongst his dearest friends; for friend or foe, in -Henry’s power, could only live by abject agreement -with the royal pleasure. No king had three more -faithful servants than Henry VIII. had in Thomas<span class="pagenum" id="Page_208">208</span> -Wolsey, Thomas More, and Thomas Cromwell, and -no king destroyed his ministers with such fierce -caprice.</p> - -<p>Sir Thomas More, unable to take the oath, was -sent to the Tower in April, 1534, Bishop Fisher -having already been lodged there. In November -parliament met again, and passed the Act of -Supremacy, making Henry VIII. “the supreme head -of the Church of England,” and declaring that on -and after the first of February, 1535, it was high -treason “to deprive the king’s most royal person, the -queen’s, or their heirs apparent of their dignity, title -or name of their royal estates, or slanderously and -maliciously publish or pronounce, by express writing -or words, that the king, our sovereign lord, should be -heretic, schismatic, tyrant, infidel, etc.” Under this -act Sir Thomas More was to be assailed and to die. -That the martyrdom was a “judicial murder” is -plain—to Lord Campbell it was “the blackest crime -that ever has been perpetrated in England under the -form of law.”<a id="FNanchor_90" href="#Footnote_90" class="fnanchor">90</a></p> - -<p>The indictment was for treason, and on July 1st, a -week after Bishop Fisher’s execution, Sir Thomas -More was brought before the judges. To the charge -of having refused the king, “maliciously, falsely, and -traitorously, his title of supreme head of the Church -of England,” More answered that the statute had -been passed while he was in prison, and that he was -dead to the world, and had not cared about such -things—“your statute cannot condemn me to death -for such silence, for neither your statute nor any laws -in the world punish people except for words and -deeds—surely not for keeping silence.”</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_209">209</span></p> - -<p>“To this the king’s proctor replied that such -silence was a certain proof of malice intended -against the statute, especially as every faithful -subject, on being questioned about the statute, was -obliged to answer categorically that the statute was -good and wholesome.” “Surely,” replied More, “if -common law is true, and he who is silent seems to -consent, my silence should rather be taken as -approval than contempt of your statute.”</p> - -<p>To the first article charging him with having -always maliciously opposed the king’s second -marriage, More had answered that anything he had -said had been according to his conscience, and that -for “this error,” he had already suffered fifteen -months’ imprisonment, and the confiscation of his -property.</p> - -<p>The trial was soon over, for the king had decided -on More’s death when Fisher was executed, ordering -the preachers to set forth to the people the -treasons of the late Bishop of Rochester and of Sir -Thomas More; “joining them together though the -later was still untried.”<a id="FNanchor_91" href="#Footnote_91" class="fnanchor">91</a> The jury, after a quarter of -an hour’s absence, declared him guilty of death for -maliciously contravening the statute, and sentence -was pronounced by the chancellor “according to the -tenour of the new law.”</p> - -<p>Death being now in sight, and faith having been -kept with his conscience, More has no longer any -reason to observe silence. To the usual question -whether he has anything to say against the -sentence, he replied, that for the seven years he had -studied the matter he could not find that supremacy -in a church belonged to a layman, or to any but the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_210">210</span> -see of Rome, as granted personally by our Lord -when on earth to St. Peter and his successors; and -that, as the city of London could not make a law -against the laws of the realm of England, so -England could not make a law contrary to the -general law of Christ’s Catholic Church; and that -the Magna Charta of England said that “the -English Church should be free to enjoy all its rights,” -as the king had sworn at his consecration. Interrupted -by the chancellor with the inquiry whether -he wished to be considered wiser and better than all -the bishops and nobles of the realm who had sworn -to the king’s supremacy, More retorted, “For one -bishop of your opinion, my lord, I have a hundred -saints of mine; and for one parliament of yours, and -God knows of what kind, I have all the general -councils for a thousand years.” The Duke of Norfolk -said that now his malice was clear.</p> - -<p>On the sixth of July, 1535, Sir Thomas More -was beheaded on Tower Hill, for the king remitted -the ferocious mutilations that accompanied the executions -for treason at Tyburn. “The scaffold was -very unsteady, and putting his feet on the ladder, he -said, merrily, to the lieutenant of the Tower: “I -pray thee see me safe up, and for my coming down -let me shift for myself.”<a id="FNanchor_92" href="#Footnote_92" class="fnanchor">92</a></p> - -<p>Then, with a simple request to the people standing -round to pray for him, and to bear witness that he -died a Catholic for the faith of the Catholic Church, -a friendly word to the executioner, and a last prayer—the -51st Psalm—the axe fell, and More was dead.</p> - -<p>Beyond More’s scholarship and wit, and his affection -for his family and friends, stands out his great,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_211">211</span> -unflinching quality of loyalty to conscience. When the -power was in his hands as lord chancellor, no one -was put to death by Sir Thomas More for heresy in -England, though he did what he could by his pen to -check the innovations of Luther, which he hated,—not -only because they broke up the unity of Christendom, -but because, it seemed to him, they struck at -all social morality and decency.<a id="FNanchor_93" href="#Footnote_93" class="fnanchor">93</a> The violence -of Luther’s outbreak, the determination of the -Lutherans—sure of their own possession of the -truth—to allow no liberty to Catholics, and the antinomian -communism of the anabaptists—all these -things made Protestantism detestable to men like Sir -Thomas More and Erasmus, and made More declare -that dogmatising heretics ought to be repressed by -the state as breeders of strife and contention. But -his own record is clear: “And of all that ever came -in my hand for heresy, as help me God, saving (as I -said) the sure keeping of them, had never any of -them any stripe or stroke given them, so much as a -fillip on the forehead.”<a id="FNanchor_94" href="#Footnote_94" class="fnanchor">94</a></p> - -<p>“What other controversialist can be named, who, -having the power to crush antagonists whom he -viewed as the disturbers of the quiet of his own -declining years, the destroyers of all the hopes which -he had cherished for mankind, contented himself -with severity of language?”<a id="FNanchor_95" href="#Footnote_95" class="fnanchor">95</a></p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_212">212</span></p> - -<p>The author of the <cite>Utopia</cite> was a critic, as -Colet and Erasmus were, of abuses in the Church; -but like his friends he lived and died a Catholic. -He saw Lutheranism as the source of a thousand -ills, and with Erasmus opposed it; but though -heretics were anti-social and factious, he would -not put one to death for error.</p> - -<p>It is all through Sir Thomas More’s character—this -respect for conscience. There is no going back -on the wide toleration of his early manhood, and -high office and responsibilities of state no more -cramp or belittle his faith than they destroy his playfulness -or the warmth of his affections.</p> - -<p>He died a martyr for the religion of his life, -for the simple right to abide in the old Catholic -paths of his fellow-countrymen.</p> - -<p>As Sir Thomas More was not the first of the -Catholic martyrs at the Reformation, for he had -seen his old friends, the Carthusian monks, carried to -Tyburn, so he was not the last. For the next fifty -years of Henry and Elizabeth, English men and -women were to suffer for the old faith of England, -and in Mary’s reign to die as bravely for Protestantism.</p> - -<p>In spite of monasteries and priories destroyed, and -parish churches stripped and plundered, in spite of -penal laws which banned its priesthood and proscribed -its worship, the Catholicism More died for -has endured in England. All that parliament could -do to exterminate the belief in papal supremacy has -been done; all that panic and prejudice could -accomplish by “popish plots” to the same end has -been accomplished. These things have been no -more successful than the mad “no popery” riots of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_213">213</span> -Lord George Gordon in crushing the faith of the -Roman Catholic minority. The penal laws have -gone, Catholic emancipation has been obtained, a -Catholic hierarchy has been set up, and to-day in -England the freedom of conscience that was refused -to Sir Thomas More is the accepted liberty of all.</p> - -<p>In 1887 Sir Thomas More, with Bishop Fisher -and the Carthusian martyrs, were beatified by Pope -Leo XIII. Serving their religion in life and death, -they served the cause of human liberty, withstanding -Henry as Anselm withstood the Red King, and -as Langton withstood John.</p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<h2 id="hdr_10">Robert Ket and The Norfolk -Rising<br /> - -<span class="subhead">1549</span></h2> -</div> - -<p><span class="smcap">Authorities</span>: <cite>The Commotion in Norfolk</cite>, by -Nicholas Sotherton, 1576 (Harleian MS.); <cite xml:lang="la" lang="la">De -Furoribus Norfolciensum</cite>, by Nevylle, 1575 (Translated -into English by Wood, 1615); Holinshed—<cite>Chronicle</cite>; -Sir John Hayward—<cite>Life of Edward VI.</cite>; Strype—<cite>Memorials</cite>; -Blomefield—<cite>History of Norfolk</cite>; F. W. -Russell—<cite>Kett’s Rebellion</cite>; W. Rye; <cite>Victoria County -History—Norfolk</cite>.</p> -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_217">217</span></p> - -<h3 class="left">ROBERT KET AND THE<br /> -NORFOLK RISING. -<span class="subhead">1549.</span></h3> - -<p class="drop-cap"><span class="firstword">The</span> Norfolk Rising of the sixteenth century -was a land war, caused directly by -the enclosing of the common fields of the -peasants, and the break up of the -accustomed rural life.</p> - -<p>The landowners finding greater profit in breeding -sheep and cattle than in the small holdings of -peasants, began, about 1470, to seize the fields which -from time immemorial had been cultivated by the -country people in common, and to evict whole -parishes by pulling down all the dwelling places. -For eighty years these clearances were going on. -Acts of Parliament were passed in 1489 and 1515 -to prohibit the “pulling down of towns” and to -order the rebuilding of such towns, and the restoration -of pasture lands to tillage, but both acts were quite -inoperative. In 1517, Cardinal Wolsey’s Royal -Commission on Enclosures reported on the defiance -of the law in seven Midland counties, where more -than 36,000 acres had been enclosed; but legal -proceedings against the landowners were stayed on -the latter promising to make restitution.</p> - -<p>Thomas More, in the first part of his <cite>Utopia</cite>, -in 1516, described for all time what the enclosures -he witnessed meant for England.</p> - -<p>“For look in what parts of the realm doth grow -the finest and therefore dearest wool, there noblemen<span class="pagenum" id="Page_218">218</span> -and gentlemen, yea, and certain abbots, holy men -no doubt, not contenting themselves with the yearly -revenues and profits that were wont to grow to their -forefathers and predecessors of their lands, nor being -content that they live in rest and pleasure—nothing -profiting, yea, much annoying the public weal—leave -no ground for tillage, they inclose all into -pastures; they throw down houses; they pluck down -towns and leave nothing standing but only the -church to be made a sheep fold.... They turn -all dwelling-places and all glebe land into desolation -and wilderness. Therefore, that one covetous and -insatiable comorant may compass about and inclose -many thousand acres of ground together within one -pale or hedge, the husbandmen be thrust out of their -own, or else either by cunning and fraud, or by -violent oppression, or by wrongs and injuries they -be so wearied, that they be compelled to sell all. By -one means therefore or another, either by hook or -by crook they must needs depart away, men, women, -husbands, wives, fatherless children, widows, mothers -with their young babies, and their whole household -small in substance and large in number, as husbandry -requireth many hands. Away they trudge, I say, -out of their known and accustomed houses, finding -no place to rest in.... And when they have -wandered abroad till the little they have be spent, -what can they then else do but steal, and then justly -be hanged, or else go about a begging. And yet -then also they be cast in prison as vagabonds, -because they go about and work not: whom no man -will set a work, though they never so willingly proffer -themselves thereto. For one shepherd or herdsman -is enough to eat up that ground with cattle, to the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_219">219</span> -occupying whereof about husbandry many hands -were requisite.”</p> - -<p>This was social England in the early years of -Henry VIII., and every year saw things grow worse -for the rural folk, in spite of further royal proclamations -against enclosures in 1526. A series of -bad harvests drove a starving population to riot in -Norfolk in 1527 and 1529. In 1536 came the -suppression of 376 lesser monasteries, followed two -years later by the dissolution of all remaining -monasteries and priories, and in 1547 by the royal -confiscation of the property of the religious guilds and -brotherhoods.</p> - -<p>The landowners having established a starving -unemployed class by the simple process of depriving -people of access to the land, and the crown having -removed the only source of relief to the unemployed -by destroying the monasteries, it remained for -parliament to deal with the “social problem” thus -created by declaring poverty a crime, and the -unemployed person a felon. The lash and the -gallows were to solve the problem.</p> - -<p>In 1531, an act of parliament granted licences to -the impotent beggar, and ordered a whipping for all -other mendicants. Five years later stronger -measures were adopted, and whipping was only -permitted to first offenders: mutilation and hanging -were the subsequent penalties on conviction, and -thousands of unemployed men and women suffered -under this act. But still the unemployed existed, -for the enclosures had not been stopped; and so the -first year of Edward VI. saw an act passed declaring -the convicted unemployed “a slave.” (As it seemed -to many that parliament had got rid of papal<span class="pagenum" id="Page_220">220</span> -authority only to bring back slavery in England, this -act was repealed in two years, and the act of 1531 -revived.)</p> - -<p>The bitterness of the agrarian misery, the violent -destruction of all the old religious customs and -habits of the people, the confiscation of the funds -of the guilds, the open despoiling of the parish -churches of the people<a id="FNanchor_96" href="#Footnote_96" class="fnanchor">96</a>—all these things plunged -the country into confusion and despair. The -general rising in Lincolnshire and the north in 1536 -(known as the “Pilgrimage of Grace”) against the -suppressions of the monasteries, and the rising in -Cornwall and Devon in 1549 against Edward’s VI.’s -new Book of Common Prayer were strong manifestations -of the popular dislike of the changes -made in religion by Henry VIII. and the ministers -of Edward VI.</p> - -<p>In Norfolk, in 1537, the people made an insurrection -against the suppression of the monasteries; but -the later risings of 1540 (at Griston, when one John -Walker “exhorted the people to destroy the gentry”), -and in 1549, under Ket, were not concerned with -the religious troubles of the times, but were frankly -agrarian. The Norfolk rising, which Ket led, was -no more connected with Protestantism than the -Peasant Revolt of 1381 was with Lollardy. Agrarian -disturbances took place in a number of counties in -1549. In May the peasants of Somerset and -Lincoln were in revolt, and in July there were -tumults in Essex, Kent, Wiltshire, Buckinghamshire, -and Oxfordshire. A rude Cambridge ballad of the -time extols the pulling down of enclosures:</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_221">221</span></p> - -<div class="poetry-container"> -<div class="poetry"> - <div class="stanza"> - <div class="verse indent0">Cast hedge and ditch in the lake,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Fixed with many a stake;</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Though they be never so fast,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Yet asunder they are wrest.</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Sir, I think that this work</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Is as good as to build a kirk.</div> - </div> -</div> -</div> - -<p>In 1548 Protector Somerset had followed Wolsey’s -footsteps in issuing a proclamation for a royal commission -to inquire and report concerning enclosures, -and to give the names of all who kept more than -two thousand sheep or who had “taken from -any other their commons.”<a id="FNanchor_97" href="#Footnote_97" class="fnanchor">97</a> The commissioners -were also “to reform” any cases of the enclosing of -commons and highways, “without due recompense,” -which they might find; “and to the intent your -doings may proceed without all suspicion, and the -people conceive some good hope of reformation at -your hands, we would that as many of you as be -in any of the cases to be reformed, do first, for -example’s sake, begin to the reformation of yourselves.”</p> - -<p>Somerset’s ingenuous suggestion was naturally -disregarded by the commissioners, and beyond -making inquiries and publishing a report—to the -effect that in the counties of Suffolk, Essex, Hertford, -Kent, and Worcester nearly all the common -lands<a id="FNanchor_98" href="#Footnote_98" class="fnanchor">98</a> had been enclosed, while in Norfolk and -Northampton large enclosures had been made—the -commission of 1548 was as fruitless as its predecessors. -Somerset, however, got some reputation<span class="pagenum" id="Page_222">222</span> -by it as an enemy to the enclosures, and certainly -incurred the dislike of the landowners. But where -Wolsey, in the hey-day of power, had failed, there -was small chance of success for Somerset, with the -country in a state of anarchy, and the nation rent -and distracted by a violent revolution in the Church.</p> - -<p>The only strong movement to prevent the utter -downfall of the country-people was the Norfolk -Rising, which Robert Ket directed in the summer of -1549. It failed in the end, but for more than six -weeks the power of the landlords was broken round -Norwich, their enclosures were stopped, and the -hope of better things filled the hearts of the peasants.</p> - -<p>The rising began at Attleborough on 20th June -when Squire Green, of Wylby, set up fences and -hedges round the common lands at Harpham and -Attleborough, and the people, excited by news that -in Kent similar fences had been destroyed, proceeded -to pull them down. For the next fortnight -the revolt had neither leaders nor organization. -“There were secret meetings of men running hither -and thither, and then withdrawing themselves for -secret conferences, but at length they all began to -deal tumultuously and to rage openly.” On July 7th -the annual feast at Wymondham, in honour of the -translation of St. Thomas of Canterbury, brought -the country folk together from miles round; and at -the close of the fair they all set off to break down -the fences set up round the common lands at Hetherset -by one Sergeant Flowerdew.<a id="FNanchor_99" href="#Footnote_99" class="fnanchor">99</a></p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_223">223</span></p> - -<p>Flowerdew, unable to save his fences, proposed a -diversion. The Kets at Wymondham had made -enclosures, why shouldn’t the rioters deal with them -in similar fashion? Flowerdew actually paid over -40d. to encourage an attack on the Kets.</p> - -<p>Robert Ket and his brother were well-known men. -Both were craftsmen, Robert, a tanner, and William, -a butcher. They were landowners besides, and men -of substance and of old family, for it was said the -Kets had been in the land since the Norman Conquest. -Robert Ket held three manors from the -Earl of Warwick; his yearly income was put down -at £50, and his property valued at 1,000 marks. -Like other landowners, the Kets had made enclosures, -but on the arrival of the people from Hetherset -they at once declared themselves willing to -stand by the movement for freeing the land. Robert -Ket felt the misery of his neighbours. He saw that if -the revolt was to be anything more than a local riot -it must have necessary guidance, and his sympathies -were entirely on the democratic side. And so from -that time forward he gave up the quiet of a country -gentleman’s life at Wymondham for the strenuous -movement of an insurgent camp.</p> - -<p>To the appeal of the people for help, Ket -answered passionately, “I am ready, and will be -ready at all times, to do whatever, not only to -repress, but to subdue the power of great men. -Whatsoever lands I have enclosed shall again be -made common unto ye and all men, and my own -hands shall first perform it.”</p> - -<p>Then Robert Ket went on to commit himself -body and soul to the movement, resolved that the -peasants should not be left unaided in the struggle<span class="pagenum" id="Page_224">224</span> -they had begun, and willing to take upon himself the -burden and responsibility of leadership.</p> - -<p>“You shall have me, if you will, not only as a -companion, but as a captain; and in the doing of -the so great a work before us, not only as a fellow, -but for a leader, author and principal.”</p> - -<p>If the ambition which clutches at sovereignty and -rule is despicable, even more despicable is the weakness -which refuses to take command at times of -peril.</p> - -<p>To Robert Ket and his brother there was no -promise of the world’s honour and glory should the -rising be successful. At the best would be the -satisfaction of a battle fought and won for the -deliverance of long-suffering peasants. At the worst -the laying down of life in a good cause, as Geoffrey -Litster and many a Norfolk man had done in bygone -days.</p> - -<p>Robert Ket’s leadership was acclaimed with enthusiasm, -nor was it ever disputed throughout the -rising. In this, the last of the great popular risings -in England, the Norfolk men were as loyal to their -leader as the men of Kent were to Wat Tyler and -Jack Cade. And in each case that loyalty had ample -justification.</p> - -<p>There were but a thousand men involved when -the rising began, but under Ket’s command the -movement passed rapidly from the fluid “running -hither and thither” condition of the first fortnight, -and became the march of an organized army.</p> - -<p>On July 10th, two days after Ket took command, -this army was on the road to Norwich, and after -crossing the river at Cringleford, lay encamped at -Eaton Wood.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_225">225</span></p> - -<p>It is plain from Ket’s speeches to his men, and -from “The Rebels’ Complaint,” which he published at -this time, that to Robert Ket the rising was not only -to put down enclosures, its aim was rather to strike at -the root of the evil and to put an end to the ascendancy -of the landlord class, and make England a free -commonwealth. Either the people must put down -landlords, or very soon the landlords would have the -whole land in their possession, and the people would -be in hopeless and helpless subjection. Had not -an act of parliament been actually passed making -“slaves” of the landless men, dispossessed by -enclosures? When parliament was establishing -slavery it was time for honest men to be up and -doing, rousing the people to action.</p> - -<p>Ket’s speech at Eaton Wood is a fierce attack on -the landlords, and a reminder that having ventured -so far, the peasants must advance yet further:</p> - -<div class="blockquot"> - -<p>Now are ye overtopped and trodden down by gentlemen, -and put out of possibility ever to recover foot. Rivers of -riches ran into the coffers of your landlords, while you are -pair’d to the quick, and fed upon pease and oats like beasts. -You are fleeced by these landlords for their private benefit, -and as well kept under by the public burdens of State wherein -while the richer sort favour themselves, ye are gnawn to the -very bones. Your tyrannous masters often implead, arrest, -and cast you into prison, so that they may the more terrify and -torture you in your minds, and wind your necks more surely -under their arms. And then they palliate these pilleries with -the fair pretence of law and authority! Fine workmen, I -warrant you, are this law and authority, who can do their -dealings so closely that men can only discover them for your -undoing. Harmless counsels are fit for tame fools; for you -who have already stirred there is no hope but in adventuring -boldly.</p></div> - -<p>In “The Rebels’ Complaint,” the same note is<span class="pagenum" id="Page_226">226</span> -struck. Only by taking up arms, and mixing -Heaven and earth together, can the intolerable -oppression of the landlords be ended.</p> - -<div class="blockquot"> - -<p>The pride of great men is now intolerable, but our condition -miserable.</p> - -<p>These abound in delights; and compassed with the fullness -of all things, and consumed with vain pleasures, thirst only -after gain, inflamed with the burning delights of their desires.</p> - -<p>But ourselves, almost killed with labour and watching, do -nothing all our life long but sweat, mourn, hunger, and thirst. -Which things, though they seem miserable and base (as they -are indeed most miserable), yet might be borne howsoever, -if they which are drowned in the boiling seas of evil delights -did not pursue the calamities and miseries of other men with -too much insolent hatred. But now both we and our miserable -condition is a laughing stock to these most proud and -insolent men—who are consumed with ease and idleness. -Which thing (as it may) grieveth us so sore and inflicteth such -a stain of evil report, so that nothing is more grievous for us -to remember, nor more unjust to suffer.</p> - -<p>The present condition of possessing land seemeth miserable -and slavish—holding it all at the pleasure of great men; not -freely, but by prescription, and, as it were, at the will and -pleasure of the lord. For as soon as any man offend any of -these gorgeous gentlemen, he is put out, deprived, and thrust -from all his goods.</p> - -<p>How long shall we suffer so great oppression to go unrevenged?</p> - -<p>For so far as they, the gentlemen, now gone in cruelty and -covetousness, that they are not content only to take all by -violence away from us, and to consume in riot and effeminate -delights what they get by force and villainy, but they must -also suck in a manner our blood and marrow out of our veins -and bones.</p> - -<p>The common pastures left by our predecessors for our relief -and our children are taken away.</p> - -<p>The lands which in the memory of our fathers were -common, those are ditched and hedged in and made several; -the pastures are enclosed, and we shut out. Whatsoever -fowls of the air or fishes of the water, and increase of the -earth—all these do they devour, consume, and swallow up;<span class="pagenum" id="Page_227">227</span> -yea, nature doth not suffice to satisfy their lusts, but they -seek out new devices, and, as it were, forms of pleasures to -embalm and perfume themselves, to abound in pleasant -smells, to pour in sweet things to sweet things. Finally, -they seek from all places all things for their desire and the -provocation of lust. While we in the meantime eat herbs -and roots, and languish with continual labour, and yet are -envied that we live, breathe, and enjoy common air!</p> - -<p>Shall they, as they have brought hedges about common -pastures, enclose with their intolerable lusts also all the commodities -and pleasures of this life, which Nature, the parent -of us all, would have common, and bringeth forth every day, -for us, as well as for them?</p> - -<p>We can no longer bear so much, so great, and so cruel -injury; neither can we with quiet minds behold so great -covetousness, excess, and pride of the nobility. We will -rather take arms, and mix Heaven and earth together, than -endure so great cruelty.</p> - -<p>Nature hath provided for us, as well as for them; hath -given us a body and a soul, and hath not envied us other -things. While we have the same form, and the same condition -of birth together with them, why should they have a -life so unlike unto ours, and differ so far from us in calling?</p> - -<p>We see that things have now come to extremities, and we -will prove the extremity. We will rend down hedges, fill up -ditches, and make a way for every man into the common -pasture. Finally, we will lay all even with the ground, which -they, no less wickedly than cruelly and covetously, have -enclosed. Neither will we suffer ourselves any more to be -pressed with such burdens against our wills, nor endure so -great shame, since living out our days under such inconveniences -we should leave the commonwealth unto our -posterity—mourning, and miserable, and much worse than -we received it of our fathers.</p> - -<p>Wherefore we will try all means; neither will we ever rest -until we have brought things to our own liking.</p> - -<p>We desire liberty and an indifferent (or equal) use of all -things. This will we have. Otherwise these tumults and -our lives shall only be ended together.</p></div> - -<p>Revolutionary as this manifesto is, Robert Ket is -seen all through the rising exerting his authority on<span class="pagenum" id="Page_228">228</span> -behalf of law and good order, curbing anarchy and -checking ferocity in the rebel camp.</p> - -<p>Only one day was spent at Eaton Wood. Ket’s -plan was to advance to Mousehold, a wide stretch of -high, well-wooded ground to the east of Norwich. -Here the camp was fixed on July 12th, the river -having been crossed at Hailsdon, and a night’s halt -called at Drayton—for the mayor of Norwich, -Thomas Cod, positively refused to allow the rebels -to pass through the city. Ket, anxious to unite -citizens and peasants in a common cause, willingly -avoided altercation, and Cod, alarmed at the rising, -and unable to dissuade the insurgents from their -enterprise, was careful to refrain from all hostile -demonstrations. Cod’s one purpose was to exclude -Ket’s army from the city, and to accomplish this he -kept on friendly terms with Ket, even while appealing -to the government to send down troops to suppress -the rising. Ket’s purpose was to break down landlord -rule in Norfolk, extend the area of revolt, and to get -the king to attend to the complaints of his subjects.</p> - -<p>Ket’s company at Mousehold numbered no more -than 2,600 on July 12th; but the ringing of bells -and the firing of beacons brought in thousands of -homeless men. At the end of a week 20,000 men -were enrolled under the banner of revolt, and now -Ket had all his work to do in maintaining discipline -and in arranging for provisions for the camp.</p> - -<p>It is clear Robert Ket was the right man for a -leader.<a id="FNanchor_100" href="#Footnote_100" class="fnanchor">100</a> The people trusted him and obeyed his<span class="pagenum" id="Page_229">229</span> -orders. Cod and two other reputable citizens of -Norwich—Aldrich, an alderman, and Watson, a -preacher—attended the camp daily, and along with -Ket and his brother William sat under a great tree, -known as the Oak of Reformation, and administered -justice. The 20,000 hungry, disinherited men -carried out in as orderly way as they could the -instructions they received.</p> - -<p>Ket’s first business was to send to the king a -plain statement of “Requests and Demands.” He -knew what was wanted for rural England, and refused -to admit that his purpose was disloyal or that -his conduct was rebellion.</p> - -<p>The “Requests” were twenty-nine, and they contained -a full statement of the grievances of the -country folk. The chief requests were for the stoppage -of enclosures, the enactment of fair rents, the -restoration of common fishing rights in sea and -river, the appointment of resident clergymen in -every parish to preach and instruct the children, and -the free election or official appointment of local -“commissioners” for the enforcement of the laws. -One significant prayer was “that all bond men may -be made free, for God made all free with His precious -bloodshedding.”</p> - -<p>This document, which was signed by Ket, Cod -and Aldrich,<a id="FNanchor_101" href="#Footnote_101" class="fnanchor">101</a> was answered by the arrival of a -herald from the king with a promise that parliament -should meet in October to consider their complaints, -and that something should be done to redress their<span class="pagenum" id="Page_230">230</span> -grievances, if in the meantime they would quietly -disperse to their homes.</p> - -<p>All this was too vague and uncertain for Ket. -Not till some definite step was taken by king or -parliament to end the present distress was he willing -to lay down his arms and bid his followers disperse. -He had put his hand to the plough, and no turning -back was possible while the evils he had risen -against flourished unchecked.</p> - -<p>So Ket put his house in order on Mousehold -Heath. The Oak of Reformation was boarded over -“with rafters,” and to this place of summary justice -landowners were brought and tried for making -enclosures. Two men were chosen by the commons -from every hundred to assist in the work of administration, -and all the people were strictly admonished -“to beware of robbing, spoiling and other evil -demeanours.” As the army had to be victualled, -Ket sent out men armed with his official warrant -requiring the country houses to provide cattle and -corn, “so that no violence or injury be done to any -honest or poor man,” and this requisition brought in -guns, gunpowder and money, in addition to “all -kinds of victual.” The smaller farmers sent their contributions -“with much private good will,” while on -the landowners a great fear had fallen, and it seemed -that the day of their might was passed.</p> - -<p>A royal messenger bearing commissions of the -peace to various country gentlemen falling into the -hands of Ket, he was at once deprived of these -documents and sent on his way. Ket filled in the -names of men who had joined the rising on these -commissions, and these new magistrates gave assistance -in maintaining order.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_231">231</span></p> - -<p>Cod and Aldrich were shocked at the arrest of -landowners. “Notwithstanding were divers gentlemen -taken and brought to prison, some in Norwich -Prison, some in Norwich Castle and some in Surrey -Place.”—St. Leonard’s Hill.</p> - -<p>In every case the lives of the landowners were -spared. Stern and unmoved by respect of persons -was Robert Ket, but there was no taint of cruelty, -meanness or bloodthirstiness in his rule. It was not -his purpose to raise civil war or leave a festering -sore of hatred by putting his neighbours to death. -To destroy the power of the landlords and ensure -the right of an evicted people to live on the land was -the aim of the Norfolk Rising.</p> - -<p>At the end of the first week relations became -strained between Cod and the army on Mousehold.</p> - -<p>It was the custom to have prayers every day under -the Oak, and Dr. Conyers, vicar of St. Martin’s, -Norwich, acted as chaplain. “Grave persons and -good divines” would come out from the city and -preach under the Oak, and on one occasion Dr. -Matthew Parker, a Norwich man, who had been -chaplain to Anne Boleyn, and who was to become -Archbishop of Canterbury under Elizabeth, filled -the pulpit. Parker’s sermon, full of rebukes on the -rising and praise of Edward VI., was so obnoxious, -for “he touched them for their living so near that -they went near to touch him for his life,” that -Conyers only prevented a riot by striking up the -“Te Deum” in English, and during the singing -Parker withdrew “to sing his part at home.”</p> - -<p>Matthew Parker was a great man in Norwich (his -brother Thomas became mayor), and the incivility -he had received at Mousehold gave great offence.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_232">232</span> -Cod and the aldermen sent off Leonard Sutherton, -a respectable burgess, to report to the king’s council -the doings in Norfolk, and Sutherton brought back -from London a royal herald, who went out to Mousehold -and promised the king’s pardon to all that -would depart quietly to their homes.</p> - -<p>The people cheered and shouted “God save the -king’s majesty,” but to Ket this talk of pardon was -altogether beside the mark. With some dignity he -informed the herald that “kings and princes are -wont to pardon wicked persons, not innocent and -just men,” and added, “I trust I have done nothing -but what belongs to the duty of a true subject.”</p> - -<p>The herald then called on John Petibone, the -sword-bearer of Norwich, who with other civic -notables was standing by, to arrest Robert Ket. -But the thing was impossible. Ket had 20,000 men -at his back, and the sword-bearer was supported by -half-a-dozen elderly members of the town council. -All that could be done was to escort the herald into -the city, leaving Ket to his own devices.</p> - -<p>There was no more peace between the camp at -Mousehold and the city of Norwich after this. -Hitherto Mayor Cod had retained the keys of the -city, and his authority had been respected by Ket. -At the same time Ket’s men had gone freely to and -fro throughout the city without let or hindrance. -Now all was changed. First the landowners were -being arrested and despoiled, then the learned -doctor, Matthew Parker (was he not master of -Corpus Christi College, Cambridge?) had been -interrupted and hooted, and now a king’s herald was -contemned! Cod ordered the city gates to be made -fast, commanded Ket’s prisoners to be released, and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_233">233</span> -placed the city’s ordnance in the meadows by the -river. This amounted to a declaration of war, and -Ket replied by bringing up his guns.</p> - -<p>The night of July 21st was spent “in fearful shot -on both sides,” but little injury was done. For -Ket’s guns brought “more fear than hurt to the -city,” and “the city ordnance did not much annoy -the enemy.”</p> - -<p>In the morning Ket sought to renew peace by -asking permission for the transport of victuals through -the city, “as the custom was of late,” and warning -the mayor that refusal would provoke fire and sword.</p> - -<p>Cod refused permission, and Ket opened fire on -the city gates. But “for lack of powder and want -of skill in the gunners the ordnance was spent to -small and little purpose.” A desperate encounter -followed, with bows and arrows for the chief weapons -of offence. Boys from Mousehold, “naked and unarmed, -would pluck the arrows from their bodies -and hand them to the rebels to fire at the city.” At -Bishopsgate a number of men swam the river and -forced their way into the city, and on the night of -July 22nd Norwich was in the hands of Robert -Ket.</p> - -<p>No reprisals followed. The herald made a last -attempt to induce the insurgents to disperse by promising -pardons, and was greeted derisively. “Depart -with a plague on thee!” they cried. “To the -devil with these idle promises. We shall only be -oppressed afterwards.” Forthwith the herald did -depart, with eight pounds of gold in his pocket from -the mayor.</p> - -<p>Ket retired to Mousehold, the passage through -the city having been secured, and Cod accompanied<span class="pagenum" id="Page_234">234</span> -him, leaving a deputy, Augustine Steward, who -lived in the big house in Tombland, opposite Erfingham -Gate, to act as mayor.</p> - -<p>Judgment went on as before under the Oak of -Reformation, and people clamoured for the landowners -to be hanged. “So hated at this time was -the name of worship or gentleman, that the basest -of the people, burning with more than hostile hatred, -desired to extinguish, and utterly cut off, not only -the gentry themselves, but if it were possible, all -the offspring and hope of them.” (Nevylle.)</p> - -<p>But Ket was as strong in his mercy as in his -resistance to the land enclosers. The gentry were -imprisoned, and made to pay tribute: their fences -were pulled down, but their lives were spared, and -no hurt befell them. In the city Steward, no friend -to Ket, was left undisturbed in authority.</p> - -<p>At the end of July came William Parr, Marquis -of Northampton, with 1,500 soldiers, mostly Italian -mercenaries, and a number of country squires with -their retainers, to put down the rising. Steward at -once admitted him to the city; but Northampton—Henry -VIII.’s brother-in-law—was neither a soldier -nor statesman, and after two days’ hard fighting he -fled from Norwich, utterly defeated.</p> - -<p>Ket’s men were badly armed, but they had -numbers on their side, and they fought for freedom -and for very life. They swam the river, as before, -and forced an entrance. “Half dead, drowned in -their own and other men’s blood, they would not -give over; but till the last gasp, when their hands -could scarce hold their weapons, would strike at -their adversaries.”</p> - -<p>Lord Sheffield fell in the fight on August 1st,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_235">235</span> -killed by a stalwart rebel—one Fulke, a butcher and -carpenter by trade—and some hundred of Ket’s men -lay dead. The city suffered. Several houses and -city gates were fired, and only a heavy rain prevented -the flames from spreading. (This same rain -drove many of the rebels to take refuge in the -cathedral, much to the annoyance of the dean and -chapter.)</p> - -<p>And now for three weeks Ket had to take charge -of Norwich as well as of Mousehold camp, for it was -impossible to trust Steward. Many of the wealthier -townsmen hastened away to Cambridge and London, -leaving their wives and families behind. Trade was -at an end.</p> - -<div class="blockquot"> - -<p>The state of the city began to be in most miserable case, -so that all men looked for utter destruction, both of life and -goods. Then the remnant that feared God, seeing the -plague thus of sorrow increasing, fell to prayer and holy life, -and wished but to see the day that after they might talk -thereover, looking never to recover help again, nor to see -their city prosper.</p> - -<p>The women resorted twice a day to prayer, and the servants -(except what must needs stay at home) did the same. -When Ket’s ambassadors were sent to any private house they -were fain to bake or brew or do any work for the camp, else -they were carried as traitors to the Oak. As for trading, -there was none in the city, people being forced to hide up -their choicest goods, and happy were they that had the -faithfullest servants.</p> - -<p>They that did keep open their shops were robbed and -spoiled, and their goods were measured by the arm’s length -and dispersed among the rebels; their children they set -away for fear of fire. I, the writer (who was then above -twenty-two years of age, and an eye-witness) was present -after prayer during this dolorous state, when people met and -bewailed the miserable state they were in. (Sutherton.)</p></div> - -<p>But for all their misery the tradesmen of Norwich<span class="pagenum" id="Page_236">236</span> -were in no fear for their lives. The city had done -its best to thwart the rising, but Ket treated it -generously, allowing neither pillage nor bloodshed—though -he did not scruple to take what goods were -necessary for his army.<a id="FNanchor_102" href="#Footnote_102" class="fnanchor">102</a> It was beyond the power -of man to prevent all thieving during those first -few weeks of August, for the civic magistracy was -gone, and Ket had large responsibilities on his -hands.</p> - -<p>The hope that the rising would become general -turned to disappointment in the weeks that passed -after the flight of Northampton. In Suffolk a -number of men rose at Ket’s call, and made an -unsuccessful attempt to take Yarmouth. A small -camp set up at Rising Chase was dispersed, but for -a fortnight the peasants gathered at Watton, and -stopped the passages of the river at Thetford and -Brandon Ferry. For want of leadership they then -came on to Mousehold. At Hingham a rising was -put down by Sir Edmund Knyvett. And while Ket -waited, hoping against hope for better news, the -fugitive citizens from Norwich had already persuaded -Somerset to send down an army to crush -the revolt.</p> - -<p>On August 21st the Earl of Warwick, with 14,000 -troops, reached Cambridge, and three days later was -at Norwich.</p> - -<p>Warwick, Henry VIII.’s high chamberlain, the -son of Dudley, Henry VII.’s minister, was a man of -war and resolution. Sent down to suppress the -rising he did his work, but not till he had tried an<span class="pagenum" id="Page_237">237</span> -appeal to the peasants to disperse without further -trouble.</p> - -<p>Halting outside the city, Warwick sent a herald -to proclaim pardon to all who should now return to -their homes, and, as before, the people shouted, -“God save King Edward!” Ket himself talked -with the herald on the high ground near Bishop’s -Gate.</p> - -<p>Negotiations ended abruptly. Some ill-mannered -boy gave an indecent and offensive salute to the -herald, and was shot dead by an arrow from the -herald’s escort. At once the cry of “treachery” -was raised by the people, and all talk of peace was -at an end. While the herald tried to persuade Ket -to come to the Earl of Warwick under a flag of -truce, the rebels gathered round their leader and -besought him not to forsake them. To Ket there -could be sure reliance on royal promises of pardon, -and no surrender of the charge he had undertaken. -His reply to the herald was to retire on Mousehold -and prepare for battle.</p> - -<p>Warwick at once entered the city, and began the -business of pacification by promptly hanging sixty -men in the Market Place, by Norwich Castle, -“without hearing the cause”; and by issuing a proclamation -that all who were out of doors would -receive similar treatment. Then came a mishap, for -the greater part of Warwick’s artillery fell into Ket’s -hands. The drivers of the gun-carriages, entering -the city after the soldiers, by St. Bennet’s Gate on -the west, and ignorant of the way, actually passed -out at Bishop’s Gate on the east on the very road -towards Mousehold, and were quickly taken. Ket -had now the advantage in ordnance, and there was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_238">238</span> -fighting in the city all Sunday, August 25th. So -uncertain was the issue that the burgesses feared -Warwick would suffer Northampton’s fate, and -prayed him to depart without further loss. But -Warwick, waiting for reinforcements, and knowing -that 1,400 German mercenaries were close at hand, -was not the man to beat an ignominious retreat.</p> - -<p>The hireling “lanznechts” arrived next day, and -on Tuesday, August 27th, came the fatal battle.</p> - -<p>Instead of remaining at Mousehold, where a -strong resistance might have been made, the rebels -decided to march out boldly from their camp and -meet the king’s army in the open country that lay -between Mousehold Heath and the city. An old -song was recalled, which, it seemed, foretold victory -in such a case:</p> - -<div class="poetry-container"> -<div class="poetry"> - <div class="stanza"> - <div class="verse indent0">The country gnoffes (churls), Hob, Dick, and Rick,</div> - <div class="verse indent2">With clubs and clouted shoon,</div> - <div class="verse indent4">Shall fill the vale</div> - <div class="verse indent4">Of Dussindale</div> - <div class="verse indent2">With slaughtered bodies soon.</div> - </div> -</div> -</div> - -<p>But the country churls were to be the slaughtered, -and not the slaughterers.</p> - -<p>Warwick marched out by the north-east gate of -St. Martin-at-the-Oak, and for the last time a herald -promised pardon to all who would surrender. But -the hangings in the market place had destroyed all -confidence in such proclamations, and the answer to -the herald was that they “perceived this pardon to -be nothing else but a cask full of ropes and halters.”</p> - -<p>Ket’s judgment failed him utterly on that last -day of the rising. On the strength of an irrelevant -old song he allowed his army to go to its doom unchecked,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_239">239</span> -and at the very time when good generalship -was wanted above all other things, Robert Ket -seems to have lost his nerve, and to have been -struck by some paralysis of the will, as though -conscious of impending ruin.</p> - -<p>The peasants poured down into the valley, and -into the meadows beyond Magdalen and Pockthorp -Gates, and fought with desperate courage, but they -were simply cut to pieces by the professional soldiery. -At four o’clock in the afternoon it was all over, the -defeat utter and complete, and Robert Ket and his -brother were in flight.</p> - -<p>The remains of the rebel army laid down their -arms, when Warwick himself offered pardon in the -king’s name to those who would surrender.</p> - -<p>The rising was at an end. The foreign mercenaries -of the crown had triumphed over English -peasants. Robert Ket was taken the same night at -Swannington, eight miles north of Norwich. He -had ridden away from the battle when the field was -lost, but horse and rider were too tired to proceed -further. Taking refuge in a barn, he was recognized -by some men unloading a wagon of corn and seized. -The farmer’s wife “rated him for his conduct, but he -only prayed her to be quiet, and to give him meat.” -That same night William Ket was taken, and the -two brothers were delivered to the lord lieutenant of -the county, and by him carried to London to be -tried for their lives.</p> - -<p>At Mousehold Warwick proved the worth of the -pardons he had given by first having nine of the -bravest of the peasants hanged, drawn, and quartered -under the Oak of Reformation, and distributing -their bodies in the city; and then by hanging 300<span class="pagenum" id="Page_240">240</span> -prisoners on trees, and then forty-nine more at the -Market Cross in Norwich. The country gentlemen -of Norfolk, backed by their wealthier citizens, called -for more executions, till Warwick turned with disgust -from the vindictive clamour of these bloodthirsty -civilians, and pointed out in impatient reproof that -no one would be left “to plough and harrow over -the lands” if all the peasants were massacred.</p> - -<p>And now the king’s authority having been re-established, -a public service of thanksgiving was -held in the church of St. Peter, Mancroft, and -August 27th was ordered to be observed henceforth -as “Thanksgiving Day” in Norwich. (This was -done by prayers and sermon until 1667. In the -grammar school, during Elizabeth’s reign, an account -of the rising—<cite xml:lang="la" lang="la">De Furoribus Norfolciensum</cite>, -written in Latin by Nevylle, and violently anti-popular -in expression—was ordered to be used as a -text book in place of the usual classics, and was so -used for some years.)</p> - -<p>On September 7th Warwick returned to London.<a id="FNanchor_103" href="#Footnote_103" class="fnanchor">103</a> -In November Robert and William Ket, after lying -in the Tower for two months, were brought to trial. -They offered no defence for what they had done: for -having borne arms without the king’s permission, -and for having striven to stop the robbery and -oppression of the peasant without the authority of -king and parliament.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_241">241</span></p> - -<p>On November 26th they were found guilty of high -treason, their property confiscated, and they were -condemned to death. On November 29th they were -delivered out of the custody of the Tower to the -high sheriff of Norfolk, and on December 1st the -Kets were again in Norwich.</p> - -<p>It was winter, and hope was dead. The last -great rising of the English peasantry had failed, -crushed without pity, and the leaders of the army of -revolt, who had judged it better to give up ease and -worldly honour rather than acquiesce dumbly in the -enslavement of their poorer neighbours, were to die -as traitors.<a id="FNanchor_104" href="#Footnote_104" class="fnanchor">104</a> On December 7th the executions were -carried out, and Robert Ket was hanged in chains -outside Norwich Castle, while William Ket was -taken to Wymondham (where he held the manor of -Chossell—Church lands, bought years earlier from -the Earl of Warwick), and there hanged in chains -from the parish church.</p> - -<p>The property of the Kets was duly taken by the -servants of the crown, and the bodies of the rebel -leaders swung in the wind—to remind unthinking -men of the reward of rebellion, of the fate of all -who challenge, without success, the arms of government.</p> - -<p>The Norfolk Rising was the last great movement -of the English people in social revolt. Riots we -have known even in our times, and mob violence,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_242">242</span> -but no such rising as those led by Wat Tyler, by -Cade, and by Ket has England seen since the year -1549.</p> - -<p>The country people sunk into hopeless poverty -and permanent degradation under Edward VI. and -Elizabeth, and with the rejection by the government -of papal authority, the supremacy of the crown and -of the ministers of the crown was established.</p> - -<p>In the nineteenth century, when the working -people in town and country once more bestirred -themselves at the call of freedom, their wiser leaders -advised political and not revolutionary methods of -action, and the advice has been followed.</p> - -<p>But if the year 1549 marks the end of organized -democratic resistance to intolerable misgovernment, -the coming centuries were to see the rise of the -middle class with the insistent demand for the predominance -of that class in the parliament of the -nation, and the incurable belief that in a popularly -elected House of Commons resided all the safeguards -of civil and religious liberty.</p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<h2 id="hdr_11">Eliot, Hampden, Pym, and the -Supremacy of the Commons.<br /> - -<span class="subhead">1625–1643</span></h2> -</div> - -<p><span class="smcap">Authorities</span>: S. R. Gardiner—<cite>History of England</cite>, -<cite>History of Great Civil War</cite>, <cite>History of Commonwealth -and Protectorate</cite>; Clarendon—<cite>History of the -Great Rebellion</cite>;, John Forster—<cite>Life of Sir John -Eliot</cite>, <cite>Life of Hampden</cite>, <cite>Life of Pym</cite>, <cite>The Grand -Remonstrance</cite>, <cite>Arrest of the Five Members</cite>; Nugent—<cite>Memorials -for Life of Hampden</cite>; <cite>Calendar of State -Papers</cite>; <cite>House of Commons’ Journals</cite>.</p> - -<div id="ip_245" class="figcenter"> - <img src="images/i_p244.jpg" width="1543" height="1894" alt="" /> - <div class="caption"><p>SIR JOHN ELIOT</p> - -<p>(<cite>From a Steel Engraving by William Holl.</cite>)</p></div></div> -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_245">245</span></p> - -<h3 class="left">ELIOT, HAMPDEN, PYM,<br /> -AND THE SUPREMACY<br /> -OF THE COMMONS. -<span class="subhead">1625–1643</span></h3> - -<p class="drop-cap"><span class="firstword">John Eliot</span>, John Hampden, John Pym—by -the work of these men comes the supremacy -of the House of Commons in the government -of England.</p> - -<p>All three are country gentlemen of good estate, of -high principle and of some learning.<a id="FNanchor_105" href="#Footnote_105" class="fnanchor">105</a> They are men -of religious convictions, of courage and resolution, -and of blameless personal character. Two of them—Eliot -and Hampden—are content to die for the -cause of good government.</p> - -<p>The strong rule of Elizabeth left a difficult legacy -of government to James I. The despotism of the -queen had been forgiven in the success of her State -policy; and if she had no high opinion of parliament, -Elizabeth had ministers who fairly represented the -mind of the English middle class. Elizabeth’s absolutism -in Church and State was the direct following -of Henry VIII., and only at the very close of her -reign was it threatened by the discontent of parliament. -With a shrewd instinct for popularity Elizabeth -at once yielded. Like her father, she saw the -importance of retaining parliament on the side of the -crown and making it the instrument of the royal<span class="pagenum" id="Page_246">246</span> -will. There was no idea in the Tudor mind of -parliament sharing the government with the crown. -The business of the House of Commons of Elizabeth -was to express its opinion and then decree the proposals -of the crown. “Liberty of speech was granted -in respect of the aye or no, but not that everybody -should speak what he listed.” (1592.)</p> - -<p>In religion Elizabeth had done her worst to exterminate -the Roman Catholic faith, and by the fierceness -of her persecution had kindled undying enthusiasm -for the old beliefs and worship. But forty -years of repression did their work, and a generation -arose which only knew Catholicism as the faith of a -proscribed and unpatriotic sect, who denied the absolute -sovereignty of the crown and had another -sovereign at Rome—the religion of Spain—popery, -in short: a faith worse than Mahomedanism or -heathenism—the scarlet woman of the Apocalypse—according -to the fierce Puritan expounders of the -Bible, and not to be counted as Christianity. That -this very Roman Catholicism—so hateful because -the penal laws kept it hidden and unknown, and -because it was the religion of Spain, then the national -enemy—had been the religion of all England for -centuries, and that under it the earliest charters of -public liberty had been wrung from the crown, and -the principle of a representative parliament established, -were facts uncontemplated.</p> - -<p>But Elizabeth, while persecuting Roman Catholics, -had left in the Book of Common Prayer of the -Church of England a sanction for ceremonial and -for episcopal ordination, and a body of doctrine which -were to be interpreted under the Stuarts by certain -Anglican divines as witnesses to Catholicism. Such<span class="pagenum" id="Page_247">247</span> -interpretation was to be found in Elizabeth’s reign as -a pious opinion. With Laud it was an active principle, -and it brought him to the scaffold. The -Elizabethan bishops in the main were thoroughly -Protestant, the queen was the head of the Church of -England, and the ritual of the Church prescribed by -her was reduced to a simplicity that average Protestants -could accept.</p> - -<p>If Elizabeth burnt anabaptists and hanged other -nonconformists, her excuse was that the Church of -England was sufficiently Protestant to include all -well-affected persons. The extreme Puritans whom -she persecuted had this in common with the Roman -Catholics, that neither accepted the absolute supremacy -of the crown, and the best Puritan teaching -in England, even when it counselled conformity to -the Established Church, was creating a mind and -temper that only found expression in the Commonwealth.</p> - -<p>James I. came to the throne in 1603 prepared to -carry on the Tudor absolutism. He failed because -he had neither Elizabeth’s ministers nor her knowledge -of the English country landowners. James -never realised that Spain was the popular enemy, -that a discontent had suddenly grown up in parliament -in the last years of Elizabeth’s reign, and that -the English landowners—in many cases from their -inherited possession of the old Church lands—were -generally bitterly hostile to the Roman Catholic -religion. James was tolerant in religion, and not -inclined to press Elizabeth’s penal laws against -Roman Catholics, and this very toleration brought him -under the dislike of the country party. He thought -he could disregard the opinion of parliament and he<span class="pagenum" id="Page_248">248</span> -found that while a House of Commons submitted -to a despotism when the country was governed -by a strong queen, it would not put up with the -follies and extravagance of the Duke of Buckingham.</p> - -<p>James died before the strength of the growing -movement for parliamentary government was seen. -Charles who was no more tyrannical than his father, -but even more blind to the signs of the times, fell -before that parliamentary movement—a movement -which outraged all the traditions of Tudor government—and -with his fall brought down the throne, the -House of Lords, and the Established Church. By -his inability to understand the House of Commons, -by his support of the Anglican movement towards -Catholicism in the Church of England, and by the -mistakes of his ministers, Charles ripened the -desire for constitutional monarchy till the desire was -irresistible.</p> - -<p>John Eliot gave forcible utterance to this desire, -and died in prison for his speech. John Pym -carried on the work till the sword of civil war was -drawn. John Hampden, “the noblest type of -parliamentary opposition,” was content to back Pym -as he had earlier backed Eliot, and to die on Chalgrove -Field. Brought up to regard as an alien -creed the old belief in papal supremacy in religion, -unable to accept the new doctrine of the Church of -England that the king was supreme by divine right -(a doctrine begotten by the Tudors and dying with -the Stuarts), Eliot, Hampden, and Pym were all of -the same Puritan type which found its authority in -the individual conscience.</p> - -<p>Eliot was less afflicted than his colleagues by the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_249">249</span> -theological Protestantism of the age.<a id="FNanchor_106" href="#Footnote_106" class="fnanchor">106</a> First and -last he was the straightforward country gentleman, -with exalted views on the sacred responsibility of -civil government, and a high standard of personal -honour. For Eliot there was no nobler sphere of -work for an Englishman than the House of -Commons, and his example has not been without -followers. Seneca and Cicero are on his lips, as the -later Puritans had the Bible on theirs, and his -eloquence marks the beginning of parliamentary -oratory. With a strong and clear view of constitutional -government, Eliot was no republican; he held -to the notion that the king must depend on the -decisions of parliament. Time was to show that -this notion, in the event of a collision between king -and parliament, was to make parliament the predominant -partner.</p> - -<p>On his first entry into the House of Commons as -member for St. Germans, in 1614, Eliot was the -friend of Buckingham—whom he had met as a youth -abroad—and on Buckingham’s rise to the lord high -admiralship Eliot was knighted and became vice-admiral -of Devon.</p> - -<p>The fidelity of his service to the State as vice-admiral -brought an unpleasant experience of the -will of princes. Grappling with the scourge of -piracy which afflicted the seaports and shipping<span class="pagenum" id="Page_250">250</span> -trade of the West of England, Eliot accomplished -the arrest of Nutt, a notorious sea-robber. But -Nutt had friends in high places, and Eliot found -himself lodged in the Marshalsea prison over the -business. He was released on Buckingham’s return -from the continent, for the charges were absurd, -and in 1624 returned to the House of Commons as -member for Newport. Two years later Eliot was -estranged from Buckingham—convinced that the -favourite of the king was an evil counsellor—and -had become the recognized leader of the House of -Commons. Once assured in his mind that Buckingham -was responsible for the policy of the king, -Eliot became his implacable opponent. For the -policy of the crown in not making war upon Spain, -in relaxing the penal laws against Roman Catholics, -and for the mismanagement of the war on the continent -in support of the Protestants, Eliot held -Buckingham responsible. In answer to the demand -of Charles for money in 1626, Eliot insisted that an -inquiry into past disasters should precede supply, -and that Buckingham should be impeached. Not -the king but his minister is to blame, Eliot maintained, -for all that was wrong in the State, and this very -speech strikes the note of the campaign that was -beginning. Buckingham was not responsible to -Charles alone, in the eyes of Eliot and his friends, -but also to parliament.<a id="FNanchor_107" href="#Footnote_107" class="fnanchor">107</a></p> - -<p>Charles, quite unable to fathom the depth of the -parliamentary discontent, or to note the strength of -the current against absolutism, fell back upon the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_251">251</span> -old Tudor doctrine of sovereignty, the doctrine of -the high Anglican party in the Church of England, -that the king was responsible for his acts to God -alone. “Parliaments are altogether in my calling,” -he replies to the House of Commons.</p> - -<p>Only twenty-five years had passed since Bacon -had declared, “the Queen hath both enlarging and -restraining power: she may set at liberty things -restrained by Statute, and may restrain things which -be at liberty.” Twenty-three years more were -to see monarchy abolished and the king beheaded. -Eliot, standing midway between Bacon and Bradshaw, -cleaves to the theory of constitutional government -and persists in the impeachment of a minister in -whom parliament had no confidence.</p> - -<p>The prologue of impeachment declared in the -plainest language the responsibility of the king’s -ministers to parliament, and the responsibility of -parliament to the nation: “The laws of England -have taught us that kings cannot command ill or -unlawful things, and whatsoever ill event succeed, -the executioners of such designs must answer for -them.”</p> - -<p>And now the issue was fairly set, and the battle -begun between Charles and the House of Commons. -In that year, 1626, no man in England could foretell -the result.</p> - -<p>Charles, ill-advised to the end, believed he could -overawe the Commons by a display of might, and -was beaten. Twice he had Eliot arrested before the -final imprisonment which ended Eliot’s life.</p> - -<p>The loyalty of the House of Commons to its -leader compelled Charles to release Eliot, after sending -him to the Tower for his attack on Buckingham.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_252">252</span> -Then dissolving parliament in June, 1626, and -falling back on a forced loan, the king was met -by wide refusals, and Eliot, with Hampden and -others, suffered imprisonment over this. Eliot was -also deprived of his vice-admiralship and struck off -the roll of justices of the peace.</p> - -<p>Driven to call a parliament for the third time in -1628, the king was faced by a stronger opposition -than ever.</p> - -<p>Eliot, now member for Cornwall, throughout the -session continued the attack on arbitrary taxation, -and with the lawyers Seldon and Coke carried the -Petition of Right to stop the illegal imprisonments, -the enforced billeting of soldiers, and forced loans. -Buckingham, slain at Portsmouth, no longer troubled -the commonwealth; but Wentworth, ambitious to -use his powers in the service of the government, -had left the popular side for the king; while Laud, -and Weston, the chancellor of the exchequer, were -daily preaching to Charles the divine right of kings -and to his subjects the duty of passive obedience.</p> - -<p>The following year both Eliot and Pym attacked -the ecclesiastical policy of Laud. To them the -established religion of England, settled on the Protestant -basis by Elizabeth, was being definitely -changed in a Catholic direction without the sanction -of parliament, and in the very teeth of the opposition -of the House of Commons. High-church -clergymen, like Montague and Mainwaring, holding -to the full a Catholic interpretation of the Book of -Common Prayer, were only censured by the House -of Commons to be promoted by the crown. Laud -preaching a royal supremacy undreamt of by the -great archbishops before Henry VIII., combined<span class="pagenum" id="Page_253">253</span> -with it a doctrine of ecclesiastical independence, -owning no allegiance to Rome, equally novel.</p> - -<p>Eliot, stoical in his beliefs, and Pym, whose Calvinism -was tempered by common sense, regarded -with horror the revival in the Church of England of -Catholic doctrines concerning the sacraments and -the priesthood. They had done what they could to -check any indulgence to Roman Catholics in -England, and it was monstrous to them that the -Church of England, whose formularies and ritual -had been defined by parliament for the maintenance -of Protestantism, should be expanded to reintroduce -doctrines and practices essentially Catholic. But -for the time the House of Commons was powerless -in the matter, and only sixteen years later was Laud -to expiate on the scaffold his Anglo-Catholicism, -dying a veritable martyr for the high Anglican -doctrine. “None have gone about to break parliaments -but in the end parliaments have broken -them,” declared Eliot on March 2nd, 1629, and -Laud, no less than Charles and Wentworth, was to -prove the truth of the warning.</p> - -<p>If parliament could do nothing in that year, 1629, -to stop Laud’s policy, it could at least defend the -privileges of its members. The goods of John -Rolle, M.P., had been seized by the king’s officers -because their owner had refused to pay tonnage and -poundage on demand, and at once Eliot was up in -arms in defence of the privileges of his fellow -member, whose liberties had been interfered with.</p> - -<p>Pym was for a wider view of the matter—objecting -to the question being narrowed down to a breach -of privilege. “The liberties of this House,” he -argued, “are inferior to the liberties of this kingdom.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_254">254</span> -To determine the privilege of this House is -but a mean matter, and the main end is to establish -possession of the subjects, and to take off the commission -and records and orders that are against us.” -With Pym it was not Rolle, the member, who had -been ill-used, but Rolle the British subject, and it -was for the liberties of the subject he strove, holding -the freedom of parliament as but a means to that end.</p> - -<p>Eliot, a House of Commons man, through and -through, saw in the welfare of parliament the -welfare of the nation, and stuck to his point, carrying -the House with him, that the privileges of a -member extended to his goods. To this Charles -sent word that what had been done had been done -by his authority. The only question now was, how -long would it be before the king dissolved parliament.</p> - -<p>On the second of March, when the House met, -the speaker’s first word was that the king had -ordered an adjournment till the tenth, and that no -business could be transacted. Eliot insisted on -moving his resolutions, and the speaker was held -down in his chair. Then the serjeant-at-arms -attempted to remove the mace, and was promptly -stopped, while the key of the House was turned -from within.</p> - -<p>Eliot moved his declaration, beginning with the -famous words: “By the ancient laws and liberties of -England, it is the known birthright and inheritance -of the subject, that no tax, tallage, or other charge -shall be levied or imposed but by common consent -in England; and that the subsidies of tonnage and -poundage are no way due or payable but by a free -gift and special act of parliament.”</p> - -<p>The resolutions were carried with loud shouts of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_255">255</span> -assent, two members guarding the speaker, and the -door was flung open; the sitting was over.</p> - -<p>A royal proclamation for dissolving parliament -followed on the fourth of March, and Eliot, with eight -other members, was summoned to appear before the -Privy Council.</p> - -<p>From the hour of that summons John Eliot’s liberty -was over, and not for eleven years was England to -have another parliament.</p> - -<p>For the fourth time Eliot was a prisoner. He -declined altogether to give an account of what he -had said in parliament, or to acknowledge any right -of interference with the proceedings in parliament. -To the crown lawyers his reply was to stand on the -privileges of a member of the House of Commons. -“I refuse to answer,” he said, “because I hold that -it is against the privilege of parliament to speak of -anything which is done in the House.” He insisted -that he was accountable to the House alone, and -that no other power existed with a constitutional -right to inquire into his conduct there.</p> - -<p>At the end of October Eliot was removed from -the Tower to the Marshalsea, and then in January, -1630, he was charged in the King’s Bench with two -other members, Holles and Valentine, with conspiring -to resist the king’s lawful order, to calumniate -ministers of the crown, and to assault the speaker. -Again Eliot refused to acknowledge the jurisdiction. -He was fined £2,000, and sent back to the Tower.</p> - -<p>To the last Eliot’s loyalty to the House of -Commons remained unshaken. He had but to -acknowledge that he had done wrong, to admit that -he had offended, and the prison doors would have -opened to him. But to make this acknowledgment<span class="pagenum" id="Page_256">256</span> -was to deny the sacred liberty of parliament, to -admit wrong was to betray the House of Commons. -To John Eliot the welfare of the House of Commons -was a national cause—dearer than life. To -betray its honour was to betray the State. The -loyalty of John Eliot to the House of Commons was -interwoven with his devotion to the State, but it -was something England had never seen before, and -never saw again. “He learned to believe, as no -other man believed before or after him, in the -representatives of the nation.” (Gardiner.)</p> - -<p>The character and temperament of Eliot must be -taken into account in understanding this passionate -belief in the House of Commons. It was not as a -great thinker but as a great orator he had risen to -the leadership of the House of Commons. He saw -in his mind, as no other man saw at the time, a perfectly -balanced constitution of king, lords, and -commons. In parliament was the best wisdom of -the country placed at the service of the crown. In -the crown was the appointed ruler who, with his -ministers, had but to come to parliament for advice -and counsel. So it seemed to John Eliot; and -single-minded himself, he could not realise that in -the House of Commons were plenty of men of but -passing honesty, and that Charles and Laud and -Wentworth were fundamentally opposed to his views -of constitutional government, and bitterly hostile to -the growing powers of the commons.<a id="FNanchor_108" href="#Footnote_108" class="fnanchor">108</a></p> - -<div id="ip_257" class="figcenter"> - <img src="images/i_p256.jpg" width="1213" height="1711" alt="" /> - <div class="caption"><p>JOHN PYM</p> - -<p>(<cite>From an Engraving by Jacob Houbraken.</cite>)</p></div></div> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_257">257</span></p> - -<p>Months passed, and John Eliot’s health gave -way in the confinement in the Tower, but his -steadfastness was unchanged. He corresponded -with his friend John Hampden, wrote his treatise -on the <cite>Monarchy of Man</cite>, and calmly awaited his -end. An application on behalf of his friends and -his son for Eliot’s release was made in October, 1622, -on the ground that “the doctors were of opinion he -could never recover of his consumption until such -time as he might breathe in purer air.” The reply -of Chief Justice Richardson was “that, although -Sir John were brought low in body, yet was he as -high and lofty in mind as ever; for he would -neither submit to the king nor to the justice of that -court.”</p> - -<p>On November 27th, 1632, the spirit of John -Eliot, unbroken by captivity, passed from the body -his gaolers had deprived of life. A last appeal from -his son to the king for the removal of his father’s -body into Cornwall, there to lie with those of his -ancestors at Port Eliot, received the curt refusal, -“Let Sir John Eliot’s body be buried in the church -of the parish where he died.” And so he was -buried in the Tower, and no stone marks the spot -where he lies.</p> - -<p>John Eliot was but forty-two when he laid down -his life for the principle of parliamentary government.</p> - -<p>Any satisfaction that might have been felt by -Charles and Laud at the death of the foremost -antagonist to their policy of absolutism was fleeting. -For if Eliot was dead, the cause he had championed -with such conspicuous sincerity and courage was -alive, and John Hampden and John Pym were at<span class="pagenum" id="Page_258">258</span> -hand to carry on the fight till Cromwell and his -Ironsides were ready to end the battle.</p> - -<p>Charles was determined that, until the commons -should be more submissive, he would call no parliament, -but would govern through his ministers alone. -The difficulty was to find money.</p> - -<p>In 1634 London and the seaports were persuaded -to furnish supplies for ships on the pretext that -piracy must be prevented. A year later and the -demand was extended to the inland counties, and -John Hampden, taking his stand on the Petition of -Right which Charles had granted in 1628, declined -to pay. Ten out of twelve of the king’s judges had -decided that ship-money might be enforced if the -kingdom appeared to be in danger, but against this -declared legality there was the decree of parliament -forbidding forced loans or taxes without parliamentary -sanction.</p> - -<p>On this resistance of the ship-money Hampden’s -fame has been chiefly built up. The amount was -small—only a matter of some twenty shillings—the -issue was of a first importance. It was clear to -Hampden that if the king could raise money by -such methods, what need would there be in the -royal mind for the calling of parliament at all? The -question was forced upon him: Was parliament an -essential part of the constitution? The judges had -declared ship-money was legal, other taxation and -forced loans could easily find justification on the -judicial bench, and thus the crown obtain its revenue, -and England ruled without any let or hindrance from -its citizens. To admit the position was to see the -work of centuries undone, and the old contest in the -land for liberties in return for taxes abandoned.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_259">259</span></p> - -<p>Hampden’s refusal to pay ship-money was a -declaration for parliamentary government. No -more a republican than Eliot or Pym, Hampden -could see that either crown or parliament must be -supreme in the affairs of the nation.<a id="FNanchor_109" href="#Footnote_109" class="fnanchor">109</a> The constitution -was not to be balanced so evenly as Eliot had -believed. Eliot himself had been deprived of life -for maintaining, not the supremacy but the liberty of -parliament. For John Hampden the evils of royal -supremacy were obvious and present: misrule, the -restoration of a religion banished by authority of -crown and parliament, and disliked and feared by -the majority of serious-minded people in the country, -and the imprisonment of all who claimed the old -freedom of parliament.</p> - -<p>The case was decided against him in the law -courts, but five of the twelve judges supported -Hampden’s contention that the resistance to payment -was valid, and the arguments for his defence -were published far and wide. “The judgment -proved of more advantage and credit to the gentleman -condemned than to the king’s service.”<a id="FNanchor_110" href="#Footnote_110" class="fnanchor">110</a></p> - -<p>Three years later, and Charles was forced to -summon parliament to get money for his war in -Scotland—the “Bishop’s War,” perhaps the most -hopeless of all his ventures.</p> - -<p>Parliament met in April, and its temper was so -unfavourable to the desires of the king, for the -forcible conversion of the Scots to episcopacy, that -it was dissolved in three weeks. John Pym was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_260">260</span> -notable in that “Short Parliament” as the spokesman -of the aggrieved country party, and the commons -decided that the grievances of the nation must be -considered before supplies were voted. The Scotch -war was intolerable to Pym and Hampden. They -had no objection to episcopacy as long as bishops -were men of Protestant convictions. It was Laud -the “Anglo-Catholic,” Laud the preacher of the -divine right of kings, not Laud the Archbishop of -Canterbury, whom they detested, and they had no -relish for the expenditure of English life and -treasure in the forcing of Laudian doctrine on -Protestant Scotland.</p> - -<p>In the long eleven years of silence from the utterance -of parliament things had been going steadily -from bad to worse in England, Pym made out. -Naturally conservative in mind, seeing in the constitution -of king and parliament an admirable -instrument of government, and in the Established -Church of England an excellent expression of the -Protestant religion, Pym had found that with -parliament suspended the Protestantism of the -Established Church had been steadily undermined -by Laud’s policy, and the revival of some estranged -Catholic doctrines and practices had proceeded -apace. Without parliament there was no security -for national well-being. “Powers of parliament are -to the body politic as rational faculties of the soul -to man,” he declares in April, 1640.</p> - -<p>Pym had entered the House of Commons with -Eliot in 1614, and had been imprisoned in that year -for his boldness. In 1620 he had been one of the -“twelve ambassadors” to James I., for whom that -king had ordered chairs to be set in Whitehall.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_261">261</span> -With Eliot and Hampden he had pressed for -Buckingham’s impeachment and for the Petition of -Right. Now in 1640, John Pym, in his fifty-sixth -year, was about to become the accredited leader of -the parliamentary party, to be called “King Pym” -by his enemies at the court, and to pass away when -the long constitutional struggle was being settled on -the field of civil war. Unimaginative, and averse -from new ideas, Pym had a quite clear perception -of the business of the House of Commons, and of -the fitting relations of king and parliament. The -crown, the lords, the commons were all recognized -and necessary elements in the constitution, but their -importance was not equal. The collective assembly -of parliament had prevailed over the crown more -than once; to Pym, the Laudian “divine right” -was a novelty, and nonsense at that. Parliament -could do much of its work with or without royal -approval, and of the two Houses, if the Lords -were unwilling to work with the lower House, the -Commons could “save the kingdom alone.”</p> - -<p>In the autumn Charles was driven again to appeal -to parliament, and in November, 1640, the “Long -Parliament” met, only to be dissolved thirteen -years later by the arms of Cromwell. To the -eleven years of “personal government” by Charles -succeed thirteen years of parliamentary government, -and then the House of Commons, now too -enfeebled to endure, itself goes down before a -military dictatorship.</p> - -<p>Pym anticipated the coming struggle by riding -over England on the eve of the elections to the -Long Parliament and urging the electors to return -men to the House of Commons resolute and alive<span class="pagenum" id="Page_262">262</span> -to the crisis. The response was unmistakable. -Parliament assembled to find some remedy for the -distresses of the country before voting any money -for the purposes of the crown. Enormous numbers -of petitions were presented, and the House of -Commons appointed its committees to attend to -and report on the complaints.<a id="FNanchor_111" href="#Footnote_111" class="fnanchor">111</a></p> - -<p>Before the year closed the House of Commons -had struck at the power of Laud and Wentworth -(now the Earl of Strafford), and the two ministers -lay in prison impeached for high treason. Windebank, -Charles’s secretary of state, and Finch, the -chancellor, were already fled over seas.</p> - -<p>It was Pym who went to the bar of the House of -Lords to summon Strafford to surrender, and it was -Pym who opened the charge of impeachment the -following March. As in Eliot’s time, Hampden is -content to be overshadowed by his friend, though -his was the greater influence in the House.</p> - -<p>Clarendon has given us his view of Hampden at -the opening of the Long Parliament:</p> - -<div class="blockquot"> - -<p>When this parliament began the eyes of all men were fixed -upon him, as their <i xml:lang="la" lang="la">patriae pater</i>, and the pilot that must steer -the vessel through the tempests and rocks which threatened -it. I am persuaded his power and interest at that time were -greater to do good or hurt than any man’s in the kingdom, or -than any man of his rank hath had in any time; for his reputation -of honesty was universal, and his affections seemed -so publicly guided, that no corrupt or private ends could bias -them.</p></div> - -<p>Baxter, it may be recalled, had written in the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_263">263</span> -<cite>Saints’ Rest</cite> that one of the pleasures which he -hoped to enjoy in heaven was the society of John -Hampden. The name of Hampden was blotted -out in the copies published after the Restoration. -“But,” wrote Baxter, “I must tell the reader that I -did blot it out, not as changing my opinion of the -person.”</p> - -<p>The work of Pym and Hampden is conspicuous -at the beginning of the Long Parliament. The -Star Chamber and High Commission Courts are -abolished. Ship-money and all enforced taxation -unauthorised by parliament are declared illegal. -Oliver Cromwell’s motion for annual parliaments is -amended into an act for triennial parliaments to be -called with or without royal summons. Strafford—the -only strong minister Charles had—perished on -Tower Hill in May, both Pym and Hampden supporting -impeachment instead of attainder, and -voting for the fallen minister to be allowed the use -of counsel at his trial. That Strafford was a -criminal and a traitor ready to use his Irish army -for the suppression of the English parliament Pym -had no doubt.</p> - -<p>Still Charles would not admit the position lost, -and still struggled to govern, not through parliament, -but by personal rule. The death of Strafford, -though approved by all supporters of the House of -Commons, rallied the king’s friends. The House of -Lords was no longer quite at one with the Commons -in the contest. In the House of Commons a -royalist party emerges to oppose Pym, and the -beginning of party government is seen. Overtures -are made by Pym to the queen—to be disregarded, -of course; though the tide is setting towards<span class="pagenum" id="Page_264">264</span> -revolution, yet Pym and Hampden are far from -revolutionaries. They are willing to end the political -power of the bishops by turning them out of the -House of Lords, but have only moderate sympathy -with the root-and-branch Puritans who would abolish -episcopacy.</p> - -<p>In the Grand Remonstrance which Pym laid -before the House of Commons in November, 1641, -the case for the Parliament was stated with frankness, -but the demands were not revolutionary. The -main points were securities for the administration of -justice, and insistence on the responsibility of the -king’s ministers to parliament. The royalists fought -the Remonstrance vigorously, and in the end it was -only carried by a majority of eleven, 159 to 148. -At the end of the debate the excitement was intense: -“some waved their hats over their heads, and others -took their swords in their scabbards out of their -belts, and held them by the pummels in their hands, -setting the lower part on the ground.” Violence -seemed inevitable, “had not the sagacity and great -calmness of Mr. Hampden, by a short speech, -prevented it.”</p> - -<p>On the 1st of December the Remonstrance, with -a petition for the removal of grievances, especially -in matters of religion, was presented to the king at -Hampton Court. “Charles had now a last chance -of regaining the affection of his people. If he could -have resolved to give his confidence to the leaders -of the moderate party in the House of Commons, -and to regulate his proceedings by their advice, he -might have been, not, indeed, as he had been, a -despot, but the powerful and respected king of a free -people. The nation might have enjoyed liberty<span class="pagenum" id="Page_265">265</span> -and repose under a government with Falkland -at its head, checked by a constitutional opposition -under the conduct of Hampden. It was not necessary -that, in order to accomplish this happy end, -the king should sacrifice any part of his lawful -prerogative, or submit to any conditions inconsistent -with his dignity.” So Macaulay wrote. But the -days of “governments” and “constitutional oppositions” -were far off in 1641, and only the germ of -party government is seen in the division of the -House of Commons. To “submit to any conditions” -from parliament was inconsistent with the -king’s notions of royal dignity, fostered by Laud to -reject all criticisms as denials of the absolutism of -the crown.</p> - -<p>Charles promised an answer to the deputation -which waited on him, and the answer was seen on -January 3, 1642, when the king’s attorney appeared -at the bar of the Lords, impeached Pym, Hampden, -Holles, Strode, and Hazlerig of high treason, in -having corresponded with the Scots for the invasion -of England, and demanded the surrender of the -five members. “All constitutional law was set -aside by a charge which proceeded personally from -the king, which deprived the accused of their legal -right to a trial by their peers, and summoned them -before a tribunal which had no pretence to a jurisdiction -over them.”</p> - -<p>The House of Commons simply declined to -surrender their members, but promised to take the -matter into consideration.</p> - -<p>Then Charles, with some three hundred cavaliers, -went to Westminster, and entered the House of -Commons to demand the accused. But the five<span class="pagenum" id="Page_266">266</span> -members, warned of his coming, were out of the -way and safe within the city of London. “It was -believed that if the king had found them there, and -called in his guards to have seized them, the members -of the House would have endeavoured the defence -of them, which might have proved a very unhappy -and sad business.” As it was, the king could only -retire discomfited, with some words about respecting -the laws of the realm and the privileges of parliament, -and “in a more discontented and angry passion -than he came in.”</p> - -<p>The invasion of the Commons was the worst move -Charles could have made, for parliament was in no -temper favourable to royal encroachments, and it -had a large population at hand ready to give substantial -support. The city of London at once -declared for the House of Commons, ignored the -king’s writs for the arrest of the five members, and -answered the royal proclamation declaring them -“traitors” by calling out the trained bands for the -escort of the members back to Westminster, and for -the protection of the House of Commons.</p> - -<p>Falkland and the royalist members turned for the -moment from Charles at his unexpected attack on -the House, the cavaliers of Whitehall, menaced by -the trained bands from Southwark and the city, -fled, and Charles, standing alone, left London.</p> - -<p>War was now imminent. Pym and Hampden at -once prepared for the struggle.</p> - -<p>Pym secured the arsenals of Portsmouth and Hull -for the parliament, but his efforts to obtain the control -of the militia in the counties were frustrated for -a time by the king’s natural refusal to consent to -the Militia Bill, which would have placed troops<span class="pagenum" id="Page_267">267</span> -under the orders of country gentlemen of the -parliamentary party.</p> - -<p>Both king and parliament had to break through -all constitutional precedent. The king levied troops -by a royal commission, and Pym got an ordinance -of both Houses of Parliament passed appointing -the lords-lieutenant to command the militia, and -thereby published the supremacy of parliament over -the crown. In April the king appeared at Hull to -obtain arms, and was refused admission to the town -by Sir John Hotham, the governor. Parliament -expressed its approval of Hotham’s act, the royalists -gathered round Charles at York, and the final proposals -of parliament for ending absolute monarchy -were rejected by the king in June with the words, -“If I granted your demands I should be no more -than the mere phantom of a king.”<a id="FNanchor_112" href="#Footnote_112" class="fnanchor">112</a></p> - -<p>With this refusal all negotiations were broken off. -Essex was appointed commander of the parliamentary -army, and in August Charles raised the -royal standard at Nottingham, and war was begun.</p> - -<p>Hampden threw himself vigorously into the campaign. -From his native county of Buckingham, -the county which made him its representative in -parliament in 1640, he raised a regiment of infantry.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_268">268</span> -“His neighbours eagerly enlisted under his command. -His men were known by their green -uniform, and by their standard, which bore on one -side the watchword of the parliament, ‘God with -us,’ and on the other the device of Hampden, -‘<i xml:lang="la" lang="la">Vestigia nulla retrorsum</i>.’” In the first stages of -the war, before any decisive blow had been struck, -Hampden was busy passing and repassing between -the army and the parliament. Clarendon praises -his courage and ability on the field.</p> - -<p>A skirmish at Chalgrove, on June 18th, 1643, -between bodies of horse commanded by Rupert -and by Hampden, ended in victory for the royalists. -Hampden was seen riding off the field, “before the -action was done, which he never used to do, and -with his head hanging down, and resting his hands -upon the neck of his horse.” He was mortally -wounded, for two carbine balls were lodged in his -shoulder, and reached Thame only to die six days -later.</p> - -<p>The death of Hampden—at the age of 49—came -at a dark hour in the early fortunes of the -parliamentary army, and deepened the gloom. -“The loss of Colonel Hampden goeth near the -heart of every man that loves the good of his king -and country, and makes some conceive little content -to be at the army now that he is gone.” But Pym -remained, and Cromwell and Vane, and many -another resolute House of Commons man.</p> - -<p>Pym’s health was already broken when Hampden -fell, but he lived to accomplish the alliance of the -English Puritans and the Scotch army, and, as the -price of this alliance, the abolition of episcopacy -and the adoption of Presbyterianism in the Church<span class="pagenum" id="Page_269">269</span> -of England. The Solemn League and Covenant -was accepted by parliament, and imposed on the -nation in September. Henceforth the parliamentary -army was pledged to extirpate “Popery, prelacy, -superstition, schism and profaneness”; to bring “the -Churches of God in the three kingdoms to the -nearest conjunction and uniformity in religion”; to -“preserve the rights and privileges of the parliament -and the liberties of the kingdom; and to -unite the two kingdoms in a firm peace and union to -all posterity.”</p> - -<p>The taking of the covenant—a political necessity—was -John Pym’s last work. He was ten years -older than Hampden, and his character was ruggeder -and sterner and without the charm of the younger -man. But Pym’s was the greater genius in politics, -and his scheme of constitutional government was to -be fulfilled in England at a later season.</p> - -<p>John Pym died on December 8th, 1643, and his -body was buried in Westminster Abbey—only to be -turned out at the Restoration and removed to St. -Margaret’s churchyard.</p> - -<p>With Pym and Hampden gone, henceforth the -conduct of parliament was in other hands, and the -day of moderate statesmanship had passed.</p> - -<p>The war undertaken to preserve the liberties and -establish the supremacy of the House of Commons -was to bring in its train not only the abolition of -monarchy and the House of Lords, but the suppression -of the House of Commons itself.</p> - -<p>Important to the nation as the issues at stake -were, most people in England took hardly any -more part or interest in the great civil war than they -had done in the Wars of the Roses. “A very large<span class="pagenum" id="Page_270">270</span> -number of persons regarded the struggle with -indifference.... In one case, the inhabitants -of an entire county pledged themselves to remain -neutral. Many quietly changed with the times -(as people changed with the varying fortunes of -York and Lancaster). That this sentiment of -neutrality was common to the greater mass of the -working classes is obvious from the simultaneous -appearance of the club men in different parts of the -country, with their motto, ‘If you take our cattle, we -will give you battle.’”<a id="FNanchor_113" href="#Footnote_113" class="fnanchor">113</a></p> - -<p>How could it be otherwise? Supremacy of King, -or supremacy of Commons,—seed time and harvest -remain, and the labourer and the artizan must needs -do their day’s work.</p> - -<p>Not till the deposing of the Stuarts—forty-five -years after John Hampden’s death—is the supremacy -of parliament over the crown arrived at by general -consent, to become a recognized and settled thing -in British politics. By the middle of the nineteenth -century the House of Commons is unmistakably the -ruling power in the constitution, and the labours of -Eliot, Hampden and Pym are vindicated.</p> - -<p>In our own day changes in the balance of constitutional -power may be noted. The supremacy of -the House of Commons is quietly disappearing -before the growing popularity of the crown, the reawakened -activity of the House of Lords, and the -steady gathering of the reins of power into the hands -of the Cabinet and Executive. As the crown in -the last twenty years has increased in popular -esteem, so the influence and importance of the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_271">271</span> -Commons has waned in the country; and this -waning influence of the Lower House has been -further diminished by the frequent rejection and -revision of its measures by the House of -Lords.</p> - -<p>The power of the Executive has also been -obtained at the expense of the power of the -Commons. The Cabinet, rather than the House of -Commons, holds the supremacy to-day, and the -direction of foreign policy, and the making of international -treaties are no more within the authority of -the House of Commons than are the administration -of Egypt and India. Pym and Hampden fought -and gave their lives for the right of the House of -Commons to control the ministers of the crown and -to order the policy of these ministers. By its own -consent, and not from pressure from without, the -House of Commons has silently surrendered this -right, and has agreed that the policy of its Foreign -Minister for the time being—whether he be Liberal -or Conservative—must not be subject to reproof, -still less to correction. In home affairs administrative -order steadily supersedes statute law.</p> - -<p>In theory ministers are still subject to the House -of Commons. In actual practice they can rely on -not being interfered with as long as their party has a -majority in the House. When the price of effective -interference with the conduct of affairs is a defeat -of the Cabinet and a consequent dissolution, the -payment is more than members of parliament are -prepared to make.</p> - -<p>Given the sense of security of social order and of -the administration of justice, the nation, generally, -no more heeds the passing of the supremacy from the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_272">272</span> -House of Commons, than it heeded the winning of -that supremacy.</p> - -<p>The Laudian doctrine in the Church of England, -revived at the Restoration, disappeared with the -passing of the non-jurors at the close of the seventeenth -century. But its Anglo-Catholic teaching -was renewed by the Oxford Movement, early in -Queen Victoria’s reign, and has largely changed the -whole appearance of the Church of England. The -modern high Anglican, claiming, as Laud claimed, -the right to interpret the Book of Common Prayer -as a Catholic document, but no longer the advocate -of any theory of divine right of kings, or the -champion of any particular political creed, has -travelled indeed far beyond Laud’s very limited -success in winning support for Catholic doctrine and -ritual in the Church of England. Laud was beaten -by the opposition of parliament; his present day -successors in the Church of England have prospered -in spite of that opposition, and have triumphed over -acts of parliaments, adverse judicial sentences, -privations and imprisonments. But with Laud the -movement was directed by bishops and approved -by the king, the modern Laudian movement was -banned by bishops and disfavoured by all in high -authority.</p> - -<p>To-day nearly every Catholic doctrine, save papal -supremacy, has its expounders and defenders in the -Church of England, and Catholic rites and ceremonies -are freely practised.</p> - -<p>Laud, dying on the scaffold in 1645 at the hands -of parliament, is amply avenged in the twentieth -century by the victorious high-churchman. The -Laudian clergy of the Established Church can now<span class="pagenum" id="Page_273">273</span> -maintain their Anglo-Catholic faith and practice, -without any fear of parliamentary interference. For -generally they enjoy a popularity and respect that -the House of Commons does not willingly venture -to assail.</p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<h2 id="hdr_12">John Lilburne and the -Levellers<br /> - -<span class="subhead">1647–1653</span></h2> -</div> - -<p><span class="smcap">Authorities</span>: Lilburne’s Pamphlets; <cite>Calendar of -State Papers</cite>; <cite>Charles I. and the Commonwealth</cite>; <cite>State -Trials</cite>; <cite>House of Commons’ Journals</cite>; Whitelocke—<cite>Memorials -of English Affairs</cite>; Clarendon—<cite>History of -the Rebellion</cite>; W. Godwin—<cite>History of the Commonwealth</cite>; -S. R. Gardiner—<cite>History of the Great Civil -War</cite>; <cite>History of the Commonwealth and Protectorate</cite>; -G. P. Gooch—<cite>History of Democratic Ideas in the Seventeenth -Century</cite>.</p> -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_277">277</span></p> - -<h3 class="left">JOHN LILBURNE AND<br /> -THE LEVELLERS -<span class="subhead">1647–1653.</span></h3> - -<p class="drop-cap"><span class="firstword">From</span> his coming of age in 1637 till the near -approach of death, when he turned, a dying -man, to the peaceful tenets of the Quakers, -the life of John Lilburne is a record of -twenty years of strife and battle with the rulers -of the land.</p> - -<p>He came of pugnacious stock, for John Lilburne’s -father, a well-to-do Durham squire, was the last -man to demand the settlement of a lawsuit by the -ordeal of battle, and came into court armed accordingly—only -to be disappointed by an order from the -crown, forbidding the proposed return to such -ancient and obsolete methods of deciding the -differences of neighbours.</p> - -<p>Apprenticed to a wholesale cloth-merchant in -London, John Lilburne soon became acquainted -with Bastwick and Prynne, then busy over anti-episcopal -pamphlets, and, keeping such company, -naturally fell into the clutches of the Star Chamber. -The charge against him was that he had helped to -print and circulate unlicensed books, in particular, -Prynne’s <cite>News from Ipswich</cite>; and though Lilburne -declared the charge to be false, on his refusal to -take the usual oath to answer truly all questions put -to him, the Star Chamber adjudged him guilty, and -passed sentence—Lilburne was to be whipped from<span class="pagenum" id="Page_278">278</span> -the Fleet to Westminster, to stand in the pillory, -and to be kept in prison.</p> - -<p>The sentence was carried out on February 13th, -1638, but Lilburne was not cowed, for he scattered -some of Bastwick’s offending pamphlets on the -road, and was gagged in the pillory to reduce him -to silence. In prison things went hardly with -Lilburne, for the authorities had him placed in irons -and kept in solitary confinement, and only the -compassion of fellow prisoners saved him from actual -starvation in the two years and nine months of his -imprisonment.</p> - -<p>It was a rough beginning, and John Lilburne -was henceforth an agitator and a rebel.</p> - -<p>At the end of 1640 one of the first things done -by the Long Parliament was to order Lilburne’s -release, and in the following May the sentence was -pronounced “illegal and against the liberties of the -subject.” But illegal or not, the punishment had -been inflicted, and with unbroken spirit, passionately -resenting the tyranny that could so wrong men, -Lilburne flew quickly to the attack on the authors of -the injustice.</p> - -<p>At Edgehill Lilburne held a captain’s commission, -and at Brentford he was taken prisoner by the -royalists. Only the threat of swift reprisals by the -parliamentary army saved him from being shot as -“a traitor,” and the following year he was again at -liberty on an exchange of prisoners. Again, after -fighting at Marston Moor, he fell into the hands of -the royalists, and, shot through the arm, was kept in -prison at Oxford for six months.</p> - -<p>Brave soldier as Lilburne was, he left the army -in 1645 (with the rank of Lieutenant-Colonel and<span class="pagenum" id="Page_279">279</span> -with £880 arrears of pay owing to him) rather than -take the covenant and subscribe to the requirements -of Cromwell’s “new model.”</p> - -<p>And now monarchy having fallen from its high -estate, Lilburne at once saw elements of tyranny in -the Parliamentary government, and did not hesitate -to say so. Courageous and intrepid, with considerable -legal knowledge, a passion for liberty, and clear -views on democracy, John Lilburne might have -given invaluable service to the commonwealth. He -had shown skill and daring in the war, his character -for fearless endurance had been proved, his ability as -a pamphleteer was considerable, and his capacity -for work enormous; the government had either to -treat Lilburne as a friend or foe—he was not to -be ignored. The government, unwisely, decided -Lilburne was an enemy, and for the next ten years -he fought the rule of parliament and the army, his -popularity increasing with every new pamphlet he -produced. The price the commonwealth government -paid for its opposition to Lilburne was to -be seen on the death of Cromwell.<a id="FNanchor_114" href="#Footnote_114" class="fnanchor">114</a></p> - -<p>From 1645 to 1649 Lilburne’s vigorous criticisms -of the men in power provoked retaliation, and -brought him to Newgate. But in prison or out of -prison Lilburne went on hammering away to establish -a democratic constitution. The time was to come -when Cromwell would find the Long Parliament -had outlived its usefulness and would end it by main -force. Lilburne was anxious in 1647 for a radical -reform of parliament and a general manhood<span class="pagenum" id="Page_280">280</span> -suffrage. His proposals were popular in the army, -and had Cromwell supported him the whole future -of English politics would have been changed.</p> - -<p>When the Presbyterian majority in parliament -proposed the disbandment of the army in 1647, the -regiments chose their agitators, and, refusing to -disband, drew up the “Agreement of the People” -and the “Case for the Army.” These documents -give the political standpoint of the Levellers and the -particular grievances to be remedied.</p> - -<p>The distribution of parliamentary seats according -to the number of inhabitants was the chief proposal -in the “Agreement of the People,” and the principles -maintained are that “no man is bound to a government -under which he has not put himself,” and that -“all inhabitants who have not lost their birthright -should have an equal voice in elections.”</p> - -<p>The particular demands in the “Case for the -Army” were the abolition of monopolies, freedom -of trade and religion, restoration of enclosed common -lands, and abolition of sinecures.</p> - -<p>While Cromwell and Ireton were both bitterly -against manhood suffrage, the council of officers to -whom the Levellers appealed agreed to support it, -without approving the rest of the programme.</p> - -<p>Cromwell, relying on the army to prevent a -royalist reaction—for Charles was plotting from -Carisbrooke for aid from Scotland, and the royalists -in the House of Commons were anxious to effect a -reconciliation—would give neither time nor patience -to the demands of Lilburne and the Levellers.</p> - -<p>In vain the Levellers exclaimed, in 1648, “We -were ruled before by King, Lords, and Commons, -now by a General, Court Martial, and Commons:<span class="pagenum" id="Page_281">281</span> -and, we pray you, what is the difference?” Cromwell, -at all costs, was determined to preserve the -discipline of the army, and to suppress mutiny with -an iron hand. For him the army which had beaten -the cavaliers was the one safeguard against the -return of the old order in Church and State. Lilburne -and the Levellers, with the “Fifth Monarchy” men, -had been the strength, the very life of the army that -had conquered at Marston Moor and Naseby. The -petition of the Fifth Monarchy men for the reign of -Christ and His saints (which, according to prophecy, -was to supersede the four monarchies of the ancient -world) had no terrors for Cromwell; in other words, -they demanded government exclusively by the godly, -Independents and Presbyterians combining to elect -all representatives, “and to determine all things -by the Word.” “Such a proposal might attract -fanatics; it could not attract the multitude. The -Levellers who stood up for an exaggeration of the -doctrine of parliamentary supremacy were likely to -be far more numerous.”<a id="FNanchor_115" href="#Footnote_115" class="fnanchor">115</a> To Cromwell the immediate -thing was the royalist danger; it was no season -for embarking on democratic experiments with which -he had no sympathy. The breach between Cromwell -and the Levellers widened, and as Cromwell -became more and more impatient of their agitation, -distrust and suspicion of Cromwell and of the newly-appointed<span class="pagenum" id="Page_282">282</span> -Council of State ripened, in 1649, into -revolt.<a id="FNanchor_116" href="#Footnote_116" class="fnanchor">116</a> It is the perennial misunderstanding between -the statesman and the agitator. The one weighted -by responsibility can rarely travel at the pace of the -other, untrammelled by office, and as the distance -between the two lengthens, it seems they are not -even pursuing the same course—as, indeed, very -often they are not.</p> - -<p>Lilburne had none of Cromwell’s anxieties as to -a possible royalist reaction; for him the danger -could not come from the dethroned king and his -defeated cavaliers, but from a parliamentary oligarchy -or a military dictatorship. But he overestimated -the strength of the Leveller movement in the army. -With the presentation of the “Agreement of the -People” the bulk of the discontent in the army -diminished, and while the Levellers who remained -became in several regiments openly mutinous, the -movement generally died down, so that when the -revolt came, it was suppressed without difficulty.<a id="FNanchor_117" href="#Footnote_117" class="fnanchor">117</a></p> - -<p>Lilburne was out of prison at the beginning of -1649. He took no part in the trial of Charles I., -and let it be known that he doubted the wisdom of -abolishing monarchy before a new constitution had -been drawn up.</p> - -<p>As neither the remnant of the Long Parliament<span class="pagenum" id="Page_283">283</span> -nor Cromwell and Fairfax were doing anything to -set up this new constitution, Lilburne proceeded to -lay a remonstrance before parliament, and to follow -this up by his two pamphlets on “England’s New -Chains.” He now urged that “committees of short -continuance” should supersede the Council of State, -that the Self-denying Ordinance should be put in -force, “seeing how dangerous it was for one and the -same persons to be continued long in the highest -commands of a military power,”<a id="FNanchor_118" href="#Footnote_118" class="fnanchor">118</a> that a new parliament -should be elected, and the “Agreement of the -People” proceeded with heartily. At the same time -he called for army reform by a reconstruction of the -General Council and the election of agitators.</p> - -<p>The expulsion of five troopers from the army for -directly petitioning parliament provoked another -pamphlet—“The Hunting of the Foxes from Newmarket -to Whitehall by five small beagles late of -the army.” The argument here was that Cromwell, -Ireton, and Harrison ruled the council of officers, -and that the council of officers ruled parliament and -the nation. “The old king’s person and the old -lords are but removed, and a new king and new -lords with the commons are in one House, and so -we are under a more absolute arbitrary monarchy -than before.”</p> - -<p>There was only one answer to be made to -Lilburne’s pen, and that was to arrest the man who -held it, for the commonwealth had no one on its -side who could reply to him. At the end of March -Lilburne and three of his supporters, Walwyn,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_284">284</span> -Prince, and Richard Overton were arrested as -traitors, “England’s New Chains” having been voted -by parliament seditious and destructive of the -government, and were committed to the Tower to -await trial.</p> - -<p>At once a petition was got up and signed by -80,000 persons for Lilburne’s release, and a fortnight -later—April 18th—another petition was taken -to the bar of the House of Commons to the same -effect. Parliament promised that the prisoners -should have a legal trial, but declared the course of -justice must not be interfered with. A large deputation -of women also appeared at Westminster on -April 23rd with a similar petition; but these were -forbidden to enter the House, and, admonished by -members to “go home and wash their dishes,” -answered they would soon have no dishes to wash.<a id="FNanchor_119" href="#Footnote_119" class="fnanchor">119</a></p> - -<p>Lilburne was not brought to trial till October, and -in the six months’ interval, though the output of -democratic pamphlets continued from the Tower, -the Leveller movement in the army ended in open -mutiny and defeat.</p> - -<p>Carlyle tells the story accurately enough of the -mutiny in Whalley’s regiment in Bishopsgate, -London, on April 25th:</p> - -<div class="blockquot"> - -<p>They want this and that; they seize their colours from the -cornet, who is lodged at the “Bull” there; the general -(Fairfax) and lieutenant-general (Cromwell) have to hasten -thither, quell them, pack them forth on their march, seizing -fifteen of them first to be tried by court-martial. Tried by -instant court-martial, five of them are found guilty, doomed -to die, but pardoned; and one of them, Trooper Lockyer, is<span class="pagenum" id="Page_285">285</span> -doomed and not pardoned.<a id="FNanchor_120" href="#Footnote_120" class="fnanchor">120</a> Trooper Lockyer is shot in -Paul’s Churchyard on the morrow. A very brave young man, -they say; though but three-and-twenty. “He has served -seven years in these wars,” ever since the wars began. -“Religious,” too, “of excellent parts and much beloved”; -but with hot notions as to human freedom, and the rate at -which the milleniums are attainable. Poor Lockyer! He -falls shot in Paul’s Churchyard on Friday, amid the tears of -men and women. Lockyer’s corpse is watched and wept -over, not without prayer, in the eastern regions of the city, -till a new week come; and on Monday, this is what we see -advancing westward by way of funeral to him:</p> - -<p>About one thousand went before the corpse, five or six in a -file; the corpse was then brought, with six trumpets sounding -a soldier’s knell, then the trooper’s horse came, clothed -all over in mourning, and led by a footman. The corpse was -adorned with bundles of rosemary, one half stained in blood, -and the sword of the deceased along with them. Some -thousands followed in ranks and files, all had sea-green and -black ribbon tied on their hats and to their breasts, and the -women brought up the rear.</p> - -<p>At the new churchyard at Westminster some thousands -more of the better sort met them, who thought not fit to -march through the city. Many looked upon this funeral as -an affront to parliament and the army; others called these -people “Levellers”; but they took no notice of any of them.<a id="FNanchor_121" href="#Footnote_121" class="fnanchor">121</a></p></div> - -<p>In May one Corporal William Thompson rallied -a body of Levellers at Banbury, published a manifesto -called “England’s Standard Advanced,” and -inveighed against the tyranny of courts-martial. -Overwhelmed by force of numbers, Thompson<span class="pagenum" id="Page_286">286</span> -escaped, and later died fighting alone near Wellingborough. -Some twenty of his followers joined the -mutineers of Scrope’s regiment at Salisbury. Numbering -some 1,200, these Levellers made their way -by Marlborough and Wantage to Burford. Here -Cromwell came up with the mutineers, and surprised -them at midnight. Resistance was hopeless, -and the majority at once surrendered. All were -pardoned except Cornet Thompson (brother to -William), and two corporals—Church and Perkins—who -showed neither fear nor admitted any wrong -on their part. These three men were shot in -Burford churchyard on May 15th,<a id="FNanchor_122" href="#Footnote_122" class="fnanchor">122</a> and with their -deaths the Leveller movement was at an end.</p> - -<p>But Lilburne was unsubdued. His new “Agreement -of the Free People,” published on May 1st, -called for annual parliaments elected by manhood -suffrage—pensioners, militant royalists, and lawyers -excluded—and for the free election of unendowed -church ministers in each parish. At the same time -he disclaimed all connection with Winstanley’s -“Diggers”—political reform was Lilburne’s -demand.<a id="FNanchor_123" href="#Footnote_123" class="fnanchor">123</a></p> - -<p>Released on bail in July, Lilburne issued in -August an “Impeachment for High Treason against -Oliver Cromwell and his son-in-law, James Ireton.” -In this his hatred of government by the army -compels the admission that monarchy is preferable -to a military despotism: “If we must have a king, -I for my part would rather have the prince than any<span class="pagenum" id="Page_287">287</span> -man in the world.... For the present army -to set up the pretended Saint Oliver or any other as -their elected king, there will be nothing thereby -from the beginning of the chapter to the end -thereof but wars and the cutting of throats year -after year; yea, and the absolute keeping up of a -perpetual army under which the people are absolute -and perfect slaves.”</p> - -<p>Thereupon, instead of bringing him to trial, the -government merely issued a warrant for Lilburne’s -arrest. The agitator met this by a stronger -manifesto, “An Outcry of the Young Men and -Apprentices of London,” calling on the army to rise in -support of a democratic parliament and to vindicate -the men executed at Burford. Some response came -from the garrison at Oxford, who summoned their -officers to join in the demand for a free parliament, -but no success attended this step.</p> - -<p>At last in October Lilburne was brought to trial -at the Guildhall, not on the charge for which he had -been first committed to the Tower in March, but -for the “treason” of his later pamphlets. The trial -is memorable for Lilburne’s demand that counsel -should be assigned to him in the event of legal -technicalities arising, and for his bidding the jury -remember they were judges of law as well as of fact. -His real defence lay in the question he had put so -often: Was England to be governed by the sword -and a mock parliament, or by duly elected representatives -of the People? The jury understood -that Lilburne was on trial for putting that question, -and, agreeing with him, they acquitted -him. The verdict was received with tremendous -applause, and “a loud and unanimous shout” of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_288">288</span> -triumph went up from the citizens of London in the -Guildhall.<a id="FNanchor_124" href="#Footnote_124" class="fnanchor">124</a></p> - -<p>In December Lilburne was elected to the common -council of the city, but parliament promptly declared -the election void. “Fiercely as Lilburne attacked -Cromwell, there was at times considerable liking -between the two men, and they met on friendly -terms before Cromwell went to Scotland in 1650. -Cromwell assured Lilburne of his desire to make -England enjoy the real fruit of all the army’s promises -and declarations,” and friendly relations lasted -till Cromwell’s return. But, in Cromwell’s absence, -Lilburne charged Hazlerigg with corruption in the -administration of justice concerning a disputed -colliery lease in Durham, and parliament took up -the matter. In January, 1652, it declared Lilburne’s -petition for redress a libel, and imposed a fine of -£7,000 with a sentence of banishment for life.</p> - -<p>This proceeding by parliament revived the -methods of the Star Chamber in imposing a conviction -and a sentence without trial, but the House -of Commons was determined to stop Lilburne’s -activities at all cost.</p> - -<p>Cromwell made no effort to hinder the conviction, -and Lilburne insisted that Cromwell’s professions of -friendship were hypocritical, and that the general -himself was responsible for the sentence.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_289">289</span></p> - -<p>For the time Lilburne retired to Holland, where -he discussed favourably the chances of a royalist -restoration. But on the expulsion of the Rump of -the Long Parliament the agitator at once wrote off -to Cromwell for permission to return to England, -and getting no answer crossed to London in June, -1653, and settled in lodgings in Moorfields. He petitioned -Cromwell and the Council of State for leave -to remain unmolested, promising to live peacefully, -but Cromwell, with the whole government on his -shoulders, had no willingness to incur the risk -Lilburne and his doctrine of popular rights involved -to the safety of the State.</p> - -<p>Lilburne was promptly arrested by Cromwell’s -order and brought to trial at the Old Bailey on July -13th. The government case was that he had returned -to England knowing that a sentence of death -was decreed by parliament if he broke his exile.</p> - -<p>Lilburne’s defence, in the main, was that the -parliament which had passed sentence was dead, -and that if Cromwell had acted justly in dissolving -it, then its unjust actions ought not to be maintained; -if Cromwell had acted unjustly, why was he not -punished?</p> - -<p>Again the jury acquitted him, and again the people -of London expressed their satisfaction at the verdict, -“the very soldiers sent to guard the court joining in -the shouts, and beating their drums and sounding -their trumpets as they passed along the streets to -their quarters.”</p> - -<p>But “for the peace of the nation” Cromwell -would not let Lilburne be at large. Back in the -Tower, then at Guernsey, and then in Dover Castle -for more than two years Lilburne was a prisoner.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_290">290</span></p> - -<p>His health was broken in 1656, and consumption -had set in. Death was near, and for John Lilburne -the days of “carnal sword-fighting and fleshly -hustlings and contests” were over. He wrote to -Cromwell from Dover Castle telling the Lord -Protector of his conversion to Quakerism, and -Cromwell, assured that there was to be no more -agitation from “Free-Born John,” granted his -release, and a pension of 40s. a week.</p> - -<p>The battle was over for John Lilburne, liberty -could not stay the hand of death. The many imprisonments -and close confinements had done their -work, and rapid consumption marked down the man -who had stood up against the whole might of -Cromwell’s government.</p> - -<p>John Lilburne died at Eltham in August, 1657, -at the age of forty. A year later, and his old -antagonist, and older comrade-in-arms, Oliver -Cromwell, Lord Protector, was dead, and the -Commonwealth government which had contemned -the agitation for democracy was doomed.</p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<h2 id="hdr_13">Winstanley the Digger<br /> - -<span class="subhead">1649–1650</span></h2> -</div> - -<p><span class="smcap">Authorities</span>: Winstanley’s Pamphlets; Whitelocke—<cite>Memorial -of English Affairs</cite>; Clarke Papers; L. H. -Berens—<cite>Digger Movement in the days of the Commonwealth</cite>.</p> -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_293">293</span></p> - -<h3 class="left">WINSTANLEY THE DIGGER -<span class="subhead">1649–1650.</span></h3> - -<p class="drop-cap"><span class="firstword">In</span> the spring of 1649, the “Digger” movement -revealed a strange and unexpected manifestation -of the democratic spirit in England. -Free communism had been the creed of more -than one Protestant sect on the continent in the -sixteenth century, and the Anabaptists had been -conspicuously identified with the proposal. But in -England John Lilburne and the Levellers were -attacking the parliamentary government in the -name of political democracy, and social agitation -had been unknown since the Norfolk Rising of -1549, save for a riot against land enclosures at the -beginning of James I.’s reign.</p> - -<p>Gerrard Winstanley was the leader at the sudden -outbreak of social discontent, and his “Digger” -movement was to end this discontent and all other -miseries of the time by getting rid of enclosures of -common lands, and allowing people to plough these -common lands and waste spaces, “that all may feed -upon the crops of the earth, and the burden of -poverty be removed.”</p> - -<p>Little is known of Winstanley, and the movement -is shortlived. The “Diggers” never threatened -the safety of the Commonwealth government as -Lilburne and the Levellers did, for Winstanley’s -social doctrine included the non-resistance principles -that later found exponents in the Society of Friends,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_294">294</span> -and the agrarian revolution he preached could -hardly be accomplished without force of arms. -What is notable about Winstanley is his witness to -the fact that a social question existed—that he saw -beyond the Civil War, and the strife for political -liberties, a great mass of poverty unheeded; and -seeing the miseries of his fellows resolutely thought -out some cure for their distress, and did his best, as -it seemed to him, to get this cure adopted.</p> - -<p>Neither the Council of State nor the republican -army had time or patience for Winstanley’s schemes, -and the “Diggers” were dispersed with little -trouble; but Winstanley’s religious teaching was -to exercise considerable influence in the world -when George Fox became its preacher, and his -social teaching on the land question has thousands -of disciples in Great Britain to-day.</p> - -<p>Gerrard Winstanley was born in Lancashire in -1609.<a id="FNanchor_125" href="#Footnote_125" class="fnanchor">125</a> He seems to have settled in London as a -small trader and to have lost what money he had in -business—cheated he says, “in the thieving art of -buying and selling, and by the burdens of and for -the soldiery in the beginning of the war”—so that -he was obliged “to accept of the good-will of -friends to live a country life.” In the country Winstanley -ponders the source of the ills around him, -and, having some considerable gift of expression, -gives utterance, in a number of pamphlets, to a cry -for reform, and gathers followers.</p> - -<p>In December, 1648, Winstanley (or one of his -friends) issued the earliest of the Digger publications -under the title of “Light Shining in Buckinghamshire—A<span class="pagenum" id="Page_295">295</span> -Discovery of the Main Ground, -Original Cause of all the Slavery of the World, but -chiefly in England. Presented by way of a Declaration -of many of the Well-affected in that County, to -all their poor oppressed Countrymen in England. -And also to the consideration of the present army -under the conduct of the Lord Fairfax.”</p> - -<p>A month later and Winstanley publishes his -“New Law of Righteousness: Budding forth to -restore the whole Creation from the Bondage of the -Curse. Or a glimpse of the new Heaven and the -new Earth, wherein dwells Righteousness.” Here, -with a good deal of mystical religious phrasing (the -author explains that when he was in a trance the -message came to him), Winstanley proclaims his -calling and unfolds his agrarian proposals:</p> - -<div class="blockquot"> - -<p>And when the Lord doth show unto me the place and -manner, how He will have us that are called common people -manure and work upon the common lands, I will then go -forth and declare it by my action, to eat my bread by the -sweat of my brow, without either giving or taking hire, -looking upon the land as freely mine as another’s.</p></div> - -<p>There is to be no forcible expropriation of landlords:</p> - -<div class="blockquot"> - -<p>If the rich still hold fast to this propriety of Mine and -Thine, let them labour their own lands with their own -hands. And let the common people, that say the earth is -<em>ours</em>, not <em>mine</em>, let them labor together, and eat bread -together upon the commons, mountains, and hills.</p> - -<p>For as the enclosures are called such a man’s land, and -such a man’s land, so the Commons and Heath are called the -common people’s. And let the world see who labor the -earth in righteousness, and those to whom the Lord gives -the blessing, let them be the people that shall inherit the -earth.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_296">296</span></p> - -<p>None can say that their right is taken from them. For -let the rich work alone by themselves; and let the poor work -together by themselves. The rich in their enclosures, saying, -<em>This is mine</em>; and the poor upon the commons, saying, <em>This -is ours, the earth and its fruits are common</em>. And who can be -offended at the poor for doing this? None but covetous, -proud, idle, pampered flesh, that would have the poor work -still for this devil (particular interest) to maintain his greatness -that he may live at ease.</p> - -<p>Was the earth made for to preserve a few covetous, -proud men to live at ease, and for them to bag and barn up -the treasures of the earth from others, that these may beg or -starve in a fruitful land: or was it made to preserve all her -children? Let Reason and the Prophets’ and Apostles’ -writings be judge.... For the earth is the Lord’s; -that is the spreading Power of Righteousness, not the -inheritance of covetous proud flesh that dies. If any man -can say that he makes corn or cattle, he may say, <em>That is -mine</em>. But if the Lord made these for the use of His creation, -surely then the earth was made by the Lord to be a Common -Treasury for all, not a particular treasury for some.</p> - -<p>Leave off dominion and lordship one over another; for -the whole bulk of mankind are but one living earth. Leave -off imprisoning, whipping, and killing, which are but the -actings of the curse. Let those that have hitherto had no -land, and have been forced to rob and steal through poverty; -henceforth let them quietly enjoy land to work upon, that -everyone may enjoy the benefit of his creation, and eat his -own bread with the sweat of his own brows. For surely this -particular propriety of mine and thine hath brought in all -misery upon people. First it hath occasioned people to steal -from one another. Secondly it hath made laws to hang -those that did steal. It tempts people to do an evil action, -and then kills them for doing of it. Let all judge whether -this be not a great evil.</p></div> - -<p>In April, 1649, the time was ripe—so Winstanley -and his friends judged—for making a start to get -rid of this evil.</p> - -<p>The Council of State, but a few months old, and -much occupied with dangers in Scotland and Ireland,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_297">297</span> -and with mutinous Levellers in the army, was suddenly -informed of the strange activities of “a -disorderly and tumultuous sort of people” by one -Henry Sanders, of Walton-upon-Thames.</p> - -<p>Sanders’ testimony affirmed that “there was one -Everard, once of the army but was cashiered, who -termeth himself a prophet, one Stewer and Colten, -and two more, all living at Cobham, came to St. -George’s Hill in Surrey, and began to dig on that -side the hill next to Camp Close, and sowed the -ground with parsnips, carrots, and beans. On -Monday following they were there again, being -increased in their number, and on the next day they -fired the heath, and burned at least forty rood of -heath, which is a very great prejudice to the town. -On Friday last they came again, between twenty -and thirty, and wrought all day at digging. They -did then intend to have two or three ploughs at -work, but they had not furnished themselves with -seed-corn, which they did on Saturday at Kingston. -They invite all to come in and help them, and -promise them meat, drink, and clothes. They do -threaten to pull down and level all park pales, and -lay open, and intend to plant there very shortly. -They give out they will be four or five thousand -within ten days, and threaten the neighbouring -people there, that they will make them all come up -to the hills and work: and forewarn them suffering -their cattle to come near the plantation; if they do, -they will cut their legs off. It is feared they have -some design in hand.”<a id="FNanchor_126" href="#Footnote_126" class="fnanchor">126</a></p> - -<p>The date of this information was April 16th, and -Bradshaw, the President of the Council, at once<span class="pagenum" id="Page_298">298</span> -asked General Fairfax “to disperse the people so -met, and to prevent the like for the future, that a -malignant and disaffected party may not under colour -of such ridiculous people have any opportunity to -rendezvous themselves in order to do a greater -mischief.”</p> - -<p>Fairfax sent Captain John Gladman to attend to -the matter, and Gladman reports three days later -that Mr. Winstanley and Mr. Everard are the chief -men responsible, that he “cannot hear that there -have been above twenty of them together since they -first undertook the business,” and that Mr. Winstanley -and Mr. Everard will wait upon Lord Fairfax. -He adds; “I believe you will be glad to be rid of -them again, especially Everard, who is no other -than a mad man. I intend to go with two or three -men to St. George’s Hill this day and persuade -these people to leave this employment if I can, and -if then I see no more danger than now I do I shall -march back again to London to-morrow.” Gladman’s -opinion is that “the business is not worth the -writing nor yet taking notice of.”</p> - -<p>The interview between Fairfax and Winstanley -and Everard took place on April 20, and Everard -explained that the Diggers “did not intend to -meddle with any man’s property nor to break down -any pales or enclosures, but only to meddle with -what was common and untilled, and to make it -fruitful for the use of man: that they will not defend -themselves by arms, but will submit unto authority; -that as their forefathers lived in tents, so it would -be suitable to their condition now to live in the -same.”</p> - -<p>Fairfax evidently decided that the movement was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_299">299</span> -not so alarming as the Council of State had represented, -for Winstanley and his Diggers resumed -their work, and at the end of May, Fairfax, with -the officers of the army, paid a visit to St. George’s -Hill. Winstanley returned “sober answers” to the -inquiries of Fairfax, “though they gave little satisfaction -(if any at all) in regard of the strangeness of -their action.” Winstanley’s argument, often enlarged -in his pamphlets, was that the people were dispossessed -of their lands by the crown at the Norman -Conquest, and that “the king who possessed them -by the Norman Conquest being dead, they were -returned again, being Crown Lands, to the Common -People of England.”</p> - -<p>This was not conclusive to their visitors, and -“some officers wished they had no further plot in -what they did, and that no more was intended than -what they did pretend.” To the objection that the -ground was too poor to repay cultivation, “the -Diggers answered they would use their endeavours -and leave the success to God, who had promised to -make the barren ground fruitful.” Public opinion -gave out that the Diggers were “sober, honest -men,” and that “the ground will probably in a short -time yield them some fruit of their labour, how -contemptible soever they do yet appear to be.”</p> - -<p>Encouraged by Fairfax’s “kindness and moderation,” -Winstanley appeals to him in June against -the interference of the local landowners, and getting -no response (for Fairfax had said that the Diggers -were to be left to “the Gentlemen of the County -and the Law of the Land”), publishes an appeal to -the House of Commons against his arrest for trespass -by the Lords of Manors in Surrey. The<span class="pagenum" id="Page_300">300</span> -House of Commons, occupied with State matters, -turned an indifferent ear to Winstanley’s complaint, -and the leader of the Diggers sent a “Watchword -to the City of London and the Army,” telling the -wrongs the Diggers suffered at the hands of the -law for “digging upon the barren common”—how -they were mulcted in damages at £10 a man, with -costs at twenty-nine shillings and a penny, and taken -in execution, and how their cows were seized by the -bailiffs. At the end of November the very huts -they had built were pulled down, and it was a hard -winter for the little colony still left on St. George’s -Hill.</p> - -<p>Winstanley does not merely relate his injuries in -these publications, he is all the time urging that his -plan for setting people upon the common lands is -the needful thing in England, that a common ownership -of land is God’s will, and that the crown lands -taken by the Normans must revert to the people on -the execution of the king.</p> - -<p>In the spring of 1650 an attempt was made to -extend the digging propaganda—for the planting of -St. George’s Hill was doomed—and some of Winstanley’s -disciples made a tour through the counties -of Middlesex, Bedford, Hertford, Huntingdon, and -Northampton, settling down at last on some waste -ground near Wellingborough. Here they were -very soon arrested by a local justice of the peace, -the Council of State ordered their prosecution, and -the movement was suppressed.</p> - -<p>To the Council of State these Diggers were -“Levellers,”<a id="FNanchor_127" href="#Footnote_127" class="fnanchor">127</a> “intruders upon other men’s properties,”<span class="pagenum" id="Page_301">301</span> -“seditious and tumultuous,” against whom the -public peace must be preserved.</p> - -<p>Of Winstanley’s future, when the days of the -digging were over, nothing seems to be known. -Only one pamphlet is issued by him after 1650—“The -Law of Freedom in a Platform; or, True -Magistracy Restored”—an open letter to Oliver -Cromwell, February, 1652. With this final manifesto -on the land question, and on the whole social -question, as he saw it, Gerrard Winstanley disappears -from history. In the multitude of prophets -and preachers, visionaries and practical reformers of -the Commonwealth, Winstanley is little heeded by -his contemporaries. The importance of his mission -is seen more clearly to-day, when statesmen, politicians, -and philanthropists all urge agrarian changes -and the excellence of land culture.</p> - -<p>As to Winstanley’s claim on behalf of the people -to the common lands, the advantage of possession -of these lands was realized by the landowners in -the eighteenth century, and from 1760 to 1830 more -than a thousand acts of parliament were passed for -enclosing these lands.<a id="FNanchor_128" href="#Footnote_128" class="fnanchor">128</a></p> - -<p>In “The Diggers Song,” (of unknown authorship<a id="FNanchor_129" href="#Footnote_129" class="fnanchor">129</a>), -the outlook of Winstanley and his followers is -expressed in popular form:</p> - -<div class="poetry-container"> -<div class="poetry"> - <div class="stanza"> - <div class="verse indent0">You noble Diggers all, stand up now, stand up now,</div> - <div class="verse indent2">You noble Diggers all, stand up now,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">The waste land to maintain, seeing Cavaliers by name,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Your digging do disdain; and persons all defame.</div> - <div class="verse indent2">Stand up now, stand up now.</div><span class="pagenum" id="Page_302">302</span> - </div> - <div class="stanza"> - <div class="verse indent0">Your houses they pull down, stand up now, stand up now,</div> - <div class="verse indent2">Your houses they pull down, stand up now;</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Your houses they pull down to fright poor men in town,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">But the Gentry must come down, and the poor shall wear the crown.</div> - <div class="verse indent2">Stand up now, Diggers all!</div> - </div> - <div class="stanza"> - <div class="verse indent0">With spades, and hoes, and plowes, stand up now, stand up now,</div> - <div class="verse indent2">With spades, and hoes, and plowes, stand up now;</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Your freedom to uphold, seeing Cavaliers are bold</div> - <div class="verse indent0">To kill you if they could, and rights from you withhold.</div> - <div class="verse indent2">Stand up now, Diggers all!</div> - </div> - <div class="stanza"> - <div class="verse indent0">Their self-will is their law, stand up now, stand up now,</div> - <div class="verse indent2">Their self-will is their law, stand up now;</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Since tyranny came in, they count it now no sin</div> - <div class="verse indent0">To make a gaol a gin, to starve poor men therein.</div> - <div class="verse indent2">Stand up now, stand up now.</div> - </div> - <div class="stanza"> - <div class="verse indent0">The Gentry are all round, stand up now, stand up now,</div> - <div class="verse indent2">The Gentry are all round, stand up now;</div> - <div class="verse indent0">The Gentry are all round, on each side they are found,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Their wisdoms so profound to cheat us of our ground.</div> - <div class="verse indent2">Stand up now, stand up now.</div> - </div> - <div class="stanza"> - <div class="verse indent0">The Lawyers they conjoin, stand up now, stand up now,</div> - <div class="verse indent2">The Lawyers they conjoin, stand up now;</div> - <div class="verse indent0">To arrest you they advise, such fury they devise,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">The devil in them lies, and hath blinded both their eyes.</div> - <div class="verse indent2">Stand up now, stand up now.</div> - </div> - <div class="stanza"> - <div class="verse indent0">The Clergy they come in, stand up now, stand up now,</div> - <div class="verse indent2">The Clergy they come in, stand up now;</div> - <div class="verse indent0">The Clergy they come in, and say it is a sin</div> - <div class="verse indent0">That we should now begin our freedom for to win.</div> - <div class="verse indent2">Stand up now, Diggers all!</div> - </div> - <div class="stanza"> - <div class="verse indent0">The tithes they yet will have, stand up now, stand up now,</div> - <div class="verse indent2">The tithes they yet will have, stand up now;</div> - <div class="verse indent0">The tithes they yet will have, and Lawyers their fees crave,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">And this they say is brave, to make the poor their slave.</div> - <div class="verse indent2">Stand up now, Diggers all!</div><span class="pagenum" id="Page_303">303</span> - </div> - <div class="stanza"> - <div class="verse indent0">’Gainst Lawyers and ’gainst Priests, stand up now, stand up now,</div> - <div class="verse indent2">’Gainst Lawyers and ’gainst Priests, stand up now;</div> - <div class="verse indent0">For tyrants they are both, even flat against their oath,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">To grant us they are loath, free meat, and drink and cloth.</div> - <div class="verse indent2">Stand up now, Diggers all!</div> - </div> - <div class="stanza"> - <div class="verse indent0">The club is all their law, stand up now, stand up now,</div> - <div class="verse indent2">The club is all their law, stand up now;</div> - <div class="verse indent0">The club is all their law, to keep poor men in awe,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">But they no vision saw, to maintain such a law.</div> - <div class="verse indent2">Stand up now, Diggers all!</div> - </div> - <div class="stanza"> - <div class="verse indent0">The Cavaliers are foes, stand up now, stand up now,</div> - <div class="verse indent2">The Cavaliers are foes, stand up now;</div> - <div class="verse indent0">The Cavaliers are foes, themselves they do disclose</div> - <div class="verse indent0">By verses, not in prose, to please the singing boys.</div> - <div class="verse indent2">Stand up now, Diggers all!</div> - </div> - <div class="stanza"> - <div class="verse indent0">To conquer them by love, come in now, come in now,</div> - <div class="verse indent2">To conquer them by love, come in now;</div> - <div class="verse indent0">To conquer them by love, as it does you behove,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">For He is King above, no Power is like to Love.</div> - <div class="verse indent2">Glory here, Diggers all.</div> - </div> -</div> -</div> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<h2 id="hdr_14">Major Cartwright<br /> - -<span class="subhead">“The Father of Reform”</span> - -<span class="subhead">1775–1824</span></h2> -</div> - -<p><span class="smcap">Authorities</span>: <cite>Life and Correspondence of Major -Cartwright</cite>, edited by his Niece, 1826; <cite>A Memoir of -John Cartwright the Reformer</cite>, 1831; <cite>The Times</cite>, September -25th, 1824; Graham Wallas—<cite>Francis Place</cite>.</p> - -<div id="ip_307" class="figcenter"> - <img src="images/i_p306.jpg" width="1516" height="1840" alt="" /> - <div class="caption"><p>MAJOR CARTWRIGHT</p> - -<p>(<cite>From a Contemporary Drawing.</cite>)</p></div></div> -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_307">307</span></p> - -<h3 class="left">MAJOR CARTWRIGHT<br /> -“THE FATHER OF REFORM” -<span class="subhead">1775–1824.</span></h3> - -<p class="drop-cap"><span class="firstword">The</span> substance of Major Cartwright’s life is -told on the pedestal beneath his statue in -the dingy garden of Burton Crescent, to -the south of Euston Road, in London.</p> - -<div class="blockquot"> - -<p class="center large wspace">JOHN CARTWRIGHT,</p> - -<p class="center">Born 28th September, 1740. Died 23rd September, 1824.</p> - -<p class="in0">The Firm, Consistent and Persevering Advocate of <em>Universal -Suffrage</em>, Equal Representation, Vote by Ballot and Annual -Parliaments.</p> - -<p class="in0">He was the first English Writer who openly maintained the -Independence of the United States of America, and although -his distinguished merits as a Naval Officer in 1776 presented -the most flattering Prospects of Professional Advancement, -yet he nobly refused to draw his Sword against the Rising -Liberties of an oppressed and struggling People.</p> - -<p class="in0">In Grateful Commemoration of his inflexible integrity, exalted -Patriotism, “profound Constitutional Knowledge,” and in sincere -admiration of the unblemished Virtues of his Private Life,</p> - -<p class="center larger">THIS STATUE</p> - -<p class="center">was erected by Public Subscription near the spot where he -closed his useful and meritorious career.</p></div> - -<p>There is nothing false or exaggerated in this -epitaph. Fox, in the House of Commons, testified -to Cartwright’s “profound constitutional knowledge.” -Hazlitt, who never met Cartwright, classed<span class="pagenum" id="Page_308">308</span> -him with the men of one idea (and lingered over the -subject), but the charge is ill-founded. It is true that -for nearly fifty years, in season and out of season, -Cartwright, a pupil of Locke in politics, contended -publicly for annual parliaments and manhood suffrage, -claiming personality and not property as the -ground for enfranchisement, and insisting that while -the right of the rich and the poor to the vote was -equal, the need of the latter was far greater. But -this agitation was by no means the limit either of his -ideas or his activities.</p> - -<p>Entering the navy at eighteen, John Cartwright, -who came of an old Nottingham family, devised -improvements in the gun service, and, made a lieutenant, -was marked for high promotion. The revolt -of the American colonies cut short his professional -career. An innate love of liberty compelled the -young naval officer to side with the colonists, and he -writes in 1776 that it is a mistaken notion that the -planting of colonies and the extending of empire are -necessarily the same things. Self-governing colonies, -he declares, bound to England only by “the ties of -blood and mutual interests, by sincere love and -friendship, which abhors dependence, and by -every other cementing principle which hath power -to take hold of the human heart,” are to be -desired.</p> - -<p>Lord Howe put Cartwright’s principles to the test -by inviting him to join the expedition against the -Americans, and Cartwright, who was “passionately -attached to the navy,” and had an immense admiration -for Howe, could only answer that he was unable -to take part in a war he thought unjust. With this -refusal his naval services were ended, in spite of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_309">309</span> -Howe’s quiet and dignified reply that “opinions in -politics are to be treated like opinions in religion.” -(No word of reproach came from Howe, no taunt of -want of courage or lack of patriotism.)</p> - -<p>Cartwright never condemned all war. He urged -in a letter to a nephew in the army that the answer -to the question of the justice or injustice of a war -decided whether justifiable homicide or wilful murder -was committed by those engaged in battle. He -hated standing armies and barracks and barrack life, -and all the pomp and glory of militarism, as heartily -as he hated the attempt to coerce the colonists. But -no sooner was he out of the navy than, with a major’s -commission, he at once set to work to train the Nottinghamshire -militia, only retiring from this post in -1791 when the government cancelled his appointment -for attending a meeting called to celebrate the -fall of the Bastille.</p> - -<p>The militia in Cartwright’s view was strictly a -citizen army for home defence. “The militia,” he -wrote, “by its institution is not intended to spread -the dominion or to vindicate in war the honour of -the crown, but it is to preserve our laws and liberties, -and therein to secure the existence of the State.” -Thirteen years before the fall of the Bastille Major -Cartwright had the cap of liberty displayed on the -banners and engraved on the buttons of the Nottinghamshire -Militia. A greater service than providing -symbols of liberty was rendered to the army by -Cartwright in the matter of better clothing for the -men. The misery endured by ill-clad sentries -aroused his compassion and indignation, and Cartwright -worried the government until it provided -great-coats for all private soldiers.</p> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_310">310</span></p> - -<p>The humaner courage is as conspicuous in John -Cartwright’s long life as his political enthusiasm.</p> - -<p>Four times he risked his life to save others from -drowning, rescuing two men from the Trent, a naval -officer at sea, and, in late middle-life, a small boy -who had fallen into the New River, near London. -In the year 1800, hearing of a riot planned at -Sheffield, Cartwright made his way alone to the -barn where the conspirators were assembled, and -stayed all night, reasoning with them against their -project. In the morning the confederates, dissuaded -from violence, quietly dispersed, and the riot was -prevented.</p> - -<p>An untiring advocacy of democratic politics earned -for Cartwright, justly, the title of “The Father of -Reform.” He was the real founder of that movement -for political reform, which in the nineteenth -century swept away rotten boroughs, gave representation -to all towns of importance, and extended -the franchise to the great bulk of male householders -in town and country; which to-day presses towards -a general suffrage for men and women.</p> - -<p>Major Cartwright began his speeches and -pamphlets on behalf of political reform in 1776, -just after his retirement from the navy, and his -acceptance of the commission in the militia.</p> - -<p>The ideas of the French Encyclopædists, the -writings of Rousseau, and the revolt of the American -colonists, had aroused a belief in social equality, -and the “natural” rights of man, and this belief -Cartwright championed till his death. His early -pamphlets, beginning with “Legislative Rights of -the Commonalty Vindicated,” (1777) are heavy -reading to-day, but in them Cartwright argued for<span class="pagenum" id="Page_311">311</span> -all the famous “six points” of the People’s Charter -of fifty years later—Universal Manhood Suffrage, -Annual Parliaments, Vote by Ballot, Abolition of -Property Qualification for Parliamentary Candidates, -Payment of Members, and Equal Electoral Districts. -He even uses the modern phrase in urging “one -man one vote.”</p> - -<p>Unlike Thomas Paine, and many of the “Radical -Reformers,” Cartwright pleads for political democracy -as the natural outcome of the Christian faith, maintaining -that “No man can have a right sense and -belief of Christianity who denies the equality of all -conditions of men.” Incidentally, challenged on the -point of why not Votes for Women? Cartwright -could only fall back on certain passages in the -Bible to justify his objection to Women’s Enfranchisement. -Nothing was more abhorrent to his -mind than the notion that government was a matter -for “experts,” an exclusive affair for persons with -specially trained intelligences. “Of all the errors -to which mankind have ever submitted their understandings,” -he wrote, “there is no one to be more -lamented than that of conceiving the business of -civil government to be above the comprehension of -ordinary capacities.”</p> - -<p>The poor, because of their very poverty, had a -need for the vote and for parliamentary representation -which the man of property could not experience. -This Cartwright emphasised in a petition he presented -to the House of Commons as late as 1820:</p> - -<div class="blockquot"> - -<p>And when your Honourable House shall further consider -that the humblest mortal on earth is equally a co-heir of an -immortality with the most exalted who now wears stars, or -coronets, or crowns, your petitioner hopes that your Honourable<span class="pagenum" id="Page_312">312</span> -House will rise superior to the mean thoughts and vulgar -prejudices of the uncharitable among the wealthy, the ignorant, -the interested, the vain, and the proud; and will acknowledge -that, in reference to the respective claims of legislative representation -by the poor and the rich, the poor have equal right -but far more need.</p></div> - -<p>Enthusiasm and an entirely disinterested zeal for -democracy kept the spirit of youth in Cartwright, -and carried him at the age of 80 over a trial for -sedition undisturbed. His zeal was not to be -quenched. “Moderation in practice may be commendable,” -he declared, “but moderation in principle -is detestable. Can we trust a man who is moderately -honest, or esteem a woman who is moderately -virtuous?”</p> - -<p>This very allegiance to principle had its drawbacks -in the world of practical politics, of corruption -and compromise. Three times Major Cartwright -stood for parliament: for the county of Nottingham -in 1780, for Boston in 1806 and 1807; and on each -occasion he was at the bottom of the poll. His -nominations for Westminster in 1818 and 1819 -received no serious support at all. The old major -was no more distressed by any feeling of personal -disappointment at these defeats than he was cast -down at seeing no signs of the triumph of political -democracy in his lifetime. At eighty-four we find -him writing cheerfully, “To despair in a good cause -is to approach towards atheism.”</p> - -<p>Cartwright did not live to see the passage of the -great Reform Bill of 1832. Wilkes’ motion for -reform in 1776 had been negatived in the House of -Commons without a division. In 1780 the Duke -of Richmond’s motion in the House of Lords for<span class="pagenum" id="Page_313">313</span> -manhood suffrage and annual parliaments was -mocked by the outbreak of the Gordon (“No -Popery”) Riots in London on the very day the -motion was made. Pitt’s third and last effort for -parliamentary reform was rejected in 1785. The -French Revolution turned men’s minds in Great -Britain towards democracy, but reaction followed -hard on the Terror in Paris, and for a time a -government terror crushed every expression in -favour of political liberty in England. Sir Francis -Burdett became the parliamentary leader of the -“radical reformers” early in the nineteenth century, -and in 1809 found fifteen supporters in the House of -Commons. Ten years later the government, in the -face of a strong working-class movement for political -reform, brought out the military against the people -at a peaceful meeting held at Peterloo, near Manchester, -and followed this up by six repressive acts -of parliament, and a general prosecution of the -leaders of the reform agitation.</p> - -<p>Cartwright was eighty when, with several friends, he -was charged “with being a malicious, seditious, evil-minded -person, and with unlawfully and maliciously -intending and designing to raise disaffection and -discontent in the minds of his majesty’s subjects.”</p> - -<p>All England knew that Major Cartwright was a -single-minded and high-principled man, in whose -heart was neither guile nor malice, a man who had -proved his loyalty and patriotism over and over -again, and was no more seditious than he was evil-minded -or disaffected. Apart from his advocacy of -political reform and his services to the militia, Cartwright -had done much for farming and agriculture, -he had helped Clarkson and Wilberforce in their<span class="pagenum" id="Page_314">314</span> -anti-slavery work, and he had called the attention -of the government, as loudly as he could, to the -defenceless state of the east coast against foreign -invasion. Yet in 1820 a British jury, obedient -to the orders of a political judge, found John -Cartwright guilty of “maliciously intending and -designing to raise disaffection and discontent,” and -a fine of £100 was inflicted.</p> - -<p>Francis Place, the radical tailor of Charing Cross, -in whose shop the later Chartists and Reformers were -to be found, gives his impression of Major Cartwright -as he knew him in old age:</p> - -<p>“When he was in town he used frequently to sup -with me, eating some raisins he brought in his pocket, -and drinking weak gin and water. He was cheerful, -agreeable, and full of curious anecdote. He was, -however, in political matters exceedingly troublesome -and sometimes as exceedingly absurd. He -had read but little, or to little purpose, and knew -nothing of general principles. He entertained a -vague and absurd notion of the political arrangements -of the Anglo-Saxons, and sincerely believed -that these semi-barbarians were not only a political -people, but that their ‘twofold polity,’ arms-bearing -and representation, were universal and perfect.”<a id="FNanchor_130" href="#Footnote_130" class="fnanchor">130</a></p> - -<p>To Place, chief political wire-puller of his age, -industrious and persistent in getting things done, -with a typical cockney politician’s scorn of disinterested -enthusiasm, Major Cartwright appeared -“troublesome” and “absurd”—Francis Place had -quite an honest liking for the “old gentleman,” as -he called him, all the same. By the government -Cartwright stood convicted as a “seditious, evil-minded<span class="pagenum" id="Page_315">315</span> -person.” Posterity is content to know -John Cartwright by the title his contemporaries -conferred upon him—the Father of Reform—and -to rank him as the foremost man in England in -the eighteenth century to raise the standard of -Political Democracy.</p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<h2 id="hdr_15">Ernest Jones and Chartism<br /> - -<span class="subhead">1838–1854</span></h2> -</div> - -<p><span class="smcap">Authorities</span>: R. G. Gamage—<cite>History of the Chartist -Movement</cite>; Thos. Frost—<cite>Forty Years’ Recollections</cite>; -Ernest Charles Jones—<cite>Songs of Democracy</cite>; Graham -Wallas—<cite>Life of Francis Place</cite>; J. A. Hobson—<cite>Ernest -Jones</cite>, in <cite>Dictionary of National Biography</cite>; <cite>The Times</cite>, -Jan. 27, 29; Mar. 31, 1869.</p> -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_319">319</span></p> - -<h3 class="left">ERNEST JONES AND<br /> -CHARTISM -<span class="subhead">1838–1854.</span></h3> - -<p class="drop-cap"><span class="firstword">The</span> Chartist agitation was at once the -largest, the most revolutionary, and the -least successful of all the serious political -movements of the first half of the nineteenth -century. For ten years, with varying -fortune, it threatened the authority of parliament, -and then slowly expired—destroyed by its own -internal weakness and the quarrels of its leaders -rather than by the repression of the government.</p> - -<p>The failure of the great Reform Act of 1832 to -accomplish any particular improvement in the lot of -the mass of working people brought the Chartist -movement to life,<a id="FNanchor_131" href="#Footnote_131" class="fnanchor">131</a> and roused the politically minded -leaders of the workmen to agitate for changes in the -constitution that would place political power in the -hands of the whole people.</p> - -<p>The six points of the Charter, embodied in the -“People’s Charter” drawn up by Francis Place and -Lovett in 1838, revived the old programme of -Major Cartwright and, in substance, the earlier -demands of John Lilburne and the Levellers. -Universal manhood suffrage, the ballot, payment of -members of parliament, equal electoral districts,<span class="pagenum" id="Page_320">320</span> -abolition of property qualification for members, and -annual parliaments, these were the “six points” of -the Charter, the platform of its advocates, and for -ten years the hope of multitudes of earnest and -devoted men and women.</p> - -<p>Francis Place and the Working-Men’s Association -which gave Chartism its name and programme -never had any considerable voice in its direction.<a id="FNanchor_132" href="#Footnote_132" class="fnanchor">132</a></p> - -<p>Feargus O’Connor, who had sat in parliament -from 1832 to 1835 for an Irish constituency, was -from the first the real leader of the movement. His -personality and his rhetorical powers roused the -manufacturing districts in the North and the -Midlands to form political unions for the Charter in -1838, and his presence dominated the first Convention, -held in London, with Lovett for its -secretary. Later, O’Connor’s obvious weaknesses, -his vanity and egotism, his want of self-control and -that “one fatal disqualification for a leader of -revolt—the fear of the police”<a id="FNanchor_133" href="#Footnote_133" class="fnanchor">133</a>—left leadership in -his hands, but left him a leader without followers.</p> - -<p>Next to O’Connor stood another Irish orator, -James Bronterre O’Brien, a man of finer character, -and clearer head, but smaller gifts of command.</p> - -<p>South Wales, the manufacturing districts of -Lancashire and Yorkshire, and towns like Birmingham, -Leicester, and Northampton, were the strongholds -of Chartism, and “in the dark days of the late -thirties and early forties it was a real and dangerous -power.”<a id="FNanchor_134" href="#Footnote_134" class="fnanchor">134</a> Feargus O’Connor never advocated an -armed rising, and advised the abandonment of the -huge torchlight processions; but pikes were being<span class="pagenum" id="Page_321">321</span> -fashioned and men were being drilled in preparation -for a revolution that was to end the Whig rule, and -give the working classes the reins of government. -The circulation of the <i>Northern Star</i>, O’Connor’s -weekly paper, stood at 50,000 in those days.</p> - -<p>Riots at Newport (Monmouth) and Birmingham -in 1839, followed by several arrests and imprisonments -of the Chartist leaders the following year, -ended for the time all notions of a successful -revolution. Lord John Russell declared strongly -against manhood suffrage when the question was -raised in the House of Commons, and on a division -in the House the petition for the Charter was rejected -by 237 to 48 votes.</p> - -<p>The outbreak at Birmingham, provoked, in the -first place, by the interference of a body of London -police with an orderly meeting in the Bull Ring, -was put down in two days by the soldiers; but not -till many houses had been attacked and a considerable -amount of property destroyed. No robberies -or petty thefts accompanied the riot.</p> - -<p>At Newport the harsh prison treatment of Vincent, -a Chartist advocate, convicted for what was held to -be a political offence, brought a crowd of 10,000 -men, led by Frost, William, and Jones, to demand -his release. The insurgents had a few rifles and -pikes, but were generally unarmed, and the fire of -the military soon overpowered them. But lives -were lost on both sides, and Frost and his two -lieutenants were sentenced to death, though the -sentence was at once reduced to transportation for -life, and some years later to simple banishment from -British dominions.</p> - -<p>Feargus O’Connor, Bronterre O’Brien, and all the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_322">322</span> -chief speakers of the movement were brought to -trial for seditious utterance in 1840, and in most -cases sent to prison either for twelve months or two -years.</p> - -<p>With these imprisonments and the general election -of 1841 came the first serious disintegration of the -Chartist movement.<a id="FNanchor_135" href="#Footnote_135" class="fnanchor">135</a> O’Brien and O’Connor differed -vigorously on the question of election policy, and -before they were released from prison were expressing -their opinions in the <i>Northern Star</i>. O’Connor, -full of wrath at the repressive treatment meted out -to Chartists by the Whig Government, was for -attacking the Whigs at the election, and O’Brien -objected to this as a pro-Tory policy.<a id="FNanchor_136" href="#Footnote_136" class="fnanchor">136</a></p> - -<p>The decision to run independent Chartist candidates -for parliament in certain constituencies, and -the failure of these candidates to get returned on -the limited franchise of 1832, increased disunion in -the Chartist ranks and brought demoralisation.</p> - -<p>To make matters worse for the movement, several -prominent Chartists left prison with fresh notions -and ideas of reform, which had come to them in -their long hours of solitude and reflection. Lovett, -imprisoned in connection with the Birmingham riot, -though he was entirely innocent of giving any -encouragement to violence, on his release was full -of vast plans for national education, convinced that<span class="pagenum" id="Page_323">323</span> -education must precede political democracy. Vincent -had become a strong temperance advocate, and -henceforth must give himself to the work of a -teetotal lecturer. Other men were for bringing in -religion by “Chartist Churches.”<a id="FNanchor_137" href="#Footnote_137" class="fnanchor">137</a> Antagonism to -the anti-corn law league of Cobden and Bright, -and later his own “National Land Company” experiments, -withdrew Feargus O’Connor from actual -Chartist propaganda.</p> - -<p>The movement languished. But in spite of -government repression, the indifference of parliament, -the hostility of the wealthier classes, and its -own jarring elements of discord, Chartism was not -dead.<a id="FNanchor_138" href="#Footnote_138" class="fnanchor">138</a></p> - -<p>The misery of the English people kept it from -death. With one in every eleven of the industrial -population a pauper in 1842, general satisfaction with -the state of government was impossible for men of -strong social sympathies. Some exerted themselves, -like Sadler and Oastler, in following Lord Shaftesbury’s -entirely disinterested and successful crusade -against the horrors of factory oppression. Others -supported the Free Trade agitation.</p> - -<p>To one man, Ernest Jones, it seemed, in 1845, -that before all else must come political enfranchisement, -that the social miseries and discontents of<span class="pagenum" id="Page_324">324</span> -England were not to be cured save by the people -of England. The evils might be mitigated by -ameliorative legislation, but it was not enough that -the decencies of life—then very far beyond the -reach of the mass of town and country labourers—should -be secured for people; the main thing -was that people should have freedom to work out -their own industrial salvation.</p> - -<p>So in 1846, Ernest Jones plunged boldly into -Chartism. He quickly became a leader, and his -reputation has endured: for Ernest Jones was the -most respected, single-minded, and steadfast of the -many who sat in Chartist conventions. Chartism -for him was the cry of the uncared-for, because -voteless, multitudes, and Ernest Jones was ready to -give his life that the cry should move the rulers of -the nation.</p> - -<p>It was a bad time for England in 1846, -that was plain,<a id="FNanchor_139" href="#Footnote_139" class="fnanchor">139</a> and Ernest Jones, believing with -the average Englishman that in politics lay the key -to necessary change, was henceforth a Chartist -advocate and till his death the faithful preacher of -democracy. Without becoming a socialist, Ernest -Jones, in his “Songs of Democracy” and in his -speeches and newspaper writings, is clear that -political enfranchisement was but the high road to -social and economic reform, that the Charter was -to bring a better distribution of wealth as the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_325">325</span> -consequence of a better distribution of political -power.<a id="FNanchor_140" href="#Footnote_140" class="fnanchor">140</a></p> - -<p>Ernest Jones was twenty-seven when he joined -the Chartist movement. The son of an army -officer—who had been equerry to the Duke of -Cumberland—and educated on the continent, -Ernest Jones came to England when he was -nineteen, and was duly presented to Queen Victoria -(as Robert Owen had been) by Lord Melbourne -in 1841. He married a Miss Atherley, of Cumberland, -and settled down in London, writing -novels, verses, and newspaper articles. In 1844 -he was called to the Bar, and two years later -took the step which separated him from the friends -and acquaintances of his social order, and placed -him on the hard and strenuous road of the political -agitator.</p> - -<p>Averse from faction, realising the fatal folly of -internal jealousies and strife, and alive to the importance -of discipline in the army of revolt, Ernest -Jones did his best to work with O’Connor—and was -naturally charged with cowardice by the Chartists -who hated O’Connor’s supremacy. In 1847 he -began writing in the <i>Northern Star</i>, and was joint -editor with O’Connor of <i>The Labourer</i>. His -“Songs of Democracy” were to the Chartists what -Ebenezer Elliott’s “Corn-Law Rhymes” were to -the Free Traders, and his “Song of the Lower<span class="pagenum" id="Page_326">326</span> -Classes” has retained a place in the song-books of -social democrats to our own day.</p> - -<p>At the general election of 1847, when, to everybody’s -astonishment, Feargus O’Connor was elected -member for Nottingham, Ernest Jones stood for -Halifax, but though immensely popular at the -hustings, he only polled 280 votes.</p> - -<p>1848, the memorable year of revolutions abroad, -saw Chartism once more a formidable movement -in England. An enormous petition was again -prepared for parliament, and the Chartists decided -to carry the petition to the House of Commons -after a mass meeting on Kennington Common on -April 10th. Lord John Russell and his Whig -government became thoroughly alarmed. The -Duke of Wellington, as commander-in-chief, undertook -to guard the safety of London, and garrisoned -the city with troops, and protected the bridges, -while 70,000 special constables (of whom Prince -Louis Napoleon was one) were quickly enrolled. -But on the government prohibition of any procession -to Westminster, Feargus O’Connor at once -decided against any collision between the people -and the authorities. The mass meeting was held, -some 50,000 persons were present, and O’Connor -and Ernest Jones made speeches. Then the -petition was sent off in a cab to parliament, and all -was over.</p> - -<p>O’Connor had boasted that the monster petition -contained 5,000,000 signatures, but on investigation -it was found that the signatures only amounted to -1,975,496, and many of these were duplicates and -forgeries. Anti-Chartists had signed in several -places, using ridiculous names, like “Pugnose,”<span class="pagenum" id="Page_327">327</span> -“Punch,” and “Fubbs,” or boldly signing as -“Queen Victoria” and “Duke of Wellington.”<a id="FNanchor_141" href="#Footnote_141" class="fnanchor">141</a> -Parliament gladly took advantage of O’Connor’s -characteristic exaggeration to discredit the whole -movement. At the same time the government -hastily prepared a bill to suppress the renewed -agitation, and the “Treason Felony” bill was passed, -making “open and advised speaking with seditious -intent” a crime. This clause in the act only remained -on the statute book for two years, but it was -sufficient for securing the conviction of all prominent -Chartist speakers.</p> - -<p>Ernest Jones, unlike Feargus O’Connor, believed -that the people should arm, and that a display of -force was necessary for carrying the Charter. The -failure of April 10th strengthened this belief, and -for the next two months he was busy speaking in -England and Scotland, urging the necessity for -enrolling a national guard and forming a provisional -government.</p> - -<p>But in spite of great public meetings the movement -was already breaking up. The Chartist -Convention, which met in London on May 1st, -dissolved on May 13th in hopeless disagreement, and -Ernest Jones, who had attended as a member of -the executive committee, exclaimed that “amid the -desertion of friends, and the invasion of enemies, -the fusee had been trampled out, and the elements -of their energy were scattered to the winds of -heaven.” Still he tried to rally the broken ranks, -and the government decided that the time had come -to put the movement down by means of the new<span class="pagenum" id="Page_328">328</span> -“Treason Felony” Act. Feargus O’Connor, now -a member, was no longer dangerous to the authorities. -His attendance in the House kept him from -the agitation in the country, and Ernest Jones was -the man to be struck at.</p> - -<p>On May 29th and 30th Ernest Jones addressed -great, but quite orderly, meetings in London, on -Clerkenwell Green and Bishop Bonner’s Fields, and -then proceeded to Manchester. Here he was arrested -and put on trial with five other Chartists—Fussell, -Sharpe, Williams, Vernon, and Looney. The -judge had little patience for the prisoners, and -Ernest Jones was frequently interrupted in his -defence. In the end, he and his fellows were all -found guilty of seditious speech, and Ernest Jones -was sentenced to two years’ imprisonment, to find -sureties, himself in £200 and two persons in £150, -and to keep the peace for five years.</p> - -<p>A number of police spies procured many more -arrests and convictions by gaining admission to -Chartist meetings, joining Chartist unions and inciting -the members to violent speech and an armed conspiracy. -By these means at the end of the year -1848 the government had succeeded in getting the -prominent Chartists into prison, as it had done in -1840. That Ernest Jones exhorted his followers to -learn to bear arms is indisputable; that the success -of the revolutionary movements on the continent -encouraged the belief amongst a certain number of -Chartists that an armed rising was desirable and -could be successful in England is equally true. But -as no serious attempt was made in 1848 by the -“physical force” Chartists to organize such a rising, -no rising took place, and “the conspiracy,” as it was<span class="pagenum" id="Page_329">329</span> -called, was chiefly the work of the government’s -police spies.</p> - -<p>The riots at Newport and Birmingham gave some -excuse to the government for repression in 1839–40; -in 1848 no outbreaks were even threatened to justify -the sentences on Ernest Jones and other Chartist -speakers. The government’s chief concern was to -end the agitation, even if this could only be accomplished -by means of a special act of parliament, and -the unsavoury methods of <i xml:lang="fr" lang="fr">agents provocateurs</i>. Lord -John Russell and his Whig colleagues were not the -men to be kept from their purpose by any nice -discrimination in the choice of weapons. It was not -the time, when crowns were falling on the continent, -to hesitate about crushing a movement which seemed -to menace public safety in England. That the -strength of Chartism was in the sober, law-abiding -character of most of its adherents the government -knew no more than they knew that the movement -was already doomed for want of cohesion.</p> - -<p>The bitter hostility of the government pursued -Ernest Jones in prison, and left him to be treated as -a common felon. Ordered to pick oakum he refused, -and was put on a diet of bread and water. The -struggle between the prisoner and his gaolers was at -last brought before the House of Commons,<a id="FNanchor_142" href="#Footnote_142" class="fnanchor">142</a> and in -the end Ernest Jones was allowed to purchase -exemption from the allotted prison tasks by a small -payment of money.</p> - -<p>On his release from prison the Chartist movement -was flickering out. It was impossible to work with -O’Connor, who, now looking favourably on household -suffrage, was already failing in health and showing<span class="pagenum" id="Page_330">330</span> -signs of the insanity which possessed him two years -later. The trade-union movement and the co-operative -store were attracting the attention of -intelligent workmen, to whom for the time political -enfranchisement seemed a lost cause. Contesting -Halifax in 1852, Ernest Jones only polled 52 votes, -and the <i>People’s Paper</i>, which he started in that -year and edited, never had the success of the -<i>Northern Star</i>.</p> - -<p>Feargus O’Connor was led away from the House -of Commons hopelessly insane, to die in 1855, and -Chartism utterly disintegrated could not be revived -by Ernest Jones. In 1854 the movement was -extinct, and from that time till his death Ernest -Jones gave his political support to the advanced -Radicals. He contested Nottingham in 1853 and -1857, but without success, returned to his old -practice at the Bar, and wrote novels and poems. -In 1868, the year of household suffrage in the towns, -he was adopted by the Radicals as parliamentary -candidate for Manchester, and then on January 26, -1869, came a sudden failure of the heart, and death -ended all earthly hopes and plans for Ernest Jones. -He was just fifty when he died, and though Chartism -had passed away, Ernest Jones had not outlived his -usefulness or his popularity with all those who believed -in the ultimate triumph of democracy, and he -had gained the respect of many earlier foes.</p> - -<p>The People’s Charter remains unfulfilled, but two -of its points have long been granted—the ballot, -and the abolition of a property qualification for -members of parliament. Annual parliaments are no -longer desired by any section of political reformers, -the extension of the franchise to the agricultural<span class="pagenum" id="Page_331">331</span> -labourer in 1884 brought manhood suffrage appreciably -nearer, equal electoral districts were never -more than a plan of quite reasonable political -theorists, and the demand for payment of members, -never altogether dropped by Radicals, is once more -heard in the land.</p> - -<p>The great contention of Ernest Jones and the -Chartists that political liberty should precede the -granting of reforms by parliament, that the people -should have the power to control and direct the -deliberations of parliaments still has its advocates; -but government is passing—almost unnoticed—once -more into the hands of an executive, for that “eternal -vigilance” which is the price of political liberty is -oftentimes relaxed.</p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="chapter"> -<p><span class="pagenum" id="Page_335">335</span></p> -<h2 id="CONCLUSION">Conclusion</h2> -</div> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<h3 class="left">CONCLUSION</h3> - -<p class="drop-cap"><span class="firstword">Two</span> political movements may be noted -to-day in Great Britain by all who are -interested in such things: the Labour -movement and the Women’s movement -for political enfranchisement.</p> - -<p>The efforts of the past twenty-five years to -establish a separate socialist party in parliament -have not been directly successful, but the Labour -Party has managed to return a group of some thirty -workmen to the House of Commons, and these -men are the responsible and trusted leaders of the -trade-unions and the Independent Labour Party. -Without requiring any formal acknowledgment of -socialist belief, the Labour Party is largely inspired -by socialist teaching, and its goal is the conquest -of government by the labouring people, and a -more even distribution of wealth by the gradual -expropriation of the landlord and the capitalist. -While adhering strictly to constitutional methods of -agitation, giving full respect to the procedure of -parliament and the legal conduct of elections, the -leaders of the Labour Party, in their speeches at -public meetings, use much of the old revolutionary -talk of John Ball and Robert Ket, and the arguments -of Winstanley for the popular ownership of -the land. To the Labour Party as to the Chartists -democratic politics are but a stepping-stone to social -reform, and as in the days of the Chartists the<span class="pagenum" id="Page_336">336</span> -strength of the Labour Party is in the industrial -districts of the North of England, and in South -Wales.</p> - -<p>The Women’s movement, on the other hand, while -demanding nothing but the right to the franchise, -and claiming this right to a voice in the affairs of -the State on the old constitutional ground of Pym -and Hampden—that those who pay direct taxation -to the government must have some political control -of the expenditure—boldly avows in the face of -government refusal the necessity for revolutionary -methods to acquire the franchise. More than 600 -women have gone to prison in the last four years in -the cause of Women’s Suffrage, and the methods -adopted have startled the public, created an enthusiasm, -and generally aroused the attention of a -formerly indifferent parliament to the claim of -women to political enfranchisement.</p> - -<p>Mary Wollstonecraft, in her <cite>Vindication of the -Rights of Women</cite>, published in 1792, struck the -first note of this movement. In the latter half of -the nineteenth century it received the support of -John Stuart Mill and a certain number of parliamentary -radicals, and Women’s Suffrage societies -were formed. Then, five years ago, the Women’s -Social and Political Union was started at Manchester -by Mrs. Pankhurst and her daughter Miss Christabel -Pankhurst, and the extraordinary energy and activity -of this union and the daring and resource of its -members have made the women’s demand for the -vote a vital question in politics.</p> - -<p>Both these movements—the agitation of the -Labour Party for a fuller and more abundant life -for wage-earners, and the agitation of the women<span class="pagenum" id="Page_337">337</span> -for political enfranchisement are proceeding in our -midst—a guarantee that the centuries of struggle -for freedom are not fruitless.</p> - -<p>“The battle of freedom is never done and the -field never quiet,” and while ever sun and moon -endure and man seeks to dominate his neighbour, so -long in England shall men and women be found to -resist such dominance. For “to meet such troubles -and overcome them, or to die in strife with them—this -is a great part of a man’s life.”</p> - -<p class="p2 center wspace larger"><span class="smcap">The End.<span class="pagenum" id="Page_339">339</span></span></p> - -<div class="chapter"><div class="footnotes"> -<h2 class="nobreak left p1" id="FOOTNOTES">FOOTNOTES</h2> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn1"><a id="Footnote_1" href="#FNanchor_1" class="fnanchor">1</a> “By the mouth of the clergy spoke the voice of the helpless, defenceless -multitudes who shared with them in the misery of living in a time -when law was the feeblest and most untrustworthy stay of right, and -men held everything at the mercy of masters, who had many desires -and less scruples, were quickly and fiercely quarrelsome, impatient of -control, superiority and quiet, and simply indifferent to the suffering, -the fear, the waste that make bitter the days when society is enslaved -to the terrible fascination of the sword.”—Church, <cite>Saint Anselm</cite>.</p> - -<p>“Unrestrained by religion, by principle or by policy, with no family -interests to limit his greed, extravagance and hatred of his kind, a foul -incarnation of selfishness in its most abhorrent form, the enemy of God -and man, William Rufus gave to England and Christendom a pattern of -absolutism.”—Stubbs, <cite>Constitutional History</cite>. Vol. I.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn1"><a id="Footnote_2" href="#FNanchor_2" class="fnanchor">2</a> No Archbishop of Canterbury has received the pallium since -Cranmer, but the sign of it remains in the archiepiscopal arms of -Canterbury.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn1"><a id="Footnote_3" href="#FNanchor_3" class="fnanchor">3</a> “No one in those days imagined Christianity without Christendom, -and Christendom without a Pope: and all these bishops understood -exactly as Anselm did the favourite papal text, ‘Thou art Peter, and on -this rock I will build my Church.’ Nobody in those days doubted the -divine authority of the Pope.”—Church, <cite>Saint Anselm</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn1"><a id="Footnote_4" href="#FNanchor_4" class="fnanchor">4</a> “The boldness of Anselm’s attitude not only broke the tradition -of ecclesiastical servitude, but infused through the nation at large a new -spirit of independence.”—J. R. Green.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn1"><a id="Footnote_5" href="#FNanchor_5" class="fnanchor">5</a> “When in Anglo-Norman times you speak of the ‘King’s Court,’ -it is only a phrase for the king’s despotism.”—Sir F. Palgrave, <cite>History -of Normandy and England</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn1"><a id="Footnote_6" href="#FNanchor_6" class="fnanchor">6</a> “The see of St. Peter was the acknowledged constitutional centre of -spiritual law in the West.... It was looked upon as the guide and -regulator of teaching, the tribunal and court from which issued the -oracles of right and discipline, the judgment seat to which an appeal -was open to all, and which gave sentence on wrong and vice without -fear or favour, without respect of persons, even the highest and the -mightiest.... If ever there was a time when the popes honestly -endeavoured to carry out the idea of their office, it was just at this -period of the Middle Ages. They attempted to erect an independent -throne of truth and justice above the passions and the force which -reigned in the world around.”—Church, <cite>Saint Anselm</cite>.</p> - -<p>“Under the rule of William the Red, law had become unlaw, and in -appealing from him to the apostolic throne Anselm might deem he was -appealing from mere force and fraud to the only shadow of right that -was still left on earth.”—Freeman, <cite>Norman Conquest</cite>, Vol. V.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn1"><a id="Footnote_7" href="#FNanchor_7" class="fnanchor">7</a> “In England Anselm had stood only for right and liberty; he, the -chief witness for religion and righteousness, saw all round him vice -rampant, men spoiled of what was their own—justice, decency, honour -trampled under foot. Law was unknown, except to ensnare and -oppress. The King’s Court was the instrument of one man’s selfish and -cruel will, and of the devices of a cunning and greedy minister. The -natural remedies of wrong were destroyed and corrupted; the king’s -peace, the king’s law, the king’s justice, to which men in those days -looked for help, could only be thought of in mocking contrast to the -reality. Against this energetic reign of misrule and injustice, a resistance -as energetic was wanted; and to resist it was felt to be the call -and bounden duty of a man in Anselm’s place. He resisted, as was the -way in those days, man to man, person to person, in outright fashion -and plain-spoken words. He resisted lawlessness, wickedness, oppression, -corruption. When others acquiesced in the evil state, he refused; -and further, he taught a lesson which England has since largely learned, -though in a very different way. He taught his generation to appeal -from force and arbitrary will to law. It was idle to talk of appealing to -law in England; its time had not yet come.”—Church, <cite>Saint Anselm</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn1"><a id="Footnote_8" href="#FNanchor_8" class="fnanchor">8</a> “No discipline restrained them (the king’s attendants); they plundered, -they devastated, they destroyed. What they found in the houses -which they invaded and could not consume, they took to market to sell -for themselves or they burnt it. If it was liquor they would bathe the -feet of their horses in it or pour it on the ground. It shames me to -recall the cruelties they inflicted on the fathers of families and the -insults on their wives and daughters. And so, whenever the king’s -coming was known beforehand, people fled from their houses and hid -themselves and their goods, as far as they could, in the woods or wherever -safety might be found.”—Eadmer.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn1"><a id="Footnote_9" href="#FNanchor_9" class="fnanchor">9</a> “If the Church had continued to buttress the thrones of the king’s -whom it annointed, or if the struggle had terminated in an undivided -victory, all Europe would have sunk down under a Byzantine or Muscovite -despotism.”—Acton, <cite>History of Freedom in Christianity</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_10" href="#FNanchor_10" class="fnanchor">10</a> “By the surrender of the significant ceremony of delivering the -bishopric by the emblematic staff and ring, it was emphatically put on -record that the spiritual powers of the bishop were not the king’s to -give; the prescription of feudalism was broken.”—Church, <cite>Saint -Anselm</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_11" href="#FNanchor_11" class="fnanchor">11</a> “With regard to Thomas’ dealings with the Church, if one thing is -clear it is this—that he was not in the least a man who pushed his Order -at the expense of his loyalty. More than once he refused to listen to an -ecclesiastical claim against the king, even when his old friend Theobald -was behind it: he was perfectly impartial: he taxed churchmen as he -taxed laymen, and in fact, so loyal and reasonable was he that Henry, -when he made him archbishop, seems to have thought that he was wholly -on his side. There were innumerable questions to be decided between -Church and State. Again and again small points came up as to the -appointment of this man or the other, as to the infliction or remission of -a fine; and again and again Thomas decided the cause and advised the -king on the merits of the case.... He was as zealous now for the -State as he was for the Church afterwards. There he stood Chancellor -of England; his business was to administer the laws, and he knew and -did his business.”—R. H. Benson, <cite>St. Thomas of Canterbury</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_12" href="#FNanchor_12" class="fnanchor">12</a> “The only instance which has occurred of the chancellorship being -voluntarily resigned either by layman or ecclesiastic.”—Campbell, -<cite>Lives of the Chancellors</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_13" href="#FNanchor_13" class="fnanchor">13</a> “It must be held in mind that the archbisholp had on his side the -Church or <em>Canon Law</em>, which he had sworn to obey, and certainly the -law courts erred as much on the side of harshness and cruelty as those -of the Church on that of foolish pity towards evil-doers.”—F. York Powell.</p> - -<p>“We have to take ourselves back to a state of society in which a -judicial trial was a tournament, and the ordeal an approved substitute -for evidence, to realise what civilization owes to the Canon Law and the -canonists, with their elaborate system of written law, their judicial -evidence, and their written procedure.”—Rashdall, <cite>Universities of -Europe during the Middle Ages</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_14" href="#FNanchor_14" class="fnanchor">14</a> W. H. Hutton.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_15" href="#FNanchor_15" class="fnanchor">15</a> This conversation is reported by Roger of Pontigny, who ministered -to St. Thomas when the latter was in exile at that place.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_16" href="#FNanchor_16" class="fnanchor">16</a> Garnier was a poet, and he protests passionately against this law, -maintaining that God has called us all to His service. Much more -worth is the villein’s son who is honourable than a nobleman’s son who -is false.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_17" href="#FNanchor_17" class="fnanchor">17</a> W. FitzStephen.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_18" href="#FNanchor_18" class="fnanchor">18</a> W. FitzStephen.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_19" href="#FNanchor_19" class="fnanchor">19</a> Dean Stanley.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_20" href="#FNanchor_20" class="fnanchor">20</a> Freeman, <cite>Historical Essays</cite>. First series.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_21" href="#FNanchor_21" class="fnanchor">21</a> “Hubert was very gracious in the eyes of all the host that lay -before Acre, and in warlike things so magnificent that he was admired -even by King Richard. He was in stature tall, in council prudent, and -though not having the gift of eloquence, he was an able and shrewd -wit. His mind was more on human than divine things, and he knew all -the laws of the realm.”—Gervase.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_22" href="#FNanchor_22" class="fnanchor">22</a> It is notable that in our day only peerages and knighthoods are -sold, and these by political leaders to their partisans. Government -offices, the judicial bench and bishoprics are still fortunately not in the -market, though frequently allotted for partisan reasons.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_23" href="#FNanchor_23" class="fnanchor">23</a> “Owing to the craft of the richer citizens the main part of the -burden fell on the poor.”—Matthew Paris.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_24" href="#FNanchor_24" class="fnanchor">24</a> Some writers say 50,000.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_25" href="#FNanchor_25" class="fnanchor">25</a> William of Newburgh.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_26" href="#FNanchor_26" class="fnanchor">26</a> “Hubert, Archbishop of Canterbury, was a shrewd financier, and -an honourable, conscientious statesman; but as a prelate he is noted -chiefly for his quarrels with his chapter.”—W. H. Hutton, <cite>Social -England</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_27" href="#FNanchor_27" class="fnanchor">27</a> Matthew Paris.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_28" href="#FNanchor_28" class="fnanchor">28</a> “If he was to give up all for which he had been fighting, and -fighting successfully, against the pope and the Church for the past six -years, he must make quite sure of gaining such an advantage as would -be worth the sacrifice. Mere release from excommunication and -interdict was certainly, in his eyes, not worth any sacrifice at all. To -change the pope from an enemy into a political friend was worth it, but—from -John’s point of view—only if the friendship could be made something -much more close and indissoluble than the ordinary official -relation between the pope and every Christian sovereign. He must -bind the pope to his personal interest by some special tie of such a -nature that the interest of the papacy itself would prevent Innocent -from casting it off or breaking it.... To outward personal -humiliation of any kind John was absolutely indifferent, when there was -any advantage to be gained by undergoing it. To any humiliation -which the crown or the nation might suffer in his person, he was indifferent -under all circumstances. His plighted faith he had never had a -moment’s hesitation in breaking, whether it were sworn to his father, his -brother, his allies or his people, and he would break it with equal -facility when sworn to the supreme pontiff.... There seems, in -short, to be good reason for believing that John’s homage to the pope -was offered without any pressure from Rome and on grounds of -deliberate policy.”—K. Norgate, <cite>John Lackland</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_29" href="#FNanchor_29" class="fnanchor">29</a> K. Norgate, <cite>John Lackland</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_30" href="#FNanchor_30" class="fnanchor">30</a> “By the intervention of the Archbishop of Canterbury, with several -of his bishops and some barons, a sort of peace (<i xml:lang="la" lang="la">quasi pax</i>) was made -between the king and the barons.”—Ralph of Coggeshall.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_31" href="#FNanchor_31" class="fnanchor">31</a> Matthew Paris, <cite>Greater Chronicle</cite>, quoted by K. Norgate.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_32" href="#FNanchor_32" class="fnanchor">32</a> “The Charter was a treaty between two powers neither of which -trusted, or even pretended to trust, the other.”—Stubbs, <cite>Constitutional -History</cite>. Vol. II.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_33" href="#FNanchor_33" class="fnanchor">33</a> Luard. Preface to <cite>Grosseteste’s Letters</cite>. Rolls’ Series. 1861.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_34" href="#FNanchor_34" class="fnanchor">34</a> A well-known passage in Matthew Paris, vol. v, gives the monk’s -point of view of Grosseteste, the reformer:—“At this time the Bishop -of Lincoln made a visitation of the religious houses in the diocese. If -one were to tell all the acts of tyranny he committed therein, the bishop -would seem not merely unfeeling but inhuman in his severity. For -amongst other things when he came to Ramsey he went round the -whole place, examined each one of the monks’ beds in the dormitory, -scrutinized everything, and if he found anything locked up destroyed it. -He broke open the monks’ coffers as a thief would, and if he found any -cups wrought with decoration and with feet to stand on he broke them -to pieces, though it would have been wiser to have demanded them -unbroken for the poor. He also heaped the terrible curses of Moses on -the heads of those who disobeyed his injunctions and the blessings of -Moses on those who should observe the same.... And it is believed -all this he hath done to restrain from sin those over whom he hath -authority, and for whose souls he must give account.” This was written -in 1251, when Grosseteste had been sixteen years at Lincoln.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_35" href="#FNanchor_35" class="fnanchor">35</a> Wright, <cite>Political Songs</cite>. Camden Society, 1839.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_36" href="#FNanchor_36" class="fnanchor">36</a> Grosseteste had been unable to get his way with the barons on the -question of legitimacy of children before legal wedlock. By the old -church law marriage made such children legitimate, and at the council -of Merton, in 1236, Grosseteste, with the bishops, tried to bring the -common law into union with the church view on this matter. He was -defeated, and to this day these children are illegitimate. “It would -indeed have been better if the independence exhibited by the majority -who opposed the prelates at Merton had been reserved for another -occasion; for it cannot be deemed that the perpetuation of a law contrary -to that which prevails on the subject in almost every European -country, and which still differentiates Scotland from England by abroad, -though unintelligible line of demarcation, has been open to grave -objection on grounds of public convenience, apart from any inherent -merits or demerits it may possess.”—F. S. Stevenson, <cite>Robert Grosseteste</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_37" href="#FNanchor_37" class="fnanchor">37</a> “Grosseteste, then, may be regarded in a threefold aspect; first, as a -reformer who sought to reform the Church from within and not from -without, by the removal of existing abuses, by the encouragement he -gave to the great religious revival of the early part of the 13th century, -and by the example of unflinching fearlessness and rectitude which he -set in his performance of the episcopal office; secondly, as the teacher -who guided the rising fortunes of the University of Oxford; and thirdly, -as the statesman who, applying to new conditions the policy associated -with the name of Stephen Langton, endeavoured to combine into one -effort the struggle of the clergy for the liberties of the Church with the -struggle of the laity for the liberties of the nation, imbued Simon de -Montfort with principles of ‘truth and justice’ which went far beyond -the mere maintenance of the privileges of his own order, and at the -same time, by his effort to reconcile him with his sovereign, and by the -whole tenour of his actions, showed that had he lived a few years longer, -his influence would have been directed to the task of achieving by -peaceful means the constitutional advance brought about by those -who, taking the sword, perished by the sword.”—Stevenson, <cite>Robert -Grosseteste, Bishop of Lincoln</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_38" href="#FNanchor_38" class="fnanchor">38</a> See recent article on “Grosseteste” in <cite>Catholic Encyclopædia</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_39" href="#FNanchor_39" class="fnanchor">39</a> Yet out of this letter and out of his great knowledge and love of the -Scriptures a notion has been current that Grosseteste was a forerunner -of Protestantism, and “a harbinger of the Reformation.” “If this -implies that he had any tendency towards the doctrinal changes -brought about in the Church at the Reformation, or that he evidenced -any idea of a separation of the Church of England from that of Rome, -a more utterly mistaken statement has never been made.”—Luard, Preface -to <cite>Grosseteste’s Letters</cite>. (Rolls Series.)</p> - -<p>As for Grosseteste’s Scriptural knowledge, “The thorough familiarity -with the Old Testament is, perhaps, only what we might expect; but -the use which is made of the actions of all the characters of Scripture, -and the forced and sometimes outrageous way in which they are introduced -to illustrate his argument, show how thoroughly ‘biblical’ the age -was, and how completely the Old Testament history was regarded -rather as the guide of men’s conduct in Christian times, than as a mere -historical record of past events.”—<cite xml:lang="la" lang="la">Ibid.</cite></p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_40" href="#FNanchor_40" class="fnanchor">40</a> “The king acted as if he had sent him abroad simply to ruin his -fortunes and wreck his reputation.”—Stubbs.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_41" href="#FNanchor_41" class="fnanchor">41</a> Matthew Paris.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_42" href="#FNanchor_42" class="fnanchor">42</a> Rishanger, the chronicler for St. Albans, puts the case for the -national <span class="locked">party:—</span></p> - -<div class="poetry-container"> -<div class="poetry"> - <div class="stanza"> - <div class="verse indentq">“The king that tries without advice to seek his people’s weal</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Must often fail, he cannot know the wants and woes they feel.</div> - <div class="verse indent0">The Parliament must tell the king how he may serve them best,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">And he must see their wants fulfilled and injuries redressed.</div> - <div class="verse indent0">A king should seek his people’s good and not his own sweet will,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Nor think himself a slave because men hold him back from ill.</div> - </div> - <div class="stanza"> - <div class="verse indent0">For they that keep the king from sin serve him the best of all,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Making him free that else would be to sin a wretched thrall.</div> - <div class="verse indent0">True king is he, and truly free, who rules himself aright,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">And chooses freely what he knows will ease his people’s plight.</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Think not it is the king’s goodwill that makes the law to be,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">For law is steadfast, and a king has no stability.</div> - <div class="verse indent0">No! law stands high above the king, for law is that true light</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Without whose ray the king would stray and wander from the right.</div> - <div class="verse indent0">When a king strays he ought to be called back into the way</div> - <div class="verse indent0">By those he rules, who lawfully his will may disobey</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Until he seeks the path, but when his wandering is o’er,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">They ought to help and succour him and love him as before.”</div> - </div> - <div class="attrib">(Translated by F. York Powell.)</div> -</div> -</div> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_43" href="#FNanchor_43" class="fnanchor">43</a> “The new form of government bears evidence of its origin; it is -intended rather to fetter the king than to extend or develop the action -of the community at large. The baronial council clearly regards itself -as competent to act on behalf of all the estates of the realm, and the -expedient of reducing the national deliberations to three sessions of -select committees, betrays a desire to abridge the frequent and somewhat -irksome duty of attendance in parliament rather than to share the -central legislative and deliberative power with the whole body of the -people. It must however be remembered that the scheme makes a very -indistinct claim to the character of a final arrangement.”—Stubbs.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_44" href="#FNanchor_44" class="fnanchor">44</a> A board of twenty-four—half chosen by the king and half by the -barons—had laid a body of resolutions before the Oxford Parliament, -and the first of these resolutions declared that all castles and estates -alienated from the crown should be at once resumed.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_45" href="#FNanchor_45" class="fnanchor">45</a> “The first time, as far as we know, English was used in any public -document.”—Blaauw, <cite>The Barons’ War</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_46" href="#FNanchor_46" class="fnanchor">46</a> </p> - -<div class="poetry-container"> -<div class="poetry"> - <div class="stanza"> - <div class="verse indentq">“End, O Earl of Gloster, what thou hast begun!</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Save thou end it fitly, we are all undone.</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Play the man, we pray thee, as thou hast promised,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Cherish steadfastly the cause of which thou wast the head.</div> - <div class="verse indent0">He that takes the Lord’s work up, and lays it down again,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Shamed and cursed may he be, and all shall say Amen.</div> - </div> - <div class="stanza"> - <div class="verse indent0">Earl Simon, thou of Montfort, so powerful and brave,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Bring up thy strong companies thy country now to save,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Have thou no fear of menaces or terrors of the grave,</div> - <div class="verse indent0">Defend with might the nation’s cause, naught else thine own needs crave.”</div> - </div> - <div class="attrib">—Rishanger, <cite>Political Songs</cite>.</div> -</div> -</div> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_47" href="#FNanchor_47" class="fnanchor">47</a> Stubbs.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_48" href="#FNanchor_48" class="fnanchor">48</a> “The Song of Lewes”—<cite>Political Songs</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_49" href="#FNanchor_49" class="fnanchor">49</a> I am indebted to my friend Fr. Bede Jarrett, O.P., for this interesting -and, I believe, hitherto unpublished suggestion.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_50" href="#FNanchor_50" class="fnanchor">50</a> It was to a Dominican Convent at Montargis that Simon’s widow, -the Princess Eleanor, retired after the fatal battle of Evesham.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_51" href="#FNanchor_51" class="fnanchor">51</a> An appeal was lodged at Rome by several English bishops against -the threatened excommunication, but the papal legate himself became -pope early in 1265, and, as Pope Clement V., was the strongest enemy of -Simon and the national cause. It was only after Evesham and the -death of Simon that Clement urged a wise policy of mercy on Henry -and the royalists.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_52" href="#FNanchor_52" class="fnanchor">52</a> “In this year, while Edward, the king’s son, was still held in ward in -the Castle of Hereford, dissension arose between Simon, Earl of -Leicester, and Gilbert, Earl of Gloucester....</p> - -<p>“For which cause the old friendship was turned into hate, so much so -that neither the consideration of his oath nor former devotion could -thenceforth pacify the said Gilbert.... An endeavour was made -by certain prelates to restore the Earls of Leicester and Gloucester to -their former union; but they could in no wise succeed.”—W. Rishanger.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_53" href="#FNanchor_53" class="fnanchor">53</a> J. R. Green, “The Ban of Kenilworth,” <cite>Historical Studies</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_54" href="#FNanchor_54" class="fnanchor">54</a> “The triumph over Earl Simon had been a triumph over the -religious sentiment of the time, and religion avenged itself in its own -way. Everywhere the earl’s death was viewed as a martyrdom, and -monk and friar, however they might quarrel on other points, united in -praying for the souls of the dead as for ‘soldiers of Christ.’”—J. R. -Green, “The Ban of Kenilworth,” <cite>Historical Studies</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_55" href="#FNanchor_55" class="fnanchor">55</a> <cite>Chronicles of Melrose.</cite></p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_56" href="#FNanchor_56" class="fnanchor">56</a> <cite xml:lang="la" lang="la">Ibid.</cite></p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_57" href="#FNanchor_57" class="fnanchor">57</a> Wright, <cite>Political Songs</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_58" href="#FNanchor_58" class="fnanchor">58</a> See J. R. Green, “Annals of Osney and Wykes,” <cite>Historical Studies</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_59" href="#FNanchor_59" class="fnanchor">59</a> “The project was clearly to set up a new order of things founded on -social equality—a theory which in the whole history of the Middle Ages -appears for the first time in connection with this movement.”—Gairdner.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_60" href="#FNanchor_60" class="fnanchor">60</a> It may be said that to-day the idea of political and social equality is -generally accepted and that of brotherhood denied. In the fourteenth -century brotherhood was esteemed, but equality was a strange, intruding -notion.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_61" href="#FNanchor_61" class="fnanchor">61</a> “The bias of Wyclif in theory and practice is secular, and aristocratic, -and royalist: it is not really socialistic or politically revolutionary,”—Figgis, -<cite>Studies of Political Thought</cite>. Nevertheless, many -writers have tried to discredit Lollardy by associating it with social -revolt, just as others have tried to discredit John Ball by making him out -a “heretic,” and a follower of Wycliff.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_62" href="#FNanchor_62" class="fnanchor">62</a> Froissart seems to be mainly responsible for the belief that this -John Tyler became the great leader of the movement, confusing him -with Wat Tyler, of Maidstone, the real leader. Several writers allege -the indecency of the tax-collectors.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_63" href="#FNanchor_63" class="fnanchor">63</a> “Tyler, according to Walsingham, was a man of ready ability -and good sense. Save in some excesses, which, perhaps, were politic, -possibly unavoidable, and certainly exaggerated, the rebels under him -are admitted to have kept good order, and to have readily submitted to -discipline.”—Thorold Rogers. To Froissart Tyler appears merely as “a -bad man, and a great enemy of the nobility.”</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_64" href="#FNanchor_64" class="fnanchor">64</a> “Fearful lest their voyage should be prevented, or that the populace -should attack them, they heaved their anchors and with some difficulty -left the harbour, for the wind was against them, and put to sea, when -they cast anchor for a wind.”—Froissart.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_65" href="#FNanchor_65" class="fnanchor">65</a> Two names at least have been preserved—Squire Bertram Wilmington -of Wye and John Corehurst of Lamberhurst.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_66" href="#FNanchor_66" class="fnanchor">66</a> Seven years later this Earl of Salisbury, fleeing from Henry Bolingbroke, -was hanged in the streets of Cirencester at the hands of the -people.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_67" href="#FNanchor_67" class="fnanchor">67</a> This law of Winchester was the statute of Edward I., 1285, which -authorised local authorities to appoint constables and preserve the -peace. Tyler’s aim was to strengthen local government in the counties, -making them as far as possible self-governing communes.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_68" href="#FNanchor_68" class="fnanchor">68</a> “It was in the preaching of John Ball that England first listened to -the knell of feudalism, and the declaration of the rights of man.”—J. R. -Green.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_69" href="#FNanchor_69" class="fnanchor">69</a> “Observe how fortunate matters turned out, for had the rebels -succeeded in their intentions they would have destroyed the whole -nobility of England, and after their success other countries would have -rebelled.”—Froissart.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_70" href="#FNanchor_70" class="fnanchor">70</a> See Durrant Cooper—<cite>John Cade’s Followers in Kent</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_71" href="#FNanchor_71" class="fnanchor">71</a> “These two bishops were wonder covetous men, evil beloved among -the common people and holden suspect of many defaults; assenting and -willing to the death of the Duke of Gloucester, as it were said.”—(<cite>A -Chronicle of Henry VI</cite>). According to Gasgoigne—<cite xml:lang="la" lang="la">Loci e Libro Veritatum</cite>—the -people said of Ayscough: “He always kept with the king -and was his confessor, and did not reside in his own diocese of Sarum -with us, nor maintain hospitality.”</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_72" href="#FNanchor_72" class="fnanchor">72</a> “He himself asserted that he had been a captain under the Duke of -York, and that his real name was Mortimer, which may possibly have -been true, for there were several illegitimate branches of the house of -March.”—Professor Oman, <cite>Political History of England</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_73" href="#FNanchor_73" class="fnanchor">73</a> “A young man of a godly nature and right pregnant of wit.”—Holinshed. -Shakspeare’s farcical account of the rising in <cite>King -Henry VI.</cite>, Part II., is, of course, entirely misleading.—See the author’s -<cite>True Story of Jack Cade</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_74" href="#FNanchor_74" class="fnanchor">74</a> See the letter of John Payn in the <cite>Paston Letters</cite>. But Payn -wrote fifteen years afterwards, and seems to have been a person of no -very scrupulous honesty.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_75" href="#FNanchor_75" class="fnanchor">75</a> A special act of parliament was passed in 1452 to cancel all that -Cade had accomplished.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_76" href="#FNanchor_76" class="fnanchor">76</a> Cocke was a well-known supporter of Henry VI. and a man of note. -He was sheriff of London 1453, alderman in 1456, and mayor and M.P. -1462–3. Knighted by Henry in 1465, he fell from his high estate when -Edward IV. was king, and languished in prison on a charge of high -treason, only escaping with his life on payment of £8,000.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_77" href="#FNanchor_77" class="fnanchor">77</a> “What answer to this demand was returned I find not, but like it is -the same was granted and performed; for I find not the said captain and -Kentishmen at their being in the city to have hurt any stranger.”—Stow.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_78" href="#FNanchor_78" class="fnanchor">78</a> When, by order of the Privy Council, the Exchequer seized all -Cade’s goods, these jewels were sold with the rest. They fetched £114, -and a payment of £86 7s. was subsequently made to the Duke of York. -So the crown made some profit on the transaction, but Malpas was -unrecompensed.—See Devon’s <cite>Exchequer Rolls</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_79" href="#FNanchor_79" class="fnanchor">79</a> “Whereof he lost the people’s favour and hearts. For it was to be -thought if he had not executed that robbery he might have gone far and -brought his purpose to good effect.”—Fabyan.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_80" href="#FNanchor_80" class="fnanchor">80</a> This church has long been pulled down. It was absorbed into St. -Saviour’s parish the following year. St. Margaret’s Hill is now part of -High Street, Borough, and the present St. George’s Church stands near -the site of old St. Margaret’s Church.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_81" href="#FNanchor_81" class="fnanchor">81</a> <cite>Acts of Privy Council</cite>, 1451.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_82" href="#FNanchor_82" class="fnanchor">82</a> “In the interests of truth, I must declare at the outset that I cannot -find the very slightest foundation for the assertion of Stapleton, copied -by Cresacre More and many others, that in the course of time their -friendship cooled. Abundant proofs of the contrary will appear.”—Rev. -T. E. Bridgett, <cite>Life and Writings of Sir Thomas More</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_83" href="#FNanchor_83" class="fnanchor">83</a> “Indeed, it was he who pushed me to write the <cite>Praise of Folly</cite>, -that is to say, he made a camel frisk.”—Erasmus to Ulrich von Hutten, -1519.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_84" href="#FNanchor_84" class="fnanchor">84</a> “He had a purpose to be a priest, yet God had allotted him for -another estate, not to live solitary, but that he might be a pattern to -married men: how they should carefully bring up their children, how -dearly they should love their wives, how they should employ their -endeavour wholly for the good of their country, yet excellently perform -the virtues of religious men, as piety, charity, humility, obedience and -conjugal chastity.”—Cresacre More.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_85" href="#FNanchor_85" class="fnanchor">85</a> Erasmus to Ulrich von Hutten.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_86" href="#FNanchor_86" class="fnanchor">86</a> “It is clear that Sir Thomas had a little Utopia of his own in his -family. He was making an experiment in education, and he was delighted -with its success. The fame of his learned daughters became -European through the praises of Erasmus, and was so great in England -that in 1529, when they were all married ladies, they were invited by -the king to hold a kind of philosophical tournament in his presence.... -More will ever stand foremost in the ranks of the defenders of -female culture.”—Rev. T. E. Bridgett, <cite>Life and Writings of Sir -Thomas More</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_87" href="#FNanchor_87" class="fnanchor">87</a> “He most warily retired from every opposition but that which -conscience absolutely required. He displayed that very peculiar -excellence of his character, which, as it showed his submission to be -the fruit of sense of duty, gave dignity to that which in others is apt to -seem to be slavish.”—Sir James Mackintosh, <cite>Life of More</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_88" href="#FNanchor_88" class="fnanchor">88</a> “Parliament is discussing the revocation of all synods and other -constitutions of the English clergy, and the prohibition of holding -synods without express license of the king. This is a strange thing. -Churchmen will be of less account than shoemakers, who have the -power of assembling and making their own statutes.”—Chapuys, -<cite>Letters and Papers of Henry VIII.</cite> (Rolls Series).</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_89" href="#FNanchor_89" class="fnanchor">89</a> Chapuys, <cite>Letters and Papers of Henry VIII.</cite> (Rolls Series).</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_90" href="#FNanchor_90" class="fnanchor">90</a> <cite>Lives of the Chancellors.</cite></p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_91" href="#FNanchor_91" class="fnanchor">91</a> <cite>Letters and Papers of Henry VIII.</cite> (Rolls Series).</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_92" href="#FNanchor_92" class="fnanchor">92</a> Roper.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_93" href="#FNanchor_93" class="fnanchor">93</a> “To More a heretic was neither a simple man erring by ignorance, -nor a learned man using his freedom in doubtful points: he was a man -whose heart was ‘proud, poisoned, and obstinate,’ because he denied -the Divine guidance of the Church while he claimed special Divine inspiration -for himself.”—Rev. T. E. Bridgett.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_94" href="#FNanchor_94" class="fnanchor">94</a> More’s <cite>English Works—Apology</cite>. It is only thirty years after his -death that Foxe suggests More as a persecutor. All the evidence is in -the opposite direction.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_95" href="#FNanchor_95" class="fnanchor">95</a> Sir James Mackintosh, <cite>Life of More</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_96" href="#FNanchor_96" class="fnanchor">96</a> See Dr. Jessop, <cite>The Great Pillage</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_97" href="#FNanchor_97" class="fnanchor">97</a> <cite>See State Papers, Domestic, Edward VI.</cite></p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_98" href="#FNanchor_98" class="fnanchor">98</a> The common lands engrossed in the 15th and 16th centuries were -the farm lands cultivated in common by the peasants. The enclosure of -the commons was left to a later date, and took place between 1760 and -1830.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn2"><a id="Footnote_99" href="#FNanchor_99" class="fnanchor">99</a> This Flowerdew had distinguished himself at the destruction of the -abbey at Wymondham by Henry VIII., by tearing off the lead from the -roof of the church and pulling down the choir, for the sake of the stones, -after the people had raised a large sum of money for the king in order to -save the church.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_100" href="#FNanchor_100" class="fnanchor">100</a> “By bearing a confident countenance in all his actions the vulgars -took him (Ket) to be both valiant and wise and a fit man to be their -commander.”—Sir John Hayward, <cite>Life of Edward VI.</cite></p> - -<p>“This Ket was a proper person to be a ringleader of mischief, for he -was of a bold, haughty spirit, and of a cankered mind against the -Government.”—John Strype, <cite>Ecclesiastical Memorials</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_101" href="#FNanchor_101" class="fnanchor">101</a> These two “were partly fain to agree, lest they being out of favour -and place, others might come to bring all out of frame that now might -partly be well framed, and the rather they assented to keep the -people in better order during answer from the prince.”—Nicholas -Sutherton.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_102" href="#FNanchor_102" class="fnanchor">102</a> “That a populous and wealthy city like Norwich should have been -for three weeks in the hands of 20,000 rebels, and should have escaped -utter pillage and ruin speaks highly for the rebel leaders.”—W. Rye, -<cite>Victoria County History of Norfolk</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_103" href="#FNanchor_103" class="fnanchor">103</a> A few years later, and John Dudley, Earl of Warwick, now Duke of -Northumberland, again visited East Anglia to proclaim his daughter-in-law, -Lady Jane Grey, Queen of England. No one rose at his call. -Neither peasant nor landowner responded to the proclamation; and -John Dudley, Earl of Warwick and Duke of Northumberland, died, as -his father before him had died, convicted of treason, beheaded by the -executioner’s axe on Tower Hill. It was August 22nd, 1553, just four -years after the suppression of the peasants’ rising in Norfolk when -Northumberland was put to death.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_104" href="#FNanchor_104" class="fnanchor">104</a> “Robert Ket was not a mere craftsman: he was a man of substance, -the owner of several manors: his conduct throughout was -marked by considerable generosity: nor can the name of patriot be -denied to him who deserted the class to which he might have belonged -or aspired, and cast in his lot with the suffering people.”—Canon Dixon, -<cite>History of the Church of England</cite>.</p> - -<p>In 1588 a grandson of Robert Ket was burnt as a Nonconformist -heretic by order of Elizabeth.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_105" href="#FNanchor_105" class="fnanchor">105</a> The three were Oxford men. Sir John Eliot was at Exeter (1607), -Hampden at Magdalen (1609) and Pym at Broadgate Hall, afterwards -called Pembroke (1599).</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_106" href="#FNanchor_106" class="fnanchor">106</a> “In Eliot’s composition there was nothing of the dogmatic orthodoxy -of Calvinism, nothing of the painful introspection of the later -Puritans. His creed, as it shines clearly out from the work of his -prison hours, as death was stealing upon him—<cite>The Monarchy of Man</cite>—was -the old heathen philosophic creed, mellowed and spiritualised by -Christianity. Between such a creed and Rome there was a great gulf -fixed. Individual culture and the nearest approach to individual perfection -for the sake of the State and the Church, formed a common ground -on which Eliot could stand with the narrowest Puritan.”—S. R. Gardiner.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_107" href="#FNanchor_107" class="fnanchor">107</a> Eliot’s argument “was a claim to render ministerial responsibility -once more a reality, and thereby indirectly to make parliament -supreme.”—S. R. Gardiner.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_108" href="#FNanchor_108" class="fnanchor">108</a> “He (Eliot) was to the bottom of his heart an idealist. To him the -parliament was scarcely a collection of fallible men, just as the king -was hardly a being who could by any possibility go deliberately -astray. If he who wore the crown had wandered from the right path, -he had but to listen to those who formed, in more than a rhetorical -sense, the collective wisdom of the nation.”—S. R. Gardiner.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_109" href="#FNanchor_109" class="fnanchor">109</a> “His (Hampden’s) distinction lay in his power of disentangling the -essential part from the non-essential. In the previous constitutional -struggle he had seen that the one thing necessary was to establish the -supremacy of the House of Commons.”—S. R. Gardiner.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_110" href="#FNanchor_110" class="fnanchor">110</a> Clarendon.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_111" href="#FNanchor_111" class="fnanchor">111</a> “The same men who, six months before, were observed to be of -very moderate tempers, and to wish that gentle remedies might be -applied, talked now in another dialect both of kings and persons; and -said that they must now be of another temper than they were in the last -parliament.”—Clarendon.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_112" href="#FNanchor_112" class="fnanchor">112</a> The Nineteen Propositions fairly express the views of Pym and -Hampden at this time on the supremacy of the Commons. The main -proposals were the authority of parliament: in the <em>sole</em> choice of the -ministers of the crown, in the regulation of state policy, in the management -of the militia, in the education of the royal children, in the -remodeling of the discipline of the Church of England; and the -guardianship by parliament of all forts and castles. It was of first -importance in Pym’s mind that parliament should have the control in -military matters. Without the power of the sword the House of -Commons could not ensure the personal safety of its members or the -privileges of free debate against the enmity of the king. To command -the army was to govern the country.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_113" href="#FNanchor_113" class="fnanchor">113</a> See G. P. Gooch, <cite>History of Democratic Ideas in the Seventeenth -Century</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_114" href="#FNanchor_114" class="fnanchor">114</a> “By its injudicious treatment of the most popular man in England, -parliament was arraying against itself a force which only awaited an -opportunity to sweep it away.”—G. P. Gooch, <cite>History of Democratic -Ideas in the Seventeenth Century</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_115" href="#FNanchor_115" class="fnanchor">115</a> “Advocating direct government by a democratic Parliament and -the fullest development of individual liberty, the Levellers looked with -suspicion on the Council of State as a body which might possibly be -converted into an executive authority independent of parliament, and -thoroughly distrusted Cromwell as aiming at military despotism. Well-intentioned -and patriotic as they were, they were absolutely destitute -of political tact, and had no sense of the real difficulties of the situation, -and, above all, of the impossibility of rousing the popular sympathy on -behalf of abstract reasonings.”—S. R. Gardiner, <cite>History of the Commonwealth -and Protectorate</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_116" href="#FNanchor_116" class="fnanchor">116</a> S. R. Gardiner.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_117" href="#FNanchor_117" class="fnanchor">117</a> The movement “had sprung into existence in response to a widely -spread apprehension that the victory of the people might be rendered -fruitless. Its call had found an echo in the ranks of the army, and by -its admirable organization it had insisted that the leaders should hear -what it had to say. It had powerfully influenced their conduct and had -introduced a radical element into their programme. When this had -been done, the soldiers felt that its <i xml:lang="fr" lang="fr">raison d’être</i> as a separate party had -come to an end. The battle had been fought, and the victory, at least -for the time, had fallen to Ireton.”—G. P. Gooch, <cite>History of Democratic -Ideas in the Seventeenth Century</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_118" href="#FNanchor_118" class="fnanchor">118</a> “In other words, not only Cromwell and Ireton, but also Fairfax, -who had recently been elected a member of the House, were to be summarily -cashiered.”—S. R. Gardiner, <cite>History of the Commonwealth</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_119" href="#FNanchor_119" class="fnanchor">119</a> See the pamphlet “A Petition of Well-affected Women,” 1649. -There is something curiously familiar in the exhortation to the women.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_120" href="#FNanchor_120" class="fnanchor">120</a> “Unfortunately his friends, in petitioning for his release, rested -their case on the ground that all sentences given by a court-martial -were made illegal by the Petition of Right and the law of the land. -Such a doctrine would have dissolved the army into chaos, and when -Lilburne and Overton wrote to Fairfax, threatening him with the fate of -Joab and Strafford, all chance of pardon was at an end. Lockyer -firmly believed himself to be a martyr to the cause of right and justice.”—S. -R. Gardiner, <cite>History of the Commonwealth</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_121" href="#FNanchor_121" class="fnanchor">121</a> See Whitelocke’s <cite>Memorials</cite>, “The Army’s Martyr,” “A True -Narrative,” and “The Moderate” (1649).</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_122" href="#FNanchor_122" class="fnanchor">122</a> “So die the Leveller corporals. Strong they, after their sort, for -the liberties of England; resolute to the very death.”—Carlyle.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_123" href="#FNanchor_123" class="fnanchor">123</a> Lilburne’s attitude to Winstanley’s propaganda was similar to the -attitude of the political Chartists in the 19th century to Robert Owen’s -socialism.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_124" href="#FNanchor_124" class="fnanchor">124</a> “Then ensued a scene, the like of which had in all probability never -been witnessed in an English court of justice, and was never again to be -witnessed till the seven bishops were freed by the verdict of a jury from -the rage of James II.”—S. R. Gardiner.</p> - -<p>“In a revolution, where others argued about the respective rights -of king and parliament, he spoke always of the rights of the people. -His dauntless courage and his power of speech made him the idol of the -mob.”—Professor C. H. Firth, “Lilburne,” <cite>Dictionary of National Biography</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_125" href="#FNanchor_125" class="fnanchor">125</a> See L. A. Berens, <cite>Digger Movement in the Days of the Commonwealth</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_126" href="#FNanchor_126" class="fnanchor">126</a> <cite>Clarke Papers</cite>, vol. ii.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_127" href="#FNanchor_127" class="fnanchor">127</a> Government rarely distinguishes between different schools of -agitators.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_128" href="#FNanchor_128" class="fnanchor">128</a> Between 1710 and 1867 the number of acres so enclosed was -7,660,439.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_129" href="#FNanchor_129" class="fnanchor">129</a> <cite>Clarke Papers</cite>, vol. ii.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_130" href="#FNanchor_130" class="fnanchor">130</a> See Graham Wallas, <cite>Life of Francis Place</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_131" href="#FNanchor_131" class="fnanchor">131</a> “Disappointment bitter and wide-spread was following closely upon -the inevitable failure of the extravagant expectations and overheated -hopes which the agitation for parliamentary reform had kindled.”—F. -York Powell, <cite>The Queen’s Reign: a Survey</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_132" href="#FNanchor_132" class="fnanchor">132</a> See Graham Wallas, <cite>Life of Francis Place</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_133" href="#FNanchor_133" class="fnanchor">133</a> Herbert Paul, <cite>History of Modern England</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_134" href="#FNanchor_134" class="fnanchor">134</a> <cite xml:lang="la" lang="la">Ibid.</cite></p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_135" href="#FNanchor_135" class="fnanchor">135</a> “Want of leaders and organization, and the great difference in -objects among the Chartists themselves, led to their failure. For a while -Chartism was stayed.”—Professor T. F. Tout, <cite>England from 1689</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_136" href="#FNanchor_136" class="fnanchor">136</a> The differences between the two became more acute when Feargus -O’Connor started his land colonization schemes a few years later. -O’Brien opposed these schemes, which all ended in heavy financial -losses, and urged sticking to political reform. From 1842 O’Brien was -practically outside the Chartist movement, though it was not till 1848 he -formally retired. He died in poverty in 1864, after giving some help to -the middle-class radical movement for household suffrage.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_137" href="#FNanchor_137" class="fnanchor">137</a> A similar impulse fifty years later brought “Labour Churches” into -existence.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_138" href="#FNanchor_138" class="fnanchor">138</a> “The ministers had met the Chartist outbreaks with strong, -repressive measures, and here they had the concurrence of parliament, -which had no sympathy with the movement. The House of Commons, -indeed, had little understanding of the processes that were maturing -outside its walls. The industrial and the social evolution went on -almost unnoticed by statesmen and politicians absorbed in the party -controversy.”—Sidney Low and Lloyd Sanders, <cite>Political History -of England</cite>, 1837–1901. See also Hansard’s <cite>Parliamentary Debates</cite> for -these years.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_139" href="#FNanchor_139" class="fnanchor">139</a> “The least satisfactory feature of English life in 1846 was the -condition of the labouring classes. Politically they were dumb, for they -had no parliamentary votes. Socially they were depressed, though -their lot had been considerably improved by an increased demand for -labour and by the removal of taxes in Peel’s great Budget of 1842. -That was the year in which the misery of the English proletariat -reached its lowest depth.”—Herbert Paul, <cite>History of Modern -England</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_140" href="#FNanchor_140" class="fnanchor">140</a> Stephens, a “hot-headed” Chartist preacher, put the case as he, a -typical agitator of the day, saw it in 1839: “The principle of the -People’s Charter is the right of every man to have his home, his hearth, -and his happiness. The question of universal suffrage is after all a -knife-and-fork question. It means that every workman has a right to -have a good hat and coat, a good roof, a good dinner, no more work -than will keep him in health, and as much wages as will keep him in -plenty.”—See R. G. Gamage, <cite>History of the Chartist Movement</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_141" href="#FNanchor_141" class="fnanchor">141</a> Charles Kingsley, who is said to have signed the petition, gives his -view of April 10th in <cite>Alton Locke</cite>.</p> - -</div> - -<div class="footnote"> - -<p class="fn3"><a id="Footnote_142" href="#FNanchor_142" class="fnanchor">142</a> See Hansard, June, 1849.</p> - -</div> -</div></div> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="chapter"><div class="index"> -<h2 class="nobreak left p1" id="INDEX">INDEX</h2> - -<ul class="index"> -<li class="ifrst">Adam of Marsh, Franciscan friar, friend of Grosseteste and de Montfort, <a href="#Page_120">120</a>, <a href="#Page_130">130</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Aldrich, an Alderman of Norwich, <a href="#Page_229">229</a>, <a href="#Page_231">231</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Alexander III., Pope, <a href="#Page_45">45</a>, <a href="#Page_56">56</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Anselm, Abbot of Bec, <a href="#Page_8">8</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">called to court of William II., <a href="#Page_8">8</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">appointed Archbishop of Canterbury, <a href="#Page_9">9</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">refuses to give up church lands, <a href="#Page_11">11</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">firm attitude at Council of Rockingham, <a href="#Page_15">15</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">semblance of peace with the king, <a href="#Page_16">16</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">leaves England, <a href="#Page_18">18</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">returns at request of Henry I., <a href="#Page_19">19</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">his services to the king, <a href="#Page_21">21</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">dispute with the king, <a href="#Page_23">23</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">reconciliation, <a href="#Page_26">26</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">his death and character, <a href="#Page_27">27–30</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">his birthplace, <a href="#Page_30">30</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Appleton, William, <a href="#Page_161">161</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Ayscough, Bishop of Salisbury, impeached for treason, <a href="#Page_174">174</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">murdered at Erdington, <a href="#Page_175">175</a></li> - -<li class="ifrst">Bailey, John, hanged by Cade, <a href="#Page_184">184</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Ball, John, itinerant priest from York, preaches social revolution, <a href="#Page_143">143</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">released from Maidstone prison by Wat Tyler, <a href="#Page_153">153</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">preaches to Tyler’s followers at Blackheath, <a href="#Page_153">153</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">hanged as a rebel, <a href="#Page_167">167</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Barton, Elizabeth, “Holy Maid of Kent,” <a href="#Page_206">206</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Becket, Thomas, his parentage, <a href="#Page_33">33</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">early years, <a href="#Page_34">34</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">appointed Chancellor of Canterbury, <a href="#Page_34">34</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">ordained priest and appointed to Archbishopric, <a href="#Page_38">38</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">dispute with the king, <a href="#Page_41">41–45</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">yields to king’s demands at Council of Clarendon, <a href="#Page_47">47</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">refutes charges at Council of Northampton, <a href="#Page_49">49</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">leaves England and appeals to the pope, <a href="#Page_55">55</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">reconciliation with the king, <a href="#Page_57">57</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">lands at Sandwich, <a href="#Page_57">57</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">ill-will of the bishops, <a href="#Page_58">58</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">Henry’s sudden rage, <a href="#Page_59">59</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">his murder, <a href="#Page_63">63</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">his canonisation, <a href="#Page_64">64</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Belknap, Chief Justice, <a href="#Page_147">147</a>, <a href="#Page_148">148</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Berksted, Stephen, Bishop of Chichester, <a href="#Page_128">128</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Bigod, Hugh of Norfolk, <a href="#Page_121">121</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Bigod, Roger, <a href="#Page_126">126</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Boniface of Savoy, Archbishop of Canterbury, <a href="#Page_110">110</a>, <a href="#Page_131">131</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Bradshaw, John, <a href="#Page_297">297</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Buckingham, Duke of, <a href="#Page_249">249</a>, <a href="#Page_250">250</a>, <a href="#Page_251">251</a>, <a href="#Page_252">252</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Burdett, Sir Francis, <a href="#Page_313">313</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Burley, Sir Simon, <a href="#Page_148">148</a>, <a href="#Page_163">163</a></li> - -<li class="ifrst">Cade, Jack, leader of the revolt of Kentish commons, 1450, <a href="#Page_173">173</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">uncertainty as to real name and family, <a href="#Page_176">176</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">marches to Blackheath at head of <a href="#Page_46">46</a>,000 followers, <a href="#Page_177">177</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">draws up and presents petition to Henry VI., <a href="#Page_178">178</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">no answer returned, <a href="#Page_178">178</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">withdraws to Sevenoaks and defeats small body of Henry’s troops, <a href="#Page_180">180</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">gathers reinforcements in Kent, <a href="#Page_181">181</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">Henry VI. treats with him fruitlessly, <a href="#Page_181">181</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">enters London without opposition, <a href="#Page_182">182</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">preserves strict discipline in his force, <a href="#Page_184">184</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">forced to levy toll for support of his followers, <a href="#Page_185">185</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">after first good reception London turns against him, <a href="#Page_187">187</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">unsuccessful fight for London Bridge, <a href="#Page_187">187</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">treats with Henry’s representatives, <a href="#Page_188">188</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">many of his adherents return to their homes, <a href="#Page_189">189</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">refuses to lay down arms till parliament issues legal pardon, <a href="#Page_189">189</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1"><span class="pagenum" id="Page_340">340</span>proclaimed a traitor, <a href="#Page_189">189</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">defeated at Queenborough, <a href="#Page_189">189</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">dies fighting as a fugitive, in Sussex, <a href="#Page_189">189</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">head exposed on London Bridge, <a href="#Page_190">190</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Cartwright, John, enters Navy and begins promising career, <a href="#Page_308">308</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">it is cut short by his siding with the Americans at outbreak of war, 1776, <a href="#Page_308">308</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">trains the Nottinghamshire Militia, <a href="#Page_309">309</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">pioneer of political reform, <a href="#Page_310">310</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">writes and speaks on the subject, <a href="#Page_310">310</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">unsuccessful efforts to enter parliament, <a href="#Page_312">312</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">at age of 80 charged with sedition and fined, <a href="#Page_313">313</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">known as “Father of Reform,” <a href="#Page_315">315</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Catherine of Aragon, <a href="#Page_203">203</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Cantilupe, Bishop of Worcester, <a href="#Page_122">122</a>, <a href="#Page_126">126</a>, <a href="#Page_133">133</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Cantilupe, Thomas, Chancellor, <a href="#Page_128">128</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Cave, Robert, <a href="#Page_148">148</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Chalton, Sir John, Lord Mayor of London, <a href="#Page_183">183</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Charles I., <a href="#Page_250">250</a> <i xml:lang="la" lang="la">et seq.</i>, <a href="#Page_280">280</a>, <a href="#Page_282">282</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Church, Corporal, <a href="#Page_286">286</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Clarendon, Earl of (quoted), <a href="#Page_262">262</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Clarendon, Council of, <a href="#Page_46">46</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Clarkson, Thomas, <a href="#Page_313">313</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Cocke (or Cooke) Thomas, friend to both Henry VI. and Cade, <a href="#Page_182">182</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Cod, Thomas, Mayor of Norwich, <a href="#Page_228">228</a>, <a href="#Page_229">229</a>, <a href="#Page_231">231</a>, <a href="#Page_232">232</a>, <a href="#Page_233">233</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Coke, Lord Justice, <a href="#Page_252">252</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Colet, Dean of St. Paul’s, <a href="#Page_199">199</a>, <a href="#Page_212">212</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Conyers, Dr., Vicar of St. Martin, Norwich, <a href="#Page_231">231</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Cranmer, Archbishop, <a href="#Page_204">204</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Cromwell, Oliver, <a href="#Page_279">279</a> <i xml:lang="la" lang="la">et seq.</i></li> - -<li class="indx">Cromwell, Thomas, <a href="#Page_208">208</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Crowmer, Sheriff of Kent, <a href="#Page_180">180</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">arrested and sent to Tower, <a href="#Page_181">181</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">beheaded by Cade’s orders, <a href="#Page_184">184</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Curtis (Girste, or Ghirstis) City Merchant, <a href="#Page_186">186</a></li> - -<li class="ifrst">De Burgh, Hubert, <a href="#Page_95">95</a>, <a href="#Page_107">107</a></li> - -<li class="indx">De Gray, John, Bishop of Norwich, <a href="#Page_81">81</a>, <a href="#Page_82">82</a></li> - -<li class="indx">De Morville, Hugh, <a href="#Page_59">59–63</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Derby, Henry, Earl of (afterwards Henry IV.), <a href="#Page_157">157</a>, <a href="#Page_163">163</a>, <a href="#Page_170">170</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Despenser, Henry, Bishop of Norwich, <a href="#Page_168">168</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Des Roches, Peter, Bishop of Winchester, <a href="#Page_82">82</a>, <a href="#Page_94">94</a>, <a href="#Page_107">107</a>, <a href="#Page_108">108</a></li> - -<li class="indx">De Tracy, William, <a href="#Page_59">59–63</a></li> - -<li class="indx">De Valence, William, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132</a></li> - -<li class="ifrst">Eadmer (quoted), <a href="#Page_6">6</a>, <a href="#Page_7">7</a>, <a href="#Page_14">14</a>, <a href="#Page_17">17</a>, <a href="#Page_26">26</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Edward, Prince, son of Henry III., afterwards King-Edward I.;</li> -<li class="isub1">takes oath of reform to barons, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">takes Gloucester in civil war, <a href="#Page_126">126</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">taken prisoner at Battle of Lewes, <a href="#Page_127">127</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">escapes to Welsh marshes, <a href="#Page_132">132</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">intercepts de Montfort’s relief force at Evesham, <a href="#Page_133">133</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Eliot, John, enters parliament as member for St. Germans, <a href="#Page_249">249</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">knighted and becomes Vice-Admiral of Devon, <a href="#Page_249">249</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">captures the pirate Nutt, but eventually finds himself in Marshalsea prison over the affair, <a href="#Page_250">250</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">released and is returned for Newport, 1624, <a href="#Page_250">250</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">quarrels with Buckingham and insists upon his impeachment, <a href="#Page_251">251</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">imprisoned in Tower in connection therewith, but soon released, <a href="#Page_251">251</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">refuses forced loan and again imprisoned and deprived of Vice-Admiralship, <a href="#Page_252">252</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">carries Petition of Right, <a href="#Page_252">252</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">attacks policy of Laud, <a href="#Page_252">252</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">supports John Rolle in refusing payment of taxes, <a href="#Page_253">253</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">summoned before Privy Council, imprisoned for fourth time, and fined, <a href="#Page_255">255</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">remains passionately loyal to House of Commons, <a href="#Page_256">256</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">health gives way in confinement, <a href="#Page_257">257</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">dies in the Tower, 1632, <a href="#Page_257">257</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">his son’s appeal for his burial at Port Eliot, Cornwall, refused, <a href="#Page_257">257</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Erasmus, <a href="#Page_193">193</a>, <a href="#Page_194">194</a>, <a href="#Page_197">197</a>, <a href="#Page_202">202</a>, <a href="#Page_211">211</a>, <a href="#Page_212">212</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Essex, Earl of, <a href="#Page_267">267</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Ethelmar, half-brother to Henry III., <a href="#Page_106">106</a></li> - -<li class="indx"><span class="pagenum" id="Page_341">341</span>Everard, <a href="#Page_297">297</a>, <a href="#Page_298">298</a></li> - -<li class="ifrst">Fairfax, General, <a href="#Page_298">298</a>, <a href="#Page_299">299</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Falkland, Lord, <a href="#Page_265">265</a>, <a href="#Page_266">266</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Finch, Chief Justice, <a href="#Page_262">262</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Fisher, Bishop of Rochester, <a href="#Page_206">206</a>, <a href="#Page_207">207</a>, <a href="#Page_208">208</a></li> - -<li class="indx">FitzOsbert, William, called Longbeard; his early life, <a href="#Page_72">72</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">lays his grievances before Richard I., <a href="#Page_72">72</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">defies Archbishop Hubert, <a href="#Page_73">73</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">his arrest and death, <a href="#Page_75">75</a></li> - -<li class="indx">FitzStephen, W. (quoted), <a href="#Page_35">35</a>, <a href="#Page_49">49</a>, <a href="#Page_53">53</a>, <a href="#Page_59">59</a></li> - -<li class="indx">FitzUrse, Reginald, <a href="#Page_59">59–63</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Flowerdew, Sergeant, <a href="#Page_222">222</a>, <a href="#Page_223">223</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Frost, <a href="#Page_321">321</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Fulke, follower of Ket, <a href="#Page_235">235</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Fussell, <a href="#Page_328">328</a></li> - -<li class="ifrst">Gilbert, Earl of Gloucester, <a href="#Page_126">126</a>, <a href="#Page_128">128</a>, <a href="#Page_131">131</a>, <a href="#Page_132">132</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Gough, Matthew, <a href="#Page_186">186</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Green, J. R. (quoted), <a href="#Page_91">91</a>, <a href="#Page_92">92</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Green, Squire of Wylby, <a href="#Page_222">222</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Gregory IX., Pope, letter to, from Grosseteste, <a href="#Page_102">102</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Grindcobbe, William, supporter of John Ball in Hertford, <a href="#Page_143">143</a>, <a href="#Page_146">146</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">follows Wat Tyler, <a href="#Page_149">149</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">at Mile End, <a href="#Page_159">159</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">hanged at St. Albans, <a href="#Page_167">167</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Grosseteste, Bishop of Lincoln, born in Suffolk of humble parentage, goes to Oxford, rises to foremost honours there, and becomes bishop, at sixty, <a href="#Page_101">101</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">institutes reforms at Oxford, <a href="#Page_102">102</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">befriends Dominican and Franciscan friars, <a href="#Page_102">102</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">withstands Henry III.’s rapacity, <a href="#Page_104">104</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">attends council in London, recites grievances of Henry III.’s misrule, <a href="#Page_107">107</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">resists seizure of English Church revenues by Innocent IV., <a href="#Page_108">108–111</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">refuses canonry of Lincoln to pope’s nephew, <a href="#Page_111">111</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">Cardinals uphold Grosseteste against Innocent IV., <a href="#Page_112">112</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">makes appeal to whole realm on behalf of rights of English Church, <a href="#Page_113">113</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">dies, 1235, and is buried in Lincoln Cathedral, <a href="#Page_113">113</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">Edward I.’s application for canonization refused, <a href="#Page_113">113</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Gunnell, Tutor in Sir Thomas More’s family, <a href="#Page_199">199</a></li> - -<li class="ifrst">Hales, Sir Robert, Treasurer to Richard II., <a href="#Page_146">146</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">advises no conference with Tyler’s followers, <a href="#Page_154">154</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">beheaded on Tower Hill, <a href="#Page_160">160</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Hampden, John, refuses to pay ship-money, <a href="#Page_258">258</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">case decided against him, <a href="#Page_259">259</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">acts with Eliot against Buckingham, <a href="#Page_261">261</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">strong influence in House of Commons, <a href="#Page_262">262</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">prominent work in Long Parliament, <a href="#Page_263">263</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">impeached for high treason, <a href="#Page_265">265</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">takes refuge from Charles in city, <a href="#Page_266">266</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">prepares for war, <a href="#Page_266">266</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">raises regiment of infantry in Bucks, <a href="#Page_267">267</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">mortally wounded at Chalgrove, <a href="#Page_268">268</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Hazlerig, <a href="#Page_265">265</a>, <a href="#Page_288">288</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Henry I., <a href="#Page_19">19–26</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Henry II.; appoints Thomas Becket Chancellor of England, <a href="#Page_34">34</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">their close friendship, <a href="#Page_35">35</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">determines to appoint Thomas to the archbishopric, <a href="#Page_36">36</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">his dispute with Thomas, and its cause, <a href="#Page_41">41</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">draws up the Constitutions of Clarendon, <a href="#Page_46">46</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">his dissatisfaction with the result, <a href="#Page_48">48</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">charges Thomas with corrupt practices, <a href="#Page_48">48–54</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">his sudden rage and hasty words, resulting in the murder of the archbishop, <a href="#Page_63">63</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Henry III.; appeals for money at Council of Westminster, 1244, <a href="#Page_104">104</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">confronts bishops with Innocent IV.’s letter exhorting them to give liberally, <a href="#Page_104">104</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">bishops evade coercion, <a href="#Page_105">105</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">king again tries in 1252, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">bishops, led by Grosseteste, refuse, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">his miserable misrule, <a href="#Page_108">108</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">dealings with Simon of Montfort in Gascony, <a href="#Page_118">118–120</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1"><span class="pagenum" id="Page_342">342</span>his financial difficulties reach climax, 1257, <a href="#Page_120">120</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">continued quarrels with barons, <a href="#Page_122">122</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">obtains dispensation from promises to barons, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">civil war is declared, <a href="#Page_126">126</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">defeated by Simon of Montfort, and peace made, 1264, <a href="#Page_127">127</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">war again breaks out, <a href="#Page_132">132</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">is victorious, <a href="#Page_137">137</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Henry VIII., <a href="#Page_197">197</a>, <a href="#Page_201">201</a>, <a href="#Page_202">202</a>, <a href="#Page_203">203</a>, <a href="#Page_207">207</a>, <a href="#Page_208">208</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Holland, Sir John, <a href="#Page_159">159</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Holles, <a href="#Page_265">265</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Horne, Alderman, <a href="#Page_182">182</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Horne, Alderman, supports Tyler, and welcomes him to London, <a href="#Page_156">156</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Hotham, Sir John, <a href="#Page_267">267</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Howe, Lord, <a href="#Page_308">308</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Hugh of Lincoln, <a href="#Page_77">77</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Herbert of Bosham (quoted), <a href="#Page_38">38</a>, <a href="#Page_58">58</a></li> - -<li class="ifrst">Iden, Alexander, <a href="#Page_189">189</a>, <a href="#Page_190">190</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Innocent III., Pope, <a href="#Page_77">77</a>, <a href="#Page_81">81</a>, <a href="#Page_83">83</a>, <a href="#Page_95">95</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Innocent IV., Pope, <a href="#Page_104">104</a>, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>, <a href="#Page_110">110</a>, <a href="#Page_111">111</a>, <a href="#Page_113">113</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Ireton, General, <a href="#Page_280">280</a>, <a href="#Page_286">286</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Islip, Archbishop of Canterbury, <a href="#Page_144">144</a></li> - -<li class="ifrst">John, King, refuses to acknowledge Stephen Langton’s appointment to archbishopric, <a href="#Page_81">81</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">seizes estates of Canterbury, and drives chapter into exile, <a href="#Page_82">82</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">is excommunicated, <a href="#Page_83">83</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">meets primate at Winchester and is formally absolved, <a href="#Page_85">85</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">strife with barons, <a href="#Page_86">86</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">his campaign to recover lost Angevine provinces, <a href="#Page_87">87</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">capitulation to the barons, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">signs the Great Charter, <a href="#Page_91">91</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">his death, <a href="#Page_95">95</a></li> - -<li class="indx">John of Gaunt, calls parliament at Northampton, <a href="#Page_147">147</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">his unpopularity with the people, <a href="#Page_151">151</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">his palace of the Savoy and its valuable contents destroyed, <a href="#Page_157">157</a></li> - -<li class="indx">John of Salisbury (quoted), <a href="#Page_56">56</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Jones, Ernest, <a href="#Page_324">324</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">joins Chartist movement at <a href="#Page_27">27</a>, <a href="#Page_325">325</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">son of an officer and educated abroad, <a href="#Page_325">325</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">works with Feargus O’Connor, <a href="#Page_325">325</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">attends Chartist convention, <a href="#Page_327">327</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">addresses large meetings in London, <a href="#Page_328">328</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">arrested, tried, found guilty of seditious speech and imprisoned, <a href="#Page_328">328</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">on his release Chartist movement declining, <a href="#Page_329">329</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">contests Halifax unsuccessfully, <a href="#Page_330">330</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">gives support to advanced radicals, <a href="#Page_330">330</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">stands twice unsuccessfully for Nottingham, <a href="#Page_330">330</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">dies suddenly at the age of <a href="#Page_50">50</a>, <a href="#Page_330">330</a></li> - -<li class="ifrst">Kemp, Cardinal, Archbishop of York, Chancellor to Henry VI., <a href="#Page_187">187</a>, <a href="#Page_188">188</a>, <a href="#Page_190">190</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Kent, Earl of, <a href="#Page_159">159</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Ket, Robert, landowner in Norfolk, a tanner by trade, <a href="#Page_223">223</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">sympathies on the side of the people, <a href="#Page_223">223</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">offers to lead the movement against enclosures of land, <a href="#Page_224">224</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">he is eagerly accepted as captain, and leads large army towards Norwich, <a href="#Page_224">224</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">issues manifesto attacking landlords, <a href="#Page_225">225</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">advances to Mousehold, and his force increases to 20,000, <a href="#Page_228">228</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">sends statement to Edward VI., <a href="#Page_229">229</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">king replies by herald, <a href="#Page_229">229</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">sets about organising and victualling his followers, as he is not content with vague promises, <a href="#Page_230">230</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">arrests landowners, <a href="#Page_231">231</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">repudiates king’s “pardon” as being a just and innocent man, <a href="#Page_232">232</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">his arrest ordered by king’s messenger, but impossible in the presence of his followers, <a href="#Page_232">232</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">friction arises between Norwich authorities and the rebels, <a href="#Page_232">232</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">fight ensues, Norwich in his hands, <a href="#Page_233">233</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">unsuccessfully opposed by Marquis of Northampton, <a href="#Page_234">234</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">commands in Norwich for three weeks, <a href="#Page_235">235</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">disappointed at rising not becoming general, <a href="#Page_236">236</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">negotiates with Earl of Warwick, sent to suppress revolt, <a href="#Page_237">237</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1"><span class="pagenum" id="Page_343">343</span>abrupt conclusion, and battle follows, <a href="#Page_238">238</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">his mistaken tactics and defeat, <a href="#Page_239">239</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">his followers surrender to Warwick, <a href="#Page_239">239</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">his flight and capture, <a href="#Page_239">239</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">tried, found guilty of high treason and condemned to death, <a href="#Page_241">241</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">hanged in chains in Norwich, <a href="#Page_241">241</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Ket, William, <a href="#Page_223">223</a>, <a href="#Page_239">239</a>, <a href="#Page_240">240</a>, <a href="#Page_241">241</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Knolles, Sir Robert, <a href="#Page_156">156</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Knyvett, Sir Edmund, <a href="#Page_236">236</a></li> - -<li class="ifrst">Langham, Simon, Archbishop of Canterbury, <a href="#Page_144">144</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Langland, Robert, <a href="#Page_145">145</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Langton, Stephen, appointed to archbishopric of Canterbury against King John’s wishes by Innocent III., <a href="#Page_81">81</a>, <a href="#Page_82">82</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">is driven into exile by the king, <a href="#Page_82">82</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">returns six years later, <a href="#Page_85">85</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">starts the movement for the Great Charter, <a href="#Page_86">86</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">frames articles for the Charter, <a href="#Page_90">90</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">disagreement with papal legate, <a href="#Page_94">94</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">works for preservation of peace during early years of Henry III.’s reign, <a href="#Page_95">95</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">his character and place in history, <a href="#Page_96">96</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Laud, Archbishop, <a href="#Page_252">252</a>, <a href="#Page_253">253</a>, <a href="#Page_256">256</a>, <a href="#Page_257">257</a>, <a href="#Page_260">260</a>, <a href="#Page_262">262</a>, <a href="#Page_272">272</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Legge, John, <a href="#Page_147">147</a>, <a href="#Page_160">160</a></li> - -<li class="indx">le Despenser, Hugh, Justiciar, <a href="#Page_126">126</a>, <a href="#Page_128">128</a>, <a href="#Page_134">134</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Lilburne, John, apprenticed to a cloth merchant in London and becomes friend of Prynne, <a href="#Page_278">278</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">charged before Star Chamber with circulating unlicensed books, and sentenced to be whipped, pilloried, and imprisoned, <a href="#Page_278">278</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">released by order of Long Parliament, <a href="#Page_278">278</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">fights at Edgehill and Marston Moor, where he is taken prisoner, <a href="#Page_278">278</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">leaves army in 1645 rather than take the Covenant, <a href="#Page_279">279</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">resists the tyranny of parliamentary government, <a href="#Page_279">279</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">heads the party in the army called the Levellers, <a href="#Page_281">281</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">again imprisoned and released in 1649, <a href="#Page_282">282</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">writes pamphlets against the government and is again imprisoned, <a href="#Page_284">284</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">petition presented to parliament for his release, <a href="#Page_284">284</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">tried for treasonable writings, <a href="#Page_287">287</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">fined and banished, <a href="#Page_288">288</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">goes to Holland, and returns, without permission, to London, in 1653, <a href="#Page_289">289</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">arrested and acquitted, <a href="#Page_289">289</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">again imprisoned by Cromwell for two years, <a href="#Page_290">290</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">converted to Quakerism, <a href="#Page_290">290</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">released and pensioned, <a href="#Page_290">290</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">dies at Eltham, <a href="#Page_290">290</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Litster, Geoffrey, follower of John Ball in Norfolk, <a href="#Page_143">143</a>, <a href="#Page_146">146</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">his death, <a href="#Page_168">168</a>, <a href="#Page_217">217</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Looney, <a href="#Page_328">328</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Lovett, <a href="#Page_319">319</a>, <a href="#Page_322">322</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Luard (quoted), <a href="#Page_101">101–2</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Lyons, Richard, <a href="#Page_161">161</a></li> - -<li class="ifrst">Macaulay, Lord (quoted), <a href="#Page_264">264</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Malpas, Philip, <a href="#Page_185">185</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Martin, Papal Legate, <a href="#Page_110">110</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Matthew of Westminster (quoted), <a href="#Page_127">127</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Maurice, C. E. (quoted), <a href="#Page_95">95</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Mendall, John, a name by which Jack Cade was known, <a href="#Page_175">175</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Moleyns, Bishop of Chichester, supporter of Duke of Suffolk, killed at Portsmouth, <a href="#Page_174">174</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Montfort, Henry of, eldest son of Earl of Leicester, <a href="#Page_133">133</a>, <a href="#Page_134">134</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Montfort, Simon of, second son of Earl of Leicester, <a href="#Page_132">132</a>, <a href="#Page_133">133</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Montfort, Simon of, Earl of Leicester, son of first Earl of Leicester, marries Eleanor, sister of Henry III., and widow of Earl of Pembroke, <a href="#Page_117">117</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">boyhood passed in France, <a href="#Page_117">117</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">leaves for crusades, distinguished career in Palestine, <a href="#Page_118">118</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">returns in 1242, <a href="#Page_118">118</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">works with Grosseteste in his reforms, <a href="#Page_118">118</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">goes to Gascony for five years (1248–53) and deals with turbulent nobles, <a href="#Page_118">118</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">saves Gascony for English crown, and restores order in the province, <a href="#Page_119">119</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">Henry III.’s ingratitude, <a href="#Page_119">119</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1"><span class="pagenum" id="Page_344">344</span>recognized leader of the barons on his return to England, <a href="#Page_120">120</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">successful in “Mad Parliament,” 1258, <a href="#Page_122">122</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">as “foreigner” yields castles of Kenilworth and Odiham, <a href="#Page_123">123</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">fresh difficulties with Henry III. in carrying out Provisions of Oxford, <a href="#Page_124">124</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">civil war imminent, 1264;</li> -<li class="isub1">and many bishops and barons desert Simon, <a href="#Page_125">125</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">offers £<a href="#Page_30">30</a>,000 to king to make peace and adhere to Provisions of Oxford—proposal rejected, <a href="#Page_126">126</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">Battle of Lewes won by Simon, <a href="#Page_126">126</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">peace made, <a href="#Page_127">127</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">draws up new scheme of reform, the precursor of later representative government, <a href="#Page_129">129</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">fresh disturbances and defections, followed by renewal of war, <a href="#Page_132">132</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">Battle of Evesham, and death of Simon, <a href="#Page_134">134</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">interred in Evesham Abbey, <a href="#Page_134">134</a></li> - -<li class="indx">More, Sir Thomas, born 1478, member of Cardinal Morton’s household, leaves there for Oxford, and later studies law in Lincoln’s Inn, <a href="#Page_193">193</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">friendship with Erasmus, <a href="#Page_194">194</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">spends four years with Carthusians, <a href="#Page_195">195</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">leaves Charterhouse, marries and enters parliament, <a href="#Page_195">195</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">opposes Henry VII.’s exactions, <a href="#Page_195">195</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">Under-Sheriff for the City, <a href="#Page_196">196</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">embassies to Flanders and Calais, <a href="#Page_197">197</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">enters Henry VIII.’s service, and rises rapidly to highest offices of State, <a href="#Page_197">197</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">happy domestic life, <a href="#Page_198">198</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">withholds support from king on his divorce from Catherine of Aragon, <a href="#Page_203">203</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">resigns chancellorship, <a href="#Page_205">205</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">declines to be present at Anne Boleyn’s coronation, <a href="#Page_206">206</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">unsuccessful attempt to implicate him in the “treason” of Holy Maid of Kent, <a href="#Page_206">206</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">finds himself unable to take oath denying papal supremacy, and is sent to Tower, <a href="#Page_207">207</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">indicted for treason, <a href="#Page_208">208</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">sentenced to death, <a href="#Page_209">209</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">beheaded on Tower Hill, <a href="#Page_210">210</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">beatified, <a href="#Page_213">213</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Mortimer, name by which Jack Cade was popularly known, <a href="#Page_176">176</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Mortimer, Roger, <a href="#Page_132">132</a></li> - -<li class="ifrst">Newton, Sir John, Governor of Rochester Castle, taken prisoner by Tyler, <a href="#Page_149">149</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">sent with message from Tyler to the king, <a href="#Page_154">154</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Nicholas, papal legate, <a href="#Page_86">86</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Norfolk, Duke of, <a href="#Page_202">202</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Northampton, Council of, <a href="#Page_48">48</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Northampton, Marquis of (William Parr), <a href="#Page_234">234</a></li> - -<li class="ifrst">Oastler, <a href="#Page_323">323</a></li> - -<li class="indx">O’Brien, James Bronterre, <a href="#Page_320">320</a>, <a href="#Page_321">321</a>, <a href="#Page_322">322</a></li> - -<li class="indx">O’Connor, Feargus, <a href="#Page_320">320</a>, <a href="#Page_323">323</a>, <a href="#Page_329">329</a>, <a href="#Page_330">330</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Otho, papal legate, <a href="#Page_109">109</a>, <a href="#Page_110">110</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Overton, Richard, <a href="#Page_284">284</a></li> - -<li class="ifrst">Palgrave, Sir Francis (quoted), <a href="#Page_22">22</a>, <a href="#Page_23">23</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Pandulf, papal legate, <a href="#Page_83">83</a>, <a href="#Page_94">94</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Pankhurst, Mrs., <a href="#Page_336">336</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Pankhurst, Christabel, <a href="#Page_336">336</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Paris, Matthew (quoted), <a href="#Page_100">100</a>, <a href="#Page_105">105</a>, <a href="#Page_108">108</a>, <a href="#Page_113">113</a>, <a href="#Page_117">117</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Parker, Matthew, afterwards Archbishop of Canterbury, <a href="#Page_231">231</a>, <a href="#Page_232">232</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Perkins, Corporal, <a href="#Page_286">286</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Petibone, John, <a href="#Page_232">232</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Place, Francis, <a href="#Page_314">314</a>, <a href="#Page_319">319</a>, <a href="#Page_320">320</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Powell, Professor York (quoted), <a href="#Page_30">30</a>, <a href="#Page_65">65</a>, <a href="#Page_91">91</a>, <a href="#Page_121">121</a>, <a href="#Page_135">135</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Prince, <a href="#Page_284">284</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Pym, John, enters House of Commons, 1614, <a href="#Page_260">260</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">conspicuous in “Short Parliament,” <a href="#Page_260">260</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">supports Eliot in Buckingham’s impeachment, <a href="#Page_261">261</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">becomes leader of parliamentary party, <a href="#Page_261">261</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">canvasses England on horseback before “Long Parliament,” <a href="#Page_261">261</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">opens charge of impeachment against Strafford, <a href="#Page_262">262</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">active work in parliament, <a href="#Page_263">263</a>, <a href="#Page_264">264</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1"><span class="pagenum" id="Page_345">345</span>makes overtures to the queen, <a href="#Page_263">263</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">impeached for high treason, <a href="#Page_265">265</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">takes refuge in city from Charles, <a href="#Page_266">266</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">secures Portsmouth and Hull for the parliament, <a href="#Page_266">266</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">his “solemn league and covenant” accepted by parliament, <a href="#Page_269">269</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">dies, 1643, and buried in Westminster Abbey, <a href="#Page_269">269</a></li> - -<li class="ifrst">Rich, Edmund, Archbishop of Canterbury, <a href="#Page_106">106</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">retires to Pontigny, 1240, and dies, <a href="#Page_109">109</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Richard II., agrees to interview with Tyler, <a href="#Page_154">154</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">allows himself to be dissuaded, <a href="#Page_155">155</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">sends to Tyler for written statement of grievances, <a href="#Page_157">157</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">agrees to a meeting at Mile End, <a href="#Page_159">159</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">assents to Tyler’s requests, <a href="#Page_160">160</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">second meeting at Smithfield, <a href="#Page_162">162</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">again agrees to Tyler’s demands, <a href="#Page_164">164</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">after Tyler’s death personally disperses his followers, <a href="#Page_166">166</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">the danger passed, rebels fiercely punished, <a href="#Page_167">167</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">formally annuls charters granted to Tyler, <a href="#Page_168">168</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">his death, <a href="#Page_170">170</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Richard the Breton, <a href="#Page_59">59–63</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Richard, Earl of Cornwall, half brother to Henry III., became King of the Romans, <a href="#Page_118">118</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Richard, Earl of Gloucester, <a href="#Page_121">121</a>, <a href="#Page_122">122</a>, <a href="#Page_124">124</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Rishanger, Chronicler for St. Albans (quoted), <a href="#Page_121">121</a>, <a href="#Page_134">134</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Rockingham, Council of, <a href="#Page_13">13</a>, <a href="#Page_15">15</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Roger of Wendover (quoted), <a href="#Page_88">88</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Roper, William, son-in-law to Sir Thomas More, <a href="#Page_195">195</a>, <a href="#Page_196">196</a>, <a href="#Page_202">202</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Roper, Margaret (his wife), <a href="#Page_198">198</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Russell, Lord John, <a href="#Page_321">321</a>, <a href="#Page_326">326</a>, <a href="#Page_329">329</a></li> - -<li class="ifrst">Sadler, <a href="#Page_323">323</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Salisbury, Earl of, counsels Richard II. not to interview Tyler, <a href="#Page_155">155</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">at Smithfield, <a href="#Page_163">163</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">his death, <a href="#Page_170">170</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Sanders, Henry, <a href="#Page_297">297</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Say-and-Sele, Lord, treasurer to Henry VI., impeached for treason, <a href="#Page_174">174</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">arrested and taken to Tower, <a href="#Page_181">181</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">beheaded by Cade’s order, <a href="#Page_184">184</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Scales, Lord, guardian of prisoners in Tower, <a href="#Page_182">182</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">in conjunction with mayor and corporation opposes Cade, <a href="#Page_186">186</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Seldon, <a href="#Page_252">252</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Shaftesbury, Lord, <a href="#Page_323">323</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Sharpe, <a href="#Page_328">328</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Sheffield, Lord, <a href="#Page_234">234</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Sibley, Alderman, <a href="#Page_156">156</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Somerset, Protector, <a href="#Page_221">221</a>, <a href="#Page_236">236</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Stafford, Archbishop of Canterbury, Chancellor to Henry VI., <a href="#Page_181">181</a>, <a href="#Page_187">187</a>, <a href="#Page_188">188</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Stafford, Sir Humfrey, <a href="#Page_180">180</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Stafford, Sir William, <a href="#Page_180">180</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Standish, Ralph, <a href="#Page_165">165</a>, <a href="#Page_166">166</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Steward, Augustine, <a href="#Page_234">234</a>, <a href="#Page_235">235</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Strafford, Earl of, <a href="#Page_252">252</a>, <a href="#Page_256">256</a>, <a href="#Page_262">262</a>, <a href="#Page_263">263</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Straw, Jack, priest in Essex, follower of John Ball, <a href="#Page_143">143</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">acts as lieutenant to Wat Tyler, <a href="#Page_149">149</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">hanged without trial, <a href="#Page_167">167</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Strode, <a href="#Page_265">265</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Sudbury, Simon, Archbishop of Canterbury, <a href="#Page_144">144</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">his palace at Canterbury ransacked by Tyler, <a href="#Page_152">152</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">Lambeth palace stormed by Tyler and records destroyed, but building uninjured, <a href="#Page_156">156</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">beheaded by Tyler, on Tower Hill, <a href="#Page_161">161</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Suffolk, Duke of, chief minister to Henry VI., <a href="#Page_173">173</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">impeached as a traitor, <a href="#Page_174">174</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">beheaded, <a href="#Page_174">174</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Suffolk, Earl of, President of Richard II.’s council, <a href="#Page_155">155</a>, <a href="#Page_163">163</a>, <a href="#Page_167">167</a>, <a href="#Page_170">170</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Sutherton, Leonard, <a href="#Page_232">232</a></li> - -<li class="ifrst">Tonge, Alderman, <a href="#Page_156">156</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Theobald, Archbishop, <a href="#Page_33">33</a>, <a href="#Page_34">34</a>, <a href="#Page_36">36</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Thompson, Corporal William, <a href="#Page_285">285</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Thompson, Cornet, <a href="#Page_286">286</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Tressilian, Sir Robert, <a href="#Page_167">167</a>, <a href="#Page_170">170</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Tyler, John, <a href="#Page_148">148</a>, <a href="#Page_149">149</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Tyler, Wat, chosen captain of peasants at Maidstone, <a href="#Page_149">149</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">his recorded history can be followed for eight days only, <a href="#Page_150">150</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1"><span class="pagenum" id="Page_346">346</span>his followers at first moderate, <a href="#Page_151">151</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">at Canterbury, <a href="#Page_152">152</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">bursts open gaol at Maidstone and releases Ball and other prisoners, <a href="#Page_153">153</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">sets out for London at head of <a href="#Page_30">30</a>,000 men, <a href="#Page_153">153</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">encamps at Blackheath, <a href="#Page_153">153</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">sends Sir John Newton with message to Richard II., <a href="#Page_154">154</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">interview refused, <a href="#Page_155">155</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">he marches on London Bridge, and destroys adjacent property, <a href="#Page_155">155</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">keeps his followers under strict discipline, <a href="#Page_156">156</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">demands interview with the king, <a href="#Page_158">158</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">conference at Mile End, <a href="#Page_159">159</a>, <a href="#Page_160">160</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">invites king to meet him again, at Smithfield, <a href="#Page_162">162</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">his demands agreed to, <a href="#Page_164">164</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">in sudden scuffle draws dagger, strikes Walworth, and is mortally wounded in return, <a href="#Page_165">165</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">his head exposed on London Bridge, <a href="#Page_166">166</a></li> - -<li class="ifrst">Urban, Pope, <a href="#Page_18">18</a>, <a href="#Page_19">19</a></li> - -<li class="ifrst">Vernon, <a href="#Page_328">328</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Vincent, <a href="#Page_321">321</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Von Hutten, Ulrich, <a href="#Page_193">193</a></li> - -<li class="ifrst">Warwick, Earl of, High Chamberlain to Henry VIII., <a href="#Page_236">236–240</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Walter, Hubert, Bishop of Salisbury, afterwards Archbishop of Canterbury, <a href="#Page_69">69</a>, <a href="#Page_70">70</a>, <a href="#Page_73">73</a>, <a href="#Page_76">76</a>, <a href="#Page_77">77</a>, <a href="#Page_81">81</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Walter of Coventry (quoted), <a href="#Page_85">85</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Walworth, William, Mayor of London, owns London houses of ill-fame, <a href="#Page_155">155</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">the same destroyed by Tyler, <a href="#Page_155">155</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">attempts to fortify London Bridge, <a href="#Page_155">155</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">urges king and council to action, <a href="#Page_157">157</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">at Smithfield, <a href="#Page_163">163</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">wounds Tyler mortally, <a href="#Page_165">165</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">knighted by Richard, <a href="#Page_166">166</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Walwyn, <a href="#Page_283">283</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Warham, Archbishop, <a href="#Page_197">197</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Watson, a Norwich preacher, <a href="#Page_229">229</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Waynfleet, William, Bishop of Winchester, <a href="#Page_188">188</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Wellington, Duke of, <a href="#Page_326">326</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Wentworth (see Strafford, Earl of).</li> - -<li class="indx">Weston, Chancellor of the Exchequer, <a href="#Page_252">252</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Wilberforce, William, <a href="#Page_313">313</a></li> - -<li class="indx">William I., his character, <a href="#Page_3">3</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">condition of country under, <a href="#Page_3">3–5</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">death, <a href="#Page_5">5</a></li> - -<li class="indx">William II., his character, <a href="#Page_5">5</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">condition of England under, <a href="#Page_6">6</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">appoints Anselm to Archbishopric of Canterbury, <a href="#Page_10">10</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">his quarrel with Anselm, <a href="#Page_11">11–13</a>, <i xml:lang="la" lang="la">et seq.</i>;</li> -<li class="isub1">his death, <a href="#Page_19">19</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Williams, <a href="#Page_328">328</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Windebank, <a href="#Page_262">262</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Winstanley, Gerrard, <a href="#Page_286">286</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">leader of the “Digger” movement, <a href="#Page_293">293</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">born in Lancashire, but settled in London as a trader, <a href="#Page_294">294</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">fails, and retires to the country, <a href="#Page_294">294</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">publishes pamphlets, social and religious, <a href="#Page_295">295</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">first action of the “Diggers,” <a href="#Page_297">297–8</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">appeals to General Fairfax against interference, <a href="#Page_299">299</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">receives little notice, <a href="#Page_300">300</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">makes further active efforts, <a href="#Page_300">300</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">movement suppressed, <a href="#Page_300">300</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">little known of him later, <a href="#Page_301">301</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Wollstonecraft, Mary, <a href="#Page_336">336</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Wolsey, Cardinal, <a href="#Page_197">197</a>, <a href="#Page_201">201</a>, <a href="#Page_202">202</a>, <a href="#Page_203">203</a>, <a href="#Page_208">208</a>, <a href="#Page_217">217</a>, <a href="#Page_222">222</a></li> - -<li class="indx">Wraw, John, supporter of Ball in Suffolk, <a href="#Page_143">143</a>, <a href="#Page_146">146</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">follows Wat Tyler, <a href="#Page_149">149</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">at Blackheath, <a href="#Page_153">153</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">returns to Suffolk to announce rising, <a href="#Page_153">153</a>;</li> -<li class="isub1">is hanged as rebel, <a href="#Page_167">167</a></li> -</ul> -</div></div> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<p class="p2 center"><i>The Westminster Press (Gerrards Ltd.), Harrow Road, London, W.</i></p> - -<hr class="chap" /> - -<div class="chapter"><div class="transnote"> -<h2 class="nobreak center p1" id="Transcribers_Notes">Transcriber’s Note</h2> - -<p>Punctuation, hyphenation, and spelling were made -consistent when a predominant preference was found -in the original book; otherwise they were not changed.</p> - -<p>Simple typographical errors were corrected; unpaired -quotation marks were remedied when the change was -obvious, and otherwise left unpaired.</p> - -<p>Illustrations in this eBook have been positioned -between paragraphs and outside quotations. In versions -of this eBook that support hyperlinks, the page -references in the List of Illustrations lead to the -corresponding illustrations.</p> - -<p>Footnotes, originally at the bottoms of pages, have been collected -and placed just before the Index of this eBook.</p> - -<p>The index was not checked for proper alphabetization -or correct page references.</p> -</div></div> -</div> -<p> </p> -<p> </p> -<hr class="pgx" /> -<p>***END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK LEADERS OF THE PEOPLE***</p> -<p>******* This file should be named 64437-h.htm or 64437-h.zip *******</p> -<p>This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:<br /> -<a href="http://www.gutenberg.org/dirs/6/4/4/3/64437">http://www.gutenberg.org/6/4/4/3/64437</a></p> -<p> -Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will -be renamed.</p> - -<p>Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright -law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works, -so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United -States without permission and without paying copyright -royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part -of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project -Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm -concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark, -and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive -specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this -eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook -for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports, -performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given -away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks -not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the -trademark license, especially commercial redistribution. -</p> - -<h2 class="pgx" title="">START: FULL LICENSE<br /> -<br /> -THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE<br /> -PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</h2> - -<p>To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free -distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work -(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project -Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full -Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at -www.gutenberg.org/license.</p> - -<h3 class="pgx" title="">Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works</h3> - -<p>1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm -electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to -and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property -(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all -the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or -destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your -possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a -Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound -by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the -person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph -1.E.8.</p> - -<p>1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be -used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who -agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few -things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works -even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See -paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project -Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this -agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm -electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.</p> - -<p>1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the -Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection -of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual -works in the collection are in the public domain in the United -States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the -United States and you are located in the United States, we do not -claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing, -displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as -all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope -that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting -free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm -works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the -Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily -comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the -same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when -you share it without charge with others.</p> - -<p>1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern -what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are -in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, -check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this -agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, -distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any -other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no -representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any -country outside the United States.</p> - -<p>1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:</p> - -<p>1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other -immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear -prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work -on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the -phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, -performed, viewed, copied or distributed:</p> - -<blockquote><p>This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United - States and most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost - no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use - it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with - this eBook or online - at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you - are not located in the United States, you'll have to check the laws - of the country where you are located before using this - ebook.</p></blockquote> - -<p>1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is -derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not -contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the -copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in -the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are -redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project -Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply -either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or -obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm -trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.</p> - -<p>1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted -with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution -must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any -additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms -will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works -posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the -beginning of this work.</p> - -<p>1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm -License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this -work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.</p> - -<p>1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this -electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without -prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with -active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project -Gutenberg-tm License.</p> - -<p>1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary, -compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including -any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access -to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format -other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official -version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site -(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense -to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means -of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain -Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the -full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.</p> - -<p>1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying, -performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works -unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.</p> - -<p>1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing -access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works -provided that</p> - -<ul> -<li>You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from - the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method - you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed - to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has - agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project - Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid - within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are - legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty - payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project - Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in - Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg - Literary Archive Foundation."</li> - -<li>You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies - you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he - does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm - License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all - copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue - all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm - works.</li> - -<li>You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of - any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the - electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of - receipt of the work.</li> - -<li>You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free - distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.</li> -</ul> - -<p>1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project -Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than -are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing -from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The -Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm -trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.</p> - -<p>1.F.</p> - -<p>1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable -effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread -works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project -Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm -electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may -contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate -or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other -intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or -other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or -cannot be read by your equipment.</p> - -<p>1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right -of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project -Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project -Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project -Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all -liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal -fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT -LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE -PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE -TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE -LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR -INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH -DAMAGE.</p> - -<p>1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a -defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can -receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a -written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you -received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium -with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you -with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in -lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person -or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second -opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If -the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing -without further opportunities to fix the problem.</p> - -<p>1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth -in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO -OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT -LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.</p> - -<p>1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied -warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of -damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement -violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the -agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or -limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or -unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the -remaining provisions.</p> - -<p>1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the -trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone -providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in -accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the -production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm -electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, -including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of -the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this -or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or -additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any -Defect you cause.</p> - -<h3 class="pgx" title="">Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm</h3> - -<p>Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of -electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of -computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It -exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations -from people in all walks of life.</p> - -<p>Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the -assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's -goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will -remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project -Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure -and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future -generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see -Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at -www.gutenberg.org.</p> - -<h3 class="pgx" title="">Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation</h3> - -<p>The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit -501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the -state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal -Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification -number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by -U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.</p> - -<p>The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the -mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its -volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous -locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt -Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to -date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and -official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact</p> - -<p>For additional contact information:</p> - -<p> Dr. Gregory B. Newby<br /> - Chief Executive and Director<br /> - gbnewby@pglaf.org</p> - -<h3 class="pgx" title="">Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation</h3> - -<p>Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide -spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of -increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be -freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest -array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations -($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt -status with the IRS.</p> - -<p>The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating -charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United -States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a -considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up -with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations -where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND -DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular -state visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.</p> - -<p>While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we -have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition -against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who -approach us with offers to donate.</p> - -<p>International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make -any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from -outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.</p> - -<p>Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation -methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other -ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To -donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate</p> - -<h3 class="pgx" title="">Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.</h3> - -<p>Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project -Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be -freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and -distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of -volunteer support.</p> - -<p>Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed -editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in -the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not -necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper -edition.</p> - -<p>Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search -facility: www.gutenberg.org</p> - -<p>This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm, -including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary -Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to -subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.</p> - -</body> -</html> - diff --git a/old/64437-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/64437-h/images/cover.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index a249269..0000000 --- a/old/64437-h/images/cover.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/64437-h/images/i_f001.jpg b/old/64437-h/images/i_f001.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index b72d525..0000000 --- a/old/64437-h/images/i_f001.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/64437-h/images/i_p002.jpg b/old/64437-h/images/i_p002.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 160e4c8..0000000 --- a/old/64437-h/images/i_p002.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/64437-h/images/i_p032.jpg b/old/64437-h/images/i_p032.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 997e749..0000000 --- a/old/64437-h/images/i_p032.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/64437-h/images/i_p140.jpg b/old/64437-h/images/i_p140.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index ce8982b..0000000 --- a/old/64437-h/images/i_p140.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/64437-h/images/i_p192.jpg b/old/64437-h/images/i_p192.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 5692fd4..0000000 --- a/old/64437-h/images/i_p192.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/64437-h/images/i_p244.jpg b/old/64437-h/images/i_p244.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index 75f7a5a..0000000 --- a/old/64437-h/images/i_p244.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/64437-h/images/i_p256.jpg b/old/64437-h/images/i_p256.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index a2fdda8..0000000 --- a/old/64437-h/images/i_p256.jpg +++ /dev/null diff --git a/old/64437-h/images/i_p306.jpg b/old/64437-h/images/i_p306.jpg Binary files differdeleted file mode 100644 index b2df9dc..0000000 --- a/old/64437-h/images/i_p306.jpg +++ /dev/null |
